This is a modern-English version of Annie Besant: An Autobiography, originally written by Besant, Annie.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
ANNIE BESANT
AN AUTOBIOGRAPHY
Illustrated
LONDON
SECOND EDITION
From a photograph by H.S. Mendelssohn, 27, Cathcart Road, South Kensington, London
ANNIE BESANT
1885
PREFACE
It is a difficult thing to tell the story of a life, and yet more difficult when that life is one's own. At the best, the telling has a savour of vanity, and the only excuse for the proceeding is that the life, being an average one, reflects many others, and in troublous times like ours may give the experience of many rather than of one. And so the autobiographer does his work because he thinks that, at the cost of some unpleasantness to himself, he may throw light on some of the typical problems that are vexing the souls of his contemporaries, and perchance may stretch out a helping hand to some brother who is struggling in the darkness, and so bring him cheer when despair has him in its grip. Since all of us, men and women of this restless and eager generation—surrounded by forces we dimly see but cannot as yet understand, discontented with old ideas and half afraid of new, greedy for the material results of the knowledge brought us by Science but looking askance at her agnosticism as regards the soul, fearful of superstition but still more fearful of atheism, turning from the husks of outgrown creeds but filled with desperate hunger for spiritual ideals--since all of us have the same anxieties, the same griefs, the same yearning hopes, the same passionate desire for knowledge, it may well be that the story of one may help all, and that the tale of one should that went out alone into the darkness and on the other side found light, that struggled through the Storm and on the other side found Peace, may bring some ray of light and of peace into the darkness and the storm of other lives.
It’s a tough challenge to share the story of a life, and even harder when that life is your own. At best, it can come across as self-important, and the only reason for doing it is that an ordinary life reflects many others, providing insights that resonate during troubled times like ours. The autobiographer shares his experiences with the hope that, despite some discomfort for himself, he can shed light on the common issues troubling his peers and perhaps reach out to someone struggling in darkness, offering them encouragement when despair feels overwhelming. Since we all—men and women of this restless and eager generation—are surrounded by forces we barely understand, dissatisfied with old ideas yet hesitant about new ones, craving the tangible benefits of the knowledge science has given us while being wary of its agnosticism regarding the soul, fearful of superstition but even more so of atheism, and seeking to leave behind outdated beliefs while desperately longing for spiritual ideals—since we share these same worries, the same sorrows, the same hopeful aspirations, and the same intense thirst for knowledge, it’s likely that the story of one person can resonate with many. The journey of someone who ventured into darkness only to find light, who endured the storms and emerged into peace, might offer a glimmer of hope and tranquility to others battling their own darkness and turmoil.
ANNIE BESANT.
The Theosophical Society,
17 & 19, Avenue Road, Regent's Park, London.
August, 1893.
ANNIE BESANT.
The Theosophical Society,
17 & 19, Avenue Road, Regent's Park, London.
August, 1893.
CONTENTS
CHAP.
Chapter
- "OUT OF THE EVERYWHERE INTO THE HERE"
- EARLY CHILDHOOD
- GIRLHOOD
- MARRIAGE
- THE STORM OF DOUBT
- CHARLES BRADLAUGH
- ATHEISM AS I KNEW AND TAUGHT IT
- AT WORK
- THE KNOWLTON PAMPHLET
- AT WAR ALL ROUND
- MR. BRADLAUGH'S STRUGGLE
- STILL FIGHTING
- SOCIALISM
- THROUGH STORM TO PEACE
LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS
ANNIE BESANT, 1885
Frontispiece
ANNIE BESANT, 1885
Cover Page
HOROSCOPE OF ANNIE BESANT
Page 12
HOROSCOPE OF ANNIE BESANT
Page 12
ANNIE BESANT, 1869
Facing page 86
ANNIE BESANT, 1869
Opposite page 86
THOMAS SCOTT
Facing page 112
THOMAS SCOTT
Opposite page 112
CHARLES BRADLAUGH, M.P.
Facing page 212
CHARLES BRADLAUGH, M.P.
Opposite page 212
CHARLES BRADLAUGH AND HENRY LABOUCHERE
Facing page 254
CHARLES BRADLAUGH AND HENRY LABOUCHERE
Opposite page 254
NORWICH BRANCH OF THE SOCIALIST LEAGUE
Facing page 314
NORWICH BRANCH OF THE SOCIALIST LEAGUE
Opposite page 314
STRIKE COMMITTEE OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION
Facing page 336
STRIKE COMMITTEE OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION
Opposite page 336
MEMBERS OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION
Facing page 338
MEMBERS OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION
Opposite page 338
CHAPTER I.
CHAPTER 1.
"OUT OF THE EVERYWHERE INTO THE HERE."
On October 1, 1847, I am credibly informed, my baby eyes opened to the light(?) of a London afternoon at 5.39.
On October 1, 1847, I have been reliably informed that my baby eyes opened to the light of a London afternoon at 5:39.
A friendly astrologer has drawn for me the following chart, showing the position of the planets at this, to me fateful, moment; but I know nothing of astrology, so feel no wiser as I gaze upon my horoscope.
A friendly astrologer has created the following chart for me, showing the position of the planets at this moment, which is significant for me; but I know nothing about astrology, so I don't feel any wiser as I look at my horoscope.
Horoscope of Annie Besant.
Keeping in view the way in which sun, moon, and planets influence the physical condition of the earth, there is nothing incongruous with the orderly course of nature in the view that they also influence the physical bodies of men, these being part of the physical earth, and largely moulded by its conditions. Any one who knows the characteristics ascribed to those who are born under the several signs of the Zodiac, may very easily pick out the different types among his own acquaintances, and he may then get them to go to some astrologer and find out under what signs they were severally born. He will very quickly discover that two men of completely opposed types are not born under the same sign, and the invariability of the concurrence will convince him that law, and not chance, is at work. We are born into earthly life under certain conditions, just as we were physically affected by them pre-natally, and these will have their bearing on our subsequent physical evolution. At the most, astrology, as it is now practised, can only calculate the interaction between these physical conditions at any given moment, and the conditions brought to them by a given person whose general constitution and natal condition are known. It cannot say what the person will do, nor what will happen to him, but only what will be the physical district, so to speak, in which he will find himself, and the impulses that will play upon him from external nature and from his own body. Even on those matters modern astrology is not quite reliable—judging from the many blunders made—or else its professors are very badly instructed; but that there is a real science of astrology I have no doubt, and there are some men who are past masters in it.
Considering how the sun, moon, and planets affect the physical state of the Earth, it makes sense to think that they also influence the physical bodies of humans, given that we are part of the physical world and greatly shaped by its circumstances. Anyone familiar with the traits attributed to people born under different Zodiac signs can easily identify various types among their friends. They can then have these individuals consult an astrologer to determine which signs they were born under. It's clear that two people with completely opposing traits aren't born under the same sign, and the consistency of this occurrence will convince them that there’s a law at play, not just random chance. We enter earthly life under specific conditions, just as we were physically affected by them before birth, and these conditions will influence our subsequent physical development. At best, astrology, as it’s practiced today, can only assess the interaction between these physical conditions at a given time and the circumstances relevant to a specific person, whose general makeup and birth details are known. It can’t predict what an individual will do or what will happen to them, but it can indicate the physical environment they’ll encounter and the influences they'll experience from both nature and their own body. Even on these points, modern astrology can be inconsistent—considering the many errors it can make—or its practitioners may not be very well informed. However, I have no doubt that a genuine science of astrology exists, and there are some experts who are truly skilled in it.
It has always been somewhat of a grievance to me that I was born in London, "within the sound of Bow Bells," when three-quarters of my blood and all my heart are Irish. My dear mother was of purest Irish descent, and my father was Irish on his mother's side, though belonging to the Devonshire Woods on his father's. The Woods were yeomen of the sturdy English type, farming their own land in honest, independent fashion. Of late years they seem to have developed more in the direction of brains, from the time, in fact, that Matthew Wood became Mayor of London town, fought Queen Caroline's battles against her most religious and gracious royal husband, aided the Duke of Kent with no niggard hand, and received a baronetcy for his services from the Duke of Kent's royal daughter. Since then they have given England a Lord Chancellor in the person of the gentle-hearted and pure-living Lord Hatherley, while others have distinguished themselves in various ways in the service of their country. But I feel playfully inclined to grudge the English blood they put into my father's veins, with his Irish mother, his Galway birth, and his Trinity College, Dublin, education. For the Irish tongue is musical in my ear, and the Irish nature dear to my heart. Only in Ireland is it that if you stop to ask a worn-out ragged woman the way to some old monument, she will say: "Sure, then, my darlin', it's just up the hill and round the corner, and then any one will tell you the way. And it's there you'll see the place where the blessed Saint Patrick set his foot, and his blessing be on yer." Old women as poor as she in other nations would never be as bright and as friendly and as garrulous. And where, out of Ireland, will you see a whole town crowd into a station to say good-bye to half a dozen emigrants, till the platform is a heaving mass of men and women, struggling, climbing over each other for a last kiss, crying, keening, laughing, all in a breath, till all the air is throbbing and there's a lump in your throat and tears in your eyes as the train steams out? Where, out of Ireland, will you be bumping along the streets on an outside car, beside a taciturn Jarvey, who, on suddenly discovering that you are shadowed by "Castle" spies, becomes loquaciously friendly, and points out everything that he thinks will interest you? Blessings on the quick tongues and warm hearts, on the people so easy to lead, so hard to drive. And blessings on the ancient land once inhabited by mighty men of wisdom, that in later times became the Island of Saints, and shall once again be the Island of Sages, when the Wheel turns round.
It’s always bothered me that I was born in London, “within the sound of Bow Bells,” when three-quarters of my blood and all my heart are Irish. My dear mother was of pure Irish descent, and my father was Irish on his mother’s side, though from the Devonshire Woods on his father’s. The Woods were strong yeomen, farming their own land independently and honestly. In recent years, they seem to have focused more on education and leadership, starting when Matthew Wood became Mayor of London and fought for Queen Caroline against her very royal husband, helped the Duke of Kent generously, and received a baronetcy from the Duke of Kent’s royal daughter for his efforts. Since then, they have given England a Lord Chancellor in the kind and virtuous Lord Hatherley, while others have made their mark in various ways for their country. But I playfully resent the English blood they added to my father’s veins, with his Irish mother, his Galway birth, and his education at Trinity College, Dublin. The Irish language is music to my ears, and the Irish spirit is dear to my heart. Only in Ireland can you ask a worn-out ragged woman for directions to some old monument, and she’ll say: “Sure, then, my darling, it’s just up the hill and around the corner, and then anyone will tell you the way. And it’s there you’ll see the place where the blessed Saint Patrick set his foot, and his blessing be on you.” Old women as poor as her in other countries wouldn’t be as bright, friendly, or talkative. And where else but Ireland will you see a whole town gather at a station to say goodbye to a handful of emigrants, filling the platform with people, all rushing for one last kiss, crying, wailing, laughing—all in a breath—until the air is charged with emotion and you have a lump in your throat and tears in your eyes as the train pulls away? Where else but Ireland will you jostle along the streets on an open-top car beside a quiet driver who, upon suddenly realizing you’re being followed by “Castle” spies, becomes overly friendly and points out everything he thinks you’d find interesting? Cheers to the quick tongues and warm hearts, to the people who are so easy to guide but so hard to push. And cheers to the ancient land once home to powerful wise men, which later became the Island of Saints, and will again be the Island of Sages when the Wheel turns.
My maternal grandfather was a typical Irishman, much admired by me and somewhat feared also, in the childish days. He belonged to a decayed Irish family, the Maurices, and in a gay youth, with a beautiful wife as light-hearted as himself, he had merrily run through what remained to him in the way of fortune. In his old age, with abundant snow-white hair, he still showed the hot Irish blood on the lightest provocation, stormily angry for a moment and easily appeased. My mother was the second daughter in a large family, in a family that grew more numerous as pounds grew fewer, and she was adopted by a maiden aunt, a quaint memory of whom came through my mother's childhood into mine, and had its moulding effect on both our characters. This maiden aunt was, as are most Irish folk of decayed families, very proud of her family tree with its roots in the inevitable "kings." Her particular kings were the "seven kings of France"—the "Milesian kings"—and the tree grew up a parchment, in all its impressive majesty, over the mantelpiece of their descendant's modest drawing-room. This heraldic monster was regarded with deep respect by child Emily, a respect in no wise deserved, I venture to suppose, by the disreputable royalties of whom she was a fortunately distant twig. Chased out of France, doubtless for cause shown, they had come over the sea to Ireland, and there continued their reckless plundering lives. But so strangely turns the wheel of time that these ill-doing and barbarous scamps became a kind of moral thermometer in the home of the gentle Irish lady in the early half of the present century. For my mother has told me that when she had committed some act of childish naughtiness, her aunt would say, looking gravely over her spectacles at the small culprit, "Emily, your conduct is unworthy of the descendant of the seven kings of France." And Emily, with her sweet grey Irish eyes and her curling masses of raven black hair, would cry in penitent shame over her unworthiness, with some vague idea that those royal, and to her very real, ancestors would despise her small, sweet, rosebud self, so wholly unworthy of their disreputable majesties.
My maternal grandfather was a typical Irishman, admired by me and somewhat feared in my childhood. He came from a fallen Irish family, the Maurices, and in his youthful days, with a beautiful and carefree wife, he had joyfully spent whatever fortune was left to him. In his old age, with his abundant snow-white hair, he still displayed the fiery Irish temperament at the slightest provocation, quickly getting angry but just as quickly calming down. My mother was the second daughter in a large family that kept growing as their money dwindled, and she was raised by a maiden aunt, a quirky figure whose memory carried over from my mother's childhood into mine, shaping both of our personalities. This maiden aunt was, like many Irish from fallen families, very proud of her lineage that traced back to "kings." Her specific kings were the "seven kings of France"—the "Milesian kings"—and their family tree, in all its impressive glory, hung as a parchment over the mantelpiece in the modest drawing-room of her descendant. This heraldic creation was held in deep respect by young Emily, a respect that I suspect was not deserved by the disreputable royals from whom she was a fortunate distant relation. Exiled from France for some reason, they had sailed to Ireland, where they continued their reckless and plundering lives. Yet, in a strange twist of time, these morally questionable figures became a sort of moral compass in the home of the gentle Irish lady in the early 20th century. My mother told me that when she misbehaved, her aunt would look over her glasses at the small miscreant and say, "Emily, your behavior is unworthy of the descendant of the seven kings of France." And Emily, with her sweet gray Irish eyes and cascading raven-black hair, would cry in shame over her unworthiness, feeling that those royal ancestors, very real to her, would look down on her small, sweet, rosebud self for being so unworthy of their questionable grandeur.
Thus those shadowy forms influenced her in childhood, and exercised over her a power that made her shrink from aught that was unworthy, petty or mean. To her the lightest breath of dishonour was to be avoided at any cost of pain, and she wrought into me, her only daughter, that same proud and passionate horror at any taint of shame or merited disgrace. To the world always a brave front was to be kept, and a stainless reputation, for suffering might be borne but dishonour never. A gentlewoman might starve, but she must not run in debt; she might break her heart, but it must be with a smile on her face. I have often thought that the training in this reticence and pride of honour was a strange preparation for my stormy, public, much attacked and slandered life; and certain it is that this inwrought shrinking from all criticism that touched personal purity and personal honour added a keenness of suffering to the fronting of public odium that none can appreciate who has not been trained in some similar school of dignified self-respect. And yet perhaps there was another result from it that in value outweighed the added pain: it was the stubbornly resistant feeling that rose and inwardly asserted its own purity in face of foulest lie, and turning scornful face against the foe, too proud either to justify itself or to defend, said to itself in its own heart, when condemnation was loudest: "I am not what you think me, and your verdict does not change my own self. You cannot make me vile whatever you think of me, and I will never, in my own eyes, be that which you deem me to be now." And the very pride became a shield against degradation, for, however lost my public reputation, I could never bear to become sullied in my own sight—and that is a thing not without its use to a woman cut off, as I was at one time, from home, and friends, and Society. So peace to the maiden aunt's ashes, and to those of her absurd kings, for I owe them something after all. And I keep grateful memory of that unknown grand-aunt, for what she did in training my dear mother, the tenderest, sweetest, proudest, purest of women. It is well to be able to look back to a mother who served as ideal of all that was noblest and dearest during childhood and girlhood, whose face made the beauty of home, and whose love was both sun and shield. No other experience in life could quite make up for missing the perfect tie between mother and child—a tie that in our case never relaxed and never weakened. Though her grief at my change of faith and consequent social ostracism did much to hasten her death-hour, it never brought a cloud between our hearts; though her pleading was the hardest of all to face in later days, and brought the bitterest agony, it made no gulf between us, it cast no chill upon our mutual love. And I look back at her to-day with the same loving gratitude as ever encircled her to me in her earthly life. I have never met a woman more selflessly devoted to those she loved, more passionately contemptuous of all that was mean or base, more keenly sensitive on every question of honour, more iron in will, more sweet in tenderness, than the mother who made my girlhood sunny as dreamland, who guarded me, until my marriage, from every touch of pain that she could ward off or bear for me, who suffered more in every trouble that touched me in later life than I did myself, and who died in the little house I had taken for our new home in Norwood, worn out, ere old age touched her, by sorrow, poverty, and pain, in May, 1874.
Thus those shadowy figures influenced her in childhood and had a power over her that made her shrink from anything unworthy, petty, or mean. For her, even the slightest hint of dishonor had to be avoided at any cost, and she instilled in me, her only daughter, that same proud and passionate horror at any trace of shame or deserved disgrace. To the world, we always had to maintain a brave front and a spotless reputation, because while suffering could be endured, dishonor could not. A lady might starve, but she must not go into debt; she might break her heart, but it must be with a smile on her face. I often think that the training in this reticence and pride of honor was a strange preparation for my stormy, public life, which was often attacked and slandered; it’s certain that this ingrained aversion to all criticism related to personal purity and honor added a sharpness of suffering to facing public disdain that no one can truly understand without similar training in dignified self-respect. Yet perhaps there was another outcome that, in value, outweighed the added pain: it was the stubborn feeling that arose and inwardly asserted its own purity in the face of the vilest lies. Turning my scornful face against the foe, too proud to justify or defend myself, I would say to myself in my heart, when condemnation was loudest: "I am not what you think I am, and your judgment does not change my own self. You cannot make me vile, no matter how you see me, and I will never allow myself to be what you think I am now." This very pride became a shield against degradation, for, no matter how damaged my public reputation became, I could never accept being sullied in my own eyes—and that is something of great value for a woman like I was at one time, cut off from home, friends, and society. So peace to the maiden aunt's ashes, and to those of her ridiculous kings, for I owe them something after all. And I keep a grateful memory of that unknown grand-aunt for what she did in training my dear mother, the tenderest, sweetest, proudest, purest of women. It's comforting to look back at a mother who served as the ideal of all that was noblest and dearest during my childhood and girlhood, whose face defined the beauty of home and whose love was both sun and shield. No other experience in life could truly make up for missing the perfect bond between mother and child—a bond that never relaxed or weakened in our case. Though her grief over my change of faith and the resulting social ostracism accelerated her death, it never created a rift between our hearts; even though facing her pleas in later days was the hardest and brought the bitterest agony, it built no gulf between us and cast no chill on our mutual love. I look back at her today with the same loving gratitude that surrounded her throughout her life. I have never met a woman more selflessly devoted to those she loved, more passionately contemptuous of all that was mean or base, more keenly sensitive about honor, more iron-willed, and sweeter in tenderness than the mother who made my girlhood as sunny as dreamland, who protected me from every pain she could fend off or bear for me, who suffered more from every trouble that affected me in later life than I did myself, and who died in the little house I had rented for our new home in Norwood, worn out before reaching old age, by sorrow, poverty, and pain, in May 1874.
My earliest personal recollections are of a house and garden that we lived in when I was three and four years of age, situated in Grove Road, St. John's Wood. I can remember my mother hovering round the dinner-table to see that all was bright for the home-coming husband; my brother—two years older than myself—and I watching "for papa"; the loving welcome, the game of romps that always preceded the dinner of the elder folks. I can remember on the 1st of October, 1851, jumping up in my little cot, and shouting out triumphantly: "Papa! mamma! I am four years old!" and the grave demand of my brother, conscious of superior age, at dinner-time: "May not Annie have a knife to-day, as she is four years old?"
My earliest memories are of a house and garden we lived in when I was three and four years old, located on Grove Road in St. John's Wood. I remember my mom bustling around the dinner table, making sure everything was perfect for Dad’s return; my brother—who is two years older than me—and I waiting "for Papa"; the warm welcome and the playful games that always happened before the adults' dinner. I recall on October 1, 1851, jumping up in my small crib and shouting excitedly, "Papa! Mama! I’m four years old!" and my brother’s serious question at dinner: "Can Annie have a knife today since she’s four years old?"
It was a sore grievance during that same year, 1851, that I was not judged old enough to go to the Great Exhibition, and I have a faint memory of my brother consolingly bringing me home one of those folding pictured strips that are sold in the streets, on which were imaged glories that I longed only the more to see. Far-away, dusky, trivial memories, these. What a pity it is that a baby cannot notice, cannot observe, cannot remember, and so throw light on the fashion of the dawning of the external world on the human consciousness. If only we could remember how things looked when they were first imaged on the retinae; what we felt when first we became conscious of the outer world; what the feeling was as faces of father and mother grew out of the surrounding chaos and became familiar things, greeted with a smile, lost with a cry; if only memory would not become a mist when in later years we strive to throw our glances backward into the darkness of our infancy, what lessons we might learn to help our stumbling psychology, how many questions might be solved whose answers we are groping for in the West in vain.
It was a real disappointment in 1851 that I wasn’t considered old enough to go to the Great Exhibition, and I have a hazy memory of my brother comfortingly bringing me home one of those folding picture strips sold on the streets, showing the wonders I desperately wanted to see. These are distant, faded memories. It’s such a shame that a baby can't notice, observe, or remember, and therefore can't shed light on how the outside world dawns on human consciousness. If only we could recall how things looked when they were first imprinted on our eyes; what we felt when we first became aware of the outside world; what it was like as the faces of our parents emerged from the surrounding chaos and became familiar, met with a smile, and lost with a cry; if only memory didn’t fade into a blur as we try to look back into the darkness of our infancy, what lessons we might learn to aid our struggling understanding of psychology, how many questions we could answer that we are searching for in vain in the West.
The next scene that stands out clearly against the background of the past is that of my father's death-bed. The events which led to his death I know from my dear mother. He had never lost his fondness for the profession for which he had been trained, and having many medical friends, he would now and then accompany them on their hospital rounds, or share with them the labours of the dissecting-room. It chanced that during the dissection of the body of a person who had died of rapid consumption, my father cut his finger against the edge of the breast-bone. The cut did not heal easily, and the finger became swollen and inflamed. "I would have that finger off, Wood, if I were you," said one of the surgeons, a day or two afterwards, on seeing the state of the wound. But the others laughed at the suggestion, and my father, at first inclined to submit to the amputation, was persuaded to "leave Nature alone."
The next scene that stands out clearly against the backdrop of the past is my father's deathbed. I know the events leading up to his death from my dear mother. He had never lost his love for the profession he had trained in, and he would occasionally accompany his many medical friends on their hospital rounds or join them in the dissecting room. It happened that during the dissection of a person who had died of quick consumption, my father accidentally cut his finger on the edge of the breastbone. The cut didn’t heal well, and his finger became swollen and inflamed. "I'd get that finger removed, Wood, if I were you," one of the surgeons said a day or two later after seeing the wound. But the others laughed at the suggestion, and my father, initially inclined to go for the amputation, was convinced to "leave Nature alone."
About the middle of August, 1852, he got wet through, riding on the top of an omnibus, and the wetting resulted in a severe cold, which "settled on his chest." One of the most eminent doctors of the day, as able as he was rough in manner, was called to see him. He examined him carefully, sounded his lungs, and left the room followed by my mother. "Well?" she asked, scarcely anxious as to the answer, save as it might worry her husband to be kept idly at home. "You must keep up his spirits," was the thoughtless answer. "He is in a galloping consumption; you will not have him with you six weeks longer." The wife staggered back, and fell like a stone on the floor. But love triumphed over agony, and half an hour later she was again at her husband's side, never to leave it again for ten minutes at a time, night or day, till he was lying with closed eyes asleep in death.
About the middle of August, 1852, he got completely soaked while riding on top of an omnibus, and the soaking led to a bad cold that "settled on his chest." One of the top doctors of the time, who was just as capable as he was brusque, was called in to see him. He examined him thoroughly, listened to his lungs, and left the room with my mother following him. "Well?" she asked, not too worried about his answer, other than how it might stress her husband, who was stuck at home. "You need to keep his spirits up," was the careless response. "He's in a rapid decline; you won't have him with you for more than six weeks." The wife staggered back and fell to the floor like a stone. But love overcame her pain, and half an hour later, she was back by her husband's side, never to leave him again for more than ten minutes at a time, day or night, until he lay with closed eyes, peacefully asleep in death.
I was lifted on to the bed to "say good-bye to dear papa" on the day before his death, and I remember being frightened at his eyes which looked so large, and his voice which sounded so strange, as he made me promise always to be "a very good girl to darling mamma, as papa was going right away." I remember insisting that "papa should kiss Cherry," a doll given me on my birthday, three days before, by his direction, and being removed, crying and struggling, from the room. He died on the following day, October 5th, and I do not think that my elder brother and I—who were staying at our maternal grandfather's—went to the house again until the day of the funeral. With the death, my mother broke down, and when all was over they carried her senseless from the room. I remember hearing afterwards how, when she recovered her senses, she passionately insisted on being left alone, and locked herself into her room for the night; and how on the following morning her mother, at last persuading her to open the door, started back at the face she saw with the cry: "Good God, Emily! your hair is white!" It was even so; her hair, black, glossy and abundant, which, contrasting with her large grey eyes, had made her face so strangely attractive, had turned grey in that night of agony, and to me my mother's face is ever framed in exquisite silver bands of hair as white as the driven unsullied snow.
I was lifted onto the bed to "say goodbye to dear dad" on the day before he died, and I remember being scared by his eyes, which looked so big, and his voice, which sounded so strange, as he made me promise to always be "a very good girl to darling mom, since dad was going away." I remember insisting that "dad should kiss Cherry," a doll that he had given me on my birthday, three days before, and being taken out of the room, crying and struggling. He died the next day, October 5th, and I don't think my older brother and I—who were staying at our maternal grandfather's—went back to the house until the day of the funeral. With his death, my mother broke down, and when everything was over, they carried her out of the room in a daze. I remember later hearing how, when she came to her senses, she passionately insisted on being left alone and locked herself in her room for the night; and how the next morning, after her mother finally persuaded her to open the door, she gasped at the sight of her face and cried, "Good God, Emily! Your hair is white!" It was true; her hair, once black, shiny, and thick, which, together with her large gray eyes, had made her face so strangely beautiful, had turned gray in that night of pain, and to me, my mother's face is always framed in exquisite silver strands of hair as white as fresh, untouched snow.
I have heard that the love between my father and mother was a very beautiful thing, and it most certainly stamped her character for life. He was keenly intellectual and splendidly educated; a mathematician and a good classical scholar, thoroughly master of French, German, Italian, Spanish, and Portuguese, with a smattering of Hebrew and Gaelic, the treasures of ancient and of modern literature were his daily household delight. Nothing pleased him so well as to sit with his wife, reading aloud to her while she worked; now translating from some foreign poet, now rolling forth melodiously the exquisite cadences of "Queen Mab." Student of philosophy as he was, he was deeply and steadily sceptical; and a very religious relative has told me that he often drove her from the room by his light, playful mockery of the tenets of the Christian faith. His mother and sister were strict Roman Catholics, and near the end forced a priest into his room, but the priest was promptly ejected by the wrath of the dying man, and by the almost fierce resolve of the wife that no messenger of the creed he detested should trouble her darling at the last.
I’ve heard that the love between my father and mother was truly beautiful, and it definitely shaped her character for life. He was highly intellectual and well-educated; a mathematician and a skilled classical scholar, fluent in French, German, Italian, Spanish, and Portuguese, with a bit of knowledge in Hebrew and Gaelic. The treasures of both ancient and modern literature were his daily joy. Nothing made him happier than sitting with his wife, reading aloud to her while she worked; sometimes translating from a foreign poet and other times beautifully reciting the lovely lines from “Queen Mab.” Although he was a student of philosophy, he was deeply skeptical; a very religious relative once told me that he often drove her out of the room with his light, playful mockery of Christian beliefs. His mother and sister were strict Roman Catholics, and towards the end, they forced a priest to visit him, but the priest was quickly thrown out by the anger of the dying man and the fierce determination of his wife that no messenger of the faith he loathed would disturb her beloved in his final moments.
Deeply read in philosophy, he had outgrown the orthodox beliefs of his day, and his wife, who loved him too much to criticise, was wont to reconcile her own piety and his scepticism by holding that "women ought to be religious," while men had a right to read everything and think as they would, provided that they were upright and honourable in their lives. But the result of his liberal and unorthodox thought was to insensibly modify and partially rationalise her own beliefs, and she put on one side as errors the doctrines of eternal punishment, the vicarious atonement, the infallibility of the Bible, the equality of the Son with the Father in the Trinity, and other orthodox beliefs, and rejoiced in her later years in the writings of such men as Jowett, Colenso, and Stanley. The last named, indeed, was her ideal Christian gentleman, suave, polished, broad-minded, devout in a stately way. The baldness of a typical Evangelical service outraged her taste as much as the crudity of Evangelical dogmas outraged her intellect; she liked to feel herself a Christian in a dignified and artistic manner, and to be surrounded by solemn music and splendid architecture when she "attended Divine service." Familiarity with celestial personages was detestable to her, and she did her duty of saluting them in a courtly and reverent fashion. Westminster Abbey was her favourite church, with its dim light and shadowy distances; there in a carven stall, with choristers chanting in solemn rhythm, with the many-coloured glories of the painted windows repeating themselves on upspringing arch and clustering pillars, with the rich harmonies of the pealing organ throbbing up against screen and monument, with the ashes of the mighty dead around, and all the stately memories of the past inwrought into the very masonry, there Religion appeared to her to be intellectually dignified and emotionally satisfactory.
Having studied philosophy extensively, he had moved beyond the conventional beliefs of his time, and his wife, who loved him too much to critique him, often reconciled her own faith and his skepticism by believing that "women should be religious," while men had the freedom to explore anything and think as they pleased, as long as they were good and honorable in their lives. However, his progressive and unconventional ideas gradually influenced and partially rationalized her own beliefs, leading her to set aside certain doctrines like eternal punishment, vicarious atonement, the infallibility of the Bible, the equality of the Son with the Father in the Trinity, and other traditional tenets. In her later years, she found joy in the writings of thinkers such as Jowett, Colenso, and Stanley. The latter became her ideal of a Christian gentleman—smooth, polished, broad-minded, and devout in a dignified way. The bare simplicity of a typical Evangelical service offended her sense of aesthetics just as the bluntness of Evangelical doctrines offended her intellect; she preferred to feel like a Christian in a refined and artistic manner, surrounded by solemn music and grand architecture when she "attended Divine service." She found familiarity with divine figures repugnant and insisted on greeting them in a polite and respectful manner. Westminster Abbey was her favorite church, with its dim lighting and shadowy distances; there, seated in a carved stall, with choristers singing in solemn rhythm, the colorful beauty of the stained glass reflecting on soaring arches and cluster pillars, the rich harmonies of the organ echoing against screens and monuments, surrounded by the remains of great individuals and the dignified memories of the past woven into the very stone, she felt that Religion was intellectually dignified and emotionally fulfilling.
To me, who took my religion in strenuous fashion, this dainty and well-bred piety seemed perilously like Laodicean lukewarmness, while my headlong vigour of conviction and practice often jarred on her as alien from the delicate balance and absence of extremes that should characterise the gentlewoman. She was of the old régime; I of the stuff from which fanatics are made: and I have often thought, in looking back, that she must have had on her lips many a time unspoken a phrase that dropped from them when she lay a-dying: "My little one, you have never made me sad or sorry except for your own sake; you have always been too religious." And then she murmured to herself: "Yes, it has been darling Annie's only fault; she has always been too religious." Methinks that, as the world judges, the dying voice spake truly, and the dying eyes saw with a real insight. For though I was then kneeling beside her bed, heretic and outcast, the heart of me was religious in its very fervour of repudiation of a religion, and in its rebellious uprising against dogmas that crushed the reason and did not satisfy the soul. I went out into the darkness alone, not because religion was too good for me, but because it was not good enough; it was too meagre, too commonplace, too little exacting, too bound up with earthly interests, too calculating in its accommodations to social conventionalities. The Roman Catholic Church, had it captured me, as it nearly did, would have sent me on some mission of danger and sacrifice and utilised me as a martyr; the Church established by law transformed me into an unbeliever and an antagonist.
To me, someone who took my faith very seriously, her delicate and refined piety felt dangerously close to being lukewarm, while my intense conviction and practice often seemed foreign to her, lacking the gentle balance and absence of extremes typical of a lady. She belonged to the old regime; I was made from the stuff of fanatics. I often reflect back and think she must have frequently wanted to say a phrase that slipped from her lips when she was dying: "My dear, you've only ever made me sad or sorry for your own sake; you've always been too religious." Then she quietly repeated to herself, "Yes, darling Annie's only fault has been that she has always been too religious." It seems to me that, as the world judges, her dying words were accurate, and her dying eyes had real insight. For even though I was kneeling by her bedside, a heretic and outcast, my heart was religious in its passionate rejection of a faith, and in its rebellious uprising against dogmas that suffocated reason and failed to satisfy the soul. I stepped out into the darkness alone, not because religion was too good for me, but because it wasn't good enough; it was too limited, too ordinary, too easygoing, too tied to earthly concerns, and too focused on social norms. The Roman Catholic Church, which almost claimed me, would have sent me on a mission filled with danger and sacrifice, using me as a martyr; the established Church turned me into a nonbeliever and an opponent.
For as a child I was mystical and imaginative religious to the very finger-tips, and with a certain faculty for seeing visions and dreaming dreams. This faculty is not uncommon with the Keltic races, and makes them seem "superstitious" to more solidly-built peoples. Thus, on the day of my father's funeral, my mother sat with vacant eyes and fixed pallid face—the picture comes back to me yet, it so impressed my childish imagination—following the funeral service, stage after stage, and suddenly, with the words, "It is all over!" fell back fainting. She said afterwards that she had followed the hearse, had attended the service, had walked behind the coffin to the grave. Certain it is that a few weeks later she determined to go to the Kensal Green Cemetery, where the body of her husband had been laid, and went thither with a relative; he failed to find the grave, and while another of the party went in search of an official to identify the spot, my mother said, "If you will take me to the chapel where the first part of the service was read, I will find the grave." The idea seemed to her friend, of course, to be absurd; but he would not cross the newly-made widow, so took her to the chapel. She looked round, left the chapel door, and followed the path along which the corpse had been borne till she reached the grave, where she was quietly standing when the caretaker arrived to point it out. The grave is at some distance from the chapel, and is not on one of the main roads; it had nothing on it to mark it, save the wooden peg with the number, and this would be no help to identification at a distance since all the graves are thus marked, and at a little way off these pegs are not visible. How she found the grave remained a mystery in the family, as no one believed her straightforward story that she had been present at the funeral. With my present knowledge the matter is simple enough, for I now know that the consciousness can leave the body, take part in events going on at a distance, and, returning, impress on the physical brain what it has experienced. The very fact that she asked to be taken to the chapel is significant, showing that she was picking up a memory of a previous going from that spot to the grave; she could only find the grave if she started from the place from which she had started before. Another proof of this ultra-physical capacity was given a few months later, when her infant son, who had been pining himself ill for "papa," was lying one night in her arms. On the next morning she said to her sister: "Alf is going to die." The child had no definite disease, but was wasting away, and it was argued to her that the returning spring would restore the health lost during the winter. "No," was her answer. "He was lying asleep in my arms last night, and William" (her husband) "came to me and said that he wanted Alf with him, but that I might keep the other two." In vain she was assured that she had been dreaming, that it was quite natural that she should dream about her husband, and that her anxiety for the child had given the dream its shape. Nothing would persuade her that she had not seen her husband, or that the information he had given her was not true. So it was no matter of surprise to her when in the following March her arms were empty, and a waxen form lay lifeless in the baby's cot.
As a child, I was mystical and imaginative, deeply religious to my very fingertips, and I had a knack for seeing visions and dreaming dreams. This ability isn't uncommon among Celtic people, which often makes them seem "superstitious" to more practical folks. So, on the day of my father’s funeral, my mother sat there with vacant eyes and a pale, fixed expression—the image remains vivid in my mind, as it left a strong impression on my young imagination—after the funeral service, stage by stage, and then suddenly, at the words, "It is all over!" she fainted. She later said that she had followed the hearse, attended the service, and walked behind the coffin to the grave. A few weeks later, she decided to go to Kensal Green Cemetery, where her husband had been buried, and went there with a relative; he couldn't find the grave, and while another member of the group went to find an official to pinpoint the location, my mother said, "If you take me to the chapel where the first part of the service was held, I can find the grave." Her friend thought this was ridiculous, but he didn’t want to upset the newly widowed woman, so he took her to the chapel. She looked around, left the chapel door, and followed the path where the body had been carried until she reached the grave, where she stood quietly waiting for the caretaker to show up. The grave is quite far from the chapel and isn't on one of the main paths; there was nothing to identify it except a wooden peg with a number on it, which wouldn't help with identification from afar since all the graves have similar markers, and they aren't visible from a distance. How she found the grave remained a mystery to the family, as no one believed her straightforward account that she had been present at the funeral. With what I know now, the situation is pretty clear because I understand that consciousness can leave the body, participate in events happening elsewhere, and when it returns, it imparts the experiences to the physical brain. The fact that she requested to be taken to the chapel is significant, indicating that she was recalling a previous journey from that spot to the grave; she could only find the grave if she began from the place from which she had started before. Another example of this extraordinary ability occurred a few months later when her infant son, who had been getting sick from missing "papa," was lying in her arms one night. The next morning, she told her sister, "Alf is going to die." The child didn’t have a specific illness but was fading away, and they argued that the returning spring would restore the health lost during the winter. "No," she responded. "He was lying asleep in my arms last night, and William" (her husband) "came to me and said he wanted Alf with him but that I could keep the other two." Despite being assured that she had merely been dreaming, that it was natural to dream about her husband, and that her worry about the child had shaped the dream, nothing would convince her that she hadn't seen her husband or that the information he gave her wasn't true. So it was no surprise to her when, in the following March, her arms were empty, and a lifeless, waxen form lay in the baby's crib.
My brother and I were allowed to see him just before he was placed in his coffin; I can see him still, so white and beautiful, with a black spot in the middle of the fair, waxen forehead, and I remember the deadly cold which startled me when I was told to kiss my little brother. It was the first time that I had touched Death. That black spot made a curious impression on me, and long afterwards, asking what had caused it, I was told that at the moment after his death my mother had passionately kissed the baby brow. Pathetic thought, that the mother's kiss of farewell should have been marked by the first sign of corruption on the child's face!
My brother and I got to see him right before they closed his coffin; I can still picture him, so pale and beautiful, with a dark spot in the middle of his light, waxy forehead, and I remember the chilling cold that shocked me when I was told to kiss my little brother. It was the first time I had encountered Death. That dark spot left a strange impression on me, and much later, when I asked what had caused it, I learned that right after he died, my mother had kissed his little brow with great emotion. It's a heartbreaking thought that the mother's farewell kiss marked the first sign of decay on her child's face!
I do not mention these stories because they are in any fashion remarkable or out of the way, but only to show that the sensitiveness to impressions other than physical ones, that was a marked feature in my own childhood, was present also in the family to which I belonged. For the physical nature is inherited from parents, and sensitiveness to psychic impressions is a property of the physical body; in our family, as in so many Irish ones, belief in "ghosts" of all descriptions was general, and my mother has told me of the banshee that she had heard wailing when the death-hour of one of the family was near. To me in my childhood, elves and fairies of all sorts were very real things, and my dolls were as really children as I was myself a child. Punch and Judy were living entities, and the tragedy in which they bore part cost me many an agony of tears; to this day I can remember running away when I heard the squawk of the coming Punch, and burying my head in the pillows that I might shut out the sound of the blows and the cry of the ill-used baby. All the objects about me were to me alive, the flowers that I kissed as much as the kitten I petted, and I used to have a splendid time "making believe" and living out all sorts of lovely stories among my treasured and so-called inanimate playthings. But there was a more serious side to this dreamful fancy when it joined hands with religion.
I’m not sharing these stories because they’re particularly special or unusual, but just to show that the sensitivity to impressions beyond just physical experiences, a key part of my childhood, was also present in my family. Physical traits are inherited from parents, and the sensitivity to psychic impressions is a characteristic of the physical body; in our family, like in many Irish families, belief in all kinds of "ghosts" was common, and my mother has shared stories about the banshee she heard wailing when a family member was about to pass away. As a child, I believed in elves and fairies as if they were completely real, and my dolls were as much my children as I was a child. Punch and Judy were living beings to me, and the tragic events they experienced brought me countless tears; I still remember running away at the sound of Punch approaching, burying my head in pillows to block out the noise of the hits and the cries of the mistreated baby. Everything around me felt alive, from the flowers I kissed to the kitten I cuddled, and I had an amazing time “pretending” and bringing to life all sorts of beautiful stories with my beloved and seemingly lifeless toys. But there was a more serious side to this imaginative play when it connected with my religious beliefs.
CHAPTER II.
CHAPTER 2.
EARLY CHILDHOOD.
And now began my mother's time of struggle and of anxiety. Hitherto, since her marriage, she had known no money troubles, for her husband was earning a good income; he was apparently vigorous and well: no thought of anxiety clouded their future. When he died, he believed that he left his wife and children safe, at least, from pecuniary distress. It was not so. I know nothing of the details, but the outcome of all was that nothing was left for the widow and children, save a trifle of ready money. The resolve to which my mother came was characteristic. Two of her husband's relatives, Western and Sir William Wood, offered to educate her son at a good city school, and to start him in commercial life, using their great city influence to push him forward. But the young lad's father and mother had talked of a different future for their eldest boy; he was to go to a public school, and then to the University, and was to enter one of the "learned professions"—to take orders, the mother wished; to go to the Bar, the father hoped. On his death-bed there was nothing more earnestly urged by my father than that Harry should receive the best possible education, and the widow was resolute to fulfil that last wish. In her eyes, a city school was not "the best possible education," and the Irish pride rebelled against the idea of her son not being "a University man." Many were the lectures poured out on the young widow's head about her "foolish pride," especially by the female members of the Wood family; and her persistence in her own way caused a considerable alienation between herself and them. But Western and William, though half-disapproving, remained her friends, and lent many a helping hand to her in her first difficult struggles. After much cogitation, she resolved that the boy should be educated at Harrow, where the fees are comparatively low to lads living in the town, and that he should go thence to Cambridge or to Oxford, as his tastes should direct. A bold scheme for a penniless widow, but carried out to the letter; for never dwelt in a delicate body a more resolute mind and will than that of my dear mother.
And now began my mother’s time of struggle and anxiety. Until then, since her marriage, she hadn’t faced any money problems because her husband was earning a good income; he seemed strong and healthy, and they had no worries about the future. When he died, he thought he was leaving his wife and children secure, at least from financial struggles. That wasn’t the case. I don’t know all the details, but the end result was that there was nothing left for the widow and children except a small amount of cash. My mother made a decision that was typical for her. Two of her husband’s relatives, Western and Sir William Wood, offered to educate her son at a good city school and help him start his professional life, using their significant city influence to support him. However, the boy’s father and mother envisioned a different future for their eldest son; he was meant to attend a public school, then go on to university, and pursue one of the "learned professions"—the mother wanted him to take holy orders, while the father hoped he would go into law. On his deathbed, my father urged that Harry should receive the best education possible, and my mother was determined to fulfill that last wish. In her view, a city school was not "the best possible education," and her Irish pride resisted the thought of her son not being "a university man." There were many lectures directed at the young widow about her "foolish pride," especially from the female members of the Wood family; her determination to follow her own path caused a significant rift between her and them. Yet Western and William, despite their mild disapproval, remained her friends and offered her much support in her initial struggles. After much thought, she decided that the boy should be educated at Harrow, where the fees are relatively low for boys living in town, and he would then go on to Cambridge or Oxford, depending on his interests. It was a bold plan for a penniless widow, but she executed it precisely; for never was there a more determined mind and will than that of my dear mother.
In a few months' time—during which we lived, poorly enough, in Richmond Terrace, Clapham, close to her father and mother—to Harrow, then, she betook herself, into lodgings over a grocer's shop, and set herself to look for a house. This grocer was a very pompous man, fond of long words, and patronised the young widow exceedingly, and one day my mother related with much amusement how he had told her that she was sure to get on if she worked hard. "Look at me!" he said, swelling visibly with importance; "I was once a poor boy, without a penny of my own, and now I am a comfortable man, and have my submarine villa to go to every evening." That "submarine villa" was an object of amusement when we passed it in our walks for many a long day.
In a few months—during which we lived quite poorly in Richmond Terrace, Clapham, close to her parents—she moved to Harrow, where she rented a room above a grocery store and started looking for a house. The grocer was a pompous man who loved to use long words and treated the young widow with great condescension. One day, my mother shared with great amusement how he told her she would definitely succeed if she worked hard. "Look at me!" he said, puffing up with self-importance; "I was once a poor boy with not a penny to my name, and now I’m a successful man with my fancy villa to enjoy every evening." That "fancy villa" became a source of laughter every time we passed it on our walks for a long time.
"There is Mr. —'s submarine villa," some one would say, laughing: and I, too, used to laugh merrily, because my elders did, though my understanding of the difference between suburban and submarine was on a par with that of the honest grocer.
"There’s Mr. —'s submarine villa," someone would say, laughing; and I used to laugh along happily because my elders did, even though my grasp of the difference between suburban and submarine was just as good as that of the honest grocer.
My mother had fortunately found a boy, whose parents were glad to place him in her charge, of about the age of her own son, to educate with him; and by this means she was able to pay for a tutor, to prepare the two boys for school. The tutor had a cork leg, which was a source of serious trouble to me, for it stuck out straight behind when we knelt down to family prayers—conduct which struck me as irreverent and unbecoming, but which I always felt a desire to imitate. After about a year my mother found a house which she thought would suit her scheme, namely, to obtain permission from Dr. Vaughan, the then head-master of Harrow, to take some boys into her house, and so gain means of education for her own son. Dr. Vaughan, who must have been won by the gentle, strong, little woman, from that time forth became her earnest friend and helper; and to the counsel and active assistance both of himself and of his wife, was due much of the success that crowned her toil. He made only one condition in granting the permission she asked, and that was, that she should also have in her house one of the masters of the school, so that the boys should not suffer from the want of a house-tutor. This condition, of course, she readily accepted, and the arrangement lasted for ten years, until after her son had left school for Cambridge.
My mom luckily found a boy whose parents were happy to let her take care of him, and he was about the same age as her own son, so she could educate them together. This allowed her to afford a tutor to get both boys ready for school. The tutor had a wooden leg, which was quite a hassle for me because it stuck out straight behind when we knelt for family prayers—a behavior I found irreverent and inappropriate, but I always felt tempted to copy it. After about a year, my mom discovered a house she thought would work for her plan to get permission from Dr. Vaughan, the headmaster of Harrow at the time, to take in some boys and provide education for her son. Dr. Vaughan, who must have been charmed by my small but determined mother, became her dedicated friend and supporter; much of her success was thanks to his advice and help, along with his wife. He only had one condition for granting her request: she needed to have one of the school masters living in her house, so the boys wouldn't miss having a tutor. Naturally, she accepted this condition, and the arrangement lasted for ten years, until her son left for Cambridge.
The house she took is now, I am sorry to say, pulled down, and replaced by a hideous red-brick structure. It was very old and rambling, rose-covered in front, ivy-covered behind; it stood on the top of Harrow Hill, between the church and the school, and had once been the vicarage of the parish, but the vicar had left it because it was so far removed from the part of the village where all his work lay. The drawing-room opened by an old-fashioned half-window, half-door—which proved a constant source of grief to me, for whenever I had on a new frock I always tore it on the bolt as I flew through—into a large garden which sloped down one side of the hill, and was filled with the most delightful old trees, fir and laurel, may, mulberry, hazel, apple, pear, and damson, not to mention currant and gooseberry bushes innumerable, and large strawberry beds spreading down the sunny slopes. There was not a tree there that I did not climb, and one, a widespreading Portugal laurel, was my private country house. I had there my bedroom and my sitting-rooms, my study, and my larder. The larder was supplied by the fruit-trees, from which I was free to pick as I would, and in the study I would sit for hours with some favourite book—Milton's "Paradise Lost" the chief favourite of all. The birds must often have felt startled, when from the small swinging form perching on a branch, came out in childish tones the "Thrones, dominations, princedoms, virtues, powers," of Milton's stately and sonorous verse. I liked to personify Satan, and to declaim the grand speeches of the hero-rebel, and many a happy hour did I pass in Milton's heaven and hell, with for companions Satan and "the Son," Gabriel and Abdiel. Then there was a terrace running by the side of the churchyard, always dry in the wettest weather, and bordered by an old wooden fence, over which clambered roses of every shade; never was such a garden for roses as that of the Old Vicarage. At the end of the terrace was a little summer-house, and in this a trap-door in the fence, which swung open and displayed one of the fairest views in England. Sheer from your feet downwards went the hill, and then far below stretched the wooded country till your eye reached the towers of Windsor Castle, far away on the horizon. It was the view at which Byron was never tired of gazing, as he lay on the flat tombstone close by—Byron's tomb, as it is still called—of which he wrote:—
The house she lived in is now, unfortunately, gone and has been replaced by a hideous red-brick building. It was very old and sprawling, with climbing roses in the front and ivy in the back; it stood at the top of Harrow Hill, between the church and the school, and had once been the vicar's residence, but the vicar left because it was too far from where most of his work was. The drawing room had an old-fashioned half-window, half-door—which was constantly a source of frustration for me, as I always snagged my new dress on the latch as I rushed through—leading into a large garden that sloped down one side of the hill, filled with delightful old trees: fir, laurel, may, mulberry, hazel, apple, pear, and damson, not to mention countless currant and gooseberry bushes, and large strawberry beds spreading down the sunny slopes. I climbed every tree there, and one, a sprawling Portugal laurel, became my own private hideaway. In there, I had my bedroom and sitting areas, my study, and my pantry. The pantry was stocked by the fruit trees, from which I could pick as I pleased, and I would spend hours in the study with a favorite book—Milton's "Paradise Lost" being my top choice. The birds must have often been startled when, from the little swinging form perched on a branch, came the childish recitation of "Thrones, dominations, princedoms, virtues, powers," from Milton's grand and resonant verse. I loved to embody Satan and declaim the impressive speeches of the rebellious hero, and I spent many happy hours in Milton's heaven and hell, with Satan, "the Son," Gabriel, and Abdiel as my companions. Then there was a terrace next to the churchyard, always dry even in the wettest weather, lined with an old wooden fence, over which climbed roses of every color; never was there such a garden for roses as that of the Old Vicarage. At the end of the terrace was a little summer house, and in it was a trap-door in the fence, which swung open to reveal one of the most beautiful views in England. Sheer from your feet downwards went the hill, and then far below stretched the wooded countryside until your eyes met the towers of Windsor Castle far away on the horizon. It was the view that Byron never tired of looking at as he lay on the flat tombstone nearby—Byron's tomb, as it is still called—of which he wrote:—
"Again I behold where for hours I have pondered,
As reclining, at eve, on yon tombstone I lay,
Or round the steep brow of the churchyard I wandered,
To catch the last gleam of the sun's setting ray."
"Once more I see the place where I’ve spent hours thinking,
As I rested in the evening on that tombstone,
Or roamed around the churchyard’s high edge,
Trying to catch the last glow of the sun as it sets."
Reader mine, if ever you go to Harrow, ask permission to enter the old garden, and try the effect of that sudden burst of beauty, as you swing back the small trap-door at the terrace end.
Reader, if you ever visit Harrow, ask to enter the old garden and experience the stunning burst of beauty that hits you when you swing open the small trap-door at the end of the terrace.
Into this house we moved on my eighth birthday, and for eleven years it was "home" to me, left always with regret, returned to always with joy.
Into this house we moved on my eighth birthday, and for eleven years it was "home" to me, always left with regret and always returned to with joy.
Almost immediately afterwards I left my mother for the first time; for one day, visiting a family who lived close by, I found a stranger sitting in the drawing-room, a lame lady with a strong face, which softened marvellously as she smiled at the child who came dancing in; she called me to her presently, and took me on her lap and talked to me, and on the following day our friend came to see my mother, to ask if she would let me go away and be educated with this lady's niece, coming home for the holidays regularly, but leaving my education in her hands. At first my mother would not hear of it, for she and I scarcely ever left each other; my love for her was an idolatry, hers for me a devotion. (A foolish little story, about which I was unmercifully teased for years, marked that absolute idolatry of her, which has not yet faded from my heart. In tenderest rallying one day of the child who trotted after her everywhere, content to sit, or stand, or wait, if only she might touch hand or dress of "mamma," she said: "Little one" (the name by which she always called me), "if you cling to mamma in this way, I must really get a string and tie you to my apron, and how will you like that?" "O mamma, darling," came the fervent answer, "do let it be in a knot." And, indeed, the tie of love between us was so tightly knotted that nothing ever loosened it till the sword of Death cut that which pain and trouble never availed to slacken in the slightest degree.) But it was urged upon her that the advantages of education offered were such as no money could purchase for me; that it would be a disadvantage for me to grow up in a houseful of boys—and, in truth, I was as good a cricketer and climber as the best of them—that my mother would soon be obliged to send me to school, unless she accepted an offer which gave me every advantage of school without its disadvantages. At last she yielded, and it was decided that Miss Marryat, on returning home, should take me with her.
Almost immediately after, I left my mom for the first time; while visiting a family nearby, I found a stranger sitting in the living room, a lame lady with a strong face that softened wonderfully as she smiled at the child who came dancing in. She called me over, took me on her lap, and talked to me. The next day, our friend came to see my mom to ask if she would let me go away to be educated with this lady's niece, returning home for the holidays regularly but leaving my education in her hands. At first, my mom wouldn’t hear of it, since we hardly ever left each other; my love for her was like worship, and hers for me was a deep devotion. (A silly little story that I was mercilessly teased about for years highlighted that absolute devotion of hers, which hasn't faded from my heart. One day, when playfully teasing the child who followed her everywhere, content to sit, stand, or wait just to touch her hand or dress, she said: "Little one" (the name she always called me), "if you cling to mama like this, I really need to get a string and tie you to my apron, and how would you like that?" "Oh, mama, darling," came my eager reply, "please let it be in a knot." And indeed, the bond of love between us was tied so tightly that nothing ever loosened it until Death's sword cut what pain and trouble could never manage to fray even a little.) But it was pointed out to her that the educational opportunities offered were ones that no amount of money could buy for me; that it would be a disadvantage for me to grow up in a house full of boys—and honestly, I was as good a cricketer and climber as any of them—that my mom would soon have to send me to school unless she accepted an offer that provided all the advantages of school without its downsides. Eventually, she agreed, and it was decided that Miss Marryat, on her return home, would take me with her.
Miss Marryat—the favourite sister of Captain Marryat, the famous novelist—was a maiden lady of large means. She had nursed her brother through the illness that ended in his death, and had been living with her mother at Wimbledon Park. On her mother's death she looked round for work which would make her useful in the world, and finding that one of her brothers had a large family of girls, she offered to take charge of one of them, and to educate her thoroughly. Chancing to come to Harrow, my good fortune threw me in her way, and she took a fancy to me and thought she would like to teach two little girls rather than one. Hence her offer to my mother.
Miss Marryat—the favorite sister of Captain Marryat, the famous novelist—was an unmarried woman with substantial wealth. She had cared for her brother during the illness that led to his death and had been living with her mother at Wimbledon Park. After her mother's passing, she sought a way to be useful in the world and, discovering that one of her brothers had a large family of daughters, she offered to take care of one of them and provide a thorough education. By chance, while visiting Harrow, I encountered her, and she took a liking to me, deciding that she would prefer to teach two little girls instead of just one. This led to her offer to my mother.
Miss Marryat had a perfect genius for teaching, and took in it the greatest delight. From time to time she added another child to our party, sometimes a boy, sometimes a girl. At first, with Amy Marryat and myself, there was a little boy, Walter Powys, son of a clergyman with a large family, and him she trained for some years, and then sent him on to school admirably prepared. She chose "her children"—as she loved to call us—in very definite fashion. Each must be gently born and gently trained, but in such position that the education freely given should be a relief and aid to a slender parental purse. It was her delight to seek out and aid those on whom poverty presses most heavily, when the need for education for the children weighs on the proud and the poor. "Auntie" we all called her, for she thought "Miss Marryat" seemed too cold and stiff. She taught us everything herself except music, and for this she had a master, practising us in composition, in recitation, in reading aloud English and French, and later, German, devoting herself to training us in the soundest, most thorough fashion. No words of mine can tell how much I owe her, not only of knowledge, but of that love of knowledge which has remained with me ever since as a constant spur to study.
Miss Marryat had a natural talent for teaching and found great joy in it. From time to time, she would add another child to our group, sometimes a boy and sometimes a girl. Initially, with Amy Marryat and me, there was a little boy named Walter Powys, the son of a clergyman with a large family. She trained him for several years and then sent him off to school extremely well-prepared. She selected "her children"—as she liked to call us—in a very intentional way. Each one had to come from a respectable background and have some form of education, but also be in a situation where the education offered would be a relief and support to a tight family budget. She took great pleasure in finding and supporting those who were struggling financially, especially when the need for education for their children weighed heavily on proud but poor families. We all called her "Auntie," because she thought "Miss Marryat" sounded too cold and formal. She taught us everything herself except music, for which she hired a master, guiding us in composition, recitation, and reading aloud in English and French, and later German, dedicating herself to training us in the most thorough and sound manner possible. No words of mine can express how much I owe her, not just in knowledge, but in that love of learning that has stayed with me as a constant motivation to study ever since.
Her method of teaching may be of interest to some, who desire to train children with least pain, and the most enjoyment to the little ones themselves. First, we never used a spelling-book—that torment of the small child—nor an English grammar. But we wrote letters, telling of the things we had seen in our walks, or told again some story we had read; these childish compositions she would read over with us, correcting all faults of spelling, of grammar, of style, of cadence; a clumsy sentence would be read aloud, that we might hear how unmusical it sounded, an error in observation or expression pointed out. Then, as the letters recorded what we had seen the day before, the faculty of observation was drawn out and trained. "Oh, dear! I have nothing to say!" would come from a small child, hanging over a slate. "Did you not go out for a walk yesterday?" Auntie would question. "Yes," would be sighed out; "but there's nothing to say about it." "Nothing to say! And you walked in the lanes for an hour and saw nothing, little No-eyes? You must use your eyes better to-day." Then there was a very favourite "lesson," which proved an excellent way of teaching spelling. We used to write out lists of all the words we could think of which sounded the same but were differently spelt. Thus: "key, quay," "knight, night," and so on, and great was the glory of the child who found the largest number. Our French lessons—as the German later—included reading from the very first. On the day on which we began German we began reading Schiller's "Wilhelm Tell," and the verbs given to us to copy out were those that had occurred in the reading. We learned much by heart, but always things that in themselves were worthy to be learned. We were never given the dry questions and answers which lazy teachers so much affect. We were taught history by one reading aloud while the others worked—the boys as well as the girls learning the use of the needle. "It's like a girl to sew," said a little fellow, indignantly, one day. "It is like a baby to have to run after a girl if you want a button sewn on," quoth Auntie. Geography was learned by painting skeleton maps—an exercise much delighted in by small fingers—and by putting together puzzle maps, in which countries in the map of a continent, or counties in the map of a country, were always cut out in their proper shapes. I liked big empires in those days; there was a solid satisfaction in putting down Russia, and seeing what a large part of the map was filled up thereby.
Her way of teaching might interest some who want to train kids with the least amount of pain and the most enjoyment for the little ones. First, we never used a spelling book—that torture for kids—nor an English grammar. Instead, we wrote letters about things we had seen during our walks or retold some story we had read; Auntie would read these childlike compositions with us, correcting all mistakes in spelling, grammar, style, and rhythm. A clumsy sentence would be read aloud so we could hear how unmusical it sounded, and any errors in observation or expression would be pointed out. Since the letters described what we had experienced the day before, our observation skills were developed and honed. "Oh, dear! I have nothing to say!" a small child would complain while leaning over a slate. "Did you not go out for a walk yesterday?" Auntie would ask. "Yes," would come the sigh, "but there's nothing to say about it." "Nothing to say! You walked in the lanes for an hour and saw nothing, little No-eyes? You need to pay better attention today." Then there was a favorite "lesson," which turned out to be a great way to teach spelling. We would write out lists of words that sounded the same but were spelled differently. For example: "key, quay," "knight, night," and the child who could find the most was celebrated. Our French lessons—as well as German later—included reading from the very start. On the day we started German, we began reading Schiller's "Wilhelm Tell," and the verbs we had to write out were those from the text. We memorized a lot, but always things that were actually worth learning. We were never given the dry questions and answers that lazy teachers often like. We learned history by having one person read aloud while the others worked—the boys and girls learning to sew as well. "It's like a girl to sew," a little boy declared indignantly one day. "It's like a baby to have to chase after a girl if you want a button sewn on," Auntie replied. Geography was learned by painting skeleton maps—an activity that was a lot of fun for small hands—and by piecing together puzzle maps, where countries on a continent’s map, or counties on a country’s map, were always cut out in their correct shapes. I liked big empires back then; there was a real satisfaction in placing Russia down and seeing how much of the map it filled up.
The only grammar that we ever learned as grammar was the Latin, and that not until composition had made us familiar with the use of the rules therein given. Auntie had a great horror of children learning by rote things they did not understand, and then fancying they knew them. "What do you mean by that expression, Annie?" she would ask me. After feeble attempts to explain, I would answer: "Indeed, Auntie, I know in my own head, but I can't explain." "Then, indeed, Annie, you do not know in your own head, or you could explain, so that I might know in my own head." And so a healthy habit was fostered of clearness of thought and of expression. The Latin grammar was used because it was more perfect than the modern grammars, and served as a solid foundation for modern languages.
The only grammar we ever learned as grammar was Latin, and we didn’t really grasp it until we were familiar with the rules from our writing. Auntie deeply disliked children memorizing things they didn’t understand, only to think they did. “What do you mean by that expression, Annie?” she would ask me. After my weak attempts to explain, I would reply, “Honestly, Auntie, I understand it in my head, but I can’t explain it.” “Then, Annie, you don’t really understand it, or you could explain it so I could understand it too.” This encouraged a healthy habit of clear thinking and expression. Latin grammar was used because it was more refined than modern grammars and provided a solid foundation for modern languages.
Miss Marryat took a beautiful place, Fern Hill, near Charmouth, in Dorsetshire, on the borders of Devon, and there she lived for some five years, a centre of beneficence in the district. She started a Sunday School, and a Bible Class after awhile for the lads too old for the school, who clamoured for admission to her class in it. She visited the poor, taking help wherever she went, and sending food from her own table to the sick. It was characteristic of her that she would never give "scraps" to the poor, but would have a basin brought in at dinner, and would cut the best slice to tempt the invalid appetite. Money she rarely, if ever, gave, but she would find a day's work, or busy herself to seek permanent employment for any one seeking aid. Stern in rectitude herself, and iron to the fawning or the dishonest, her influence, whether she was feared or loved, was always for good. Of the strictest sect of the Evangelicals, she was an Evangelical. On the Sunday no books were allowed save the Bible or the "Sunday at Home"; but she would try to make the day bright by various little devices; by a walk with her in the garden; by the singing of hymns, always attractive to children; by telling us wonderful missionary stories of Moffat and Livingstone, whose adventures with savages and wild beasts were as exciting as any tale of Mayne Reid's. We used to learn passages from the Bible and hymns for repetition; a favourite amusement was a "Bible puzzle," such as a description of some Bible scene, which was to be recognised by the description. Then we taught in the Sunday School, for Auntie would tell us that it was useless for us to learn if we did not try to help those who had no one to teach them. The Sunday-school lessons had to be carefully prepared on the Saturday, for we were always taught that work given to the poor should be work that cost something to the giver. This principle, regarded by her as an illustration of the text, "Shall I give unto the Lord my God that which has cost me nothing?" ran through all her precept and her practice. When in some public distress we children went to her crying, and asking whether we could not help the little children who were starving, her prompt reply was, "What will you give up for them?" And then she said that if we liked to give up the use of sugar, we might thus each save sixpence a week to give away. I doubt if a healthier lesson can be given to children than that of personal self-denial for the good of others.
Miss Marryat took a beautiful place, Fern Hill, near Charmouth, in Dorset, on the border of Devon, and she lived there for about five years, becoming a center of kindness in the area. She started a Sunday School and later a Bible Class for boys who were too old for school but eager to join her class. She visited the poor, bringing help wherever she went, and sent food from her own table to those who were sick. It was typical of her to never give "scraps" to the poor; instead, she would have a bowl brought in at dinner and would cut the best slice to tempt the invalid's appetite. She rarely, if ever, gave money, but she would find a day's work or help look for permanent jobs for anyone in need. Strict in her principles and unwavering against those who were deceitful or groveling, her influence was always positive, whether people feared or loved her. She was part of the strictest branch of the Evangelicals, and she was an Evangelical herself. On Sundays, no books were allowed except for the Bible or "Sunday at Home"; however, she found ways to brighten the day with little activities like walks in the garden, singing hymns that appealed to children, and sharing thrilling missionary stories about Moffat and Livingstone, whose adventures with wild animals and indigenous people were as exciting as any tale by Mayne Reid. We learned passages from the Bible and hymns to recite, and a favorite activity was a "Bible puzzle," where we had to recognize a Bible scene from its description. Then we taught in the Sunday School, as Auntie would tell us that learning was pointless if we didn’t help those who had no one to teach them. We had to prepare our Sunday school lessons carefully on Saturdays, as we were always taught that helping the less fortunate should involve meaningful effort from the giver. This principle, which she saw as a reflection of the verse, "Shall I give unto the Lord my God that which has cost me nothing?" was central to all her teachings and actions. When we approached her in distress, asking if we could help the starving children, her immediate response was, "What will you give up for them?" Then she suggested that if we wanted to forgo sugar, we could each save sixpence a week to donate. I doubt there’s a healthier lesson to teach children than the value of personal sacrifice for the benefit of others.
Daily, when our lessons were over, we had plenty of fun; long walks and rides, rides on a lovely pony, who found small children most amusing, and on which the coachman taught us to stick firmly, whatever his eccentricities of the moment; delightful all-day picnics in the lovely country round Charmouth, Auntie our merriest playfellow. Never was a healthier home, physically and mentally, made for young things than in that quiet village. And then the delight of the holidays! The pride of my mother at the good report of her darling's progress, and the renewal of acquaintance with every nook and corner in the dear old house and garden.
Every day, after our lessons, we had a blast; we went on long walks and enjoyed rides on a lovely pony who found little kids hilarious, and the coachman taught us to hold on tight, no matter how quirky the pony got. We had amazing all-day picnics in the beautiful countryside around Charmouth, with Auntie as our most fun playmate. There was never a healthier home, both physically and mentally, made for kids than in that peaceful village. And then there was the joy of the holidays! My mother took pride in hearing about her darling's progress, and we reconnected with every nook and cranny in the beloved old house and garden.
The dreamy tendency in the child, that on its worldly side is fancy, imagination, on its religious side is the germ of mysticism, and I believe it to be far more common than many people think. But the remorseless materialism of the day—not the philosophic materialism of the few, but the religious materialism of the many—crushes out all the delicate buddings forth of the childish thought, and bandages the eyes that might otherwise see. At first the child does not distinguish between what it "sees" and what it "fancies"; the one is as real, as objective, to it as the other, and it will talk to and play with its dream-comrades as merrily as with children like itself. As a child, I myself very much preferred the former, and never knew what it was to be lonely. But clumsy grown-ups come along and tramp right through the dream-garden, and crush the dream-flowers, and push the dream-children aside, and then say, in their loud, harsh voices—not soft and singable like the dream-voices—"You must not tell such naughty stories, Miss Annie; you give me the shivers, and your mamma will be very vexed with you." But this tendency in me was too strong to be stifled, and it found its food in the fairy tales I loved, and in the religious allegories that I found yet more entrancing. How or when I learned to read, I do not know, for I cannot remember the time when a book was not a delight. At five years of age I must have read easily, for I remember being often unswathed from a delightful curtain, in which I used to roll myself with a book, and told to "go and play," while I was still a five-years'-old dot. And I had a habit of losing myself so completely in the book that my name might be called in the room where I was, and I never hear it, so that I used to be blamed for wilfully hiding myself, when I had simply been away in fairyland, or lying trembling beneath some friendly cabbage-leaf as a giant went by.
The dreamy nature in children, which on one hand is fancy and imagination, and on the other has a spiritual side that hints at mysticism, is, I believe, much more common than people realize. However, the relentless materialism of today—not the philosophical materialism of a few, but the religious materialism of the masses—stifles all the delicate blossoms of childish thought and blinds the eyes that could otherwise see. At first, children don't differentiate between what they "see" and what they "imagine"; both feel equally real and objective to them, and they happily talk to and play with their imaginary friends as if they were real kids. As a child, I personally preferred the imaginary friends and never felt lonely. But clumsy adults come along and trample through this dream garden, crushing the dream flowers and pushing aside the dream children, then shout in their loud, harsh voices—not soft and melodic like the voices of dreams—"You shouldn't tell such silly stories, Miss Annie; they give me the creeps, and your mom will be very upset with you." But this tendency within me was too strong to be suppressed, and it thrived on the fairy tales I adored and the religious allegories that fascinated me even more. I can't remember when I learned to read, as books have always been a pleasure for me. By the age of five, I must have read easily, as I remember being often pulled out of a delightful curtain I would wrap myself in with a book, and being told to "go and play," while still being just a little five-year-old. I had a habit of getting so engrossed in a book that even when my name was called in the room I was in, I wouldn’t hear it, which led to me being scolded for hiding, when I was really just lost in fairyland or hiding beneath a friendly cabbage leaf as a giant passed by.
I was between seven and eight years of age when I first came across some children's allegories of a religious kind, and a very little later came "Pilgrim's Progress," and Milton's "Paradise Lost." Thenceforth my busy fancies carried me ever into the fascinating world where boy-soldiers kept some outpost for their absent Prince, bearing a shield with his sign of a red cross on it; where devils shaped as dragons came swooping down on the pilgrim, but were driven away defeated after hard struggle; where angels came and talked with little children, and gave them some talisman which warned them of coming danger, and lost its light if they were leaving the right path. What a dull, tire-some world it was that I had to live in, I used to think to myself, when I was told to be a good child, and not to lose my temper, and to be tidy, and not mess my pinafore at dinner. How much easier to be a Christian if one could have a red-cross shield and a white banner, and have a real devil to fight with, and a beautiful Divine Prince to smile at you when the battle was over. How much more exciting to struggle with a winged and clawed dragon, that you knew meant mischief, than to look after your temper, that you never remembered you ought to keep until you had lost it. If I had been Eve in the garden, that old serpent would never have got the better of me; but how was a little girl to know that she might not pick out the rosiest, prettiest apple from a tree that had no serpent to show it was a forbidden one? And as I grew older the dreams and fancies grew less fantastic, but more tinged with real enthusiasm. I read tales of the early Christian martyrs, and passionately regretted I was born so late when no suffering for religion was practicable; I would spend many an hour in daydreams, in which I stood before Roman judges, before Dominican Inquisitors, was flung to lions, tortured on the rack, burned at the stake; one day I saw myself preaching some great new faith to a vast crowd of people, and they listened and were converted, and I became a great religious leader. But always, with a shock, I was brought back to earth, where there were no heroic deeds to do, no lions to face, no judges to defy, but only some dull duty to be performed. And I used to fret that I was born so late, when all the grand things had been done, and when there was no chance of preaching and suffering for a new religion.
I was between seven and eight years old when I first came across some children's religious allegories, and shortly after, I encountered "Pilgrim's Progress" and Milton's "Paradise Lost." From then on, my active imagination took me into the captivating world where young soldiers defended their absent Prince, carrying a shield with a red cross; where dragons swooped down on the pilgrim but were driven away after a tough fight; where angels conversed with little children and gave them a talisman that warned them of danger and lost its light if they strayed from the right path. How dull and tedious the world I lived in seemed when I was told to be a good child, control my temper, stay tidy, and not stain my apron at dinner. How much easier it would be to be a Christian if I could have a red-cross shield and a white banner, fight a real devil, and see a beautiful Divine Prince smiling at me after the battle. It was far more thrilling to struggle against a winged dragon that I knew meant trouble than to manage my temper, which I never remembered until it was already gone. If I had been Eve in the garden, that old serpent would never have overpowered me; but how was a little girl supposed to know she shouldn't pick the shiniest, prettiest apple from a tree that had no serpent to show it was off-limits? As I got older, my dreams and fantasies became less outlandish but were filled with real passion. I read stories of early Christian martyrs and felt a deep regret for being born too late, when there was no opportunity for suffering for my faith; I would spend hours daydreaming about standing before Roman judges, Dominican Inquisitors, being thrown to lions, tortured on a rack, burned at the stake; one day I imagined myself preaching a great new faith to a massive crowd, converting them, and becoming a significant religious leader. But each time, I’d be jolted back to reality, where there were no heroic deeds to carry out, no lions to face, no judges to challenge, just some boring responsibilities to fulfill. I used to lament being born so late, when all the great things had already happened, and there was no chance to preach and suffer for a new religion.
From the age of eight my education accented the religious side of my character. Under Miss Marryat's training my religious feeling received a strongly Evangelical bent, but it was a subject of some distress to me that I could never look back to an hour of "conversion"; when others gave their experiences, and spoke of the sudden change they had felt, I used to be sadly conscious that no such change had occurred in me, and I felt that my dreamy longings were very poor things compared with the vigorous "sense of sin" spoken of by the preachers, and used dolefully to wonder if I were "saved." Then I had an uneasy sense that I was often praised for my piety when emulation and vanity were more to the front than religion; as when I learned by heart the Epistle of James, far more to distinguish myself for my good memory than from any love of the text itself; the sonorous cadences of many parts of the Old and New Testaments pleased my ear, and I took a dreamy pleasure in repeating them aloud, just as I would recite for my own amusement hundreds of lines of Milton's "Paradise Lost," as I sat swinging on some branch of a tree, lying back often on some swaying bough and gazing into the unfathomable blue of the sky, till I lost myself in an ecstasy of sound and colour, half chanting the melodious sentences and peopling all the blue with misty forms. This facility of learning by heart, and the habit of dreamy recitation, made me very familiar with the Bible and very apt with its phrases. This stood me in good stead at the prayer-meetings dear to the Evangelical, in which we all took part; in turn we were called on to pray aloud—a terrible ordeal to me, for I was painfully shy when attention was called to me; I used to suffer agonies while I waited for the dreaded words, "Now, Annie dear, will you speak to our Lord." But when my trembling lips had forced themselves into speech, all the nervousness used to vanish and I was swept away by an enthusiasm that readily clothed itself in balanced sentences, and alack! at the end, I too often hoped that God and Auntie had noticed that I prayed very nicely—a vanity certainly not intended to be fostered by the pious exercise. On the whole, the somewhat Calvinistic teaching tended, I think, to make me a little morbid, especially as I always fretted silently after my mother. I remember she was surprised on one of my home-comings, when Miss Marryat noted "cheerfulness" as a want in my character, for at home I was ever the blithest of children, despite my love of solitude; but away, there was always an aching for home, and the stern religion cast somewhat of a shadow over me, though, strangely enough, hell never came into my dreamings except in the interesting shape it took in "Paradise Lost." After reading that, the devil was to me no horned and hoofed horror, but the beautiful shadowed archangel, and I always hoped that Jesus, my ideal Prince, would save him in the end. The things that really frightened me were vague, misty presences that I felt were near, but could not see; they were so real that I knew just where they were in the room, and the peculiar terror they excited lay largely in the feeling that I was just going to see them. If by chance I came across a ghost story it haunted me for months, for I saw whatever unpleasant spectre was described; and there was one horrid old woman in a tale by Sir Walter Scott, who glided up to the foot of your bed and sprang on it in some eerie fashion and glared at you, and who made my going to bed a terror to me for many weeks. I can still recall the feeling so vividly that it almost frightens me now!
From the age of eight, my education emphasized the religious aspect of my character. Under Miss Marryat's guidance, my religious feelings took on a strong Evangelical tone, but it distressed me that I could never recall a moment of "conversion." When others shared their experiences and talked about the sudden change they felt, I became painfully aware that nothing like that had happened to me. I thought my dreamy longings seemed trivial compared to the intense "sense of sin" described by the preachers, and I would fretfully wonder if I was "saved." I also had an uneasy feeling that I often received praise for my piety when it was really more about competition and vanity than genuine religion; for instance, when I memorized the Epistle of James, I was more interested in showcasing my good memory than in the text itself. The resonant rhythms of many parts of the Old and New Testaments delighted my ears, and I took dreamy pleasure in reciting them aloud, similar to how I would amuse myself by reciting hundreds of lines from Milton's "Paradise Lost" while swinging on a branch of a tree, lying back on a swaying bough and gazing at the endless blue sky, losing myself in an ecstasy of sound and color, half chanting the melodic sentences and filling the blue space with vague images. This knack for memorization and my habit of dreamy recitation made me very familiar with the Bible and adept with its phrases. This skill came in handy at the prayer meetings beloved by the Evangelicals, where we all participated; in turn, we were called on to pray aloud—a daunting challenge for me, as I was painfully shy when attention was drawn to me. I would suffer intensely while waiting for the dreaded words, "Now, Annie dear, will you speak to our Lord?" However, once my trembling lips managed to speak, all my nervousness would disappear, and I would be carried away by an enthusiasm that effortlessly formed into well-structured sentences. Alas, by the end, I often hoped that God and Auntie noticed how nicely I prayed—a vanity that definitely wasn't meant to be encouraged by the spiritual practice. Overall, the somewhat Calvinistic teachings made me a bit morbid, especially since I constantly worried silently about my mother. I remember she was surprised during one of my visits home when Miss Marryat pointed out "cheerfulness" as a missing quality in my character, because at home I was the most cheerful child, despite my love for solitude. Yet away from home, there was always a longing for home, and the strict religious teachings cast a shadow over me. Strangely enough, hell never entered my dreams, except in the interesting form it took in "Paradise Lost." After reading that, the devil wasn't a horned and hoofed horror to me, but rather a beautiful shadowed archangel, and I always hoped that Jesus, my ideal Prince, would ultimately save him. The things that truly scared me were vague, misty presences that I felt nearby but couldn’t see; they were so real I could pinpoint exactly where they were in the room, and the unique terror they inspired came largely from the sensation that I was just about to see them. If I happened upon a ghost story, it would haunt me for months, as I would vividly visualize the unpleasant specter described. One particularly scary old woman in a tale by Sir Walter Scott haunted me for weeks; she would glide up to the foot of your bed and jump on it in a creepy way, glaring at you—this made going to bed a terror for many weeks. I can still recall that feeling so vividly that it almost frightens me now!
CHAPTER III.
CHAPTER 3.
GIRLHOOD.
In the spring of 1861 Miss Marryat announced her intention of going abroad, and asked my dear mother to let me accompany her. A little nephew whom she had adopted was suffering from cataract, and she desired to place him under the care of the famous Düsseldorf oculist. Amy Marryat had been recalled home soon after the death of her mother, who had died in giving birth to the child adopted by Miss Marryat, and named at her desire after her favourite brother Frederick (Captain Marryat). Her place had been taken by a girl a few months older than myself, Emma Mann, one of the daughters of a clergyman, who had married Miss Stanley, closely related, indeed, if I remember rightly, a sister of the Miss Mary Stanley who did such noble work in nursing in the Crimea.
In the spring of 1861, Miss Marryat announced that she wanted to go abroad and asked my dear mother if I could go with her. A little nephew she had adopted was suffering from cataracts, and she wanted to take him to see the famous eye doctor in Düsseldorf. Amy Marryat had been called back home shortly after her mother's death; her mother had died while giving birth to the child Amy adopted, who was named after her favorite brother Frederick (Captain Marryat). Amy’s position had been taken by a girl a few months older than me, Emma Mann, one of the daughters of a clergyman who had married Miss Stanley, who was actually related to, if I remember correctly, a sister of Miss Mary Stanley, known for her incredible work nursing in the Crimea.
For some months we had been diligently studying German, for Miss Marryat thought it wise that we should know a language fairly well before we visited the country of which it was the native tongue. We had been trained also to talk French daily during dinner, so we were not quite "helpless foreigners" when we steamed away from St. Catherine's Docks, and found ourselves on the following day in Antwerp, amid what seemed to us a very Babel of conflicting tongues. Alas for our carefully spoken French, articulated laboriously! We were lost in that swirl of disputing luggage-porters, and could not understand a word! But Miss Marryat was quite equal to the occasion, being by no means new to travelling, and her French stood the test triumphantly, and steered us safely to a hotel. On the morrow we started again through Aix-la-Chapelle to Bonn, the town which lies on the borders of the exquisite scenery of which the Siebengebirge and Rolandseck serve as the magic portal. Our experiences in Bonn were not wholly satisfactory. Dear Auntie was a maiden lady, looking on all young men as wolves to be kept far from her growing lambs. Bonn was a university town, and there was a mania just then prevailing there for all things English. Emma was a plump, rosy, fair-haired typical English maiden, full of frolic and harmless fun; I a very slight, pale, black-haired girl, alternating between wild fun and extreme pensiveness. In the boarding-house to which we went at first—the "Château du Rhin," a beautiful place overhanging the broad, blue Rhine—there chanced to be staying the two sons of the late Duke of Hamilton, the Marquis of Douglas and Lord Charles, with their tutor. They had the whole drawing-room floor: we a sitting-room on the ground floor and bedrooms above. The lads discovered that Miss Marryat did not like her "children" to be on speaking terms with any of the "male sect."
For a few months, we had been diligently studying German because Miss Marryat thought it was wise for us to know a language well before visiting the country where it was spoken. We had also practiced speaking French during dinner, so we weren't completely "helpless foreigners" when we left St. Catherine's Docks and found ourselves in Antwerp the next day, surrounded by a confusing mix of languages. Unfortunately, our carefully spoken French, which we had articulated with great effort, left us lost in the chaos of arguing luggage porters, and we couldn't understand a thing! But Miss Marryat handled the situation like a pro; she was no stranger to traveling, and her French got us safely to a hotel. The next day, we set off again through Aix-la-Chapelle to Bonn, a town at the edge of the stunning scenery where the Siebengebirge and Rolandseck act as a magical gateway. Our time in Bonn wasn’t entirely pleasant. Our dear Auntie, a single woman, viewed all young men as wolves to be kept far from her innocent lambs. Bonn was a university town, and at that time, there was a craze for everything English. Emma was a cheerful, rosy, fair-haired typical English girl, full of playful energy; I was a slight, pale, black-haired girl, swinging between wild fun and deep thought. At the first boarding house we stayed at—the "Château du Rhin," a beautiful place overlooking the wide, blue Rhine—there happened to be the two sons of the late Duke of Hamilton, the Marquis of Douglas and Lord Charles, along with their tutor. They occupied the entire drawing-room floor, while we were on the ground floor with a sitting room and bedrooms upstairs. The boys realized that Miss Marryat didn't want her "children" to be on speaking terms with any of the "male sect."
Here was a fine source of amusement. They would make their horses caracole on the gravel in front of our window; they would be just starting for their ride as we went for walk or drive, and would salute us with doffed hat and low bow; they would waylay us on our way downstairs with demure "Good morning"; they would go to church and post themselves so that they could survey our pew, and Lord Charles—who possessed the power of moving at will the whole skin of the scalp—would wriggle his hair up and down till we were choking with laughter, to our own imminent risk. After a month of this Auntie was literally driven out of the pretty château, and took refuge in a girls' school, much to our disgust; but still she was not allowed to be at rest. Mischievous students would pursue us wherever we went; sentimental Germans, with gashed cheeks, would whisper complimentary phrases as we passed; mere boyish nonsense of most harmless kind, but the rather stern English lady thought it "not proper," and after three months of Bonn we were sent home for the holidays, somewhat in disgrace. But we had some lovely excursions during those months; such clambering up mountains, such rows on the swift-flowing Rhine, such wanderings in exquisite valleys. I have a long picture-gallery to retire into when I want to think of something fair, in recalling the moon as it silvered the Rhine at the foot of Drachenfels, or the soft, mist-veiled island where dwelt the lady who is consecrated for ever by Roland's love.
This was a great source of entertainment. They would make their horses prance on the gravel in front of our window; they would be just starting for their ride as we went for a walk or drive, greeting us with removed hats and deep bows; they would catch us on our way downstairs with a shy "Good morning"; they would go to church and position themselves so they could see our pew, and Lord Charles—who had the unique ability to make his scalp move at will—would wiggle his hair up and down until we were laughing so hard we could barely breathe, putting ourselves in danger. After a month of this, Auntie was literally driven out of the lovely château and took refuge in a girls' school, much to our annoyance; but she still wasn't left in peace. Mischievous students would follow us wherever we went; sentimental Germans, with bandaged faces, would whisper compliments as we passed; just silly boyish antics that were mostly harmless, but the rather serious English lady thought it was "not proper," and after three months in Bonn, we were sent home for the holidays, somewhat in disgrace. However, we had some wonderful adventures during those months; climbing mountains, rowing on the fast-flowing Rhine, and wandering in beautiful valleys. I have a long gallery of memories to escape to whenever I want to think of something lovely, recalling the moonlight shimmering on the Rhine at the foot of Drachenfels, or the soft, misty island where the lady was forever made famous by Roland's love.
A couple of months later we rejoined Miss Marryat in Paris, where we spent seven happy, workful months. On Wednesdays and Saturdays we were free from lessons, and many a long afternoon was passed in the galleries of the Louvre, till we became familiar with the masterpieces of art gathered there from all lands. I doubt if there was a beautiful church in Paris that we did not visit during those weekly wanderings; that of St. Germain de l'Auxerrois was my favourite—the church whose bell gave the signal for the massacre of St. Bartholomew—for it contained such marvellous stained glass, deepest, purest glory of colour that I had ever seen. The solemn beauty of Notre Dame, the somewhat gaudy magnificence of La Sainte Chapelle, the stateliness of La Madeleine, the impressive gloom of St. Roch, were all familiar to us. Other delights were found in mingling with the bright crowds which passed along the Champs Elysees and sauntered in the Bois de Boulogne, in strolling in the garden of the Tuileries, in climbing to the top of every monument whence view of Paris could be gained. The Empire was then in its heyday of glitter, and we much enjoyed seeing the brilliant escort of the imperial carriage, with plumes and gold and silver dancing and glistening in the sunlight, while in the carriage sat the exquisitely lovely empress, with the little boy beside her, touching his cap shyly, but with something of her own grace, in answer to a greeting—the boy who was thought to be born to an imperial crown, but whose brief career was to find an ending from the spears of savages in a quarrel in which he had no concern.
A couple of months later, we rejoined Miss Marryat in Paris, where we spent seven happy, productive months. On Wednesdays and Saturdays, we were free from lessons, and we spent many long afternoons in the galleries of the Louvre until we became familiar with the masterpieces of art collected there from all over the world. I doubt there was a beautiful church in Paris that we didn't visit during those weekly explorations; my favorite was St. Germain de l'Auxerrois—the church whose bell signaled the massacre of St. Bartholomew—because it had the most incredible stained glass, the deepest, purest glory of color I had ever seen. The solemn beauty of Notre Dame, the somewhat gaudy splendor of La Sainte Chapelle, the grandeur of La Madeleine, and the striking gloom of St. Roch were all familiar to us. Other pleasures included mingling with the lively crowds along the Champs Elysees and strolling in the Bois de Boulogne, wandering through the gardens of the Tuileries, and climbing to the top of every monument for a view of Paris. The Empire was at its peak of glamour, and we loved watching the brilliant escort of the imperial carriage, with feathers and gold and silver shimmering in the sunlight, while inside sat the exquisitely beautiful empress, with her little boy beside her, shyly touching his cap but with some of her own grace in response to a greeting—the boy who was believed to be destined for an imperial crown but whose short life would end at the hands of savages in a conflict he had no part in.
In the spring of 1862 it chanced that the Bishop of Ohio visited Paris, and Mr. Forbes, then English chaplain at the Church of the Rue d'Aguesseau, arranged to have a confirmation. As said above, I was under deep "religious impressions," and, in fact, with the exception of that little aberration in Germany, I was decidedly a pious girl. I looked on theatres (never having been to one) as traps set by Satan for the destruction of foolish souls; I was quite determined never to go to a ball, and was prepared to "suffer for conscience' sake "—little prig that I was—if I was desired to go to one. I was consequently quite prepared to take upon myself the vows made in my name at my baptism, and to renounce the world, the flesh, and the devil, with a heartiness and sincerity only equalled by my profound ignorance of the things I so readily resigned. That confirmation was to me a very solemn matter; the careful preparation, the prolonged prayers, the wondering awe as to the "seven-fold gifts of the Spirit," which were to be given by "the laying on of hands," all tended to excitement. I could scarcely control myself as I knelt at the altar rails, and felt as though the gentle touch of the aged bishop, which fluttered for an instant on my bowed head, were the very touch of the wing of that "Holy Spirit, heavenly Dove," whose presence had been so earnestly invoked. Is there anything easier, I wonder, than to make a young and sensitive girl "intensely religious"? This stay in Paris roused into activity an aspect of my religious nature that had hitherto been latent. I discovered the sensuous enjoyment that lay in introducing colour and fragrance and pomp into religious services, so that the gratification of the aesthetic emotions became dignified with the garb of piety. The picture-galleries of the Louvre, crowded with Madonnas and saints, the Roman Catholic churches with their incense-laden air and exquisite music, brought a new joy into my life, a more vivid colour to my dreams. Insensibly, the colder, cruder Evangelicalism that I had never thoroughly assimilated, grew warmer and more brilliant, and the ideal Divine Prince of my childhood took on the more pathetic lineaments of the Man of Sorrows, the deeper attractiveness of the suffering Saviour of Men. Keble's "Christian Year" took the place of "Paradise Lost," and as my girlhood began to bud towards womanhood, all its deeper currents set in the direction of religious devotion. My mother did not allow me to read love stories, and my daydreams of the future were scarcely touched by any of the ordinary hopes and fears of a girl lifting her eyes towards the world she is shortly to enter. They were filled with broodings over the days when girl-martyrs were blessed with visions of the King of Martyrs, when sweet St. Agnes saw her celestial Bridegroom, and angels stooped to whisper melodies in St. Cecilia's raptured ear. "Why then and not now?" my heart would question, and I would lose myself in these fancies, never happier than when alone.
In the spring of 1862, the Bishop of Ohio visited Paris, and Mr. Forbes, who was then the English chaplain at the Church of the Rue d'Aguesseau, arranged for a confirmation. As mentioned earlier, I was experiencing deep "religious impressions," and apart from a brief lapse in Germany, I was truly a devout girl. I viewed theaters (having never attended one) as traps set by Satan to destroy foolish souls; I was firmly resolved never to go to a ball and was ready to "suffer for conscience' sake"—the little prig that I was—if I was asked to attend one. I was fully prepared to take on the vows made in my name at my baptism and to renounce the world, the flesh, and the devil, with a sincerity and enthusiasm only matched by my complete ignorance of the things I so easily relinquished. That confirmation was a very serious matter for me; the careful preparation, the lengthy prayers, and the awe about the "seven-fold gifts of the Spirit," which were to be conferred by "the laying on of hands," all contributed to my excitement. I could barely contain myself as I knelt at the altar rails, feeling as if the gentle touch of the elderly bishop on my bowed head was the very brush of the wing of that "Holy Spirit, heavenly Dove," whose presence had been so fervently called upon. I wonder, is there anything easier than making a young, sensitive girl "intensely religious"? My time in Paris awakened a side of my religious nature that had been dormant before. I discovered the sensory pleasure that came from incorporating color, fragrance, and grandeur into religious services, so that aesthetic enjoyment became dignified by the trappings of piety. The galleries of the Louvre, filled with Madonnas and saints, and the Roman Catholic churches with their incense-filled air and beautiful music, brought a new joy to my life, adding more vivid colors to my dreams. Gradually, the colder, harsher Evangelicalism that I had never fully embraced became warmer and more vivid, and the ideal Divine Prince of my childhood took on the more poignant traits of the Man of Sorrows, the deeper allure of the suffering Savior of Humanity. Keble's "Christian Year" replaced "Paradise Lost," and as my girlhood began its transition into womanhood, all the deeper currents flowed toward religious devotion. My mother didn’t let me read love stories, and my daydreams about the future hardly included any of the usual hopes and fears of a girl looking forward to the world she was about to enter. Instead, they were filled with reflections on the days when girl-martyrs were blessed with visions of the King of Martyrs, when sweet St. Agnes saw her heavenly Bridegroom, and angels bent down to whisper melodies into St. Cecilia's enchanted ear. "Why then and not now?" my heart would ask, and I would become lost in these thoughts, never happier than when I was alone.
The summer of 1862 was spent with Miss Marryat at Sidmouth, and, wise woman that she was, she now carefully directed our studies with a view to our coming enfranchisement from the "schoolroom." More and more were we trained to work alone; our leading-strings were slackened, so that we never felt them save when we blundered; and I remember that when I once complained, in loving fashion, that she was "teaching me so little," she told me that I was getting old enough to be trusted to work by myself, and that I must not expect to "have Auntie for a crutch all through life." And I venture to say that this gentle withdrawal of constant supervision and teaching was one of the wisest and kindest things that this noble-hearted woman ever did for us. It is the usual custom to keep girls in the schoolroom until they "come out"; then, suddenly, they are left to their own devices, and, bewildered by their unaccustomed freedom, they waste time that might be priceless for their intellectual growth. Lately, the opening of universities to women has removed this danger for the more ambitious; but at the time of which I am writing no one dreamed of the changes soon to be made in the direction of the "higher education of women."
The summer of 1862 was spent with Miss Marryat at Sidmouth, and, being the wise woman she was, she carefully guided our studies to prepare us for our upcoming independence from the "schoolroom." We were increasingly trained to work on our own; our restraints were loosened, so we only felt them when we made mistakes. I remember once playfully complaining that she was "teaching me so little," and she replied that I was old enough to be trusted to work by myself and that I shouldn’t expect to "have Auntie as a crutch for my whole life." I believe that her gentle reduction of constant supervision and instruction was one of the smartest and kindest things this wonderful woman ever did for us. It's common to keep girls in the schoolroom until they "come out"; then, all of a sudden, they're left to manage on their own and, confused by their newfound freedom, they waste valuable time that could have been spent growing intellectually. Recently, the opening of universities to women has reduced this issue for those who are more ambitious, but at the time I’m referring to, no one imagined the changes that were soon to come concerning the "higher education of women."
During the winter of 1862-63 Miss Marryat was in London, and for a few months I remained there with her, attending the admirable French classes of M. Roche. In the spring I returned home to Harrow, going up each week to the classes; and when these were over, Auntie told me that she thought all she could usefully do was done, and that it was time that I should try my wings alone. So well, however, had she succeeded in her aims, that my emancipation from the schoolroom was but the starting-point of more eager study, though now the study turned into the lines of thought towards which my personal tendencies most attracted me. German I continued to read with a master, and music, under the marvellously able teaching of Mr. John Farmer, musical director of Harrow School, took up much of my time. My dear mother had a passion for music, and Beethoven and Bach were her favourite composers. There was scarcely a sonata of Beethoven's that I did not learn, scarcely a fugue of Bach's that I did not master. Mendelssohn's "Lieder" gave a lighter recreation, and many a happy evening did we spend, my mother and I, over the stately strains of the blind Titan, and the sweet melodies of the German wordless orator. Musical "At Homes," too, were favourite amusements at Harrow, and at these my facile fingers made me a welcome guest.
During the winter of 1862-63, Miss Marryat was in London, and I stayed there with her for a few months, taking M. Roche's excellent French classes. In the spring, I went back to Harrow, attending classes every week; once those were finished, Auntie told me she believed she had done all she could to help me and that it was time for me to find my own way. However, she had been so successful in her efforts that my stepping away from the schoolroom was just the beginning of more enthusiastic studying, now focused on the subjects that personally interested me the most. I continued to read German with a tutor and spent a lot of time on music, thanks to the incredibly skilled teaching of Mr. John Farmer, the musical director at Harrow School. My dear mother had a deep love for music, and Beethoven and Bach were her favorite composers. There was hardly a sonata by Beethoven that I didn’t learn, nor a fugue by Bach that I didn’t master. Mendelssohn's "Lieder" offered a lighter break, and my mother and I spent many joyful evenings enjoying the majestic tunes of the blind master and the sweet melodies of the German wordless storyteller. Musical "At Homes" were also popular activities in Harrow, and my nimble fingers made me a welcome guest at these gatherings.
Thus set free from the schoolroom at 16½, an only daughter, I could do with my time as I would, save for the couple of hours a day given to music, for the satisfaction of my mother. From then till I became engaged, just before I was 19, my life flowed on smoothly, one current visible to all and dancing in the sunlight, the other running underground, but full and deep and strong. As regards my outer life, no girl had a brighter, happier life than mine; studying all the mornings and most of the afternoons in my own way, and spending the latter part of the day in games and walks and rides—varied with parties at which I was one of the merriest of guests. I practised archery so zealously that I carried up triumphantly as prize for the best score the first ring I ever possessed, while croquet found me a most eager devotee. My darling mother certainly "spoiled" me, so far as were concerned all the small roughnesses of life. She never allowed a trouble of any kind to touch me, and cared only that all worries should fall on her, all joys on me. I know now what I never dreamed then, that her life was one of serious anxiety. The heavy burden of my brother's school and college life pressed on her constantly, and her need of money was often serious. A lawyer whom she trusted absolutely cheated her systematically, using for his own purposes the remittances she made for payment of liabilities, thus keeping upon her a constant drain. Yet for me all that was wanted was ever there. Was it a ball to which we were going? I need never think of what I would wear till the time for dressing arrived, and there laid out ready for me was all I wanted, every detail complete from top to toe. No hand but hers must dress my hair, which, loosed, fell in dense curly masses nearly to my knees; no hand but hers must fasten dress and deck with flowers, and if I sometimes would coaxingly ask if I might not help by sewing in laces, or by doing some trifle in aid, she would kiss me and bid me run to my books or my play, telling me that her only pleasure in life was caring for her "treasure." Alas! how lightly we take the self-denying labour that makes life so easy, ere yet we have known what life means when the protecting motherwing is withdrawn. So guarded and shielded had been my childhood and youth from every touch of pain and anxiety that love could bear for me, that I never dreamed that life might be a heavy burden, save as I saw it in the poor I was sent to help; all the joy of those happy years I took, not ungratefully I hope, but certainly with as glad unconsciousness of anything rare in it as I took the sunlight. Passionate love, indeed, I gave to my darling, but I never knew all I owed her till I passed out of her tender guardianship, till I left my mother's home. Is such training wise? I am not sure. It makes the ordinary roughnesses of life come with so stunning a shock, when one goes out into the world, that one is apt to question whether some earlier initiation into life's sterner mysteries would not be wiser for the young. Yet it is a fair thing to have that joyous youth to look back upon, and at least it is a treasury of memory that no thief can steal in the struggles of later life. "Sunshine" they called me in those bright days of merry play and earnest study. But that study showed the bent of my thought and linked itself to the hidden life; for the Fathers of the early Christian Church now became my chief companions, and I pored over the Shepherd of Hernias, the Epistles of Polycarp, Barnabas, Ignatius, and Clement, the commentaries of Chrysostom, the confessions of Augustine. With these I studied the writings of Pusey, Liddon, and Keble, with many another smaller light, joying in the great conception of a Catholic Church, lasting through the centuries, built on the foundations of apostles and of martyrs, stretching from the days of Christ Himself down to our own—"One Lord, one Faith one Baptism," and I myself a child of that Holy Church. The hidden life grew stronger, constantly fed by these streams of study; weekly communion became the centre round which my devotional life revolved, with its ecstatic meditation, its growing intensity of conscious contact with the Divine; I fasted, according to the ordinances of the Church; occasionally flagellated myself to see if I could bear physical pain, should I be fortunate enough ever to tread the pathway trodden by the saints; and ever the Christ was the figure round which clustered all my hopes and longings, till I often felt that the very passion of, my devotion would draw Him down from His throne in heaven, present visibly in form as I felt Him invisibly in spirit. To serve Him through His Church became more and more a definite ideal in my life, and my thoughts began to turn towards some kind of "religious life," in which I might prove my love by sacrifice and turn my passionate gratitude into active service.
Thus, free from school at 16½ and as an only daughter, I could spend my time however I wanted, except for a couple of hours each day dedicated to music to please my mother. From that point until I got engaged just before my 19th birthday, my life flowed smoothly—one part visible to all, bright and lively in the sunlight, and the other hidden, but rich, deep, and strong. On the surface, no girl had a happier life than mine; I studied each morning and most afternoons in my own way, and spent the latter part of the day on games, walks, rides, and parties where I was one of the liveliest guests. I practiced archery so passionately that I proudly won my first prize for the best score, and I was a dedicated croquet player. My dear mother definitely "spoiled" me by protecting me from all the little troubles of life. She never let any worries touch me and made sure all burdens fell on her while I enjoyed all the joys. I now realize, which I never fathomed back then, that her life was filled with serious anxiety. She constantly felt the weight of my brother's school and college expenses, and her need for money was often critical. A lawyer she completely trusted systematically deceived her, using the funds she sent for payments for his own needs, keeping her under a constant strain. Yet, everything I needed was always provided for me. Were we going to a ball? I never had to think about what I would wear until it was time to dress, and everything I needed was laid out for me, every detail perfect from head to toe. Only she could style my hair, which fell in thick, curly masses nearly to my knees; only she could fasten my dress and decorate it with flowers. If I ever asked her sweetly if I could help by sewing in lace or doing a little something, she would kiss me and send me back to my books or play, saying that her greatest joy in life was taking care of her "treasure." Alas! How lightly we take the selfless efforts that make life so comfortable before we understand the true meaning of life when the protective wings of a mother are gone. My childhood and youth had been so shielded from any pain and worry that love could spare me that I never imagined life could be such a heavy burden, except when I witnessed it in the poverty I was sent to help; all the joy of those happy years I embraced, not ungratefully, I hope, but certainly with an innocent ignorance of anything unusual, like I embraced the sunlight. I gave my passionate love to my dear mother, but I never realized all that I owed her until I stepped out of her gentle care and left my mother’s home. Is such training wise? I’m not sure. It makes the regular struggles of life come as such a shock when one steps into the world that one wonders if some earlier exposure to life's harsher realities might be better for young people. Yet, it's a beautiful thing to have that joyful youth to look back on, and at least it’s a treasure of memories that no one can take away during later life struggles. They called me "Sunshine" back in those bright days of joyful play and serious study. But that study revealed my interests and connected with my inner life; the early Christian Fathers became my main companions, and I spent time studying the Shepherd of Hermas, the Epistles of Polycarp, Barnabas, Ignatius, and Clement, along with the commentaries of Chrysostom and the confessions of Augustine. Alongside these, I read the works of Pusey, Liddon, and Keble, along with many others, delighting in the grand idea of a Catholic Church enduring through the centuries, built on the foundations of apostles and martyrs, spanning from the days of Christ Himself to the present—"One Lord, one Faith, one Baptism," and I as a member of that Holy Church. My inner life grew stronger, constantly nourished by these studies; weekly communion became the focus of my spiritual life, filled with ecstatic meditation and a heightened sense of connection with the Divine. I fasted according to the Church's rules, occasionally inflicted physical pain on myself to see if I could endure it should I ever be blessed to walk the path of the saints; and always, Christ was the figure around whom all my hopes and desires revolved, to the point where I often felt that the depth of my devotion could pull Him down from His heavenly throne, manifesting His presence to me in form as I felt Him invisibly in spirit. Serving Him through His Church became an increasingly clear ideal in my life, and my thoughts began to drift towards some kind of "religious life," where I could prove my love through sacrifice and turn my deep gratitude into active service.
Looking back to-day over my life, I see that its keynote—through all the blunders, and the blind mistakes, and clumsy follies—has been this longing for sacrifice to something felt as greater than the self. It has been so strong and so persistent that I recognise it now as a tendency brought over from a previous life and dominating the present one; and this is shown by the fact that to follow it is not the act of a deliberate and conscious will, forcing self into submission and giving up with pain something the heart desires, but the following it is a joyous springing forward along the easiest path, the "sacrifice" being the supremely attractive thing, not to make which would be to deny the deepest longings of the soul, and to feel oneself polluted and dishonoured. And it is here that the misjudgment comes in of many generous hearts who have spoken sometimes lately so strongly in my praise. For the efforts to serve have not been painful acts of self-denial, but the yielding to an overmastering desire. We do not praise the mother who, impelled by her protecting love, feeds her crying infant and stills its wailings at her breast; rather should we blame her if she turned aside from its weeping to play with some toy. And so with all those whose ears are opened to the wailings of the great orphan Humanity; they are less to be praised for helping than they would be to be blamed if they stood aside. I now know that it is those wailings that have stirred my heart through life, and that I brought with me the ears open to hear them from previous lives of service paid to men. It was those lives that drew for the child the alluring pictures of martyrdom, breathed into the girl the passion of devotion, sent the woman out to face scoff and odium, and drove her finally into the Theosophy that rationalises sacrifice, while opening up possibilities of service beside which all other hopes grow pale.
Looking back on my life today, I see that its main theme—through all the mistakes, blind errors, and awkward follies—has been this deep desire to sacrifice for something bigger than myself. It has been so intense and persistent that I now recognize it as a tendency carried over from a past life, dominating this one as well. This is evident in the fact that following it isn’t a conscious decision made with struggle and the painful choice to give up what the heart desires, but rather a joyful leap forward along the easiest path, where the “sacrifice” feels incredibly appealing, and not doing it would mean denying the deepest yearnings of the soul, leaving one feeling tainted and dishonored. This is where many generous hearts, who have recently praised me so fervently, misjudge things. The efforts to serve have not been painful acts of self-denial, but rather a submission to an overwhelming desire. We don't praise a mother who, driven by her protective love, feeds her crying baby and calms its wails; we would actually blame her if she turned away from its cries to play with a toy. The same goes for those who hear the cries of the great orphaned Humanity; they deserve less praise for helping than they would deserve blame if they chose to stand aside. I now realize it’s those cries that have moved my heart throughout my life and that I came into this life with ears attuned to hear them, thanks to previous lives dedicated to serving others. It was those lives that painted alluring images of martyrdom for the child, ignited the passion for devotion in the girl, sent the woman out to face ridicule and scorn, and ultimately led her into Theosophy, which rationalizes sacrifice while revealing service opportunities that make all other hopes seem insignificant.
The Easter of 1866 was a memorable date in my life. I was introduced to the clergyman I married, and I met and conquered my first religious doubt. A little mission church had been opened the preceding Christmas in a very poor district of Clapham. My grandfather's house was near at hand, in Albert Square, and a favourite aunt and myself devoted ourselves a good deal to this little church, as enthusiastic girls and women will. At Easter we decorated it with spring flowers, with dewy primroses and fragrant violets, and with the yellow bells of the wild daffodil, to the huge delight of the poor who crowded in, and of the little London children who had, many of them, never seen a flower. Here I met the Rev. Frank Besant, a young Cambridge man, who had just taken orders, and was serving the little mission church as deacon; strange that at the same time I should meet the man I was to marry, and the doubts which were to break the marriage tie. For in the Holy Week preceding that Easter Eve, I had been—as English and Roman Catholics are wont to do—trying to throw the mind back to the time when the commemorated events occurred, and to follow, step by step, the last days of the Son of Man, living, as it were, through those last hours, so that I might be ready to kneel before the cross on Good Friday, to stand beside the sepulchre on Easter Day. In order to facilitate the realisation of those last sacred days of God incarnate on earth, working out man's salvation, I resolved to write a brief history of that week, compiled from the Four Gospels, meaning them to try and realise each day the occurrences that had happened on the corresponding date in A.D. 33, and so to follow those "blessed feet" step by step, till they were
The Easter of 1866 was a significant day in my life. I met the clergyman I would marry and confronted my first religious doubt. A small mission church had opened the previous Christmas in a very poor area of Clapham. My grandfather's house was nearby in Albert Square, and my favorite aunt and I dedicated a lot of our time to this little church, as enthusiastic girls and women often do. At Easter, we decorated it with spring flowers—fresh primroses, fragrant violets, and the yellow bells of wild daffodils. This brought great joy to the impoverished people who crowded in, as well as to the little London children who had often never seen a flower. It was here that I met Rev. Frank Besant, a young man from Cambridge who had just been ordained and was serving the mission church as a deacon. It’s strange that at the same time I encountered the man I was meant to marry and the doubts that would later come to challenge that marriage. In the week leading up to that Easter Eve, I was, as English and Roman Catholics often do, trying to reflect on the days when those events took place, aiming to follow step by step the final days of the Son of Man, as if living through those last moments, so I could be ready to kneel before the cross on Good Friday and stand by the tomb on Easter Day. To better experience those last sacred days of God living among us and working for our salvation, I decided to write a brief history of that week based on the Four Gospels, intending to capture the events of each day that had occurred on the equivalent date in A.D. 33, and thus follow those "blessed feet" step by step until they were
"... nailed for our advantage to the bitter cross."
"... nailed to the bitter cross for our benefit."
With the fearlessness which springs from ignorance I sat down to my task. My method was as follows:—
With the fearlessness that comes from not knowing any better, I sat down to do my task. My approach was as follows:—
MATTHEW. | MARK. | LUKE. | JOHN. |
---|---|---|---|
PALM SUNDAY. | PALM SUNDAY. | PALM SUNDAY. | PALM SUNDAY. |
Rode into Jerusalem. Purified the Temple. Returned to Bethany. | Rode into Jerusalem. Returned to Bethany. | Rode into Jerusalem. Purified the Temple. Note: "Taught daily in the temple." | Rode into Jerusalem. Spoke in the Temple. |
MONDAY. | MONDAY. | MONDAY. | MONDAY. |
Cursed the fig-tree. Taught in the Temple, and spake many parables. No breaks shown, but the fig-tree (xxi.19) did not wither till Tuesday (see Mark). | Cursed the fig-tree. Purified the Temple. Went out of city. | Like Matthew. | —— |
TUESDAY. | TUESDAY. | TUESDAY. | TUESDAY. |
All chaps, xxi. 20, xxii-xxv., spoken on Tuesday, for xxvi. 2 gives Passover as "after two days." | Saw fig-tree withered up. Then discourses. | Discourses. No date shown. | —— |
WEDNESDAY. | WEDNESDAY. | WEDNESDAY. | WEDNESDAY. |
Blank. (Possibly remained in Bethany, the alabaster box of ointment.) | |||
THURSDAY. | THURSDAY. | THURSDAY. | THURSDAY. |
Preparation of Passover. Eating of Passover, and institution of the Holy Eucharist. Gethsemane. Betrayal by Judas. Led captive to Caiaphas. Denied by St. Peter. | Same as Matt. | Same as Matt. | Discourses with disciples, but before the Passover. Washes the disciples' feet. Nothing said of Holy Eucharist, nor of agony in Gethsemane. Malchus' ear. Led captives to Annas first. Then to Caiaphas. Denied by St. Peter. |
FRIDAY. | FRIDAY. | FRIDAY. | FRIDAY. |
Led to Pilate. Judas hangs himself. Tried. Condemned to death. Scourged and mocked. Led to crucifixion. Darkness from 12 to 3. Died at 3. | As Matthew, but hour of crucifixion given, 9 a.m. | Led to Pilate. Sent to Herod. Sent back to Pilate. Rest as in Matthew; but one malefactor repents. | Taken to Pilate. Jews would not enter, that they might eat the Passover. Scourged by Pilate before condemnation, and mocked. Shown by Pilate to Jews at 12. |
I became uneasy as I proceeded with my task, for discrepancies leaped at me from my four columns; the uneasiness grew as the contradictions increased, until I saw with a shock of horror that my "harmony" was a discord, and a doubt of the veracity of the story sprang up like a serpent hissing in my face. It was struck down in a moment, for to me to doubt was sin, and to have doubted on the very eve of the Passion was an added crime. Quickly I assured myself that these apparent contradictions were necessary as tests of faith, and I forced myself to repeat Tertullian's famous "Credo quia impossible," till, from a wooden recital, it became a triumphant affirmation. I reminded myself that St. Peter had said of the Pauline Epistles that in them were "some things hard to be understood, which they that are unlearned and unstable wrest ... unto their own destruction." I shudderingly recognised that I must be very unlearned and unstable to find discord among the Holy Evangelists, and imposed on myself an extra fast as penance for my ignorance and lack of firmness in the faith. For my mental position was one to which doubt was one of the worst of sins. I knew that there were people like Colenso, who questioned the infallibility of the Bible, but I remembered how the Apostle John had fled from the Baths when Cerinthus entered them, lest the roof should fall on the heretic, and crush any one in his neighbourhood, and I looked on all heretics with holy horror. Pusey had indoctrinated me with his stern hatred of all heresy, and I was content to rest with him on that faith, "which must be old because it is eternal, and must be unchangeable because it is true." I would not even read the works of my mothers favourite Stanley, because he was "unsound," and because Pusey had condemned his "variegated use of words which destroys all definiteness of meaning"—a clever and pointed description, be it said in passing, of the Dean's exquisite phrases, capable of so many readings. It can then be imagined with what a stab of pain this first doubt struck me, and with what haste I smothered it up, buried it, and smoothed the turf over its grave. But it had been there, and it left its mark.
I started to feel uneasy as I continued my work, because inconsistencies jumped out at me from my four columns; the uneasiness intensified as the contradictions piled up, until I experienced a jolt of horror when I realized that my “harmony” was really a discord, and doubts about the truth of the story crept in like a serpent hissing in my face. I quickly pushed those doubts away, because to me, questioning was a sin, and doubting right before the Passion felt like an even greater crime. I reassured myself that these apparent contradictions were necessary tests of faith, and I forced myself to repeat Tertullian's famous "I believe because it is impossible," until it shifted from a mechanical recitation to a triumphant affirmation. I reminded myself that St. Peter had said of the Pauline Epistles that there were "some things hard to understand, which those who are unlearned and unstable twist ... to their own destruction." I shuddered as I recognized that I must be very unlearned and unstable to find discord among the Holy Evangelists, so I imposed an extra fast on myself as penance for my ignorance and wavering faith. My mindset was one where doubt was one of the worst sins. I knew there were people like Colenso who questioned the infallibility of the Bible, but I remembered how the Apostle John had fled from the Baths when Cerinthus entered, fearing that the roof would collapse on the heretic and harm anyone nearby, and I looked at all heretics with holy horror. Pusey had instilled in me a stern hatred for all heresy, and I was content to agree with him on that faith, "which must be old because it is eternal, and must be unchangeable because it is true." I wouldn’t even read the works of my mother’s favorite, Stanley, because he was "unsound," and because Pusey had condemned his "varied use of words which destroys all definiteness of meaning"—a clever and pointed description, I might add, of the Dean's exquisite phrases, which can be interpreted in so many ways. So, you can imagine the stab of pain this first doubt caused me, and how quickly I tried to bury it, cover it up, and smooth the ground over its grave. But it had been there, and it left its mark.
CHAPTER IV.
CHAPTER 4.
MARRIAGE.
The last year of my girlish freedom was drawing to its close; how shall I hope to make commonsense readers understand how I became betrothed maiden ere yet nineteen, girl-wife when twenty years had struck? Looking back over twenty-five years, I feel a profound pity for the girl standing at that critical point of life, so utterly, hopelessly ignorant of all that marriage meant, so filled with impossible dreams, so unfitted for the rôle of wife. As I have said, my day-dreams held little place for love, partly from the absence of love novels from my reading, partly from the mystic fancies that twined themselves round the figure of the Christ. Catholic books of devotion—English or Roman, it matters not, for to a large extent they are translations of the same hymns and prayers—are exceedingly glowing in their language, and the dawning feelings of womanhood unconsciously lend to them a passionate fervour. I longed to spend my time in worshipping Jesus, and was, as far as my inner life was concerned, absorbed in that passionate love of "the Saviour" which, among emotional Catholics, really is the human passion of love transferred to an ideal—for women to Jesus, for men to the Virgin Mary. In order to show that I am not here exaggerating, I subjoin a few of the prayers in which I found daily delight, and I do this in order to show how an emotional girl may be attracted by these so-called devotional exercises:—
The last year of my girlhood freedom was coming to an end; how can I explain to sensible readers how I ended up engaged as a maiden before I turned nineteen, and a wife by the time I was twenty? Looking back over twenty-five years, I feel deep sympathy for the girl standing at that pivotal moment in life, so completely and hopelessly unaware of what marriage truly meant, filled with unrealistic dreams, and so unprepared for the role of a wife. As I've mentioned, my daydreams had little room for love, partly because I didn't read love stories, and partly because I was caught up in the mystical ideas surrounding Christ. Catholic devotional books—whether English or Roman, since they largely consist of translations of the same hymns and prayers—are extremely vibrant in their language, and my emerging womanhood unintentionally added a passionate intensity to them. I wanted to dedicate my life to worshipping Jesus and was, in terms of my inner feelings, completely absorbed in that passionate love for "the Savior" which, among emotional Catholics, is really a human version of love directed toward an ideal—women towards Jesus and men towards the Virgin Mary. To show that I’m not exaggerating, I’ll share a few of the prayers that brought me daily joy, to illustrate how an emotional girl can be drawn to these so-called devotional practices:—
"O crucified Love, raise in me fresh ardours of love and consolation, that it may henceforth be the greatest torment I can endure ever to offend Thee; that it may be my greatest delight to please Thee."
"O crucified Love, ignite in me new passions of love and comfort, so that from now on, the worst pain I can bear is to offend You; and let it be my greatest joy to please You."
"Let the remembrance of Thy death, O Lord Jesu, make me to desire and pant after Thee, that I may delight in Thy gracious presence."
"Let the memory of Your death, Lord Jesus, make me long for You and yearn for Your presence, so that I can find joy in being with You."
"O most sweet Jesu Christ, I, unworthy sinner, yet redeemed by Thy precious blood.... Thine I am and will be, in life and in death."
"O most sweet Jesus Christ, I, an unworthy sinner, yet redeemed by Your precious blood.... I am Yours and will be, in life and in death."
"O Jesu, beloved, fairer than the sons of men, draw me after Thee with the cords of Thy love."
"O Jesus, beloved, more beautiful than anyone else, pull me closer to You with the ties of Your love."
"Blessed are Thou, O most merciful God, who didst vouchsafe to espouse me to the heavenly Bridegroom in the waters of baptism, and hast imparted Thy body and blood as a new gift of espousal and the meet consummation of Thy love."
"Blessed are You, O most merciful God, who chose to unite me with the heavenly Bridegroom in the waters of baptism, and have given Your body and blood as a new gift of union and the fitting completion of Your love."
"O most sweet Lord Jesu, transfix the affections of my inmost soul with that most joyous and most healthful wound of Thy love, with true, serene, most holy, apostolical charity; that my soul may ever languish and melt with entire love and longing for Thee. Let it desire Thee and faint for Thy courts; long to be dissolved and be with Thee."
"O most sweet Lord Jesus, pierce the feelings of my deepest soul with that joyful and healing wound of Your love, with true, calm, most holy, apostolic charity; that my soul may always yearn and be consumed with total love and longing for You. Let it desire You and grow weak for Your presence; long to be free and be with You."
"Oh, that I could embrace Thee with that most burning love of angels."
"Oh, how I wish I could hold You with the same intense love as the angels."
"Let Him kiss me with the kisses of His mouth; for Thy love is better than wine. Draw me, we will run after Thee. The king hath brought me into his chambers.... Let my soul, O Lord, feel the sweetness of Thy presence. May it taste how sweet Thou art.... May the sweet and burning power of Thy love, I beseech Thee, absorb my soul."
"Let Him kiss me with the kisses of His mouth; for Your love is better than wine. Draw me in; we will run after You. The king has brought me into his chambers.... Let my soul, O Lord, feel the sweetness of Your presence. May it taste how sweet You are.... May the sweet and burning power of Your love, I ask You, consume my soul."
All girls have in them the germ of passion, and the line of its development depends on the character brought into the world, and the surrounding influences of education. I had but two ideals in my childhood and youth, round whom twined these budding tendrils of passion; they were my mother and the Christ. I know this may seem strange, but I am trying to state things as they were in this life-story, and not give mere conventionalisms, and so it was. I had men friends, but no lovers—at least, to my knowledge, for I have since heard that my mother received two or three offers of marriage for me, but declined them on account of my youth and my childishness—friends with whom I liked to talk, because they knew more than I did; but they had no place in my day-dreams. These were more and more filled with the one Ideal Man, and my hopes turned towards the life of the Sister of Mercy, who ever worships the Christ, and devotes her life to the service of His poor. I knew my dear mother would set herself against this idea, but it nestled warm at my heart, for ever that idea of escaping from the humdrum of ordinary life by some complete sacrifice lured me onwards with its overmastering fascination.
All girls have a spark of passion, and how it develops depends on their character and the influences from their upbringing. I had just two ideals during my childhood and youth, around which these budding feelings grew; they were my mother and Christ. I know this might sound odd, but I’m trying to share things as they really were in this life story, not just give conventional responses, and that’s how it was. I had male friends, but no lovers—at least, not that I knew of. I later found out that my mother had received a couple of marriage proposals for me, but she turned them down because of my youth and childishness. I enjoyed talking with these friends because they were more knowledgeable than I was, but they didn’t feature in my daydreams. Those were increasingly filled with the one Ideal Man, and my hopes were directed toward a life as a Sister of Mercy, who always worships Christ and dedicates her life to serving His poor. I knew my dear mother would oppose this idea, but it lingered warmly in my heart because that notion of escaping the monotony of ordinary life through total sacrifice irresistibly drew me forward.
Now one unlucky result of this view of religion is the idealisation of the clergyman, the special messenger and chosen servant of the Lord. Far more lofty than any title bestowed by earthly monarch is that patent of nobility straight from the hand of the "King of kings," that seems to give to the mortal something of the authority of the immortal, and to crown the head of the priest with the diadem that belongs to those who are "kings and priests unto God." Viewed in this way, the position of the priest's wife seems second only to that of the nun, and has, therefore, a wonderful attractiveness, an attractiveness in which the particular clergyman affected plays a very subordinate part; it is the "sacred office," the nearness to "holy things," the consecration which seems to include the wife—it is these things that shed a glamour over the clerical life which attracts most those who are most apt to self-devotion, most swayed by imagination. And the saddest pity of all this is that the glamour is most over those whose brains are quick, whose hearts are pure, who are responsive to all forms of noble emotions, all suggestions of personal self-sacrifice; if such in later life rise to the higher emotions whose shadows have attracted them, and to that higher self-sacrifice whose whispers reached them in their early youth, then the false prophet's veil is raised, the poverty of the conception seen, and the life is either wrecked, or through storm-wind and surge of battling billows, with loss of mast and sail, is steered by firm hand into the port of a nobler faith.
Now, one unfortunate consequence of this perspective on religion is the idealization of the clergyman, the special messenger and chosen servant of the Lord. Far more elevated than any title given by earthly rulers is that certification of nobility directly from the "King of kings," which seems to grant the mortal some of the authority of the immortal, crowning the priest’s head with the diadem reserved for those who are "kings and priests unto God." Seen this way, the role of the priest's wife appears to be second only to that of the nun, making it incredibly appealing, an appeal in which the specific clergyman involved plays a very minor role; it's the "sacred office," the closeness to "holy things," the consecration that seemingly involves the wife—it’s these elements that create a charm around clerical life that most attracts those inclined toward self-devotion, especially those driven by imagination. And the saddest part of this is that the allure is strongest for those with quick minds, pure hearts, and those who respond to all forms of noble emotions and suggestions of personal sacrifice; if such individuals later ascend to the higher emotions that initially captivated them and to a greater self-sacrifice that called to them in their youth, then the veil of the false prophet is lifted, the emptiness of the concept is revealed, and their life either falls apart, or, through storm and struggle, with the loss of mast and sail, is steered by a steady hand into the harbor of a nobler faith.
That summer of 1866 saw me engaged to the young clergyman I had met at the mission church in the spring, our knowledge of each other being an almost negligeable quantity. We were thrown together for a week, the only two young ones in a small party of holiday-makers, and in our walks, rides, and drives we were naturally companions; an hour or two before he left he asked me to marry him, taking my consent for granted as I had allowed him such full companionship—a perfectly fair assumption with girls accustomed to look on all men as possible husbands, but wholly mistaken as regarded myself, whose thoughts were in quite other directions. Startled, and my sensitive pride touched by what seemed to my strict views an assumption that I had been flirting, I hesitated, did not follow my first impulse of refusal, but took refuge in silence; my suitor had to catch his train, and bound me over to silence till he could himself speak to my mother, urging authoritatively that it would be dishonourable of me to break his confidence, and left me—the most upset and distressed little person on the Sussex coast. The fortnight that followed was the first unhappy one of my life, for I had a secret from my mother, a secret which I passionately longed to tell her, but dared not speak at the risk of doing a dishonourable thing. On meeting my suitor on our return to town I positively refused to keep silence any longer, and then out of sheer weakness and fear of inflicting pain I drifted into an engagement with a man I did not pretend to love. "Drifted" is the right word, for two or three months passed, on the ground that I was so much of a child, before my mother would consent to a definite engagement; my dislike of the thought of marriage faded before the idea of becoming the wife of a priest, working ever in the Church and among the poor. I had no outlet for my growing desire for usefulness in my happy and peaceful home-life, where all religious enthusiasm was regarded as unbalanced and unbecoming; all that was deepest and truest in my nature chafed against my easy, useless days, longed for work, yearned to devote itself, as I had read women saints had done, to the service of the Church and of the poor, to the battling against sin and misery—what empty names sin and misery then were to me! "You will have more opportunities for doing good as a clergyman's wife than as anything else," was one of the pleas urged on my reluctance.
That summer of 1866 saw me engaged to the young clergyman I'd met at the mission church in the spring, with our knowledge of each other being practically nonexistent. We ended up spending a week together as the only two young people in a small group of vacationers, and during our walks, rides, and drives, we naturally became companions. An hour or two before he left, he asked me to marry him, assuming my consent since I had let him share so much time with me—an understandable assumption for girls used to viewing all men as potential husbands, but completely mistaken regarding me, whose thoughts were directed elsewhere. Startled, and feeling my pride stung by what seemed to me a presumption that I had been flirting, I hesitated and didn’t act on my first instinct to refuse. Instead, I fell silent; my suitor had to catch his train and insisted I keep quiet until he could speak to my mother himself, arguing that it would be dishonorable for me to break his confidence. He left me— the most upset and distressed girl on the Sussex coast. The following fortnight was the first unhappy period of my life because I had a secret from my mother, a secret I desperately wanted to share but was too afraid to risk doing something dishonorable. When I met my suitor again upon our return to town, I refused to stay silent any longer, and out of sheer weakness and fear of causing pain, I ended up engaged to a man I didn’t claim to love. "Drifted" describes it perfectly, as several months passed, where my mother considered me too much of a child before she would agree to a formal engagement. My dislike of marriage faded at the thought of becoming a priest's wife, always working in the Church and with the poor. I had no way to express my growing desire to be useful in my happy, peaceful home life, where all religious enthusiasm was seen as over the top and inappropriate; everything that was deepest and truest in me clashed against my easy, unproductive days, longing for work, yearning to devote myself—as I had read female saints had done—to the service of the Church and the poor, to battling against sin and misery—what empty terms sin and misery were to me at the time! "You will have more opportunities to do good as a clergyman's wife than with anything else," was one of the arguments used to persuade me to overcome my reluctance.
In the autumn I was definitely betrothed, and I married fourteen months later. Once, in the interval, I tried to break the engagement, but, on my broaching the subject to my mother, all her pride rose up in revolt. Would I, her daughter, break my word, would I dishonour myself by jilting a man I had pledged myself to marry? She could be stern where honour was involved, that sweet mother of mine, and I yielded to her wish as I had been ever wont to do, for a look or a word from her had ever been my law, save where religion was concerned. So I married in the winter of 1867 with no more idea of the marriage relation than if I had been four years old instead of twenty. My dreamy life, into which no knowledge of evil had been allowed to penetrate, in which I had been guarded from all pain, shielded from all anxiety, kept, innocent on all questions of sex, was no preparation for married existence, and left me defenceless to face a rude awakening. Looking back on it all, I deliberately say that no more fatal blunder can be made than to train a girl to womanhood in ignorance of all life's duties and burdens, and then to let her face them for the first time away from all the old associations, the old helps, the old refuge on the mother's breast. That "perfect innocence" may be very beautiful, but it is a perilous possession, and Eve should have the knowledge of good and evil ere she wanders forth from the paradise of a mother's love. Many an unhappy marriage dates from its very beginning, from the terrible shock to a young girl's sensitive modesty and pride, her helpless bewilderment and fear. Men, with their public school and college education, or the knowledge that comes by living in the outside world, may find it hard to realise the possibility of such infantile ignorance in many girls. None the less, such ignorance is a fact in the case of some girls at least, and no mother should let her daughter, blindfold, slip her neck under the marriage yoke.
In the fall, I was officially engaged, and I got married fourteen months later. At one point during that time, I tried to call off the engagement, but when I brought it up to my mom, her pride really got fired up. Would I, her daughter, go back on my word? Would I dishonor myself by breaking up with a man I had promised to marry? She could be strict when it came to honor, that sweet mother of mine, and I gave in to her wishes as I always had, because just a look or a word from her had always been my guide, except when it came to matters of faith. So I married in the winter of 1867 with no more understanding of what marriage truly meant than if I had been four years old instead of twenty. My sheltered life, where I had been protected from all evil, pain, and anxiety, and kept completely naive about sex, had not prepared me for married life and left me vulnerable to a harsh reality check. Looking back, I can confidently say that there's no bigger mistake than raising a girl to adulthood without teaching her about life's responsibilities and then expecting her to handle them for the first time away from all familiar comforts and the safe haven of her mother's embrace. That "perfect innocence" might seem beautiful, but it’s a dangerous thing to have, and Eve should understand good and evil before she steps out of the paradise of her mother’s love. Many unhappy marriages start from the very beginning, triggered by the shocking impact on a young girl's sensitive nature, her confusion, and her fear. Men, with their education from public schools or colleges, or the knowledge gained from living in the real world, might find it hard to believe that many girls could be so completely ignorant. Still, such ignorance is a reality for some girls, and no mother should allow her daughter to unknowingly step into the marriage trap.
Before leaving the harbourage of girlhood to set sail on the troublous sea of life, there is an occurrence of which I must make mention, as it marks my first awakening of interest in the outer world of political struggle. In the autumn of 1867 my mother and I were staying with some dear friends of ours, the Robertses, at Pendleton, near Manchester. Mr. Roberts was "the poor man's lawyer," in the affectionate phrase used of him by many a hundred men. He was a close friend of Ernest Jones, and was always ready to fight a poor man's battle without fee. He worked hard in the agitation which saved women from working in the mines, and I have heard him tell how he had seen them toiling, naked to the waist, with short petticoats barely reaching to their knees, rough, foul-tongued, brutalised out of all womanly decency and grace; and how he had seen little children working there too, babies of three and four set to watch a door, and falling asleep at their work to be roused by curse and kick to the unfair toil. The old man's eye would begin to flash and his voice to rise as he told of these horrors, and then his face would soften as he added that, after it was all over and the slavery was put an end to, as he went through a coal district the women standing at their doors would lift up their children to see "Lawyer Roberts" go by, and would bid "God bless him" for what he had done. This dear old man was my first tutor in Radicalism, and I was an apt pupil. I had taken no interest in politics, but had unconsciously reflected more or less the decorous Whiggism which had always surrounded me. I regarded "the poor" as folk to be educated, looked after, charitably dealt with, and always treated with most perfect courtesy, the courtesy being due from me, as a lady, to all equally, whether they were rich or poor. But to Mr. Roberts "the poor" were the working-bees, the wealth producers, with a right to self-rule not to looking after, with a right to justice, not to charity, and he preached his doctrines to me in season and out of season. I was a pet of his, and used often to drive him to his office in the morning, glorying much in the fact that my skill was trusted in guiding a horse through the crowded Manchester streets. During these drives, and on all other available occasions, Mr. Roberts would preach to me the cause of the people. "What do you think of John Bright?" he demanded suddenly one day, looking at me with fiery eyes from under heavy brows. "I have never thought of him at all," was the careless answer. "Isn't he a rather rough sort of man, who goes about making rows?" "There, I thought so!" he thundered at me fiercely. "That's just what I say. I believe some of you fine ladies would not go to heaven if you had to rub shoulders with John Bright, the noblest man God ever gave to the cause of the poor."
Before leaving the safe haven of girlhood to venture into the challenging world of life, there's something I have to mention, as it marks my first awakening to the outside realm of political struggle. In the fall of 1867, my mother and I were visiting close friends, the Robertses, in Pendleton, near Manchester. Mr. Roberts was affectionately known as "the poor man's lawyer" by many people. He was a good friend of Ernest Jones and was always willing to fight for a poor person's rights without charging a fee. He worked hard in the campaign that prevented women from working in the mines, and I’ve heard him share how he witnessed them laboring, bare to the waist, in short skirts that barely reached their knees, rough, foul-mouthed, and stripped of all womanly dignity and grace. He also saw little kids working there too, babies as young as three and four made to keep watch at a door, falling asleep on the job only to be jolted awake by curses and kicks to continue their unfair labor. The old man's eyes would begin to flash, and his voice would rise as he recounted these horrors, but then his expression would soften as he said that, after it was all over and the slavery ended, when he walked through a coal district, the women at their doors would lift their children to see "Lawyer Roberts" pass by and would offer a "God bless him" for what he had done. This dear old man was my first teacher in Radicalism, and I was a quick learner. I had shown no interest in politics, but had unconsciously mirrored the polite Whiggism that surrounded me. I viewed "the poor" as people to be educated, cared for, charitably treated, and always respected, with that respect being due from me, as a lady, to everyone, whether rich or poor. But to Mr. Roberts, "the poor" were the hardworking people, the producers of wealth, deserving of self-rule instead of reliance on charity, entitled to justice rather than handouts, and he preached these beliefs to me consistently. I was one of his favorites, often driving him to his office in the mornings, taking pride in the fact that my skills were trusted to navigate a horse through the busy streets of Manchester. During these drives, and on any other chance I got, Mr. Roberts would discuss the people's cause. "What do you think of John Bright?" he suddenly asked one day, looking at me with intense eyes beneath his heavy brows. "I’ve never thought about him at all," I casually replied. "Isn’t he kind of a rough man who causes trouble?" "There, I knew it!" he yelled at me fiercely. "That’s exactly what I mean. I think some of you fine ladies wouldn’t want to go to heaven if it meant rubbing shoulders with John Bright, the noblest man God ever gave to the cause of the poor."
This was the hot-tempered and lovable "demagogue," as he was called, with whom we were staying when Colonel Kelly and Captain Deasy, two Fenian leaders, were arrested in Manchester and put on their trial. The whole Irish population became seething with excitement, and on September 18th the police van carrying them to Salford Gaol was stopped at the Bellevue Railway Arch by the sudden fall of one of the horses, shot from the side of the road. In a moment the van was surrounded, and crowbars were wrenching at the van door. It resisted; a body of police was rapidly approaching, and if the rescue was to be effective the door must be opened. The rescuers shouted to Brett, the constable inside, to pass out his keys; he refused, and some one exclaimed, "Blow off the lock!" In a moment the muzzle of a revolver was against the lock, and it was blown off; but Brett, stooping down to look through the keyhole, received the bullet in his head, and fell dying as the door flew open. Another moment, and Allen, a lad of seventeen, had wrenched open the doors of the compartments occupied by Kelly and Deasy, dragged them out, and while two or three hurried them off to a place of safety, the others threw themselves between the fugitives and the police, and with levelled revolvers guarded their flight. The Fenian leaders once safe, they scattered, and young William Allen, whose one thought had been for his chiefs, seeing them safe, fired his revolver in the air, for he would not shed blood in his own defence. Disarmed by his own act, he was set on by the police, brutally struck down, kicked and stoned, and was dragged off to gaol, faint and bleeding, to meet there some of his comrades in much the same plight as himself. Then Manchester went mad, and race-passions flared up into flame; no Irish workman was safe in a crowd of Englishmen, no Englishman safe in the Irish quarter. The friends of the prisoners besieged "Lawyer Roberts's" house, praying his aid, and he threw his whole fiery soul into their defence. The man who had fired the accidentally fatal shot was safely out of the way, and none of the others had hurt a human being. A Special Commission was issued, with Mr. Justice Blackburn at its head—"the hanging judge," groaned Mr. Roberts—and it was soon in Manchester, for all Mr. Roberts's efforts to get the venue of the trial changed were futile, though of fair trial then in Manchester there was no chance. On October 25th the prisoners were actually brought up before the magistrates in irons, and Mr. Ernest Jones, their counsel, failing in his protest against this outrage, threw down his brief and left the court. So great was the haste with which the trial was hurried on that on the 29th Allen, Larkin, Gould (O'Brien), Maguire, and Condon were standing in the dock before the Commission charged with murder.
This was the hot-tempered and lovable "demagogue," as he was called, with whom we were staying when Colonel Kelly and Captain Deasy, two Fenian leaders, were arrested in Manchester and put on trial. The entire Irish community was buzzing with excitement, and on September 18th, the police van carrying them to Salford Gaol was halted at the Bellevue Railway Arch when one of the horses suddenly collapsed. In an instant, the van was surrounded, and people were prying at the van door with crowbars. It wouldn’t budge; a group of police was quickly approaching, and if the rescue was going to be successful, they needed to get that door open. The rescuers shouted to Brett, the constable inside, to hand over his keys; he refused, and someone shouted, "Blow off the lock!" Before long, the muzzle of a gun was pressed against the lock, and it was blown off; but as Brett bent down to look through the keyhole, he was shot in the head and fell, dying, as the door swung open. In no time, Allen, a seventeen-year-old, had pried open the compartments where Kelly and Deasy were held, pulled them out, and while a few people rushed them to safety, the others stood guard between the escapees and the police with their guns drawn. Once the Fenian leaders were safe, they scattered, and young William Allen, whose only thought was for his leaders, seeing them safe, fired his revolver into the air because he would not spill blood in his own defense. Disarmed by his own action, he was attacked by the police, brutally beaten, kicked, and stoned, and was dragged off to jail, faint and bleeding, to join some of his comrades in much the same situation. Then Manchester erupted into chaos, and racial tensions ignited; no Irish worker was safe among English crowds, nor was any Englishman safe in the Irish neighborhood. Friends of the prisoners besieged "Lawyer Roberts's" home, pleading for his help, and he threw his whole passionate soul into their defense. The man who had accidentally fired the fatal shot was safely away, and none of the others had harmed anyone. A Special Commission was established, led by Mr. Justice Blackburn—"the hanging judge," Mr. Roberts lamented—and it arrived in Manchester quickly, despite Mr. Roberts's attempts to have the trial moved, which proved fruitless, though there was no hope for a fair trial in Manchester. On October 25th, the prisoners were brought before the magistrates in handcuffs, and Mr. Ernest Jones, their lawyer, after failing in his protest against this injustice, threw down his brief and walked out of the court. The trial proceeded with such urgency that by October 29th, Allen, Larkin, Gould (O'Brien), Maguire, and Condon were all standing in the dock before the Commission, charged with murder.
My first experience of an angry crowd was on that day as we drove to the court; the streets were barricaded, the soldiers were under arms, every approach to the court crowded with surging throngs. At last our carriage was stopped as we were passing at a foot's pace through an Irish section of the crowd, and various vehement fists came through the window, with hearty curses at the "d—d English who were going to see the boys murdered." The situation was critical, for we were two women and three girls, when I bethought myself that we were unknown, and gently touched the nearest fist: "Friends, these are Mr. Roberts' wife and daughters." "Roberts! Lawyer Roberts! God bless Roberts! Let his carriage through." And all the scowling faces became smile-wreathen, and curses changed to cheers, as a road to the court steps was cleared for us.
My first experience with an angry crowd happened that day as we drove to the court; the streets were blocked off, soldiers were on alert, and every path to the court was packed with people. Eventually, our carriage came to a stop while we were inching through an Irish section of the crowd, and several angry fists reached through the window, hurling curses at the "damn English who were going to see the boys get killed." The situation felt dire, since we were two women and three girls. Then I remembered that we were unknown to them, so I gently touched the nearest fist and said, "Friends, these are Mr. Roberts' wife and daughters." "Roberts! Lawyer Roberts! God bless Roberts! Let his carriage through." Suddenly, all the scowling faces lit up with smiles, and the curses turned into cheers as a path to the court steps opened up for us.
Alas! if there was passion on behalf of the prisoners outside, there was passion against them within, and the very opening of the trial showed the spirit that animated the prosecution and the bench. Digby Seymour, Q.C., and Ernest Jones, were briefed for the defence, and Mr. Roberts did not think that they exercised sufficiently their right of challenge; he knew, as we all did, that many on the panel had loudly proclaimed their hostility to the Irish, and Mr. Roberts persisted in challenging them as his counsel would not. In vain Judge Blackburn threatened to commit the rebellious solicitor: "These men's lives are at stake, my lord," was his indignant plea. "Remove that man!" cried the angry judge, but as the officers of the court came forward very slowly—for all poor men loved and honoured the sturdy fighter—he changed his mind and let him stay. Despite all his efforts, the jury contained a man who had declared that he "didn't care what the evidence was, he would hang every d—d Irishman of the lot." And the result showed that he was not alone in his view, for evidence of the most disreputable kind was admitted; women of the lowest type were put into the box as witnesses, and their word taken as unchallengeable; thus was destroyed an alibi for Maguire, afterwards accepted by the Crown, a free pardon being issued on the strength of it. Nothing could save the doomed men from the determined verdict, and I could see from where I was sitting into a little room behind the bench, where an official was quietly preparing the black caps before the verdict had been delivered. The foregone "Guilty" was duly repeated as verdict on each of the five cases, and the prisoners asked if they had anything to say why sentence of death should not be passed on them. Allen, boy as he was, made a very brave and manly speech; he had not fired, save in the air—if he had done so he might have escaped; he had helped to free Kelly and Deasy, and did not regret it; he was willing to die for Ireland. Maguire and Condon (he also was reprieved) declared they were not present, but, like Allen, were ready to die for their country. Sentence of death was passed, and, as echo to the sardonic "The Lord have mercy on your souls," rang back from the dock in five clear voices, with never a quiver of fear in them, "God save Ireland!" and the men passed one by one from the sight of my tear-dimmed eyes.
Sadly, if there was support for the prisoners from outside, there was also fierce opposition against them inside the courtroom, and the very start of the trial revealed the intense emotions motivating the prosecution and the judges. Digby Seymour, Q.C., and Ernest Jones were assigned to defend the prisoners, but Mr. Roberts felt they didn't make full use of their right to challenge jurors; he knew, as we all did, that many on the jury openly expressed their hostility toward the Irish. Mr. Roberts persisted in challenging these jurors while his lawyers hesitated. In vain, Judge Blackburn threatened to have the defiant solicitor removed: "These men's lives are at stake, my lord," he argued indignantly. "Remove that man!" the furious judge shouted, but as the court officers approached slowly—since all the poor men respected the stubborn fighter—he changed his mind and allowed him to stay. Despite all his efforts, the jury included a man who had said he "didn't care what the evidence was, he would hang every last Irishman." The outcome confirmed he wasn't alone in this belief, as disreputable evidence was accepted; women of the lowest character were brought in as witnesses, and their testimonies were treated as unquestionable. This led to the destruction of an alibi for Maguire, which was later supported by the Crown, resulting in a free pardon being issued based on it. Nothing could save the condemned men from the determined verdict, and from where I sat, I could see into a small room behind the bench, where an official was quietly preparing the black caps even before the verdict was read. The expected "Guilty" was pronounced for each of the five cases, and the prisoners were asked if they had anything to say before the death sentence was handed down. Allen, though just a boy, delivered a very brave and mature speech; he had not fired his weapon, except into the air—had he done so, he might have escaped; he had helped to free Kelly and Deasy, and he had no regrets about it; he was willing to die for Ireland. Maguire and Condon (who was also reprieved) stated that they were not present, but like Allen, they were ready to die for their country. The death sentence was announced, and in response to the cold-hearted "The Lord have mercy on your souls," came five clear voices from the dock, without a hint of fear: "God save Ireland!" The men then walked away one by one from the sight of my tear-filled eyes.
It was a sorrowful time that followed; the despair of the heart-broken girl who was Allen's sweetheart, and who cried to us on her knees, "Save my William!" was hard to see; nothing we or any one could do availed to avert the doom, and on November 23rd Allen, Larkin, and O'Brien were hanged outside Salford Gaol. Had they striven for freedom in Italy England would have honoured them; here she buried them as common murderers in quicklime in the prison yard.
It was a sad time that followed; the heartbreak of the girl who loved Allen, crying on her knees, "Save my William!" was hard to witness; nothing we or anyone could do could change the outcome, and on November 23rd, Allen, Larkin, and O'Brien were hanged outside Salford Gaol. If they had fought for freedom in Italy, England would have honored them; instead, she buried them like common murderers in quicklime in the prison yard.
I have found, with a keen sense of pleasure, that Mr. Bradlaugh and myself were in 1867 to some extent co-workers, although we knew not of each other's existence, and although he was doing much, and I only giving such poor sympathy as a young girl might, who was only just awakening to the duty of political work. I read in the National Reformer for November 24, 1867, that in the preceding week he was pleading on Clerkenwell Green for these men's lives:—"According to the evidence at the trial, Deasy and Kelly were illegally arrested. They had been arrested for vagrancy of which no evidence was given, and apparently remanded for felony without a shadow of justification. He had yet to learn that in England the same state of things existed as in Ireland; he had yet to learn that an illegal arrest was sufficient ground to detain any of the citizens of any country in the prisons of this one. If he were illegally held, he was justified in using enough force to procure his release. Wearing a policeman's coat gave no authority when the officer exceeded his jurisdiction. He had argued this before Lord Chief Justice Erie in the Court of Common Pleas, and that learned judge did not venture to contradict the argument which he submitted. There was another reason why they should spare these men, although he hardly expected the Government to listen, because the Government sent down one of the judges who was predetermined to convict the prisoners; it was that the offence was purely a political one. The death of Brett was a sad mischance, but no one who read the evidence could regard the killing of Brett as an intentional murder. Legally, it was murder; morally, it was homicide in the rescue of a political captive. If it were a question of the rescue of the political captives of Varignano, or of political captives in Bourbon, in Naples, or in Poland, or in Paris, even earls might be found so to argue. Wherein is our sister Ireland less than these? In executing these men, they would throw down the gauntlet for terrible reprisals. It was a grave and solemn question. It had been said by a previous speaker that they were prepared to go to any lengths to save these Irishmen. They were not. He wished they were. If they were, if the men of England, from one end to the other, were prepared to say, 'These men shall not be executed,' they would not be. He was afraid they had not pluck enough for that. Their moral courage was not equal to their physical strength. Therefore he would not say that they were prepared to do so. They must plead ad misericordiam. He appealed to the press, which represented the power of England; to that press which in its panic-stricken moments had done much harm, and which ought now to save these four doomed men. If the press demanded it, no Government would be mad enough to resist. The memory of the blood which was shed in 1798 rose up like a bloody ghost against them to-day. He only feared that what they said upon the subject might do the poor men more harm than good. If it were not so, he would coin words that should speak in words of fire. As it was, he could only say to the Government: You are strong to-day; you hold these men's lives in your hands; but if you want to reconcile their country to you, if you want to win back Ireland, if you want to make her children love you—then do not embitter their hearts still more by taking the lives of these men. Temper your strength with mercy; do not use the sword of justice like one of vengeance, for the day may come when it shall be broken in your hands, and you yourselves brained by the hilt of the weapon you have so wickedly wielded." In October he had printed a plea for Ireland, strong and earnest, asking:—
I have discovered, with great pleasure, that Mr. Bradlaugh and I were working together in 1867 to some extent, even though we were unaware of each other’s existence, and while he was doing a lot, I could only offer the limited support of a young girl just beginning to understand the responsibilities of political work. I read in the National Reformer for November 24, 1867, that the week before, he was advocating on Clerkenwell Green for these men’s lives:—“Based on the evidence at the trial, Deasy and Kelly were illegally arrested. They were picked up for vagrancy without any proof provided, and apparently kept on remand for a felony without any valid reason. He still needed to realize that the same situation existed in England as in Ireland; he still needed to understand that an illegal arrest was enough reason to hold any citizen in the prisons of this country. If he was being held illegally, he had the right to use force to secure his release. Wearing a police officer’s coat does not grant authority when the officer exceeds his power. He made this argument before Lord Chief Justice Erie in the Court of Common Pleas, and that knowledgeable judge didn’t dare refute his points. There was another reason to spare these men, although he hardly expected the Government to listen since they sent one of the judges who was already inclined to convict the prisoners; that reason was that the offense was purely political. The death of Brett was a tragic accident, but no one who read the evidence could view Brett’s killing as premeditated murder. Legally, it was murder; morally, it was an act of homicide in the attempt to rescue a political prisoner. If it involved rescuing political prisoners in Varignano, or in Bourbon, Naples, Poland, or Paris, even earls might argue in this manner. How is our sister Ireland any less deserving than these? By executing these men, they would provoke severe retaliation. This is a serious and solemn issue. A previous speaker claimed they were willing to go to great lengths to save these Irishmen. They were not. He wished they were. If the people of England, from one end to the other, were united in saying, 'These men will not be executed,' then they wouldn’t be. He feared they didn’t have enough courage for that. Their moral bravery didn’t match their physical strength. Therefore, he wouldn’t assert that they were ready to do so. They must plead ad misericordiam. He called on the press, which represents the power of England; that press which, in moments of panic, has caused much harm and now ought to save these four condemned men. If the press demanded it, no Government would be foolish enough to resist. The memory of the blood shed in 1798 loomed like a haunting ghost against them today. He only feared that what they said on the subject might harm the poor men more than help. If it weren’t so, he would find words that should resonate with fiery passion. As it stands, he could only tell the Government: You are powerful today; you control these men’s lives; but if you want to mend your relationship with their country, if you want to win Ireland back, if you want her children to love you—then don’t harden their hearts further by taking the lives of these men. Balance your strength with mercy; don’t wield justice like a weapon of vengeance, because one day that sword may shatter in your hands, and you yourselves may be struck down by the hilt of the very weapon you have so wickedly used.” In October, he had published a strong and earnest plea for Ireland, asking:—
"Where is our boasted English freedom when you cross to Kingstown pier? Where has it been for near two years? The Habeas Corpus Act suspended, the gaols crowded, the steamers searched, spies listening at shebeen shops for sedition, and the end of it a Fenian panic in England. Oh, before it be too late, before more blood stain the pages of our present history, before we exasperate and arouse bitter animosities, let us try and do justice to our sister land. Abolish once and for all the land laws, which in their iniquitous operation have ruined her peasantry. Sweep away the leech-like Church which has sucked her vitality, and has given her back no word even of comfort in her degradation. Turn her barracks into flax mills, encourage a spirit of independence in her citizens, restore to her people the protection of the law, so that they may speak without fear of arrest, and beg them to plainly and boldly state their grievances. Let a commission of the best and wisest amongst Irishmen, with some of our highest English judges added, sit solemnly to hear all complaints, and then let us honestly legislate, not for the punishment of the discontented, but to remove the causes of the discontent. It is not the Fenians who have depopulated Ireland's strength and increased her misery. It is not the Fenians who have evicted tenants by the score. It is not the Fenians who have checked cultivation. Those who have caused the wrong at least should frame the remedy."
"Where is our claimed English freedom when you arrive at Kingstown pier? Where has it been for almost two years? The Habeas Corpus Act is suspended, the jails are overcrowded, the boats are being searched, and spies are eavesdropping in bars for signs of rebellion, leading to a Fenian panic in England. Oh, before it's too late, before more blood stains the pages of our current history, before we inflame and provoke bitter resentments, let’s try to do justice for our sister country. Completely abolish the land laws, which have unjustly ruined her farmers. Remove the parasitic Church that has drained her vitality and hasn’t offered even a word of comfort during her suffering. Convert her military barracks into flax mills, foster a spirit of independence in her citizens, and restore legal protection to her people so they can speak out without fear of arrest, encouraging them to clearly and bravely present their grievances. Let a commission of the best and brightest among the Irish, along with some of our top English judges, meet formally to hear all complaints, and then let’s legislate honestly, not to punish the dissatisfied, but to eliminate the root causes of their discontent. It’s not the Fenians who have depleted Ireland’s strength and worsened her misery. It’s not the Fenians who have evicted tenants en masse. It’s not the Fenians who have stunted agricultural growth. Those who have caused the harm should at least come up with the solution."
In December, 1867, I sailed out of the safe harbour of my happy and peaceful girlhood on to the wide sea of life, and the waves broke roughly as soon as the bar was crossed. We were an ill-matched pair, my husband and I, from the very outset; he, with very high ideas of a husband's authority and a wife's submission, holding strongly to the "master-in-my-own-house theory," thinking much of the details of home arrangements, precise, methodical, easily angered and with difficulty appeased. I, accustomed to freedom, indifferent to home details, impulsive, very hot-tempered, and proud as Lucifer. I had never had a harsh word spoken to me, never been ordered to do anything, had had my way smoothed for my feet, and never a worry had touched me. Harshness roused first incredulous wonder, then a storm of indignant tears, and after a time a proud, defiant resistance, cold and hard as iron. The easy-going, sunshiny, enthusiastic girl changed—and changed pretty rapidly—into a grave, proud, reticent woman, burying deep in her own heart all her hopes, her fears, and her disillusions. I must have been a very unsatisfactory wife from the beginning, though I think other treatment might gradually have turned me into a fair imitation of the proper conventional article. Beginning with the ignorance before alluded to, and so scared and outraged at heart from the very first; knowing nothing of household management or economical use of money—I had never had an allowance or even bought myself a pair of gloves—though eager to perform my new duties creditably; unwilling to potter over little things, and liking to do swiftly what I had to do, and then turn to my beloved books; at heart fretting for my mother but rarely speaking of her, as I found my longing for her presence raised jealous vexation; with strangers about me with whom I had no sympathy; visited by ladies who talked to me only about babies and servants—troubles of which I knew nothing and which bored me unutterably—and who were as uninterested in all that had filled my life, in theology, in politics, in science, as I was uninterested in the discussions on the housemaid's young man and on the cook's extravagance in using "butter, when dripping would have done perfectly well, my dear"; was it wonderful that I became timid, dull, and depressed?
In December 1867, I left the safe haven of my happy and peaceful girlhood and set sail into the vast sea of life, and the waves became tumultuous as soon as we crossed the bar. My husband and I were a mismatched pair from the start; he had very high expectations of a husband’s authority and a wife’s submission, firmly believing in the “master-of-my-own-house” theory. He focused heavily on the details of household management, was precise, methodical, easily angered, and hard to placate. I, on the other hand, was used to freedom, indifferent to household concerns, impulsive, hot-tempered, and proud as could be. I had never faced a harsh word, never been told what to do, and had my path laid out for me, untouched by worries. Harshness first left me in incredulous shock, then brought on a wave of indignant tears, eventually leading to a proud, defiant resistance that was cold and hard as iron. The easygoing, sunny, enthusiastic girl quickly transformed into a serious, proud, reserved woman, burying deep within her all her hopes, fears, and disillusionments. I must have been a very disappointing wife from the start, although I think different treatment might eventually have shaped me into a reasonable version of the conventional ideal. Beginning with the earlier mentioned ignorance, I was scared and hurt right from the beginning; knowing nothing of household management or how to budget—I had never received an allowance or even bought myself a pair of gloves—although eager to fulfill my new responsibilities well; I was unwilling to fuss over trivial matters and preferred to do what I had to quickly so I could return to my beloved books; at heart, I longed for my mother but rarely spoke of her, as I found my yearning for her presence stirred up jealous irritation; surrounded by strangers I felt no connection with; visited by ladies who talked to me only about babies and servants—issues I knew nothing about and which bored me immensely—and who showed no interest in all that had filled my life, in theology, politics, or science, just as I was uninterested in their gossip about the housemaid’s boyfriend and the cook’s extravagance in using “butter when dripping would have worked just fine, dear.” Was it any surprise that I became timid, dull, and depressed?
All my eager, passionate enthusiasm, so attractive to men in a young girl, were doubtless incompatible with "the solid comfort of a wife," and I must have been inexpressibly tiring to the Rev. Frank Besant. And, in truth, I ought never to have married, for under the soft, loving, pliable girl there lay hidden, as much unknown to herself as to her surroundings, a woman of strong dominant will, strength that panted for expression and rebelled against restraint, fiery and passionate emotions that were seething under compression—a most undesirable partner to sit in the lady's arm-chair on the domestic rug before the fire. [Que le diable faisait-elle dans cette galère,] I have often thought, looking back at my past self, and asking, Why did that foolish girl make her bed so foolishly? But self-analysis shows the contradictories in my nature that led me into so mistaken a course. I have ever been the queerest mixture of weakness and strength, and have paid heavily for the weakness. As a child I used to suffer tortures of shyness, and if my shoe-lace was untied would feel shamefacedly that every eye was fixed on the unlucky string; as a girl I would shrink away from strangers and think myself unwanted and unliked, so that I was full of eager gratitude to any one who noticed me kindly; as the young mistress of a house, I was afraid of my servants, and would let careless work pass rather than bear the pain of reproving the ill-doer; when I have been lecturing and debating with no lack of spirit on the platform, I have preferred to go without what I wanted at the hotel rather than to ring and make the waiter fetch it; combative on the platform in defence of any cause I cared for, I shrink from quarrel or disapproval in the home, and am a coward at heart in private while a good fighter in public. How often have I passed unhappy quarters of an hour screwing up my courage to find fault with some subordinate whom my duty compelled me to reprove, and how often have I jeered at myself for a fraud as the doughty platform combatant, when shrinking from blaming some lad or lass for doing their work badly! An unkind look or word has availed to make me shrink into myself as a snail into its shell, while on the platform opposition makes me speak my best. So I slid into marriage blindly and stupidly, fearing to give pain; fretted my heart out for a year; then, roused by harshness and injustice, stiffened and hardened, and lived with a wall of ice round me within which I waged mental conflicts that nearly killed me; and learned at last how to live and work in armour that turned the edge of the weapons that struck it, and left the flesh beneath unwounded, armour laid aside, but in the presence of a very few.
All my eager, passionate energy, which is so appealing to men in a young girl, was probably not compatible with "the solid comfort of a wife," and I must have been incredibly exhausting to Rev. Frank Besant. In truth, I should never have married, because underneath the soft, loving, adaptable girl was a strong-willed woman, who, unknown to herself and her surroundings, had a deep need for expression and resisted any constraints. Fiery and passionate emotions were bottled up inside me—a definitely undesirable partner to sit in the lady's armchair on the domestic rug by the fire. [Que le diable faisait-elle dans cette galère,] I often think back on my past self and wonder, why did that naïve girl make such foolish choices? But self-reflection reveals the contradictions in my nature that led me down such a misguided path. I've always been an odd mix of weakness and strength, and I’ve paid a heavy price for my weaknesses. As a child, I suffered from extreme shyness; if my shoelace was untied, I would feel as if everyone was staring at it. As a girl, I would shy away from strangers and feel unwanted and unloved, so I was always incredibly grateful to anyone who noticed me kindly. As the young mistress of a house, I was afraid of my staff and would let careless work slide rather than confront the person who did it wrong. When I was lecturing and debating with enthusiasm on stage, I preferred to go without what I wanted at the hotel rather than call the waiter to bring it to me. Fierce in defense of any cause I cared about on stage, I would shrink from conflict or disapproval at home and felt like a coward in private, even though I was a strong advocate in public. How often did I spend unhappy moments working up the courage to confront a subordinate I needed to reprimand, only to later mock myself as a fraud for being brave on stage while shying away from calling out someone for poor performance? An unkind look or word has made me withdraw into myself like a snail into its shell, while opposition on stage brings out my best. So, I rushed into marriage blindly and foolishly, too scared to inflict pain; I spent a year in turmoil; then, provoked by harshness and unfairness, I became stiff and hardened, living behind a wall of ice while battling mental turmoil that nearly destroyed me. Eventually, I learned how to live and work wearing armor that deflected attacks without harming me, armor I could set aside in front of only a very few.
My first serious attempts at writing were made in 1868, and I took up two very different lines of composition; I wrote some short stories of a very flimsy type, and also a work of a much more ambitious character, "The Lives of the Black Letter Saints." For the sake of the unecclesiastically trained it may be as well to mention that in the Calendar of the Church of England there are a number of Saints' Days; some of these are printed in red, and are Red Letter Days, for which services are appointed by the Church; others are printed in black, and are Black Letter Days, and have no special services fixed for them. It seemed to me that it would be interesting to take each of these days and write a sketch of the life of the saint belonging to it, and accordingly I set to work to do so, and gathered various books of history and legend where-from to collect my "facts." I do not in the least know what became of that valuable book; I tried Macmillans with it, and it was sent on by them to some one who was preparing a series of Church books for the young; later I had a letter from a Church brotherhood offering to publish it, if I would give it as "an act of piety" to their order; its ultimate fate is to me unknown.
My first serious attempts at writing happened in 1868, and I chose two very different styles to explore; I wrote some very light short stories and also a more ambitious work called "The Lives of the Black Letter Saints." For those who aren't familiar with it, the Calendar of the Church of England features several Saints' Days; some are printed in red, making them Red Letter Days for which the Church holds special services, while others are printed in black, known as Black Letter Days, and don’t have any specific services assigned to them. I thought it would be interesting to take each of these days and write a brief account of the saint associated with it, so I got to work gathering various history and legend books to collect my "facts." I have no idea what happened to that valuable manuscript; I submitted it to Macmillan, and they forwarded it to someone who was compiling a series of Church books for young people. Later, I received a letter from a Church brotherhood offering to publish it if I would donate it as "an act of piety" to their order; its final outcome remains unknown to me.
The short stories were more fortunate. I sent the first to the Family Herald, and some weeks afterwards received a letter from which dropped a cheque as I opened it. Dear me! I have earned a good deal of money since by my pen, but never any that gave me the intense delight of that first thirty shillings. It was the first money I had ever earned, and the pride of the earning was added to the pride of authorship. In my childish delight and practical religion, I went down on my knees and thanked God for sending it to me, and I saw myself earning heaps of golden guineas, and becoming quite a support of the household. Besides, it was "my very own," I thought, and a delightful sense of independence came over me. I had not then realised the beauty of the English law, and the dignified position in which it placed the married woman; I did not understand that all a married woman earned by law belonged to her owner, and that she could have nothing that belonged to her of right.[1] I did not want the money: I was only so glad to have something of my own to give, and it was rather a shock to learn that it was not really mine at all.
The short stories were luckier. I sent the first one to the Family Herald, and a few weeks later, I got a letter that dropped a check as soon as I opened it. Wow! I've earned quite a bit of money since with my writing, but nothing has given me the pure joy of that first thirty shillings. It was the first money I had ever earned, and the pride of earning it added to the pride of being an author. In my childlike joy and sincere gratitude, I went down on my knees and thanked God for sending it to me, imagining myself making piles of golden guineas and becoming a real support for the household. Plus, it was "my very own," I thought, and I felt a wonderful sense of independence. Back then, I didn't understand the beauty of English law or the respected position it gave to married women; I didn’t realize that everything a married woman earned legally belonged to her husband, and that she couldn’t claim anything as her own by right.[1] I didn’t want the money: I was just so happy to have something of my own to give, and it was quite a shock to discover that it really wasn’t mine at all.
From time to time after that I earned a few pounds for stories in the same journal; and the Family Herald, let me say, has one peculiarity which should render it beloved by poor authors; it pays its contributor when it accepts the paper, whether it prints it immediately or not; thus my first story was not printed for some weeks after I received the cheque, and it was the same with all the others accepted by the same journal. Encouraged by these small successes, I began writing a novel! It took a long time to do, but was at last finished, and sent off to the Family Herald. The poor thing came back, but with a kind note, telling me that it was too political for their pages, but that if I would write one of "purely domestic interest," and up to the same level, it would probably be accepted. But by that time I was in the full struggle of theological doubt, and that novel of "purely domestic interest" never got itself written.
From time to time after that, I made a little money from stories in the same journal; and the Family Herald has one thing that should make it a favorite among struggling writers: it pays its contributors when it accepts a piece, whether it’s published right away or not. So, my first story wasn’t printed for a few weeks after I got the check, and the same went for all the others accepted by that journal. Encouraged by these small wins, I decided to write a novel! It took a long time to complete, but I finally finished it and sent it off to the Family Herald. Unfortunately, it was returned, but with a nice note saying that it was too political for their pages. They suggested that if I wrote something of "purely domestic interest" of the same quality, it would likely be accepted. By then, though, I was deep in a struggle with theological doubts, and that novel of "purely domestic interest" never got written.
I contributed further to the literature of my country a theological pamphlet, of which I forget the exact title, but it dealt with the duty of fasting incumbent on all faithful Christians, and was very patristic in its tone.
I further contributed to my country's literature with a theological pamphlet, the exact title of which I can't recall, but it discussed the responsibility of fasting that all devoted Christians should follow, and it had a very patristic tone.
In January, 1869, my little son was born, and as I was very ill for some months before, and was far too much interested in the tiny creature afterwards, to devote myself to pen and paper, my literary career was checked for a while. The baby gave a new interest and a new pleasure to life, and as we could not afford a nurse I had plenty to do in looking after his small majesty. My energy in reading became less feverish when it was done by the side of the baby's cradle, and the little one's presence almost healed the abiding pain of my mother's loss.
In January 1869, my little son was born, and since I had been very sick for several months before and was way too preoccupied with the tiny creature afterwards to focus on writing, my literary career was paused for a bit. The baby brought a fresh interest and joy to my life, and since we couldn’t afford a nurse, I had plenty to do looking after my little guy. My energy for reading became less intense when it happened next to the baby’s crib, and the little one’s presence almost eased the lingering pain of losing my mother.
From a photograph by Dighton's Art Studio, Cheltenham.
ANNIE BESANT
1869.
I may pass very quickly over the next two years. In August, 1870, a little sister was born to my son, and the recovery was slow and tedious, for my general health had been failing for some time.
I might go over the next two years pretty quickly. In August 1870, my son had a little sister born, and the recovery took a long time and was difficult, as my overall health had been declining for a while.
The boy was a bright, healthy little fellow, but the girl was delicate from birth, suffering from her mother's unhappiness, and born somewhat prematurely in consequence of a shock. When, in the spring of 1871, the two children caught the whooping cough, my Mabel's delicacy made the ordeal well-nigh fatal to her. She was very young for so trying a disease, and after a while bronchitis set in and was followed by congestion of the lungs. For weeks she lay in hourly peril of death We arranged a screen round the fire like a tent, and kept it full of steam to ease the panting breath; and there I sat, day and night, all through those weary weeks, the tortured baby on my knees. I loved my little ones passionately, for their clinging love soothed the aching at my heart, and their baby eyes could not critically scan the unhappiness that grew deeper month by month; and that steam-filled tent became my world, and there, alone, I fought with Death for my child. The doctor said that recovery was impossible, and that in one of the paroxysms of coughing she must die; the most distressing thing was that, at last, even a drop or two of milk would bring on the terrible convulsive choking, and it seemed cruel to add to the pain of the apparently dying child. At length, one morning the doctor said she could not last through the day; I had sent for him hurriedly, for the body had suddenly swollen up as a result of the perforation of one of the pleurae, and the consequent escape of air into the cavity of the chest. While he was there one of the fits of coughing came on, and it seemed as though it must be the last. He took a small bottle of chloroform out of his pocket, and putting a drop on a handkerchief held it near the child's face, till the drug soothed the convulsive struggle. "It can't do any harm at this stage," he said, "and it checks the suffering." He went away, saying that he feared he would never see the child alive again. One of the kindest friends I had in my married life was that same doctor, Mr. Lauriston Winterbotham; he was as good as he was clever, and, like so many of his noble profession, he had the merits of discretion and silence. He never breathed a word as to my unhappiness, until in 1878 he came up to town to give evidence as to cruelty which—had the deed of separation not been held as condonation—would have secured me a divorce a mensa et thoro.
The boy was a bright, healthy little guy, but the girl was delicate from birth, suffering because of her mother's unhappiness and born a bit premature due to a shock. When, in the spring of 1871, both children caught whooping cough, my Mabel's fragility made the experience nearly fatal for her. She was far too young for such a tough illness, and after a while, bronchitis set in, followed by lung congestion. For weeks, she was in constant danger of death. We set up a screen around the fire like a tent and kept it filled with steam to help with her labored breathing; I sat there day and night throughout those exhausting weeks, holding the tortured baby on my lap. I loved my little ones deeply, as their clingy love eased the pain in my heart, and their innocent eyes couldn’t understand the unhappiness that grew deeper month by month; that steam-filled tent became my world, and there, alone, I battled Death for my child. The doctor said that recovery was impossible and that she would probably die during one of the coughing fits; the most heartbreaking part was that even a drop or two of milk would trigger the terrible choking, and it felt cruel to add to the suffering of the seemingly dying child. Finally, one morning, the doctor said she couldn’t make it through the day; I had called him in a panic because her body had suddenly swelled from the perforation of one of the pleurae, allowing air to escape into the chest cavity. While he was there, one of the coughing fits came on, and it felt like it was the end. He took out a small bottle of chloroform from his pocket, put a drop on a handkerchief, and held it near her face until the drug eased the violent struggle. "It can't do any harm at this stage," he said, "and it helps relieve the suffering." He left, saying he feared he would never see the child alive again. One of the kindest friends I had during my marriage was that same doctor, Mr. Lauriston Winterbotham; he was as good as he was smart, and like many in his noble profession, he was discreet and silent. He never mentioned my unhappiness until 1878, when he came to town to testify regarding cruelty, which—had the separation been considered condonation—would have earned me a divorce a mensa et thoro.
The child, however, recovered, and her recovery was due, I think, to that chance thought of Mr. Winterbotham's about the chloroform, for I used it whenever the first sign of a fit of coughing appeared, and so warded off the convulsive attack and the profound exhaustion that followed, in which a mere flicker of breath at the top of the throat was the only sign of life, and sometimes even that disappeared, and I thought her gone. For years the child remained ailing and delicate, requiring the tenderest care, but those weeks of anguish left a deeper trace on mother than on child. Once she was out of danger I collapsed physically, and lay in bed for a week unmoving, and then rose to face a struggle which lasted for three years and two months, and nearly cost me my life, the struggle which transformed me from a Christian into an Atheist. The agony of the struggle was in the first nineteen months—a time to be looked back upon with shrinking, as it was a hell to live through at the time. For no one who has not felt it knows the fearful anguish inflicted by doubt on the earnestly religious soul. There is in life no other pain so horrible, so keen in its torture, so crushing in its weight. It seems to shipwreck everything, to destroy the one steady gleam of happiness "on the other side" that no earthly storm could obscure; to make all life gloomy with a horror of despair, a darkness that verily may be felt. Nothing but an imperious intellectual and moral necessity can drive into doubt a religious mind, for it is as though an earthquake shook the foundations of the soul, and the very being quivers and sways under the shock. No life in the empty sky; no gleam in the blackness of the night; no voice to break the deadly silence; no hand outstretched to save. Empty-brained triflers who have never tried to think, who take their creed as they take their fashions, speak of Atheism as the outcome of foul life and vicious desires. In their shallow heartlessness and shallower thought they cannot even dimly imagine the anguish of entering the mere penumbra of the Eclipse of Faith, much less the horror of that great darkness in which the orphaned soul cries out into the infinite emptiness: "Is it a Devil that has made the world? Is the echo, 'Children, ye have no Father,' true? Is all blind chance, is all the clash of unconscious forces, or are we the sentient toys of an Almighty Power that sports with our agony, whose peals of awful mockery of laughter ring back answer to the wailings of our despair?"
The child, however, recovered, and I think her recovery was due to Mr. Winterbotham's random thought about chloroform. I used it whenever she showed the first signs of a coughing fit, which helped prevent the convulsive attacks and the deep exhaustion that followed, where sometimes only a faint breath at the top of her throat indicated she was still alive, and sometimes even that disappeared, making me think she was gone. For years, the child remained sickly and fragile, needing the gentlest care, but those weeks of pain left a deeper mark on her mother than on her. Once she was out of danger, I physically collapsed and lay in bed for a week without moving. Then I got up to face a struggle that lasted for three years and two months and nearly cost me my life, a struggle that changed me from a Christian to an Atheist. The agony of that struggle was concentrated in the first nineteen months—a time I look back on with dread because living through it was hell. No one who hasn't experienced it knows the terrible anguish that doubt imposes on a sincerely religious soul. There’s no other pain in life so horrible, so sharp in its torture, so heavy in its burden. It seems to wreck everything, to destroy the one consistent glimmer of happiness "on the other side" that no earthly storm could obscure; it plunges all life into despair, into a darkness that can truly be felt. Only a powerful intellectual and moral necessity can push a religious mind into doubt, for it’s like an earthquake shaking the foundations of the soul, making the very essence tremble under the shock. There's no life in the empty sky; no light in the pitch-black night; no voice to break the deadly silence; no hand reaching out to save. Empty-minded people who have never stopped to think, who adopt their beliefs like they adopt trends, speak of Atheism as a result of a corrupt life and immoral desires. In their shallow heartlessness and even shallower thinking, they can't even begin to imagine the pain of stepping into the shadow of the Eclipse of Faith, much less the horror of that vast darkness from which the orphaned soul cries out into the infinite void: "Has a Devil created the world? Is the phrase, 'Children, you have no Father,' true? Is all just blind chance, the result of conflicting unconscious forces, or are we the sentient toys of an Almighty Power that mocks our agony, whose echoes of awful laughter respond to the cries of our despair?"
How true are the noble words of Mrs. Hamilton King:—
How true are the wise words of Mrs. Hamilton King:—
"For some may follow Truth from dawn to dark,
As a child follows by his mother's hand,
Knowing no fear, rejoicing all the way;
And unto some her face is as a Star
Set through an avenue of thorns and fires,
And waving branches black without a leaf;
And still It draws them, though the feet must bleed,
Though garments must be rent, and eyes be scorched:
And if the valley of the shadow of death
Be passed, and to the level road they come,
Still with their faces to the polar star,
It is not with the same looks, the same limbs,
But halt, and maimed, and of infirmity.
And for the rest of the way they have to go
It is not day but night, and oftentimes
A night of clouds wherein the stars are lost."[2]
"For some, truth is a journey from dawn to dusk,
Like a child walking hand in hand with their mother,
Without fear, celebrating every step;
For others, her face is like a star
Glimmering through a path filled with thorns and flames,
And branches black and bare;
Yet it still calls to them, even as their feet bleed,
As their clothes tear, and their eyes burn;
And if they pass through the valley of the shadow of death
And come to a flat road,
Still facing the northern star,
They are not the same, with the same looks or bodies,
But limping, damaged, and weak.
And for the rest of the journey ahead,
It is not daylight but nighttime, often
A night filled with clouds where the stars are hidden."[2]
Aye! but never lost is the Star of Truth to which the face is set, and while that shines all lesser lights may go. It was the long months of suffering through which I had been passing, with the seemingly purposeless torturing of my little one as a climax, that struck the first stunning blow at my belief in God as a merciful Father of men. I had been visiting the poor a good deal, and had marked the patient suffering of their lives; my idolised mother had been defrauded by a lawyer she had trusted, and was plunged into debt by his non-payment of the sums that should have passed through his hands to others; my own bright life had been enshrouded by pain and rendered to me degraded by an intolerable sense of bondage; and here was my helpless, sinless babe tortured for weeks and left frail and suffering. The smooth brightness of my previous life made all the disillusionment more startling, and the sudden plunge into conditions so new and so unfavourable dazed and stunned me. My religious past became the worst enemy of the suffering present. All my personal belief in Christ, all my intense faith in His constant direction of affairs, all my habit of continual prayer and of realisation of His Presence—all were against me now. The very height of my trust was the measure of the shock when the trust gave way. To me He was no abstract idea, but a living reality, and all my heart rose up against this Person in whom I believed, and whose individual finger I saw in my baby's agony, my own misery, the breaking of my mother's proud heart under a load of debt, and all the bitter suffering of the poor. The presence of pain and evil in a world made by a good God; the pain falling on the innocent, as on my seven months' old babe; the pain begun here reaching on into eternity unhealed; a sorrow-laden world; a lurid, hopeless hell; all these, while I still believed, drove me desperate, and instead of like the devils believing and trembling, I believed and hated. All the hitherto dormant and unsuspected strength of my nature rose up in rebellion; I did not yet dream of denial, but I would no longer kneel.
Sure! Here’s the modernized paragraph: Yes! But the Star of Truth, to which we look, is never lost, and as long as it shines, all other lights can fade away. It was the long months of suffering I went through, culminating in the seemingly pointless torture of my little one, that delivered the first shocking blow to my belief in God as a merciful Father. I had been spending a lot of time with the poor and had witnessed the patient suffering in their lives; my beloved mother had been cheated by a lawyer she trusted and was sinking into debt because he didn’t deliver the funds he should have passed on to others; my once-bright life had been cloaked in pain and felt degraded by an unbearable sense of bondage; and here was my helpless, innocent baby tortured for weeks, left frail and suffering. The bright simplicity of my previous life made the disillusionment even more jarring, and the abrupt plunge into such new and unfavorable conditions shocked and unsettled me. My religious background turned into the worst enemy of the suffering I was facing. All my personal faith in Christ, my deep trust in His constant guidance, my habit of continuous prayer, and my awareness of His Presence—all that was now against me. The very height of my trust measured the shock when that trust crumbled. To me, He was not just an abstract idea, but a living reality, and my heart revolted against this Person I believed in, whose very hand I saw in my baby's pain, my own suffering, my mother’s broken heart under a burden of debt, and all the bitter suffering of the poor. The existence of pain and evil in a world created by a good God; the pain affecting the innocent, like my seven-month-old baby; the suffering starting here and extending into eternity, unhealed; a sorrow-filled world; a grim, hopeless hell; all these things, while I still had faith, drove me to despair. Instead of believing and trembling like the devils, I believed and hated. All the previously dormant and unexpected strength in me rose up in rebellion; I didn’t yet think of denying my faith, but I refused to kneel any longer.
As the first stirrings of this hot rebellion moved in my heart I met a clergyman of a very noble type, who did much to help me by his ready and wise sympathy. Mr. Besant brought him to see me during the crisis of the child's illness; he said little, but on the following day I received from him the following note:—
As the initial feelings of this intense rebellion began to rise in my heart, I met a very noble clergyman who greatly helped me with his immediate and wise understanding. Mr. Besant brought him to see me during the crisis of the child's illness; he spoke little, but the next day I received the following note from him:—
"April 21, 1871.
April 21, 1871.
"My Dear Mrs. Besant,—I am painfully conscious that I gave you but little help in your trouble yesterday. It is needless to say that it was not from want of sympathy. Perhaps it would be nearer the truth to say that it was from excess of sympathy. I shrink intensely from meddling with the sorrow of any one whom I feel to be of a sensitive nature. 'The heart hath its own bitterness, and the stranger meddleth not therewith.' It is to me a positively fearful thought that I might awaken such a reflection as
"My Dear Mrs. Besant,—I’m very aware that I didn’t do much to help you with your troubles yesterday. I don't need to say it wasn’t for lack of sympathy. It might be more accurate to say it was because of too much sympathy. I really hesitate to intrude on the sadness of someone I know is sensitive. 'The heart has its own pain, and a stranger shouldn't interfere.' The idea that I could bring up such thoughts is genuinely frightening to me."
"'And common was the commonplace,
And vacant chaff well meant for grain.'
"'And ordinary was the ordinary,
And empty husks thought to be grain.'"
Conventional consolations, conventional verses out of the Bible, and conventional prayers are, it seems to me, an intolerable aggravation of suffering. And so I acted on a principle that I mentioned to your husband that 'there is no power so great as that of one human faith looking upon another human faith.' The promises of God, the love of Christ for little children, and all that has been given to us of hope and comfort, are as deeply planted in your heart as in mine, and I did not care to quote them. But when I talk face to face with one who is in sore need of them, my faith in them suddenly becomes so vast and heart-stirring that I think I must help most by talking naturally, and letting the faith find its own way from soul to soul. Indeed, I could not find words for it if I tried. And yet I am compelled, as a messenger of the glad tidings of God, to solemnly assure you that all is well. We have no key to the 'mystery of pain' excepting the Cross of Christ. But there is another and a deeper solution in the hands of our Father; and it will be ours when we can understand it. There is—in the place to which we travelsome blessed explanation of your baby's pain and your grief, which will fill with light the darkest heart. Now you must believe without having seen; that is true faith. You must
Conventional comforts, standard Bible verses, and typical prayers feel like an unbearable increase in suffering to me. So, I followed a principle I mentioned to your husband: 'there’s no power greater than one person’s faith connecting with another's.' The promises of God, Christ's love for children, and all the hope and comfort we've been given are as deeply rooted in your heart as in mine, and I didn’t feel the need to quote them. But when I speak directly with someone in desperate need, my faith in those promises suddenly feels enormous and emotional, and I believe it's best to just speak candidly, allowing faith to flow naturally from one soul to another. Honestly, I couldn’t even find the right words if I tried. Yet, as a messenger of God’s good news, I must seriously assure you that everything will be okay. We don’t have the key to the 'mystery of pain' except through the Cross of Christ. However, there’s another and deeper understanding in the hands of our Father, and it will come to us when we are ready to grasp it. There is—beyond this journey—a beautiful explanation for your baby’s pain and your sorrow, which will illuminate even the darkest heart. Now, you must believe without having seen; that is true faith. You must
"'Reach a hand through time to catch
The far-off interest of tears.'
"'Reach a hand through time to catch
The distant echo of tears.'"
That you may have strength so to do is part of your share in the prayers of
That you may have the strength to do so is part of your share in the prayers of
"Yours very faithfully,
"Kind regards,"
"W. D—."
"W. D—."
A noble letter, but the storm was beating too fiercely to be stilled, and one night in that summer of 1871 stands out clearly before me. Mr. Besant was away, and there had been a fierce quarrel before he left. I was outraged, desperate, with no door of escape from a life that, losing its hope in God, had not yet learned to live for hope for man. No door of escape? The thought came like a flash: "There is one!" And before me there swung open, with lure of peace and of safety, the gateway into silence and security, the gateway of the tomb. I was standing by the drawing-room window, staring hopelessly at the evening sky; with the thought came the remembrance that the means was at hand—the chloroform that had soothed my baby's pain, and that I had locked away upstairs. I ran up to my room, took out the bottle, and carried it downstairs, standing again at the window in the summer twilight, glad that the struggle was over and peace at hand. I uncorked the bottle, and was raising it to my lips, when, as though the words were spoken softly and clearly, I heard: "O coward, coward, who used to dream of martyrdom, and cannot bear a few short years of pain!" A rush of shame swept over me, and I flung the bottle far away among the shrubs in the garden at my feet, and for a moment I felt strong as for a struggle, and then fell fainting on the floor. Only once again in all the strifes of my career did the thought of suicide recur, and then it was but for a moment, to be put aside as unworthy a strong soul.
A powerful letter, but the storm was beating too fiercely to be calmed, and one night in the summer of 1871 stands out clearly in my mind. Mr. Besant was away, and there had been a brutal argument before he left. I felt outraged and desperate, trapped in a life that, losing its hope in God, hadn’t yet learned to live for the hope in humanity. No way out? The thought hit me like a lightning bolt: “There is one!” And suddenly, the gateway into silence and security swung open before me, promising peace—the gateway of the tomb. I stood by the drawing-room window, staring hopelessly at the evening sky; with that thought came the memory that the means was ready—the chloroform that had eased my baby’s pain, which I had locked away upstairs. I ran up to my room, grabbed the bottle, and carried it back down, standing again at the window in the summer twilight, relieved that the struggle was over and peace was within reach. I uncorked the bottle and was just about to raise it to my lips when, as if spoken softly and clearly, I heard: “O coward, coward, who used to dream of martyrdom, and cannot endure a few short years of pain!” A wave of shame washed over me, and I threw the bottle far away among the shrubs in the garden at my feet. For a moment, I felt strong enough for a struggle, and then I fainted and collapsed on the floor. Only once more in all the battles of my life did the thought of suicide return, and even then it was just for a moment, quickly dismissed as unworthy of a strong soul.
My new friend, Mr. D—, proved a very real help. The endless torture of hell, the vicarious sacrifice of Christ, the trustworthiness of revelation, doubts on all these hitherto accepted doctrines grew and heaped themselves on my bewildered soul. My questionings were neither shirked nor discouraged by Mr. D—; he was not horrified nor was he sanctimoniously rebukeful, but met them all with a wide comprehension inexpressibly soothing to one writhing in the first agonies of doubt. He left Cheltenham in the early autumn of 1871, but the following extracts from a letter written in November will show the kind of net in which I was struggling (I had been reading M'Leod Campbell's work "On the Atonement"):—
My new friend, Mr. D—, was a huge help to me. The endless torture of hell, the sacrificial act of Christ, the reliability of revelation, and my doubts about these previously accepted beliefs just piled up on my confused mind. Mr. D— didn’t shy away from my questions or discourage me; he wasn’t shocked or self-righteously critical. Instead, he faced them all with a deep understanding that provided incredible comfort to someone grappling with the painful beginnings of doubt. He left Cheltenham in early autumn 1871, but the following excerpts from a letter I wrote in November will show the kind of struggle I was experiencing (I had been reading M'Leod Campbell's book "On the Atonement"):—
"You forget one great principle—that God is impassive, cannot suffer. Christ, quâ God, did not suffer, but as Son of Man and in His humanity. Still, it may be correctly stated that He felt to sin and sinners 'as God eternally feels'—i.e., abhorrence of sin, and love of the sinner. But to infer from that that the Father in His Godhead feels the sufferings which Christ experienced solely in humanity, and because incarnate is, I think, wrong.
"You forget one important principle—that God is unchanging, cannot suffer. Christ, as God, did not suffer, but as the Son of Man in His humanity. Still, it can be accurately said that He feels about sin and sinners 'as God always feels'—that is, with disgust for sin and love for the sinner. But to conclude from that that the Father in His divine nature feels the pains that Christ experienced only in His humanity, simply because He became human, is, I think, incorrect."
"(2) I felt strongly inclined to blow you up for the last part of your letter. You assume, I think quite gratuitously, that God condemns the major part of His children to objectless future suffering. You say that if He does not, He places a book in their hands which threatens what He does not mean to inflict. But how utterly this seems to me opposed to the gospel of Christ! All Christ's references to eternal punishment may be resolved into references to the Valley of Hinnom, by way of imagery; with the exception of the Dives parable, where is distinctly inferred a moral amendment beyond the grave. I speak of the unselfish desire of Dives to save his brothers. The more I see of the controversy, the more baseless does the eternal punishment theory appear. It seems then, to me, that instead of feeling aggrieved and shaken, you ought to feel encouraged and thankful that God is so much better than you were taught to believe Him. You will have discovered by this time in Maurice's 'What is Revelation?' (I suppose you have the 'Sequel,' too?), that God's truth is our truth, and His love is our love, only more perfect and full. There is no position more utterly defeated in modern philosophy and theology than Dean Mansel's attempt to show that God's love, justice, &c., are different in kind from ours. Mill and Maurice, from totally alien points of view, have shown up the preposterous nature of the notion.
"(2) I really wanted to call you out on the last part of your letter. You seem to assume, quite unnecessarily, that God condemns most of His children to pointless suffering in the future. You say that if He doesn’t, He gives them a book that threatens what He doesn’t intend to inflict. But this seems completely contrary to the gospel of Christ! All of Christ's mentions of eternal punishment can be interpreted as references to the Valley of Hinnom, used as imagery; except for the parable of the rich man and Lazarus, which clearly implies a chance for moral change after death. I’m talking about the selfless desire of the rich man to save his brothers. The more I observe this debate, the more groundless the concept of eternal punishment seems. It appears to me that instead of feeling hurt and shaken, you should feel encouraged and grateful that God is far better than you were led to believe. By now, you’ve probably noticed in Maurice’s 'What is Revelation?' (I assume you have the 'Sequel' as well?) that God's truth is our truth, and His love is our love, only more perfect and complete. There is no standpoint more utterly defeated in modern philosophy and theology than Dean Mansel's effort to demonstrate that God's love, justice, etc., are fundamentally different from ours. Mill and Maurice, from completely different perspectives, have revealed the absurdity of that idea."
"(3) A good deal of what you have thought is, I fancy, based on a strange forgetfulness of your former experience. If you have known Christ—(whom to know is eternal life)—and that you have known Him I am certain—can you really say that a few intellectual difficulties, nay, a few moral difficulties if you will, are able at once to obliterate the testimony of that higher state of being?
"(3) I think a lot of what you believe comes from a strange forgetfulness of your past experiences. If you have known Christ—(and knowing Him is eternal life)—and I’m sure you have—can you honestly say that a few intellectual challenges, or even a few moral dilemmas if you prefer, can completely erase the evidence of that higher state of being?"
"Why, the keynote of all my theology is that Christ is lovable because, and just because, He is the perfection of all that I know to be noble and generous, and loving, and tender, and true. If an angel from heaven brought me a gospel which contained doctrines that would not stand the test of such perfect lovableness—doctrines hard, or cruel, or unjust—I should reject him and his trumpery gospel with scorn, knowing that neither could be Christ's. Know Christ and judge religions by Him; don't judge Him by religions, and then complain because they find yourself looking at Him through a blood-coloured glass."
"Honestly, the main point of my beliefs is that Christ is lovable simply because He embodies everything I understand to be noble, generous, loving, tender, and true. If an angel from heaven brought me a message with teachings that couldn't survive the test of such perfect lovableness—teachings that are harsh, cruel, or unfair—I would dismiss him and his useless message with contempt, knowing that neither could be from Christ. Get to know Christ and evaluate religions based on Him; don’t evaluate Him by religions, and then complain if you end up seeing Him through a distorted lens."
"I am saturating myself with Maurice, who is the antidote given by God to this age against all dreary doublings and temptings of the devil to despair."
"I am immersing myself in Maurice, who is the remedy provided by God for this time against all the bleak repetitions and temptations of the devil to despair."
Many a one, in this age of controversy over all things once held sacred, has found peace and new light on this line of thought, and has succeeded in thus reconciling theological doctrines with the demands of the conscience for love and justice in a world made by a just and loving God. I could not do so. The awakening to what the world was, to the facts of human misery, to the ruthless tramp of nature and of events over the human heart, making no difference between innocent and guilty—the shock had been too great for the equilibrium to be restored by arguments that appealed to the emotions and left the intellect unconvinced. Months of this long-drawn-out mental anguish wrought their natural effects on physical health, and at last I broke down completely, and lay for weeks helpless and prostrate, in raging and unceasing head-pain, unable to sleep, unable to bear the light, lying like a log on the bed, not unconscious, but indifferent to everything, consciousness centred, as it were, in the ceaseless pain. The doctor tried every form of relief, but, entrenched in its citadel, the pain defied his puny efforts. He covered my head with ice, he gave me opium—which only drove me mad—he did all that skill and kindness could do, but all in vain. Finally the pain wore itself out, and the moment he dared to do so, he tried mental diversion; he brought me books on anatomy, on science, and persuaded me to study them; and out of his busy life would steal an hour to explain to me knotty points on physiology. He saw that if I were to be brought back to reasonable life, it could only be by diverting thought from the channels in which the current had been running to a dangerous extent. I have often felt that I owed life and sanity to that good man, who felt for the helpless, bewildered child-woman, beaten down by the cyclone of doubt and misery.
Many people, in this era of debate over everything once considered sacred, have found peace and new insights on this way of thinking, managing to align theological beliefs with the conscience's call for love and justice in a world created by a just and loving God. I couldn't do that. The realization of what the world truly was, the realities of human suffering, and the relentless march of nature and events over the human heart—showing no mercy to the innocent or guilty—had been too much for me to recover from just through emotional arguments that left my mind unconvinced. Months of prolonged mental anguish took a toll on my physical health, and eventually, I completely broke down. I spent weeks helpless and exhausted, suffering from constant, intense head pain, unable to sleep, unable to handle light, lying like a log on the bed, not unconscious but indifferent to everything, with my awareness focused solely on the endless pain. The doctor tried every possible method to relieve it, but the pain remained entrenched and resisted his feeble efforts. He covered my head with ice, gave me opium—which only drove me further into madness—did everything that skill and compassion could offer, but it was all in vain. Finally, the pain subsided on its own, and the moment he felt it was possible, he attempted mental distraction; he brought me books on anatomy and science, convincing me to study them, and would take an hour from his busy day to explain complex issues in physiology. He understood that if I were to return to a reasonable life, it could only be achieved by redirecting my thoughts away from the dangerous paths they had been taking. I've often felt that I owed my life and sanity to that good man, who showed compassion for the helpless, confused child-woman overwhelmed by the storm of doubt and despair.
So it will easily be understood that my religious wretchedness only increased the unhappiness of homelife, for how absurd it was that any reasonable human being should be so tossed with anguish over intellectual and moral difficulties on religious matters, and should make herself ill over these unsubstantial troubles. Surely it was a woman's business to attend to her husband's comforts and to see after her children, and not to break her heart over misery here and hell hereafter, and distract her brain with questions that had puzzled the greatest thinkers and still remained unsolved! And, truly, women or men who get themselves concerned about the universe at large, would do well not to plunge hastily into marriage, for they do not run smoothly in the double-harness of that honourable estate. Sturm und Drang should be faced alone, and the soul should go out alone into the wilderness to be tempted of the devil, and not bring his majesty and all his imps into the placid circle of the home. Unhappy they who go into marriage with the glamour of youth upon them and the destiny of conflict imprinted on their nature, for they make misery for their partner in marriage as well as for themselves. And if that partner, strong in traditional authority and conventional habits, seeks to "break in" the turbulent and storm-tossed creature—well, it comes to a mere trial of strength and endurance, whether that driven creature will fall panting and crushed, or whether it will turn in its despair, assert its Divine right to intellectual liberty, rend its fetters in pieces, and, discovering its own strength in its extremity, speak at all risks its "No" when bidden to live a lie.
It’s easy to see that my spiritual struggles only made home life more miserable, because how ridiculous is it that a rational person could be so tormented by intellectual and moral issues surrounding religion, and let these intangible problems make her sick? Surely, a woman’s role should be to care for her husband’s comfort and look after her children, not to anguish over misery in this life and hell in the next, or to get caught up in questions that have baffled the greatest minds and remain unanswered! In fact, men or women who worry about the larger universe would do well to avoid rushing into marriage, as it can be turbulent when navigating the challenges of that honorable commitment. The storms of life should be faced alone, and the soul should venture into the wilderness by itself to confront its demons, without bringing darkness and chaos into the serene space of home. Those who enter marriage with the allure of youth and the inevitability of conflict in their nature only create suffering for both themselves and their partner. And if that partner, grounded in traditional authority and social norms, tries to “tame” the turbulent and restless soul—well, it turns into a test of strength and resilience, deciding whether that beleaguered soul will collapse in exhaustion or, in its despair, claim its right to intellectual freedom, break its chains, and, in discovering its own strength at its lowest point, boldly declare its “No” when told to accept a false reality.
When that physical crisis was over I decided on my line of action. I resolved to take Christianity as it had been taught in the Churches, and carefully and thoroughly examine its dogmas one by one, so that I should never again say "I believe" where I had not proved, and that, however diminished my area of belief, what was left of it might at least be firm under my feet. I found that four chief problems were pressing for solution, and to these I addressed myself. How many are to-day the souls facing just these problems, and disputing every inch of their old ground of faith with the steadily advancing waves of historical and scientific criticism! Alas! for the many Canutes, as the waves wash over their feet. These problems were:—
When that physical crisis was over, I decided what to do next. I resolved to take Christianity as it had been taught in the Churches and carefully examine its beliefs one by one, so that I would never again say "I believe" without having proof, and that, no matter how much my beliefs shrank, at least what remained would be solid ground for me. I found four main issues that needed solutions, and I focused on those. How many souls today are facing these same issues, battling every bit of their old faith against the steadily rising waves of historical and scientific criticism! Alas for the many Canutes as the waves wash over their feet. These problems were:—
(1) The eternity of punishment after death.
(1) The never-ending punishment after death.
(2) The meaning of "goodness" and "love," as applied to a God who had made this world, with all its sin and misery.
(2) The meaning of "goodness" and "love," as it relates to a God who created this world, filled with all its sin and suffering.
(3) The nature of the atonement of Christ, and the "justice" of God in accepting a vicarious suffering from Christ, and a vicarious righteousness from the sinner.
(3) The nature of Christ's atonement, and God's "justice" in accepting Christ's suffering on our behalf, along with the righteousness of the sinner that is credited through Him.
(4) The meaning of "inspiration" as applied to the Bible, and the reconciliation of the perfections of the author with the blunders and immoralities of the work.
(4) The meaning of "inspiration" in relation to the Bible, and how to reconcile the author's perfections with the mistakes and immoralities in the text.
It will be seen that the deeper problems of religion—the deity of Christ, the existence of God, the immortality of the soul—were not yet brought into question, and, looking back, I cannot but see how orderly was the progression of thought, how steady the growth, after that first terrible earthquake, and the first wild swirl of agony. The points that I set myself to study were those which would naturally be first faced by any one whose first rebellion against the dogmas of the Churches was a rebellion of the moral nature rather than of the intellectual, a protest of the conscience rather than of the brain. It was not a desire for moral licence which gave me the impulse that finally landed me in Atheism; it was the sense of outraged justice and insulted right. I was a wife and mother, blameless in moral life, with a deep sense of duty and a proud self-respect; it was while I was this that doubt struck me, and while I was in the guarded circle of the home, with no dream of outside work or outside liberty, that I lost all faith in Christianity. My education, my mother's example, my inner timidity and self-distrust, all fenced me in from temptations from without. It was the uprising of an outraged conscience that made me a rebel against the Churches and finally an unbeliever in God. And I place this on record, because the progress of Materialism will never be checked by diatribes against unbelievers, as though they became unbelievers from desire for vice and for licence to do evil. What Religion has to face in the controversies of to-day is not the unbelief of the sty, but the unbelief of the educated conscience and of the soaring intellect; and unless it can arm itself with a loftier ethic and a grander philosophy than its opponent, it will lose its hold over the purest and the strongest of the younger generation.
It’s clear that the deeper issues of religion—like the divinity of Christ, the existence of God, and the immortality of the soul—were not being questioned yet. Looking back, I can’t help but notice how logically thought progressed and how steadily it evolved after that first terrible upheaval and the initial wave of agony. The topics I focused on were the ones anyone would naturally confront first if their initial rebellion against the doctrines of the Churches stemmed more from moral concerns than intellectual doubts, a protest from the conscience rather than the mind. It wasn’t a craving for moral freedom that drove me toward Atheism; it was my sense of justice and the feeling of being wronged. I was a wife and mother, living a morally upright life, filled with a strong sense of duty and self-respect. It was during this time that doubt hit me, and while I was within the safe confines of home, with no thoughts of external work or freedom, I lost all faith in Christianity. My education, my mother’s example, and my own inner hesitations and self-doubt kept me shielded from outside temptations. It was the rise of my wounded conscience that turned me into a rebel against the Churches and ultimately led me to become an unbeliever in God. I want to record this because the rise of Materialism won’t be stopped by rants against unbelievers, as if they became unbelievers out of a desire for wrongdoing and permission to misbehave. What Religion faces in today’s debates isn’t the disbelief of the wicked, but the disbelief of educated consciences and advanced intellects; and unless it can equip itself with a higher ethical standard and a more profound philosophy than its adversaries, it will lose its influence over the most principled and strongest segments of the younger generation.
CHAPTER V.
CHAPTER 5.
THE STORM OF DOUBT.
My reading of heretical and Broad Church works on one side, and of orthodox ones on the other, now occupied a large part of my time, and our removal to Sibsey, in Lincolnshire, an agricultural village with a scattered population, increased my leisure. I read the works of Robertson, Stopford Brooke, Stanley, Greg, Matthew Arnold, Liddon, Mansel, and many another, and my scepticism grew deeper and deeper as I read. The Broad Church arguments appeared to me to be of the nature of special pleading, skilful evasions of difficulties rather than the real meeting and solving of them. For the problem was: Given a good God, how can He have created mankind, knowing beforehand that the vast majority of those whom He created were to be tortured for ever? Given a just God, how can He punish people for being sinful, when they have inherited a sinful nature without their own choice and of necessity? Given a righteous God, how can He allow sin to exist for ever, so that evil shall be as eternal as good, and Satan shall reign in hell as long as Christ in heaven? Worst of all puzzles, perhaps, was that of the existence of evil and of misery, and the racking doubt whether God could be good, and yet look on the evil and the misery of the world unmoved and untouched. It seemed so impossible to believe that a Creator could be either cruel enough to be indifferent to the misery, or weak enough to be unable to stop it. The old dilemma faced me incessantly: "If He can prevent it and does not, He is not good; if He wishes to prevent it and cannot, He is not almighty." I racked my brains for an answer. I searched writings of believers for a clue, but I found no way of escape. Not yet had any doubt of the existence of God crossed my mind.
My reading of heretical and Broad Church works on one side, and orthodox ones on the other, now took up a lot of my time, and our move to Sibsey, a rural village in Lincolnshire with a scattered population, gave me even more free time. I read the works of Robertson, Stopford Brooke, Stanley, Greg, Matthew Arnold, Liddon, Mansel, and many others, and my skepticism deepened with every book. The Broad Church arguments seemed to me more like clever ways to avoid challenges rather than actually addressing and resolving them. The problem was: Given a good God, how could He create humanity knowing that the vast majority would be tortured forever? Given a just God, how could He punish people for being sinful when they’ve inherited a sinful nature without their choice? Given a righteous God, how could He allow sin to last forever, making evil as eternal as good, and allowing Satan to reign in hell just as long as Christ does in heaven? Perhaps the most perplexing question was the existence of evil and suffering, along with the nagging doubt about whether God could be good and yet remain indifferent to the evil and misery in the world. It seemed so hard to believe that a Creator could either be cruel enough to be indifferent to suffering or weak enough to be unable to stop it. The old dilemma haunted me constantly: "If He can prevent it and doesn’t, He’s not good; if He wants to prevent it and can’t, He’s not all-powerful." I struggled to find an answer. I searched the writings of believers for a hint, but I found no way out. At that time, I hadn’t yet doubted the existence of God.
Mr. D— continued to write me, striving to guide me along the path which had led his own soul to contentment, but I can only find room here for two brief extracts, which will show how to himself he solved the problem. He thought me mistaken in my view
Mr. D— kept writing to me, trying to help me follow the path that had brought him peace, but I can only include two short excerpts here to show how he solved the problem for himself. He believed I was wrong in my perspective.
"Of the nature of the sin and error which is supposed to grieve God. I take it that sin is an absolutely necessary factor in the production of the perfect man. It was foreseen and allowed as means to an end—as, in fact, an education. The view of all the sin and misery in the world cannot grieve God any more than it can grieve you to see Digby fail in his first attempt to build a card-castle or a rabbit-hutch. All is part of the training. God looks at the ideal man to which all tends.... "No, Mrs. Besant; I never feel at all inclined to give up the search, or to suppose that the other side may be right. I claim no merit for it, but I have an invincible faith in the morality of God and the moral order of the world. I have no more doubt about the falsehood of the popular theology than I have about the unreality of six robbers who attacked me three nights ago in a horrid dream. I exult and rejoice in the grandeur and freedom of the little bit of truth it has been given me to see. I am told that 'Present-day Papers,' by Bishop Ewing (edited), are a wonderful help, many of them, to puzzled people; I mean to get them. But I am sure you will find that the truth will (even so little as we may be able to find out) grow on you, make you free, light your path, and dispel, at no distant time, your painful difficulties and doubts. I should say on no account give up your reading. I think with you that you could not do without it. It will be a wonderful source of help and peace to you. For there are struggles far more fearful than those of intellectual doubt. I am keenly alive to the gathered-up sadness of which your last two pages are an expression. I was sorrier than I can say to read them. They reminded me of a long and very dark time in my own life, when I thought the light never would come. Thank God it came, or I think I could not have held out much longer. But you have evidently strength to bear it now. The more dangerous time, I should fancy, has passed. You will have to mind that the fermentation leaves clear spiritual wine, and not (as too often) vinegar. I wish I could write something more helpful to you in this great matter. But as I sit in front of my large bay window and see the shadows on the grass and the sunlight on the leaves, and the soft glimmer of the rosebuds left by the storms, I can but believe that all will be very well. 'Trust in the Lord, wait patiently for Him'—they are trite words. But He made the grass, the leaves, the rosebuds, and the sunshine, and He is the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ. And now the trite words have swelled into a mighty argument."
"Regarding the nature of sin and error that is thought to upset God: I believe sin is a necessary part of creating the perfect person. It was anticipated and allowed as a means to an end—essentially, as a form of education. Seeing all the sin and suffering in the world doesn’t trouble God any more than it troubles you to watch Digby fail in his first attempt to build a card castle or a rabbit hutch. It’s all part of the learning process. God envisions the ideal person toward which everything is aimed... "No, Mrs. Besant; I never feel like giving up the search, or thinking that the other side might be right. I don’t take credit for this, but I have unshakeable faith in God’s morality and the moral order of the world. I have no more doubt about the falsehood of popular theology than I do about the unreality of six robbers who attacked me in a terrible dream three nights ago. I celebrate and take joy in the beauty and freedom of the small bit of truth that I can perceive. I’ve heard that 'Present-day Papers,' edited by Bishop Ewing, are a great help to confused people; I plan to get them. But I'm sure you’ll find that the truth—no matter how little we may uncover—will grow within you, set you free, illuminate your path, and, in due time, ease your painful struggles and doubts. I urge you not to give up your reading. I agree with you that you wouldn’t be able to manage without it. It will be an incredible source of support and peace for you. Because there are battles far more daunting than those of intellectual uncertainty. I’m very aware of the accumulated sadness expressed in the last two pages you wrote. It made me more upset than I can express. It reminded me of a long, dark time in my own life when I thought the light would never return. Thank God it did, or I don’t think I could have endured much longer. But you clearly have the strength to handle it now. I believe the more dangerous phase has passed. You’ll have to ensure that the fermentation yields clear spiritual wine, and not (as is too often the case) vinegar. I wish I could write something more helpful to you regarding this significant issue. But as I sit in front of my large bay window, watching the shadows on the grass and the sunlight on the leaves, and seeing the delicate glimmer of the rosebuds left after the storms, I can only have faith that everything will turn out just fine. 'Trust in the Lord, wait patiently for Him'—these may sound like worn-out phrases. But He created the grass, the leaves, the rosebuds, and the sunshine, and He is the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ. Now, those familiar words have evolved into a powerful argument."
I found more help in Theistic writers like Grey, and Agnostic like Arnold, than I did in the Broad Church teachers, but these, of course, served to make return to the old faith more and more impossible. The Church services were a weekly torture, but feeling as I did that I was only a doubter, I kept my doubts to myself. It was possible, I felt, that all my difficulties might be cleared up, and I had no right to shake the faith of others while in uncertainty myself. Others had doubted and had afterwards recovered their faith; for the doubter silence was a duty; the blinded had better keep their misery to themselves.
I found more support in Theistic writers like Grey and Agnostic ones like Arnold than I did with the Broad Church teachers. However, these perspectives only made it harder for me to return to my old faith. The Church services felt like a weekly torture, but since I considered myself just a doubter, I kept my doubts to myself. I felt it was possible that all my challenges could be resolved, and I had no right to shake the faith of others while I was still uncertain myself. Others had doubted and later regained their faith; for a doubter, silence was a duty. Those who were blinded should keep their struggles to themselves.
During these weary months of anxiety and torment I found some relief from the mental strain in practical parish work, nursing the sick, trying to brighten the lot of the poor. I learned then some of the lessons as to the agricultural labourer and the land that I was able in after-years to teach from the platform. The movement among the agricultural labourers, due to the energy and devotion of Joseph Arch, was beginning to be discussed in the fens, and my sympathies went strongly with the claims of the labourers, for I knew their life-conditions. In one cottage I had found four generations sleeping in one room—the great-grandfather and his wife, the unmarried grandmother, the unmarried mother, the little child; three men lodgers completed the tale of eight human beings crowded into that narrow, ill-ventilated garret. Other cottages were hovels, through the broken roofs of which poured the rain, and wherein rheumatism and ague lived with the human dwellers. How could I do aught but sympathise with any combination that aimed at the raising of these poor? But the Agricultural Labourers' Union was bitterly opposed by the farmers, and they would give no work to a "Union man." One example may serve for all. There was a young married man with two small children, who was sinful enough to go to a Union meeting and sinful enough to talk of it on his return home. No farmer would employ him in all the district round. He tramped about vainly looking for work, grew reckless, and took to drink. Visiting his cottage, consisting of one room and a "lean-to," I found his wife ill with fever, a fever-stricken babe in her arms, the second child lying dead on the bed. In answer to my soft-spoken questions: Yes, she was pining (starving), there was no work. Why did she leave the dead child on the bed? Because she had no other place for it till the coffin came. And at night the unhappy, driven man, the fever-stricken wife, the fever-stricken child, the dead child, all lay in the one bed. The farmers hated the Union because its success meant higher wages for the men, and it never struck them that they might well pay less rent to the absent landlord and higher wage to the men who tilled their fields. They had only civil words for the burden that crushed them, hard words for the mowers of their harvests and the builders-up of their ricks; they made common cause with their enemies instead of with their friends, and instead of leaguing themselves together with the labourers as forming together the true agricultural interest, they leagued themselves with the landlords against the labourers, and so made ruinous fratricidal strife instead of easy victory over the common foe. And, seeing all this, I learned some useful lessons, and the political education progressed while the theological strife went on within.
During these exhausting months of anxiety and torment, I found some relief from the mental strain in practical parish work, caring for the sick and trying to improve the lives of the poor. I learned important lessons about the agricultural laborers and the land that I later shared from the platform. The movement among agricultural laborers, inspired by the energy and dedication of Joseph Arch, was starting to be talked about in the fens, and I strongly supported the laborers’ claims because I understood their living conditions. In one cottage, I found four generations sleeping in one room—the great-grandfather and his wife, the unmarried grandmother, the unmarried mother, and the little child; three male lodgers completed the count of eight people crammed into that narrow, poorly ventilated attic. Other cottages were run-down, with broken roofs letting in the rain, where rheumatism and ague thrived alongside the human occupants. How could I do anything but sympathize with any effort aimed at helping these poor people? But the Agricultural Labourers' Union faced harsh opposition from the farmers, who refused to hire any "Union man." One example serves to illustrate this: there was a young married man with two small children who was deemed sinful for attending a Union meeting and for discussing it when he got home. No farmer would give him a job in the entire area. He wandered around looking for work, became desperate, and turned to drinking. When I visited his cottage, which consisted of one room and a lean-to, I found his wife suffering from fever, holding a fever-stricken baby, while the second child lay dead on the bed. In response to my gentle questions: Yes, she was starving; there was no work. Why had she left the dead child on the bed? Because she had no other place for it until the coffin came. At night, the unfortunate, desperate man, the fever-stricken wife, the sick child, and the dead child all lay in the same bed. The farmers resented the Union because its success meant higher wages for the men, and they never considered that they might pay less rent to the absent landlord and better wages to the workers who tilled their fields. They spoke kindly about the burdens crushing them but harshly about the laborers who harvested their crops and built their ricks; they allied with their enemies instead of their friends. Rather than banding together with the laborers to form a true agricultural interest, they sided with the landlords against the laborers, creating a damaging, self-destructive conflict instead of achieving an easy victory over a common enemy. Observing all of this, I learned valuable lessons, and my political education advanced while the theological struggle continued within me.
In the early autumn a ray of light broke the darkness. I was in London with my mother, and wandered one Sunday morning into St. George's Hall, where the Rev. Charles Voysey was preaching. There to my delight I found, on listening to the sermon and buying some literature on sale in the ante-room, that there were people who had passed through my own difficulties, and had given up the dogmas that I found so revolting. I went again on the following Sunday, and when the service was over I noticed that the outgoing stream of people were passing by Mr. and Mrs. Voysey, and that many who were evidently strangers spoke a word of thanks to him as they went on. Moved by a strong desire, after the long months of lonely striving, to speak to one who had struggled out of Christian difficulties, I said to Mr. Voysey, as I passed in my turn, "I must thank you for very great help in what you said this morning," for in truth, never having yet doubted the existence of God, the teaching of Mr. Voysey that He was "loving unto every man, and His tender mercy over all His works," came like a gleam of light across the stormy sea of doubt and distress on which I had so long been tossing. The next Sunday saw me again at the Hall, and Mrs. Voysey gave me a cordial invitation to visit them in their Dulwich home. I found their Theism was free from the defects that had revolted me in Christianity, and they opened up to me new views of religion. I read Theodore Parker's "Discourse on Religion," Francis Newman's works, those of Miss Frances Power Cobbe, and of others; the anguish of the tension relaxed; the nightmare of an Almighty Evil passed away; my belief in God, not yet touched, was cleared from all the dark spots that had sullied it, and I no longer doubted whether the dogmas that had shocked my conscience were true or false. I shook them off, once for all, with all their pain and horror and darkness, and felt, with joy and relief inexpressible, that they were delusions of the ignorance of man, not the revelations of a God.
In early autumn, a ray of light broke through the darkness. I was in London with my mother and wandered into St. George's Hall one Sunday morning, where Reverend Charles Voysey was preaching. To my delight, while listening to the sermon and picking up some literature for sale in the ante-room, I discovered that there were others who had faced the same challenges I had, and had let go of the dogmas that I found so disturbing. I returned the following Sunday, and after the service, I noticed people streaming out past Mr. and Mrs. Voysey, many of whom, clearly strangers, expressed their gratitude to him as they left. Driven by a strong desire, after months of feeling alone in my struggles, I said to Mr. Voysey as I passed by, "I really want to thank you for the help you provided in your message this morning," because, truthfully, I had never doubted the existence of God. Mr. Voysey's teaching that He was "loving towards every man, and His tender mercy over all His works" shone like a beam of light across the stormy sea of doubt and distress I had been navigating for so long. The next Sunday, I was back at the Hall, and Mrs. Voysey warmly invited me to visit them at their home in Dulwich. I found their Theism free from the flaws that had bothered me in Christianity, and they introduced me to new perspectives on religion. I read Theodore Parker's "Discourse on Religion," works by Francis Newman, Miss Frances Power Cobbe, and others; the tension I felt began to ease; the nightmare of an Almighty Evil faded away; my belief in God, which remained untouched, was clarified from all the dark spots that had tainted it, and I no longer questioned whether the dogmas that had troubled my conscience were true or false. I let them go, once and for all, along with all their pain, horror, and darkness, and felt an indescribable sense of joy and relief in realizing that they were delusions born from human ignorance, not the revelations of a God.
But there was one belief that had not been definitely challenged, but of which the rationale was gone with the orthodox dogmas now definitely renounced—the doctrine of the Deity of Christ. The whole teaching of the Broad Church school tends, of course, to emphasise the humanity of Christ at the expense of His Deity, and when eternal punishment and the substitutionary atonement had gone there seemed no reason remaining sufficient to account for so tremendous a miracle as the incarnation of the Deity. In the course of my reading I had become familiar with the idea of Avatâras in Eastern creeds, and I saw that the incarnate God was put forward as a fact by all ancient religions, and thus the way was paved for challenging the especially Christian teaching, when the doctrines morally repulsive were cleared away. But I shrank from the thought of placing in the crucible a doctrine so dear from all the associations of the past; there was so much that was soothing and ennobling in the idea of a union between Man and God, between a perfect man and a Divine life, between a human heart and an almighty strength. Jesus as God was interwoven with all art and all beauty in religion; to break with the Deity of Jesus was to break with music, with painting, with literature; the Divine Babe in His Mother's arms; the Divine Man in His Passion and His Triumph; the Friend of Man encircled with the majesty of the Godhead. Did inexorable Truth demand that this ideal Figure, with all its pathos, its beauty, its human love, should pass away into the Pantheon of the dead Gods of the Past?
But there was one belief that hadn’t been clearly challenged, although the reason behind it had vanished along with the orthodox dogmas that were now definitely rejected—the doctrine of the Deity of Christ. The main teaching of the Broad Church school, of course, emphasizes Christ's humanity at the expense of His divinity, and when ideas like eternal punishment and substitutionary atonement were dismissed, there seemed to be no good reason left to explain such a monumental miracle as the incarnation of God. Throughout my reading, I had become familiar with the concept of Avatâras in Eastern religions, and I noticed that the idea of an incarnate God was presented as a fact by all ancient religions, which paved the way for questioning particularly Christian teachings once the morally troubling doctrines were set aside. But I hesitated at the thought of putting such a cherished doctrine, tied to so many memories of the past, to the test; there was so much comfort and dignity in the concept of a connection between Man and God, between a perfect man and a Divine life, between a human heart and an all-powerful strength. Jesus as God was intertwined with all art and beauty in religion; breaking away from the Deity of Jesus meant breaking away from music, from painting, from literature; the Divine Child in His Mother's arms; the Divine Man in His Passion and His Triumph; the Friend of Humanity surrounded by the majesty of the Godhead. Did relentless Truth demand that this ideal Figure, with all its pathos, beauty, and human love, should fade away into the pantheon of the dead Gods of the Past?
Nor was this all. If I gave up belief in Christ as God, I must give up Christianity as creed. Once challenge the unique position of the Christ, and the name Christian seemed to me to be a hypocrisy, and its renouncement a duty binding on the upright mind. I was a clergyman's wife; what would be the effect of such a step? Hitherto mental pain alone had been the price demanded inexorably from the searcher after truth; but with the renouncing of Christ outer warfare would be added to the inner, and who might guess the result upon my life? The struggle was keen but short; I decided to carefully review the evidence for and against the Deity of Christ, with the result that that belief followed the others, and I stood, no longer Christian, face to face with a dim future in which I sensed the coming conflict.
Nor was that all. If I gave up believing in Christ as God, I had to give up Christianity as a belief system. Once I questioned Christ's unique status, the label "Christian" felt like hypocrisy to me, and rejecting it seemed like a responsibility for someone with integrity. I was a pastor's wife; what would happen if I took such a step? Until now, my search for truth had only cost me mental anguish; but renouncing Christ would also bring external battles on top of the internal ones, and who could predict how that would impact my life? The struggle was intense but brief; I decided to carefully review the evidence for and against the divinity of Christ, and as a result, that belief faded along with the others. I found myself, no longer identifying as a Christian, facing a vague future where I sensed a looming conflict.
One effort I made to escape it; I appealed to Dr. Pusey, thinking that if he could not answer my questionings, no answer to them could be reasonably hoped for. I had a brief correspondence with him, but was referred only to lines of argument familiar to me—as those of Liddon in his "Bampton Lectures"—and finally, on his invitation, went down to Oxford to see him. I found a short, stout gentleman, dressed in a cassock, looking like a comfortable monk; but keen eyes, steadfastly gazing straight into mine, told of the force and subtlety enshrined in the fine, impressive head. But the learned doctor took the wrong line of treatment; he probably saw I was anxious, shy, and nervous, and he treated me as a penitent going to confession and seeking the advice of a director, instead of as an inquirer struggling after truth, and resolute to obtain some firm standing-ground in the sea of doubt. He would not deal with the question of the Deity of Jesus as a question for argument. "You are speaking of your Judge," he retorted sternly, when I pressed a difficulty. The mere suggestion of an imperfection in the character of Jesus made him shudder, and he checked me with raised hand. "You are blaspheming. The very thought is a terrible sin." Would he recommend me any books that might throw light on the subject? "No, no; you have read too much already. You must pray; you must pray." When I urged that I could not believe without proof, I was told, "Blessed are they that have not seen and yet have believed"; and my further questioning was checked by the murmur, "O my child, how undisciplined! how impatient!" Truly, he must have found in me—hot, eager, passionate in my determination to know, resolute not to profess belief while belief was absent—nothing of the meek, chastened, submissive spirit with which he was wont to deal in penitents seeking his counsel as their spiritual guide. In vain did he bid me pray as though I believed; in vain did he urge the duty of blind submission to the authority of the Church, of blind, unreasoning faith that questioned not. I had not trodden the thorny path of doubt to come to the point from which I had started; I needed, and would have, solid grounds ere I believed. He had no conception of the struggles of a sceptical spirit; he had evidently never felt the pangs of doubt; his own faith was solid as a rock, firm, satisfied, unshakable; he would as soon have committed suicide as have doubted of the infallibility of the "Universal Church."
One attempt I made to break free from it; I reached out to Dr. Pusey, thinking that if he couldn’t answer my questions, then no one could reasonably provide an answer. I had a short correspondence with him but was only directed to arguments I already knew—like those from Liddon in his "Bampton Lectures"—and eventually, on his invitation, I went to Oxford to meet him. I found a short, stocky gentleman in a cassock, looking like a cozy monk; but his sharp eyes, looking directly into mine, conveyed the strength and depth held within his impressive head. However, the learned doctor took the wrong approach; he probably noticed I was anxious, shy, and nervous, and treated me like a penitent going to confession and seeking a director's advice, instead of as someone searching for truth and determined to find solid ground in a sea of doubt. He refused to discuss the question of Jesus’ divinity as a matter for debate. "You’re speaking of your Judge," he replied firmly when I pressed a point. The mere suggestion of any imperfection in Jesus’ character made him recoil, and he halted me with a raised hand. "You’re blaspheming. Just thinking that is a terrible sin." Would he suggest any books that might clarify the subject? "No, no; you’ve read too much already. You need to pray; you must pray." When I insisted that I couldn’t believe without proof, he said, "Blessed are those who have not seen and yet have believed," and my further inquiries were silenced by the murmur, "O my child, how undisciplined! How impatient!" Truly, he must have seen in me—hot, eager, and passionate in my determination to know, resolute not to claim belief while it was absent—nothing of the meek, subdued, submissive spirit that he was used to dealing with in penitents seeking his guidance. In vain did he urge me to pray as if I believed; in vain did he stress the duty of blind submission to the Church's authority, of blind, unreasoning faith that didn’t question. I had not traveled the difficult path of doubt just to end up back where I started; I needed solid reasons before I could believe. He had no understanding of the struggles of a skeptical mind; he clearly had never felt the pangs of doubt; his own faith was as solid as a rock, firm, satisfied, unshakable; he would sooner have taken his own life than doubt the infallibility of the "Universal Church."
"It is not your duty to ascertain the truth," he told me, sternly. "It is your duty to accept and believe the truth as laid down by the Church. At your peril you reject it. The responsibility is not yours so long as you dutifully accept that which the Church has laid down for your acceptance. Did not the Lord promise that the presence of the Spirit should be ever with His Church, to guide her into all truth?"
"It’s not your job to figure out the truth," he said firmly. "Your job is to accept and believe the truth as stated by the Church. If you reject it, you do so at your own risk. The responsibility isn't yours as long as you faithfully accept what the Church has provided for you. Didn't the Lord promise that the Spirit would always be with His Church, guiding her into all truth?"
"But the fact of the promise and its value are just the very points on which I am doubtful," I answered.
"But the promise itself and what it’s worth are exactly the points I’m unsure about," I replied.
He shuddered. "Pray, pray," he said. "Father, forgive her, for she knows not what she says."
He trembled. "Please, please," he said. "Father, forgive her, for she doesn’t know what she’s saying."
It was in vain that I urged on him the sincerity of my seeking, pointing out that I had everything to gain by following his directions, everything to lose by going my own way, but that it seemed to me untruthful to pretend to accept what was not really believed.
It was useless to try to convince him of how sincere I was in my search, explaining that I had everything to gain by following his advice and everything to lose by doing my own thing, but it just felt dishonest to act like I accepted what I didn't truly believe.
"Everything to lose? Yes, indeed. You will be lost for time and lost for eternity."
"Everything to lose? Absolutely. You’ll be lost for a moment and lost forever."
"Lost or not," I rejoined, "I must and will try to find out what is true, and I will not believe till I am sure."
"Lost or not," I replied, "I have to and will try to discover what’s true, and I won’t believe anything until I’m certain."
"You have no right to make terms with God," he retorted, "as to what you will believe or what you will not believe. You are full of intellectual pride."
"You have no right to negotiate with God," he snapped, "about what you will believe or what you won't believe. You're just full of intellectual arrogance."
I sighed hopelessly. Little feeling of pride was there in me just then, but only a despairful feeling that in this rigid, unyielding dogmatism there was no comprehension of my difficulties, no help for me in my strugglings. I rose, and, thanking him for his courtesy, said that I would not waste his time further, that I must go home and face the difficulties, openly leaving the Church and taking the consequences. Then for the first time his serenity was ruffled.
I sighed in frustration. I felt no pride at that moment, only a sense of hopelessness that in this strict, unyielding mindset there was no understanding of my struggles, no support for me in my challenges. I stood up, thanked him for his kindness, and said I wouldn’t take up any more of his time, that I needed to go home and confront the difficulties, openly leaving the Church and facing the consequences. That’s when, for the first time, his calm demeanor was disturbed.
"I forbid you to speak of your disbelief," he cried. "I forbid you to lead into your own lost state the souls for whom Christ died."
"I can't allow you to talk about your doubt," he exclaimed. "I won't let you lead into your own hopeless condition the souls for whom Christ sacrificed."
THOMAS SCOTT
Slowly and sadly I took my way back to the station, knowing that my last chance of escape had failed me. I recognised in this famous divine the spirit of priest-craft, that could be tender and pitiful to the sinner, repentant, humble, submissive; but that was iron to the doubter, the heretic, and would crush out all questionings of "revealed truth," silencing by force, not by argument, all challenge of the traditions of the Church. Out of such men were made the Inquisitors of the Middle Ages, perfectly conscientious, perfectly rigid, perfectly merciless to the heretic. To them heretics are centres of infectious disease, and charity to the heretic is "the worst cruelty to the souls of men." Certain that they hold, "by no merit of our own, but by the mercy of our God, the one truth which He has revealed," they can permit no questionings, they can accept nought but the most complete submission. But while man aspires after truth, while his mind yearns after knowledge, while his intellect soars upward into the empyrean of speculation and "beats the air with tireless wing," so long shall those who demand faith from him be met by challenge for proof, and those who would blind him shall be defeated by his resolve to gaze unblenching on the face of Truth, even though her eyes should turn him into stone. It was during this same autumn of 1872 that I first met Mr. and Mrs. Scott, introduced to them by Mr. Voysey. At that time Thomas Scott was an old man, with beautiful white hair, and eyes like those of a hawk gleaming from under shaggy eyebrows. He had been a man of magnificent physique, and, though his frame was then enfeebled, the splendid lion-like head kept its impressive strength and beauty, and told of a unique personality. Well born and wealthy, he had spent his earlier life in adventure in all parts of the world, and after his marriage he had settled down at Ramsgate, and had made his home a centre of heretical thought. His wife, "his right hand," as he justly called her, was young enough to be his daughter—a sweet, strong, gentle, noble woman, worthy of her husband, and than that no higher praise could be spoken. Mr. Scott for many years issued monthly a series of pamphlets, all heretical, though very varying in their shades of thought; all were well written, cultured, and polished in tone, and to this rule Mr. Scott made no exception; his writers might say what they liked, but they must have something to say, and must say it in good English. His correspondence was enormous, from Prime Ministers downwards. At his house met people of the most varied opinions; it was a veritable heretical salon. Colenso of Natal, Edward Maitland, E. Vansittart Neale, Charles Bray, Sarah Hennell, and hundreds more, clerics and laymen, scholars and thinkers, all coming to this one house, to which the entrée was gained only by love of Truth and desire to spread Freedom among men. For Thomas Scott my first Freethought essay was written a few months after, "On the Deity of Jesus of Nazareth," by the wife of a benefited clergyman. My name was not mine to use, so it was agreed that any essays from my pen should be anonymous.
Slowly and sadly, I made my way back to the station, knowing my last chance for escape had slipped away. I recognized in this well-known figure the spirit of clerical manipulation, which could be kind and sympathetic to the sinner—one who is repentant, humble, and submissive; but would be harsh towards the doubter, the heretic, crushing any questioning of "revealed truth." It silences challenges to the Church’s traditions through force, not argument. From such men came the Inquisitors of the Middle Ages—absolutely conscientious, rigid, and merciless to the heretic. To them, heretics were like sources of infectious disease, and showing charity to a heretic was seen as "the worst cruelty to the souls of men." Confident that they possess "by no merit of our own, but by the mercy of our God, the one truth which He has revealed," they allow no questions and accept nothing less than total submission. But as long as humanity seeks truth, as long as minds yearn for understanding, and intellects soar into the heights of speculation and "beat the air with tireless wings," those who demand faith will always face challenges for proof, and those who attempt to blind will be confronted by the determination to face the Truth, even if her gaze turns him to stone. It was during that same autumn of 1872 that I first met Mr. and Mrs. Scott, introduced by Mr. Voysey. At that time, Thomas Scott was an older man with beautiful white hair and hawk-like eyes gleaming beneath shaggy eyebrows. He had once been a magnificent physical specimen, and although his frame was now weakened, his impressive lion-like head still radiated strength and beauty, reflecting a unique personality. Well-born and wealthy, he had spent his earlier years adventuring across the globe, and after marrying, he settled in Ramsgate, turning his home into a hub of heretical thought. His wife, whom he rightly called "his right hand," was young enough to be his daughter—a sweet, strong, gentle, noble woman, deserving of her husband, and that’s the highest praise possible. For many years, Mr. Scott published a monthly series of pamphlets, all heretical and varying in their perspectives; all were well-written, cultured, and polished, and Mr. Scott upheld this standard—his writers could say what they wanted, but they had to have something meaningful to say and express it in good English. His correspondence was extensive, reaching from Prime Ministers on down. His home hosted individuals with the most diverse opinions; it was truly a heretical salon. Colenso of Natal, Edward Maitland, E. Vansittart Neale, Charles Bray, Sarah Hennell, and hundreds more—clergy and laypeople, scholars and thinkers—all gathered in this one house, where entry was earned only through a love of Truth and a desire to promote Freedom among people. I wrote my first Freethought essay for Thomas Scott a few months later, titled "On the Deity of Jesus of Nazareth," authored by the wife of a beneficed clergyman. I couldn’t use my name, so it was agreed that any essays I wrote would be published anonymously.
And now came the return to Sibsey, and with it the need for definite steps as to the Church. For now I no longer doubted, I had rejected, and the time for silence was past. I was willing to attend the Church services, taking no part in any not directed to God Himself, but I could no longer attend the Holy Communion, for in that service, full of recognition of Jesus as Deity and of His atoning sacrifice, I could no longer take part without hypocrisy. This was agreed to, and well do I remember the pain and trembling wherewith on the first "Sacrament Sunday" after my return I rose and left the church. That the vicar's wife should "communicate" was as much a matter of course as that the vicar should "administer"; I had never done anything in public that would draw attention to me, and a feeling of deadly sickness nearly overcame me as I made my exit, conscious that every eye was on me, and that my non-participation would be the cause of unending comment. As a matter of fact, every one naturally thought I was taken suddenly ill, and I was overwhelmed with calls and inquiries. To any direct question I answered quietly that I was unable to take part in the profession of faith required by an honest communicant, but the statement was rarely necessary, as the idea of heresy in a vicar's wife is slow to suggest itself to the ordinary bucolic mind, and I proffered no information where no question was asked.
And now it was time to return to Sibsey, which meant I needed to take some definite steps regarding the Church. I was no longer in doubt; I had rejected it, and the time for silence was over. I was willing to attend Church services, participating only in those aimed at God Himself, but I could no longer take part in Holy Communion. In that service, filled with recognition of Jesus as God and His atoning sacrifice, I could no longer participate without being a hypocrite. This was agreed upon, and I still remember the pain and trembling I felt on the first "Sacrament Sunday" after my return when I stood up and left the church. It was expected that the vicar’s wife would "commune," just as it was that the vicar would "administer." I had never done anything in public to draw attention to myself, and I felt a wave of nausea overcome me as I left, aware that every eye was on me and that my choice not to participate would lead to endless gossip. In reality, everyone naturally assumed I had suddenly fallen ill, and I was bombarded with calls and inquiries. When asked directly, I quietly stated that I couldn’t partake in the profession of faith required for an honest communicant. However, this explanation was rarely needed, as the idea of heresy in a vicar's wife is not something that easily occurs to the average rural mind, and I offered no information unless someone asked.
It happened that, shortly after that (to me) memorable Christmas of 1872, a sharp epidemic of typhoid fever broke out in the village of Sibsey. The drainage there was of the most primitive type, and the contagion spread rapidly. Naturally fond of nursing, I found in this epidemic work just fitted to my hand, and I was fortunate enough to be able to lend personal help that made me welcome in the homes of the stricken poor. The mothers who slept exhausted while I watched beside their darlings' bedsides will never, I like to fancy, think over-harshly of the heretic whose hand was as tender and often more skilful than their own. I think Mother Nature meant me for a nurse, for I take a sheer delight in nursing any one, provided only that there is peril in the sickness, so that there is the strange and solemn feeling of the struggle between the human skill one wields and the supreme enemy, Death. There is a strange fascination in fighting Death, step by step, and this is of course felt to the full where one fights for life as life, and not for a life one loves. When the patient is beloved the struggle is touched with agony, but where one fights with Death over the body of a stranger there is a weird enchantment in the contest without personal pain, and as one forces back the hated foe there is a curious triumph in the feeling which marks the death-grip yielding up its prey, as one snatches back to earth the life which had well-nigh perished.
It just so happened that shortly after that unforgettable Christmas of 1872, a severe outbreak of typhoid fever hit the village of Sibsey. The sanitation there was extremely basic, and the disease spread quickly. Naturally drawn to nursing, I found myself well-suited for the work during this epidemic and was lucky enough to offer personal help that made me welcome in the homes of the affected families. The mothers who slept, exhausted, while I kept watch by their children's beds will hopefully remember the outsider whose touch was as gentle and often more skilled than their own. I believe Mother Nature intended for me to be a nurse, as I take great joy in caring for others, especially when there’s a real danger involved, allowing for that unique and serious feeling of battling the ultimate enemy, Death. There’s a strange allure in confronting Death, bit by bit, and it really stands out when you’re fighting for life itself, rather than for someone you love. When the patient is dear to you, the struggle is filled with agony, but when you’re fighting Death over the body of someone you don’t know, there’s a fascinating thrill in the contest without any personal pain, and when you push back that dreaded foe, there’s a strange sense of victory in pulling back a life that was nearly lost.
The spring of 1873 brought me knowledge of a power that was to mould much of my future life. I delivered my first lecture, but delivered it to rows of empty pews in Sibsey Church. A queer whim took me that I would like to know how "it felt" to preach, and vague fancies stirred in me that I could speak if I had the chance. I saw no platform in the distance, nor had any idea of possible speaking in the future dawned upon me. But the longing to find outlet in words came upon me, and I felt as though I had something to say and was able to say it. So locked alone in the great, silent church, whither I had gone to practise some organ exercises, I ascended the pulpit steps and delivered my first lecture on the Inspiration of the Bible. I shall never forget the feeling of power and delight—but especially of power—that came upon me as I sent my voice ringing down the aisles, and the passion in me broke into balanced sentences and never paused for musical cadence or for rhythmical expression. All I wanted then was to see the church full of upturned faces, alive with throbbing sympathy, instead of the dreary emptiness of silent pews. And as though in a dream the solitude was peopled, and I saw the listening faces and the eager eyes, and as the sentences flowed unbidden from my lips and my own tones echoed back to me from the pillars of the ancient church, I knew of a verity that the gift of speech was mine, and that if ever—and then it seemed so impossible!—if ever the chance came to me of public work, this power of melodious utterance should at least win hearing for any message I had to bring.
The spring of 1873 brought me awareness of a power that would shape much of my future. I gave my first lecture, but it was to rows of empty pews in Sibsey Church. A strange impulse struck me; I wanted to know what it felt like to preach, and a vague idea stirred in me that I could speak if given the chance. I saw no platform in sight, and I had no idea of any future speaking opportunities on the horizon. But the desire to express myself in words hit me, and I felt like I had something to say and the ability to say it. So, alone in the large, silent church, where I had gone to practice some organ exercises, I climbed the pulpit steps and delivered my first lecture on the Inspiration of the Bible. I will never forget the feeling of power and joy—but especially of power—that washed over me as my voice rang down the aisles, and the passion in me transformed into coherent sentences, never pausing for musical cadence or rhythmic expression. All I wanted then was to see the church filled with faces turned up towards me, alive with shared emotion, instead of the dreary emptiness of silent pews. Almost like a dream, the solitude was filled with people, and I saw the attentive faces and eager eyes. As the sentences flowed effortlessly from my lips and my own voice echoed back to me from the pillars of the ancient church, I realized undeniably that the gift of speech was mine, and that if ever—and at that moment it seemed so impossible!—if ever the opportunity for public work arose, this ability for melodious expression would at least earn attention for any message I had to share.
But the knowledge remained a secret all to my own self for many a long month, for I quickly felt ashamed of that foolish speechifying in an empty church; but, foolish as it was, I note it here, as it was the first effort of that expression in spoken words which later became to me one of the deepest delights of life. And, indeed, none can know, save they who have felt it, what joy there is in the full rush of language that moves and sways; to feel a crowd respond to the lightest touch; to see the faces brighten or darken at your bidding; to know that the sources of human emotion and human passion gush forth at the word of the speaker as the stream from the riven rock; to feel that the thought which thrills through a thousand hearers has its impulse from you, and throbs back to you the fuller from a thousand heart-beats. Is there any emotional joy in life more brilliant than this, fuller of passionate triumph, and of the very essence of intellectual delight?
But the knowledge stayed a secret all to myself for many long months, as I quickly felt ashamed of that silly speech in an empty church; but, silly as it was, I mention it here, as it was the first attempt at expressing myself in spoken words, which later became one of my greatest joys in life. And truly, no one can know, except those who have experienced it, what delight there is in the complete flow of language that moves and sways; to feel a crowd respond to the slightest nudge; to see faces brighten or darken at your command; to realize that the sources of human emotion and passion surge forth at the speaker's word just like water from a split rock; to feel that the thought which excites a thousand listeners comes from you and flows back to you even stronger with a thousand heartbeats. Is there any emotional joy in life more brilliant than this, more filled with passionate triumph, and at the very heart of intellectual delight?
In 1873 my marriage tie was broken. I took no new step, but my absence from the Communion led to some gossip, and a relative of Mr. Besant pressed on him highly-coloured views of the social and professional dangers which would accrue if my heresy became known. My health, never really restored since the autumn of 1871, grew worse and worse, serious heart trouble having arisen from the constant strain under which I lived. At last, in July or August, 1873, the crisis came. I was told that I must conform to the outward observances of the Church, and attend the Communion; I refused. Then came the distinct alternative; conformity or exclusion from home—in other words, hypocrisy or expulsion. I chose the latter.
In 1873, my marriage ended. I didn't take any new steps, but my absence from Communion sparked some gossip, and a relative of Mr. Besant pressured him with exaggerated concerns about the social and professional risks I'd face if my beliefs became known. My health, which had never really recovered since the fall of 1871, worsened, as serious heart issues arose from the constant stress I was under. Finally, in July or August 1873, the breaking point came. I was told that I had to follow the Church's outward practices and attend Communion; I refused. Then I faced a clear choice: conform or be kicked out of my home—in other words, live a lie or leave. I chose the latter.
A bitterly sad time followed. My dear mother was heart-broken. To her, with her wide and vague form of Christianity, loosely held, the intensity of my feeling that where I did not believe I would not pretend belief, was incomprehensible. She recognised far more fully than I did all that a separation from my home meant for me, and the difficulties that would surround a young woman, not yet twenty-six, living alone. She knew how brutally the world judges, and how the mere fact that a woman was young and alone justified any coarseness of slander. Then I did not guess how cruel men and women could be, how venomous their tongues; now, knowing it, having faced slander and lived it down, I deliberately say that were the choice again before me I would choose as I chose then; I would rather go through it all again than live "in Society" under the burden of an acted lie.
A really sad time came after that. My dear mother was heartbroken. For her, with her broad and loose interpretation of Christianity, my strong belief that I wouldn’t pretend to believe in something I didn’t was hard for her to understand. She understood far better than I did what leaving home meant for me, and the challenges a young woman under twenty-six would face living alone. She knew how harshly the world judges and that just the fact of being young and alone was enough to justify all kinds of nasty gossip. Back then, I didn’t realize how cruel people could be, how toxic their words could be; now, having faced gossip and gotten through it, I can confidently say that if I had to make the choice again, I would choose the same way; I would rather go through it all again than live "in Society" burdened by a lie.
The hardest struggle was against my mother's tears and pleading; to cause her pain was tenfold pain to me. Against harshness I had been rigid as steel, but it was hard to remain steadfast when my darling mother, whom I loved as I loved nothing else on earth, threw herself on her knees before me, imploring me to yield. It seemed like a crime to bring such anguish on her; and I felt as a murderer as the snowy head was pressed against my knees. And yet—to live a lie? Not even for her was that shame possible; in that worst crisis of blinding agony my will clung fast to Truth. And it is true now as it ever was that he who loves father or mother better than Truth is not worthy of her, and the flint-strewn path of honesty is the way to Light and Peace.
The hardest struggle was against my mother’s tears and pleas; causing her pain felt like ten times the pain for me. I had been unyielding against harshness, but it was tough to stay resolute when my beloved mother, whom I loved more than anything else in the world, fell to her knees before me, begging me to give in. It felt like a crime to bring her such anguish; I felt like a murderer as her white hair rested against my knees. And yet—to live a lie? Not even for her could I accept that shame; in that darkest moment of overwhelming agony, my will held firmly to Truth. It remains true now as it always has that anyone who loves father or mother more than Truth is not worthy of her, and the rocky road of honesty is the path to Light and Peace.
Then there were the children, the two little ones who worshipped me, who was to them mother, nurse, and playfellow. Were they, too, demanded at my hands? Not wholly—for a time. Facts which I need not touch on here enabled my brother to obtain for me a legal separation, and when everything was arranged, I found myself guardian of my little daughter, and possessor of a small monthly income sufficient for respectable starvation. With a great price I had obtained my freedom, but—I was free. Home, friends, social position, were the price demanded and paid, and, being free, I wondered what to do with my freedom. I could have had a home with my brother if I would give up my heretical friends and keep quiet, but I had no mind to put my limbs into fetters again, and in my youthful inexperience I determined to find something to do. The difficulty was the "something," and I spent various shillings in agencies, with a quite wonderful unanimity of failures. I tried fancy needle-work, offered to "ladies in reduced circumstances," and earned 4s. 6d. by some weeks of stitching. I experimented with a Birmingham firm, who generously offered every one the opportunity of adding to their incomes, and on sending the small fee demanded, received a pencil-case, with an explanation that I was to sell little articles of that description, going as far as cruet-stands, to my friends. I did not feel equal to springing pencil-cases and cruet-stands on my acquaintances, so did not enter on that line of business, and similar failures in numerous efforts made me feel, as so many others have found, that the world-oyster is hard to open. However, I was resolute to build a nest for my wee daughter, my mother, and myself, and the first thing to do was to save my monthly pittance to buy furniture. I found a tiny house in Colby Road, Upper Norwood, near the Scotts, who were more than good to me, and arranged to take it in the spring, and then accepted a loving invitation to Folkestone, where my grandmother and two aunts were living, to look for work there. And found it. The vicar wanted a governess, and one of my aunts suggested me as a stop-gap, and thither I went with my little Mabel, our board and lodging being payment for my work. I became head cook, governess, and nurse, glad enough to have found "something to do" that enabled me to save my little income. But I do not think I will ever take to cooking for a permanence; broiling and frying are all right, and making pie-crust is rather pleasant; but saucepans and kettles blister your hands. There is a charm in making a stew, to the unaccustomed cook, from the excitement of wondering what the result will be, and whether any flavour save that of onions will survive the competition in the mixture. On the whole, my cooking (strictly by cookery book) was a success, but my sweeping was bad, for I lacked muscle. This curious episode came to an abrupt end, for one of my little pupils fell ill with diphtheria, and I was transformed from cook to nurse. Mabel I despatched to her grandmother, who adored her with a love condescendingly returned by the little fairy of three, and never was there a prettier picture than the red-gold curls nestled against the white, the baby-grace in exquisite contrast with the worn stateliness of her tender nurse. Scarcely was my little patient out of danger when the youngest boy fell ill of scarlet fever; we decided to isolate him on the top floor, and I cleared away carpets and curtains, hung sheets over the doorways and kept them wet with chloride of lime, shut myself up there with the boy, having my meals left on the landing; and when all risk was over, proudly handed back my charge, the disease touching no one else in the house.
Then there were the kids, the two little ones who looked up to me as their mother, caregiver, and playmate. Did they, too, ask for things from me? Not entirely—for a while. Certain facts that I won't go into here helped my brother secure a legal separation for me, and once everything was settled, I found myself as the guardian of my little daughter, with a small monthly income enough for respectable starvation. With a high price, I had gained my freedom, but—I was free. Home, friends, and social status were the costs paid, and now that I was free, I wondered what to do with this freedom. I could have had a home with my brother if I gave up my unconventional friends and stayed quiet, but I had no intention of putting my limbs back into shackles, so in my youthful naivety, I decided to find something to do. The challenge was figuring out what that "something" was, and I wasted various shillings on agencies, all with an amazing consistency of failures. I tried fancy needlework, offered to "ladies in reduced circumstances," and earned 4s. 6d. after weeks of stitching. I experimented with a Birmingham company that generously promised everyone a chance to supplement their income, and after sending the small fee they requested, I received a pencil case with an explanation that I was supposed to sell little items like that, even cruet stands, to my friends. I didn’t feel comfortable trying to sell pencil cases and cruet stands to my acquaintances, so I avoided that line of work, and similar failures in my many attempts made me realize, like so many others, that finding opportunities in life can be tough. Still, I was determined to create a home for my little daughter, my mother, and myself, and the first step was to save my monthly income to buy furniture. I found a tiny house on Colby Road, Upper Norwood, near the Scotts, who were incredibly kind to me, and arranged to move in during the spring. I then accepted a warm invitation to Folkestone, where my grandmother and two aunts lived, to look for work there. And I found it. The vicar needed a governess, and one of my aunts recommended me as a temporary solution, so I went there with my little Mabel, with our meals and accommodation being payment for my work. I became the head cook, governess, and nurse, happy to have found "something to do" that allowed me to save my little income. But I don’t think I’ll ever make cooking a permanent job; grilling and frying are fine, and making pie crust is kind of fun, but saucepans and kettles can really burn your hands. There’s a thrill in making a stew for a novice cook, wondering what the end result will be and whether any flavor other than onions will stand out in the mix. Overall, my cooking (strictly by following a cookbook) was a success, but my cleaning was poor because I lacked strength. This interesting episode ended abruptly when one of my little students got sick with diphtheria, and I transformed from cook to nurse. I sent Mabel to her grandmother, who adored her, and the admiration was sweetly reciprocated by the little three-year-old. There was never a prettier sight than those red-gold curls resting against her grandmother’s white hair, with the baby’s grace contrasting beautifully with the worn dignity of her caring nurse. Hardly had my little patient recovered when the youngest boy got sick with scarlet fever; we decided to isolate him on the top floor, and I removed carpets and curtains, hung sheets over the doorways, and kept them damp with chloride of lime. I shut myself up there with the boy, getting my meals left on the landing; and when all risk was over, I proudly handed back my charge, the disease affecting no one else in the house.
And now the spring of 1874 had come, and in a few weeks my mother and I were to set up house together. How we had planned all, and had knitted on the new life together we anticipated to the old one we remembered! How we had discussed Mabel's education, and the share which should fall to each! Day-dreams; day-dreams! never to be realised.
And now it was spring of 1874, and in a few weeks my mother and I would be starting our life together. We had planned everything out and imagined how our new life would connect with the old one we remembered! We had talked about Mabel's education and how much responsibility each of us would take on! Just daydreams; daydreams! Never to be realized.
My mother went up to town, and in a week or two I received a telegram, saying she was dangerously ill, and as fast as express train would take me I was beside her. Dying, the doctor said; three days she might live—no more. I told her the death-sentence, but she said resolutely, "I do not feel that I am going to die just yet," and she was right. There was an attack of fearful prostration—the valves of the heart had failed—a very wrestling with Death, and then the grim shadow drew backwards. I nursed her day and night with a very desperation of tenderness, for now Fate had touched the thing dearest to me in life. A second horrible crisis came, and for the second time her tenacity and my love beat back the death-stroke. She did not wish to die, the love of life was strong in her; I would not let her die; between us we kept the foe at bay. Then dropsy supervened, and the end loomed slowly sure.
My mom went to the city, and after a week or two, I got a telegram saying she was seriously ill. I rushed to her side as fast as the express train could take me. The doctor said she was dying; she might only have three days left—no more. I broke the news to her, but she said firmly, "I don’t feel like I'm going to die just yet," and she was right. There was a severe collapse—her heart's valves had failed—a real struggle with Death, but then the dark shadow receded. I cared for her day and night with a desperate tenderness because Fate had touched the most important thing in my life. A second horrible crisis came, and for the second time, her strength and my love pushed back Death’s hold. She didn’t want to die; her love for life was strong; I wouldn’t let her die; together we kept the enemy at bay. Then dropsy set in, and the end slowly became inevitable.
It was then, after eighteen months' abstention, that I took the Sacrament for the last time. My mother had an intense longing to communicate before she died, but absolutely refused to do so unless I took it with her. "If it be necessary to salvation," she persisted, doggedly, "I will not take it if darling Annie is to be shut out. I would rather be lost with her than saved without her." I went to a clergyman I knew well, and laid the case before him; as I expected, he refused to allow me to communicate. I tried a second, with the same result. At last a thought struck me. There was Dean Stanley, my mother's favourite, a man known to be of the broadest school within the Church of England; suppose I asked him? I did not know him, and I felt the request would be an impertinence; but there was just the chance that he might consent, and what would I not do to make my darling's death-bed easier? I said nothing to any one, but set out to the Deanery, Westminster, timidly asked for the Dean, and followed the servant upstairs with a sinking heart. I was left for a moment alone in the library, and then the Dean came in. I don't think I ever in my life felt more intensely uncomfortable than I did in that minute's interval as he stood waiting for me to speak, his clear, grave, piercing eyes gazing questioningly into mine. Very falteringly—it must have been very clumsily—I preferred my request, stating boldly, with abrupt honesty, that I was not a Christian, that my mother was dying, that she was fretting to take the Sacrament, that she would not take it unless I took it with her, that two clergymen had refused to allow me to take part in the service, that I had come to him in despair, feeling how great was the intrusion, but—she was dying.
It was then, after eighteen months of abstinence, that I took the Sacrament for the last time. My mother desperately wanted to receive it before she passed away, but she absolutely refused unless I did it with her. "If it’s necessary for salvation," she insisted, stubbornly, "I won’t take it if darling Annie is left out. I’d rather be lost with her than saved without her." I went to a clergyman I knew well and explained the situation; as I expected, he refused to let me participate. I tried a second one, with the same result. Finally, a thought occurred to me. There was Dean Stanley, my mother’s favorite, a man known to be very open-minded within the Church of England; what if I asked him? I didn’t know him personally and felt the request might be rude, but there was a chance he might agree, and I would do anything to make my darling’s final moments easier. I said nothing to anyone but set off to the Deanery in Westminster, timidly asked for the Dean, and followed the servant upstairs with a sinking heart. I was left alone for a moment in the library, and then the Dean walked in. I don’t think I’ve ever felt more awkward in my life than during that minute while he stood there waiting for me to speak, his clear, serious, piercing eyes looking questioningly into mine. Very hesitantly—it must have been very clumsily—I made my request, stating bluntly and honestly that I wasn’t a Christian, that my mother was dying, that she was anxious to take the Sacrament, that she wouldn’t do it unless I participated, that two clergymen had refused to let me take part in the service, and that I had come to him in desperation, knowing how intrusive it was, but—she was dying.
His face changed to a great softness. "You were quite right to come to me," he answered, in that low, musical voice of his, his keen gaze having altered into one no less direct, but marvellously gentle. "Of course I will go and see your mother, and I have little doubt that, if you will not mind talking over your position with me, we may see our way clear to doing as your mother wishes."
His face softened significantly. "You were absolutely right to come to me," he replied in his low, melodic voice, his intense gaze shifting to one that was still direct but wonderfully gentle. "Of course, I will go see your mother, and I'm quite sure that, if you don't mind discussing your situation with me, we can figure out how to do what your mother wants."
I could barely speak my thanks, so much did the kindly sympathy move me; the revulsion from the anxiety and fear of rebuff was strong enough to be almost pain. But Dean Stanley did more than I asked. He suggested that he should call that afternoon, and have a quiet chat with my mother, and then come again on the following day to administer the Sacrament.
I could hardly express my gratitude; the genuine kindness affected me deeply. The relief from my anxiety and fear of rejection was so intense that it felt almost painful. But Dean Stanley went above and beyond what I requested. He proposed to stop by that afternoon for a quiet conversation with my mom, and then return the next day to provide the Sacrament.
"A stranger's presence is always trying to a sick person," he said, with rare delicacy of thought, "and, joined to the excitement of the service, it might be too much for your dear mother. If I spend half an hour with her to-day, and administer the Sacrament to-morrow, it will, I think, be better for her."
"A stranger's presence is always tough on someone who's sick," he said, with unusual sensitivity, "and combined with the excitement of the visit, it might be overwhelming for your dear mother. If I spend half an hour with her today and give her the Sacrament tomorrow, I think it will be better for her."
So Dean Stanley came that afternoon, all the way to Brompton, and remained talking with my mother for about half an hour, and then set himself to understand my own position. He finally told me that conduct was far more important than theory, and that he regarded all as "Christians" who recognised and tried to follow the moral law of Christ. On the question of the absolute Deity of Jesus he laid but little stress; Jesus was "in a special sense the Son of God," but it was folly to quarrel over words with only human meanings when dealing with the mystery of the Divine existence, and, above all, it was folly to make such words into dividing walls between earnest souls. The one important matter was the recognition of "duty to God and man," and all who were one in that recognition might rightfully join in an act of worship, the essence of which was not acceptance of dogma, but love of God and self-sacrifice for man. "The Holy Communion," he concluded, in his soft tones, "was never meant to divide from each other hearts that are searching after the one true God. It was meant by its founder as a symbol of unity, not of strife."
So Dean Stanley came that afternoon, all the way to Brompton, and talked with my mother for about half an hour, and then set out to understand my situation. He finally told me that behavior was much more important than theory, and that he considered everyone who recognized and tried to follow the moral law of Christ to be "Christians." He placed little importance on the question of Jesus' absolute Deity; Jesus was "in a special sense the Son of God," but it was pointless to argue over terms that only have human meanings when dealing with the mystery of Divine existence. Above all, it was foolish to let such terms create barriers between sincere believers. The key issue was recognizing our "duty to God and man," and all who shared that recognition could rightfully come together in worship, which was fundamentally about loving God and self-sacrifice for humanity, not about accepting dogma. "The Holy Communion," he concluded in his gentle voice, "was never intended to create division among hearts that are searching for the one true God. It was meant by its founder as a symbol of unity, not conflict."
On the following day Dean Stanley celebrated the Holy Communion by the bedside of my dear mother, and well was I repaid for the struggle it had cost me to ask so great a kindness from a stranger, when I saw the comfort that gentle, noble heart had given to her. He soothed away all her anxiety about my heresy with tactful wisdom, bidding her have no fear of differences of opinion where the heart was set on truth. "Remember," she told me he said to her—"remember that our God is the God of truth, and that therefore the honest search for truth can never be displeasing in His eyes." Once again after that he came, and after his visit to my mother we had another long talk. I ventured to ask him, the conversation having turned that way, how, with views so broad as his, he found it possible to remain in communion with the Church of England. "I think," he answered, gently, "that I am of more service to true religion by remaining in the Church and striving to widen its boundaries from within, than if I left it and worked from without." And he went on to explain how, as Dean of Westminster, he was in a rarely independent position, and could make the Abbey of a wider national service than would otherwise be possible. In all he said on this his love for and his pride in the glorious Abbey were manifest, and it was easy to see that old historical associations, love of music, of painting, of stately architecture, were the bonds that held him bound to the "old historic Church of England." His emotions, not his intellect, kept him Churchman, and he shrank, with the over-sensitiveness of the cultured scholar, from the idea of allowing the old traditions to be handled roughly by inartistic hands. Naturally of a refined and delicate nature, he had been rendered yet more exquisitely sensitive by the training of the college and the court; the polished courtesy of his manners was but the natural expression of a noble and lofty mind—a mind whose very gentleness sometimes veiled its strength. I have often heard Dean Stanley harshly spoken of, I have heard his honesty roughly challenged; but never has he been attacked in my presence that I have not uttered my protest against the injustice done him, and thus striven to repay some small fraction of that great debt of gratitude which I shall ever owe his memory.
On the next day, Dean Stanley held the Holy Communion at my dear mother's bedside, and I felt justifiably rewarded for the effort it took to ask such a significant favor from a stranger when I saw the comfort this kind, noble man provided her. He eased all her worries about my beliefs with thoughtful wisdom, encouraging her not to fear differing opinions when the heart is focused on truth. "Remember," she told me he said to her—"remember that our God is the God of truth, and therefore, the honest pursuit of truth can never upset Him." After that, he came to visit again, and following his visit with my mother, we had another lengthy conversation. I took the chance to ask him, as the topic came up, how, with his broad views, he managed to stay in communion with the Church of England. "I believe," he replied gently, "that I serve true religion better by staying within the Church and working to expand its boundaries from the inside rather than leaving it and working from the outside." He went on to explain how, as Dean of Westminster, he held a uniquely independent position and could make the Abbey serve a broader national purpose than would otherwise be achievable. Throughout his remarks on this, his love for and pride in the magnificent Abbey were apparent, and it was clear that historic associations, his appreciation for music, art, and majestic architecture were what kept him connected to the "old historic Church of England." His feelings, rather than his intellect, kept him as a Churchman, and he winced—sensitive as a cultured scholar—at the thought of allowing old traditions to be treated carelessly by unrefined hands. Naturally refined and delicate, he had become even more exquisitely sensitive due to his education at college and the court; the polished courtesy of his manners was simply a natural expression of a noble and elevated mind—a mind whose gentleness sometimes obscured its strength. I've often heard Dean Stanley spoken of harshly, and I’ve heard his honesty challenged without care; yet, whenever he was criticized in my presence, I voiced my objections against the injustice done to him, striving to repay even a small part of the immense debt of gratitude I will always owe his memory.
And now the end came swiftly. I had hurriedly furnished a couple of rooms in the little house, now ours, that I might take my mother into the purer air of Norwood, and permission was given to drive her down in an invalid carriage. The following evening she was suddenly taken worse; we lifted her into bed, and telegraphed for the doctor. But he could do nothing, and she herself felt that the hand of Death had gripped her. Selfless to the last, she thought but for my loneliness. "I am leaving you alone," she sighed from time to time; and truly I felt, with an anguish I did not dare to realise, that when she died I should indeed be alone on earth.
And now the end came quickly. I had rushed to furnish a couple of rooms in the little house, now ours, so I could bring my mother into the cleaner air of Norwood, and I got permission to drive her down in an invalid carriage. The next evening she suddenly got worse; we helped her into bed and called for the doctor. But he couldn’t do anything, and she herself sensed that Death had a grip on her. Selfless to the end, she only worried about my loneliness. "I'm leaving you all alone," she sighed from time to time; and I truly felt, with a pain I didn’t dare acknowledge, that when she died I would indeed be alone in the world.
For two days longer she was with me, my beloved, and I never left her side for five minutes. On May 10th the weakness passed into gentle delirium, but even then the faithful eyes followed me about the room, until at length they closed for ever, and as the sun sank low in the heavens, the breath came slower and slower, till the silence of Death came down upon us and she was gone.
For two more days, she stayed with me, my love, and I never left her side for even a moment. On May 10th, her weakness turned into a gentle delirium, but even then, her loyal eyes watched me around the room, until finally they closed forever. As the sun set lower in the sky, her breath became slower and slower until the silence of death enveloped us, and she was gone.
Stunned and dazed with the loss, I went mechanically through the next few days. I would have none touch my dead save myself and her favourite sister, who was with us at the last. Cold and dry-eyed I remained, even when they hid her from me with the coffin-lid, even all the dreary way to Kensal Green where her husband and her baby-son were sleeping, and when we left her alone in the chill earth, damp with the rains of spring. I could not believe that our day-dream was dead and buried, and the home in ruins ere yet it was fairly built. Truly, my "house was left unto me desolate," and the rooms, filled with sunshine but unlighted by her presence, seemed to echo from their bare walls, "You are all alone."
Stunned and numb from the loss, I went through the next few days on autopilot. I didn’t want anyone to touch my deceased loved one except myself and her favorite sister, who was with us at the end. Cold and dry-eyed I stayed, even when they covered her with the coffin lid, throughout the gloomy journey to Kensal Green where her husband and baby son were resting, and when we left her alone in the cold earth, damp from the spring rains. I couldn’t believe that our daydream was dead and buried, and that our home was in ruins before it was even built. Truly, my "house was left unto me desolate," and the rooms, filled with sunshine but dark without her presence, seemed to echo from their bare walls, "You are all alone."
But my little daughter was there, and her sweet face and dancing feet broke the solitude, while her imperious claims for love and tendance forced me into attention to the daily needs of life. And life was hard in those days of spring and summer, resources small, and work difficult to find. In truth, the two months after my mother's death were the dreariest my life has known, and they were months of tolerably hard struggle. The little house in Colby Road taxed my slender resources heavily, and the search for work was not yet successful. I do not know how I should have managed but for the help ever at hand, of Mr. and Mrs. Thomas Scott. During this time I wrote for Mr. Scott pamphlets on Inspiration, Atonement, Mediation and Salvation, Eternal Torture, Religious Education of Children, Natural v. Revealed Religion, and the few guineas thus earned were very valuable. Their house, too, was always open to me, and this was no small help, for often in those days the little money I had was enough to buy food for two but not enough to buy it for three, and I would go out and study all day at the British Museum, so as to "have my dinner in town," the said dinner being conspicuous by its absence. If I was away for two evenings running from the hospitable house in the terrace, Mrs. Scott would come down to see what had happened, and many a time the supper there was of real physical value to me. Well might I write, in 1879, when Thomas Scott lay dead: "It was Thomas Scott whose house was open to me when my need was sorest, and he never knew, this generous, noble heart, how sometimes, when I went in, weary and overdone, from a long day's study in the British Museum, with scarce food to struggle through the day—he never knew how his genial, 'Well, little lady,' in welcoming tone, cheered the then utter loneliness of my life. To no living man—save one—do I owe the debt of gratitude that I owe to Thomas Scott."
But my little daughter was there, and her sweet face and dancing feet broke the solitude, while her strong demands for love and attention forced me to pay attention to the daily needs of life. And life was tough during those spring and summer days, with limited resources and work hard to find. In fact, the two months after my mother's death were the bleakest of my life and involved quite a struggle. The little house on Colby Road put a heavy strain on my tight budget, and I hadn’t yet found work. I don’t know how I would have managed without the constant support of Mr. and Mrs. Thomas Scott. During this time, I wrote pamphlets for Mr. Scott on Inspiration, Atonement, Mediation and Salvation, Eternal Torture, Religious Education of Children, Natural v. Revealed Religion, and the few guineas I earned were very important. Their house was always open to me, which was a huge help because often during those days, the little money I had was barely enough to buy food for two, let alone three. I would go out and study all day at the British Museum so I could "have my dinner in town," that dinner often being notably absent. If I was away for two evenings in a row from their welcoming home in the terrace, Mrs. Scott would come down to check on me, and many times the supper there was genuinely beneficial to me. It was right for me to write, in 1879, when Thomas Scott had passed away: "It was Thomas Scott whose house was open to me when I needed it the most, and he never knew, this generous, noble heart, how sometimes, when I walked in, tired and worn out from a long day of studying at the British Museum, with barely enough food to get through the day—he never knew how his cheerful, 'Well, little lady,' when welcoming me, lifted the deep loneliness of my life. To no living man—except one—do I owe the debt of gratitude that I owe to Thomas Scott."
The small amount of jewellery I possessed, and all my superfluous clothes, were turned into more necessary articles, and the child, at least, never suffered a solitary touch of want. My servant Mary was a wonderful contriver, and kept house on the very slenderest funds that could be put into a servant's hands, and she also made the little place so bright and fresh-looking that it was always a pleasure to go into it. Recalling those days of "hard living," I can now look on them without regret. More, I am glad to have passed through them, for they have taught me how to sympathise with those who are struggling as I struggled then, and I never can hear the words fall from pale lips, "I am hungry," without remembering how painful a thing hunger is, and without curing that pain, at least for the moment.
The small amount of jewelry I had, along with all my extra clothes, was turned into more essential items, ensuring that the child never experienced a moment of hunger. My servant Mary was an incredible resourceful person; she managed to run the household on the tightest budget possible for a servant, and she made the little place so bright and welcoming that it was always a joy to enter. Looking back on those days of "hard living," I can now reflect on them without regret. In fact, I'm grateful to have gone through them because they taught me to empathize with those who are struggling as I once did, and I can never hear the words "I am hungry" come from pale lips without recalling the painful experience of hunger and feeling compelled to alleviate that pain, even if just for a moment.
The presence of the child was good for me, keeping alive my aching, lonely heart: she would play contentedly for hours while I was working, a word now and again being enough for happiness; when I had to go out without her, she would run to the door with me, and the "good-bye" would come from down-curved lips; she was ever watching at the window for my return, and the sunny face was always the first to welcome me home. Many and many a time have I been coming home, weary, hungry, and heart-sick, and the glimpse of the little face watching has reminded me that I must not carry in a grave face to sadden my darling, and the effort to throw off the depression for her sake threw it off altogether, and brought back the sunshine. She was the sweetness and joy of my life, my curly-headed darling, with her red-gold hair and glorious eyes, and passionate, wilful, loving nature. The torn, bruised tendrils of my heart gradually twined round this little life; she gave something to love and to tend, and thus gratified one of the strongest impulses of my nature.
The presence of the child was good for me, keeping my aching, lonely heart alive: she would happily play for hours while I was working, and a few words now and then were enough to make her happy; when I had to leave without her, she would run to the door with me, her lips turned down in a sad "good-bye"; she was always watching at the window for my return, and her sunny face was always the first to welcome me home. Many times I came home feeling worn out, hungry, and heartbroken, and just seeing her little face waiting for me reminded me not to walk in with a serious expression that would sadden my darling, and the effort to shake off my gloom for her sake lifted it completely, bringing back the sunshine. She was the sweetness and joy of my life, my curly-haired darling, with her red-gold hair and bright eyes, and her passionate, headstrong, loving personality. The torn, bruised pieces of my heart gradually wrapped around this little life; she gave me something to love and care for, satisfying one of the strongest impulses of my nature.
CHAPTER VI.
Chapter 6.
CHARLES BRADLAUGH.
During all these months the intellectual life had not stood still; I was slowly, cautiously feeling my way onward. And in the intellectual and social side of my life I found a delight unknown in the old days of bondage. First, there was the joy of freedom, the joy of speaking out frankly and honestly each thought. Truly, I had a right to say: "With a great price obtained I this freedom," and having paid the price, I revelled in the liberty I had bought. Mr. Scott's valuable library was at my service; his keen brain challenged my opinions, probed my assertions, and suggested phases of thought hitherto untouched. I studied harder than ever, and the study now was unchecked by any fear of possible consequences. I had nothing left of the old faith save belief in "a God," and that began slowly to melt away. The Theistic axiom: "If there be a God at all He must be at least as good as His highest creature," began with an "if," and to that "if" I turned my attention. "Of all impossible things," writes Miss Frances Power Cobbe, "the most impossible must surely be that a man should dream something of the good and the noble, and that it should prove at last that his Creator was less good and less noble than he had dreamed." But, I questioned, are we sure that there is a Creator? Granted that, if there is, He must be above His highest creature, but—is there such a being? "The ground," says the Rev. Charles Voysey, "on which our belief in God rests is man. Man, parent of Bibles and Churches, inspirer of all good thoughts and good deeds. Man, the masterpiece of God's thought on earth. Man, the text-book of all spiritual knowledge. Neither miraculous nor infallible, man is nevertheless the only trustworthy record of the Divine mind in things pertaining to God. Man's reason, conscience, and affections are the only true revelation of his Maker." But what if God were only man's own image reflected in the mirror of man's mind? What if man were the creator, not the revelation of his God?
During all these months, my intellectual life hadn’t just stopped; I was gradually and carefully finding my way forward. In both the intellectual and social aspects of my life, I discovered a pleasure I had never known in the days of restriction. First, there was the joy of freedom—the joy of openly and honestly expressing every thought. I truly had a right to say, "I paid a high price for this freedom," and after paying that price, I reveled in the liberty I had earned. Mr. Scott's valuable library was at my disposal; his insightful mind challenged my views, examined my statements, and introduced ideas I had never considered before. I studied harder than ever, free from any fear of potential consequences. The only remnants of my old faith were my belief in "a God," but that slowly began to fade. The Theistic idea: "If there is a God at all, He must be at least as good as His highest creature," started with an "if," and that "if" captured my attention. "Of all impossible things," writes Miss Frances Power Cobbe, "the most impossible must surely be that a man should dream something of the good and the noble, and that it should turn out that his Creator was less good and less noble than he had envisioned." But I questioned, are we sure there is a Creator? It's true that, if there is one, He must be superior to His highest creature, but—is such a being real? "The basis," says the Rev. Charles Voysey, "of our belief in God lies in man. Man, the origin of Bibles and Churches, the inspirer of all good thoughts and deeds. Man, the finest expression of God's thought on earth. Man, the textbook of all spiritual knowledge. Though not miraculous or infallible, man remains the only reliable record of the Divine mind regarding matters related to God. Man's reason, conscience, and emotions are the only true revelations of his Maker." But what if God were simply an image of man reflected in the mirror of man's mind? What if man were the creator, not the revelation of his God?
It was inevitable that such thoughts should arise after the more palpably indefensible doctrines of Christianity had been discarded. Once encourage the human mind to think, and bounds to the thinking can never again be set by authority. Once challenge traditional beliefs, and the challenge will ring on every shield which is hanging in the intellectual arena. Around me was the atmosphere of conflict, and, freed from its long repression, my mind leapt up to share in the strife with a joy in the intellectual tumult, the intellectual strain.
It was only natural for such thoughts to come up after the obviously flawed teachings of Christianity had been abandoned. Once you let the human mind explore, there’s no way to put limits on that thinking by just relying on authority. Once you question traditional beliefs, that challenge will echo in every argument in the intellectual battleground. Surrounding me was a sense of conflict, and, finally free from its long suppression, my mind rushed to join the fight, finding joy in the chaos of ideas and the mental struggle.
I often attended South Place Chapel, where Moncure D. Conway was then preaching, and discussion with him did something towards widening my views on the deeper religious problems; I re-read Dean Mansel's "Bampton Lectures," and they did much towards turning me in the direction of Atheism; I re-read Mill's "Examination of Sir William Hamilton's Philosophy," and studied carefully Comte's "Philosophie Positive." Gradually I recognised the limitations of human intelligence and its incapacity for understanding the nature of God, presented as infinite and absolute; I had given up the use of prayer as a blasphemous absurdity, since an all-wise God could not need my suggestions, nor an all-good God require my promptings. But God fades out of the daily life of those who never pray; a personal God who is not a Providence is a superfluity; when from the heaven does not smile a listening Father, it soon becomes an empty space, whence resounds no echo of man's cry. I could then reach no loftier conception of the Divine than that offered by the orthodox, and that broke hopelessly away as I analysed it.
I often went to South Place Chapel, where Moncure D. Conway was preaching at the time, and talking with him helped broaden my perspective on deeper religious issues. I re-read Dean Mansel's "Bampton Lectures," which pushed me towards Atheism, and I also revisited Mill's "Examination of Sir William Hamilton's Philosophy" and studied Comte's "Philosophie Positive" carefully. Slowly, I began to recognize the limits of human understanding and its inability to grasp the nature of God, who is described as infinite and absolute. I had stopped praying because it felt like a blasphemous absurdity; an all-wise God wouldn't need my suggestions, and an all-good God wouldn't need my promptings. But God fades from the lives of those who never pray; a personal God who isn’t a guiding Providence becomes unnecessary. When there isn’t a listening Father in heaven, it soon feels like an empty space, echoing with no response to human cries. I couldn’t reach a higher understanding of the Divine than what orthodox beliefs offered, and that fell apart as I examined it more closely.
At last I said to Mr. Scott, "Mr. Scott, may I write a tract on the nature and existence of God?"
At last, I said to Mr. Scott, "Mr. Scott, can I write a paper on the nature and existence of God?"
He glanced at me keenly. "Ah, little lady, you are facing, then, that problem at last? I thought it must come. Write away."
He looked at me intently. "Ah, young lady, so you’re finally dealing with that issue? I knew it would happen. Go ahead and write."
While this pamphlet was in MS. an event occurred which coloured all my succeeding life. I met Charles Bradlaugh. One day in the late spring, talking with Mrs. Conway—one of the sweetest and steadiest natures whom it has been my lot to meet, and to whom, as to her husband, I owe much for kindness generously shown when I was poor and had but few friends—she asked me if I had been to the Hall of Science, Old Street. I answered, with the stupid, ignorant reflection of other people's prejudices so sadly common, "No, I have never been there. Mr. Bradlaugh is rather a rough sort of speaker, is he not?"
While this pamphlet was in draft form, something happened that changed my life forever. I met Charles Bradlaugh. One day in late spring, while chatting with Mrs. Conway—one of the kindest and most dependable people I've ever met, to whom I owe a lot for the generosity she and her husband showed me during my tough times when I had few friends—she asked me if I had been to the Hall of Science on Old Street. I responded, reflecting the common prejudices of others with a clueless remark, "No, I’ve never been there. Mr. Bradlaugh is kind of a rough speaker, isn’t he?"
"He is the finest speaker of Saxon-English that I have ever heard," she answered, "except, perhaps, John Bright, and his power over a crowd is something marvellous. Whether you agree with him or not, you should hear him."
"He is the best speaker of Saxon-English I've ever heard," she replied, "except maybe John Bright, and his ability to connect with a crowd is truly amazing. Whether you agree with him or not, you should definitely listen to him."
CHARLES BRADLAUGH M.P.
In the following July I went into the shop of Mr. Edward Truelove, 256, High Holborn, in search of some Comtist publications, having come across his name as a publisher in the course of my study at the British Museum. On the counter was a copy of the National Reformer, and, attracted by the title, I bought it. I read it placidly in the omnibus on my way to Victoria Station, and found it excellent, and was sent into convulsions of inward merriment when, glancing up, I saw an old gentleman gazing at me, with horror speaking from every line of his countenance. To see a young woman, respectably dressed in crape, reading an Atheistic journal, had evidently upset his peace of mind, and he looked so hard at the paper that I was tempted to offer it to him, but repressed the mischievous inclination.
In the following July, I went into the shop of Mr. Edward Truelove, 256 High Holborn, looking for some Comtist publications after discovering his name as a publisher during my research at the British Museum. On the counter was a copy of the National Reformer, and intrigued by the title, I bought it. I read it calmly on the bus on my way to Victoria Station and found it great, nearly bursting with laughter when I looked up and saw an old gentleman staring at me, horror written all over his face. Clearly, seeing a young woman, dressed respectably in black, reading an Atheistic journal had disturbed his peace of mind, and he looked at the paper so intently that I was tempted to offer it to him but held back my playful urge.
This first copy of the paper with which I was to be so closely connected bore date July 19, 1874, and contained two long letters from a Mr. Arnold of Northampton, attacking Mr. Bradlaugh, and a brief and singularly self-restrained answer from the latter. There was also an article on the National Secular Society, which made me aware that there was an organisation devoted to the propagandism of Free Thought. I felt that if such a society existed, I ought to belong to it, and I consequently wrote a short note to the editor of the National Reformer, asking whether it was necessary for a person to profess Atheism before being admitted to the Society. The answer appeared in the National Reformer:—
This first copy of the paper, which I was going to be closely connected to, was dated July 19, 1874, and included two lengthy letters from a Mr. Arnold of Northampton, attacking Mr. Bradlaugh, along with a brief and notably restrained response from Mr. Bradlaugh. There was also an article about the National Secular Society, which made me realize that there was an organization dedicated to promoting Free Thought. I felt that if such a society existed, I should join it, so I wrote a short note to the editor of the National Reformer, asking whether it was necessary for someone to declare themselves an Atheist to become a member of the Society. The response was published in the National Reformer:—
"S.E.—To be a member of the National Secular Society it is only necessary to be able honestly to accept the four principles, as given in the National Reformer of June 14th. This any person may do without being required to avow himself an Atheist. Candidly, we can see no logical resting-place between the entire acceptance of authority, as in the Roman Catholic Church, and the most extreme Rationalism. If, on again looking to the Principles of the Society, you can accept them, we repeat to you our invitation."
"S.E.—To join the National Secular Society, all you need to do is honestly accept the four principles outlined in the National Reformer from June 14th. Anyone can do this without having to declare themselves an Atheist. Honestly, we don't see any logical middle ground between fully accepting authority, like in the Roman Catholic Church, and the most extreme Rationalism. If you’re able to accept the Principles of the Society upon reviewing them, we repeat our invitation to you."
I sent my name in as an active member, and find it is recorded in the National Reformer of August 9th. Having received an intimation that Londoners could receive their certificates at the Hall of Science from Mr. Bradlaugh on any Sunday evening, I betook myself thither, and it was on August 2, 1874, that I first set foot in a Freethought hall. The Hall was crowded to suffocation, and, at the very moment announced for the lecture, a roar of cheering burst forth, a tall figure passed swiftly up the Hall to the platform, and, with a slight bow in answer to the voluminous greeting, Charles Bradlaugh took his seat. I looked at him with interest, impressed and surprised. The grave, quiet, stern, strong face, the massive head, the keen eyes, the magnificent breadth and height of forehead—was this the man I had heard described as a blatant agitator, an ignorant demagogue?
I submitted my name as an active member, and I saw that it was listed in the National Reformer from August 9th. After I got a heads-up that people in London could pick up their certificates from Mr. Bradlaugh at the Hall of Science on any Sunday evening, I decided to go there. It was on August 2, 1874, that I first stepped into a Freethought hall. The hall was packed to the brim, and right at the time scheduled for the lecture, a loud cheer erupted. A tall figure quickly made his way to the platform, and with a slight bow in response to the enthusiastic welcome, Charles Bradlaugh took his seat. I watched him with interest, both impressed and surprised. His serious, calm, stern, and strong face, the large head, the sharp eyes, and the impressive width and height of his forehead—was this really the guy I had heard called a loudmouth agitator and an ignorant demagogue?
He began quietly and simply, tracing out the resemblances between the Krishna and the Christ myths, and as he went from point to point his voice grew in force and resonance, till it rang round the hall like a trumpet. Familiar with the subject, I could test the value of his treatment of it, and saw that his knowledge was as sound as his language was splendid. Eloquence, fire, sarcasm, pathos, passion, all in turn were bent against Christian superstition, till the great audience, carried away by the torrent of the orator's force, hung silent, breathing soft, as he went on, till the silence that followed a magnificent peroration broke the spell, and a hurricane of cheers relieved the tension.
He started off quietly and simply, outlining the similarities between the Krishna and Christ myths, and as he moved from point to point, his voice grew stronger and more powerful, filling the hall like a trumpet. Familiar with the topic, I could evaluate his approach, and I saw that his knowledge was as solid as his language was impressive. He wielded eloquence, fire, sarcasm, pathos, and passion, each in turn aimed at Christian superstition, until the vast audience, swept away by the strength of the speaker, sat in silence, breathing softly, as he continued. When the silence after his brilliant conclusion finally broke, it unleashed a storm of cheers that eased the tension.
He came down the Hall with some certificates in his hand, glanced round, and handed me mine with a questioning "Mrs. Besant?" Then he said, referring to my question as to a profession of Atheism, that he would willingly talk over the subject of Atheism with me if I would make an appointment, and offered me a book he had been using in his lecture. Long afterwards I asked him how he knew me, whom he had never seen, that he came straight to me in such fashion. He laughed and said he did not know, but, glancing over the faces, he felt sure that I was Annie Besant.
He walked down the hall with some certificates in his hand, looked around, and handed me mine while asking, "Mrs. Besant?" Then he mentioned that he would be happy to discuss the topic of Atheism with me if I set up an appointment, and offered me a book he had used in his lecture. Much later, I asked him how he recognized me, even though he had never seen me before and approached me so directly. He laughed and said he wasn't sure, but after glancing at the crowd, he felt confident that I was Annie Besant.
From that first meeting in the Hall of Science dated a friendship that lasted unbroken till Death severed the earthly bond, and that to me stretches through Death's gateway and links us together still. As friends, not as strangers, we met—swift recognition, as it were, leaping from eye to eye; and I know now that the instinctive friendliness was in very truth an outgrowth of strong friendship in other lives, and that on that August day we took up again an ancient tie, we did not begin a new one. And so in lives to come we shall meet again, and help each other as we helped each other in this. And let me here place on record, as I have done before, some word of what I owe him for his true friendship; though, indeed, how great is my debt to him I can never tell. Some of his wise phrases have ever remained in my memory. "You should never say you have an opinion on a subject until you have tried to study the strongest things said against the view to which you are inclined." "You must not think you know a subject until you are acquainted with all that the best minds have said about it." "No steady work can be done in public unless the worker study at home far more than he talks outside." "Be your own harshest judge, listen to your own speech and criticise it; read abuse of yourself and see what grains of truth are in it." "Do not waste time by reading opinions that are mere echoes of your own; read opinions you disagree with, and you will catch aspects of truth you do not readily see." Through our long comradeship he was my sternest as well as gentlest critic, pointing out to me that in a party like ours, where our own education and knowledge were above those whom we led, it was very easy to gain indiscriminate praise and unstinted admiration; on the other hand, we received from Christians equally indiscriminate abuse and hatred. It was, therefore, needful that we should be our own harshest judges, and that we should be sure that we knew thoroughly every subject that we taught. He saved me from the superficiality that my "fatal facility" of speech might so easily have induced; and when I began to taste the intoxication of easily won applause, his criticism of weak points, his challenge of weak arguments, his trained judgment, were of priceless service to me, and what of value there is in my work is very largely due to his influence, which at once stimulated and restrained.
From that first meeting in the Hall of Science, a friendship formed that remained strong until Death broke the earthly connection, and I believe it continues beyond Death's door, keeping us linked together. We met as friends, not strangers—there was an instant recognition that passed between us; I now realize that this instinctive friendliness was truly a reflection of a deep bond from previous lives, and that on that August day, we simply picked up an old connection rather than starting a new one. In future lives, we'll meet again and support each other as we have in this one. I want to acknowledge, as I have before, what I owe him for his genuine friendship; though, honestly, I can never fully express how much I owe him. Some of his wise sayings have stuck with me: "Never say you have an opinion on a topic until you've tried to understand the strongest arguments against your viewpoint." "Don't assume you understand a subject until you've explored everything the best minds have said about it." "No meaningful work can be done publicly unless the worker studies much more at home than they discuss elsewhere." "Be your own toughest critic, listen to your own words and evaluate them; read criticisms of yourself and find the grains of truth in them." "Don't waste time reading opinions that simply echo your own; read opposing views, and you'll uncover truths that aren't immediately obvious to you." Throughout our long friendship, he was both my toughest and gentlest critic, making me aware that in a group like ours, where our education and knowledge exceeded those we led, it was all too easy to receive indiscriminate praise and admiration; conversely, we faced equally blind criticism and hatred from Christians. Therefore, it was crucial that we remained our own strict judges and ensured we thoroughly understood every topic we taught. He kept me from the superficiality that my "dangerous ease" of speaking could have easily led to; when I started to enjoy the intoxication of easily received applause, his critiques of my weak points, his challenges of my flimsy arguments, and his trained judgment were invaluable to me, and much of the worth in my work is largely due to his influence, which both motivated and restrained me.
One very charming characteristic of his was his extreme courtesy in private life, especially to women. This outward polish, which sat so gracefully on his massive frame and stately presence, was foreign rather than English—for the English, as a rule, save such as go to Court, are a singularly unpolished people—and it gave his manner a peculiar charm. I asked him once where he had learned his gracious fashions that were so un-English—he would stand with uplifted hat as he asked a question of a maidservant, or handed a woman into a carriage—and he answered, with a half-smile, half-scoff, that it was only in England he was an outcast from society. In France, in Spain, in Italy, he was always welcomed among men and women of the highest social rank, and he supposed that he had unconsciously caught the foreign tricks of manner. Moreover, he was absolutely indifferent to all questions of social position; peer or artisan, it was to him exactly the same; he never seemed conscious of the distinctions of which men make so much.
One very charming trait of his was his extreme courtesy in private life, especially towards women. This outward polish, which suited his large frame and dignified presence so well, felt more foreign than English—since, as a rule, the English are a pretty unpolished people, except for those who go to Court—and it gave his demeanor a unique charm. I once asked him where he learned his gracious ways that seemed so un-English—he would tip his hat while asking a maidservant a question or help a woman into a carriage—and he replied, with a mix of a smile and a scoff, that it was only in England that he felt like an outcast from society. In France, Spain, and Italy, he was always welcomed among people of the highest social rank, and he figured he had unconsciously picked up those foreign manners. Moreover, he was completely indifferent to questions of social status; whether a peer or a tradesman, it was all the same to him; he never seemed aware of the distinctions that others emphasize so much.
Our first conversation, after the meeting at the Hall of Science, took place a day or two later in his little study in 29, Turner Street, Commercial Road, a wee room overflowing with books, in which he looked singularly out of place. Later I learned that he had failed in business in consequence of Christian persecution, and, resolute to avoid bankruptcy, he had sold everything he possessed, save his books, had sent his wife and daughters to live in the country with his father-in-law, had taken two tiny rooms in Turner Street, where he could live for a mere trifle, and had bent himself to the task of paying off the liabilities he had incurred—incurred in consequence of his battling for political and religious liberty. I took with me my MS. essay "On the Nature and Existence of God," and it served as the basis for our conversation; we found there was little difference in our views. "You have thought yourself into Atheism without knowing it," he said, and all that I changed in the essay was the correction of the vulgar error that the Atheist says "there is no God," by the insertion of a passage disclaiming this position from an essay pointed out to me by Mr. Bradlaugh. And at this stage of my life-story, it is necessary to put very clearly the position I took up and held so many years as Atheist, because otherwise the further evolution into Theosophist will be wholly incomprehensible. It will lead me into metaphysics, and to some readers these are dry, but if any one would understand the evolution of a Soul he must be willing to face the questions which the Soul faces in its growth. And the position of the philosophic Atheist is so misunderstood that it is the more necessary to put it plainly, and Theosophists, at least, in reading it, will see how Theosophy stepped in finally as a further evolution towards knowledge, rendering rational, and therefore acceptable, the loftiest spirituality that the human mind can as yet conceive.
Our first conversation after the meeting at the Hall of Science happened a day or two later in his small study on 29 Turner Street, Commercial Road, a cramped room packed with books, where he seemed quite out of place. Later, I found out that he had gone bankrupt due to Christian persecution, and determined to avoid financial ruin, he sold everything he owned, except for his books. He sent his wife and daughters to live in the countryside with his father-in-law, and moved into two tiny rooms on Turner Street, where he could afford the rent. He dedicated himself to paying off the debts he had incurred while fighting for political and religious freedom. I brought along my manuscript essay "On the Nature and Existence of God," which became the basis of our discussion; we discovered that our views were very similar. "You've thought yourself into Atheism without realizing it," he said, and the only change I made to the essay was correcting the common misconception that Atheists claim "there is no God," by adding a passage that clarified this viewpoint from an essay recommended to me by Mr. Bradlaugh. At this point in my life story, I need to clearly outline the position I maintained for many years as an Atheist because otherwise, my later evolution into Theosophy would be completely unclear. This transition leads me into metaphysics, which might seem dry to some readers, but anyone wanting to understand the evolution of a soul must engage with the questions that arise during its growth. The views of philosophical Atheism are so often misunderstood that it's crucial to state them clearly, and Theosophists, at least, will see how Theosophy ultimately serves as a further development toward understanding, making the highest forms of spirituality that the human mind can currently conceive rational and therefore acceptable.
In order that I may not colour my past thinkings by my present thought, I take my statements from pamphlets written when I adopted the Atheistic philosophy and while I continued an adherent thereof. No charge can then be made that I have softened my old opinions for the sake of reconciling them with those now held.
In order to avoid letting my current thoughts influence my past views, I refer to pamphlets I wrote when I embraced Atheism and while I still believed in it. This way, there’s no accusation that I’ve toned down my earlier beliefs to make them fit with what I think now.
CHAPTER VII.
CHAPTER 7.
ATHEISM AS I KNEW AND TAUGHT IT.
The first step which leaves behind the idea of a limited and personal God, an extra-cosmic Creator, and leads the student to the point whence Atheism and Pantheism diverge, is the recognition that a profound unity of substance underlies the infinite diversities of natural phenomena, the discernment of the One beneath the Many. This was the step I had taken ere my first meeting with Charles Bradlaugh, and I had written:—
The first step that moves away from the notion of a limited and personal God, an external Creator, and leads someone to the point where Atheism and Pantheism split, is realizing that there is a deep unity of substance beneath the endless variety of natural phenomena, recognizing the One within the Many. I had already taken this step before my first meeting with Charles Bradlaugh, and I had written:—
"It is manifest to all who will take the trouble to think steadily, that there can be only one eternal and underived substance, and that matter and spirit must, therefore, only be varying manifestations of this one substance. The distinction made between matter and spirit is, then, simply made for the sake of convenience and clearness, just as we may distinguish perception from judgment, both of which, however, are alike processes of thought. Matter is, in its constituent elements, the same as spirit; existence is one, however manifold in its phenomena; life is one, however multiform in its evolution. As the heat of the coal differs from the coal itself, so do memory, perception, judgment, emotion, and will differ from the brain which is the instrument of thought. But nevertheless they are all equally products of the one sole substance, varying only in their conditions.... I find myself, then, compelled to believe that one only substance exists in all around me; that the universe is eternal, or at least eternal so far as our faculties are concerned, since we cannot, as some one has quaintly put it, 'get to the outside of everywhere'; that a Deity cannot be conceived of as apart from the universe; that the Worker and the Work are inextricably interwoven, and in some sense eternally and indissolubly combined. Having got so far, we will proceed to examine into the possibility of proving the existence of that one essence popularly called by the name of God, under the conditions strictly defined by the orthodox. Having demonstrated, as I hope to do, that the orthodox idea of God is unreasonable and absurd, we will endeavour to ascertain whether any idea of God, worthy to be called an idea, is attainable in the present state of our faculties." "The Deity must of necessity be that one and only substance out of which all things are evolved, under the uncreated conditions and eternal laws of the universe; He must be, as Theodore Parker somewhat oddly puts it, 'the materiality of matter as well as the spirituality of spirit'—i.e., these must both be products of this one substance; a truth which is readily accepted as soon as spirit and matter are seen to be but different modes of one essence. Thus we identify substance with the all-comprehending and vivifying force of nature, and in so doing we simply reduce to a physical impossibility the existence of the Being described by the orthodox as a God possessing the attributes of personality. The Deity becomes identified with nature, co-extensive with the universe, but the God of the orthodox no longer exists; we may change the signification of God, and use the word to express a different idea, but we can no longer mean by it a Personal Being in the orthodox sense, possessing an individuality which divides Him from the rest of the universe."[3]
"It is clear to anyone who takes the time to think carefully that there can only be one eternal and self-existent substance, and that matter and spirit must, therefore, just be different expressions of this one substance. The distinction between matter and spirit is simply made for convenience and clarity, just like we can distinguish between perception and judgment, both of which are processes of thought. Matter is, at its core, the same as spirit; existence is one, although it appears in many forms; life is one, even as it evolves in many ways. Just like the heat from coal is different from the coal itself, memory, perception, judgment, emotion, and will differ from the brain, which is the tool of thought. However, they are all products of the same single substance, differing only in their conditions.... I find myself compelled to believe that only one substance exists all around me; that the universe is eternal, or at least eternal in terms of our faculties, since we cannot—as someone has whimsically said—'get to the outside of everywhere'; that a Deity cannot be thought of as separate from the universe; that the Creator and the Creation are deeply intertwined, and in some sense eternally and unbreakably connected. Having come this far, we will proceed to explore the possibility of proving the existence of that one essence commonly referred to as God, under the definitions strictly outlined by traditional beliefs. After demonstrating, as I hope to do, that the traditional idea of God is unreasonable and absurd, we will try to determine whether any worthy idea of God can be attained given our current understanding." "The Deity must necessarily be that one and only substance from which all things arise, under the uncreated conditions and eternal laws of the universe; He must be, as Theodore Parker somewhat oddly puts it, 'the materiality of matter as well as the spirituality of spirit'—i.e., both must be products of this one substance; a truth that is easily accepted once we see that spirit and matter are just different modes of one essence. Thus, we identify substance with the all-encompassing and life-giving force of nature, and by doing so, we essentially render the existence of the Being described by traditional beliefs—a God with personal attributes—physically impossible. The Deity becomes synonymous with nature, extending throughout the universe, but the God of orthodox beliefs no longer exists; we can change the meaning of God and use the word to represent a different concept, but we can no longer refer to it as a Personal Being in the traditional sense, possessing an individuality that separates Him from the rest of the universe."[3]
Proceeding to search whether any idea of God was attainable, I came to the conclusion that evidence of the existence of a conscious Power was lacking, and that the ordinary proofs offered were inconclusive; that we could grasp phenomena and no more. "There appears, also, to be a possibility of a mind in nature, though we have seen that intelligence is, strictly speaking, impossible. There cannot be perception, memory, comparison, or judgment, but may there not be a perfect mind, unchanging, calm, and still? Our faculties fail us when we try to estimate the Deity, and we are betrayed into contradictions and absurdities; but does it therefore follow that He is not? It seems to me that to deny His existence is to overstep the boundaries of our thought-power almost as much as to try and define it. We pretend to know the Unknown if we declare Him to be the Unknowable. Unknowable to us at present, yes! Unknowable for ever, in other possible stages of existence? We have reached a region into which we cannot penetrate; here all human faculties fail us; we bow our heads on 'the threshold of the unknown.'
As I explored whether any concept of God could be achieved, I concluded that there was no evidence for the existence of a conscious Power, and that the usual arguments presented were inconclusive; we could only understand phenomena and nothing beyond that. "There also seems to be a possibility of a mind in nature, although we've established that intelligence, strictly speaking, isn't possible. There cannot be perception, memory, comparison, or judgment, but could there be a perfect mind, unchanging, calm, and still? Our abilities falter when we attempt to assess the Deity, leading us to contradictions and absurdities; but does that mean He is not? It seems to me that denying His existence pushes the limits of our understanding almost as much as trying to define Him. We act as if we know the Unknown by calling Him the Unknowable. Unknowable to us at this moment, yes! Unknowable forever in other stages of existence? We've entered a realm that we can't penetrate; here, all human abilities fail us; we bow our heads at 'the threshold of the unknown.'
"'And the ear of man cannot hear, and the eye of man cannot see,
But if we could see and hear, this vision—were it not He?'
"'And man can't hear or see,
But if we could see and hear, wouldn't this vision be Him?'"
Thus sings Alfred Tennyson, the poet of metaphysics: 'if we could see and hear.' Alas! it is always an 'if!'[4]
Thus sings Alfred Tennyson, the poet of metaphysics: 'if we could see and hear.' Unfortunately, it's always an 'if!'[4]
This refusal to believe without evidence, and the declaration that anything "behind phenomena" is unknowable to man as at present constituted—these are the two chief planks of the Atheistic platform, as Atheism was held by Charles Bradlaugh and myself. In 1876 this position was clearly reaffirmed. "It is necessary to put briefly the Atheistic position, for no position is more continuously and more persistently misrepresented. Atheism is without God. It does not assert no God. 'The Atheist does not say "There is no God," but he says, "I know not what you mean by God; I am without idea of God; the word God is to me a sound conveying no clear or distinct affirmation. I do not deny God, because I cannot deny that of which I have no conception, and the conception of which, by its affirmer, is so imperfect that he is unable to define it to me."' (Charles Bradlaugh, "Freethinker's Text-book," p. 118.) The Atheist neither affirms nor denies the possibility of phenomena differing from those recognised by human experience.... As his knowledge of the universe is extremely limited and very imperfect, the Atheist declines either to deny or to affirm anything with regard to modes of existence of which he knows nothing. Further, he refuses to believe anything concerning that of which he knows nothing, and affirms that that which can never be the subject of knowledge ought never to be the object of belief. While the Atheist, then, neither affirms nor denies the unknown, he does deny all which conflicts with the knowledge to which he has already attained. For example, he knows that one is one, and that three times one are three; he denies that three times one are, or can be, one. The position of the Atheist is a clear and a reasonable one: I know nothing about 'God,' and therefore I do not believe in Him or in it; what you tell me about your God is self-contradictory, and is therefore incredible. I do not deny 'God,' which is an unknown tongue to me; I do deny your God, who is an impossibility. I am without God."[5] Up to 1887 I find myself writing on the same lines: "No man can rationally affirm 'There is no God,' until the word 'God' has for him a definite meaning, and until everything that exists is known to him, and known with what Leibnitz calls 'perfect knowledge.' The Atheist's denial of the Gods begins only when these Gods are defined or described. Never yet has a God been defined in terms which were not palpably self-contradictory and absurd; never yet has a God been described so that a concept of Him was made possible to human thought—Nor is anything gained by the assertors of Deity when they allege that He is incomprehensible. If 'God' exists and is incomprehensible, His incomprehensibility is an admirable reason for being silent about Him, but can never justify the affirmation of self-contradictory propositions, and the threatening of people with damnation if they do not accept them."[6] "The belief of the Atheist stops where his evidence stops. He believes in the existence of the universe, judging the accessible proof thereof to be adequate, and he finds in this universe sufficient cause for the happening of all phenomena. He finds no intellectual satisfaction in placing a gigantic conundrum behind the universe, which only adds its own unintelligibility to the already sufficiently difficult problem of existence. Our lungs are not fitted to breathe beyond the atmosphere which surrounds our globe, and our faculties cannot breathe outside the atmosphere of the phenomenal."[7] And I summed up this essay with the words: "I do not believe in God. My mind finds no grounds on which to build up a reasonable faith. My heart revolts against the spectre of an Almighty Indifference to the pain of sentient beings. My conscience rebels against the injustice, the cruelty, the inequality, which surround me on every side. But I believe in Man. In man's redeeming power; in man's remoulding energy; in man's approaching triumph, through knowledge, love, and work."[8]
This refusal to believe without evidence, and the statement that anything "behind phenomena" is unknowable to humans as we are now—these are the two main points of the Atheistic platform, as Atheism was understood by Charles Bradlaugh and me. In 1876, this position was clearly reaffirmed. "It's important to briefly explain the Atheistic stance, as no position is more frequently and consistently misrepresented. Atheism is without God. It does not claim no God. 'The Atheist does not say "There is no God," but he says, "I don’t know what you mean by God; I have no concept of God; the word God is just a sound to me, conveying no clear or distinct meaning. I do not deny God, because I cannot deny what I do not understand, and the concept of which, by its supporter, is so vague that he cannot define it for me."' (Charles Bradlaugh, "Freethinker's Text-book," p. 118.) The Atheist neither affirms nor denies the possibility of phenomena that differ from those recognized by human experience.... Since his understanding of the universe is extremely limited and very imperfect, the Atheist chooses neither to deny nor affirm anything regarding modes of existence of which he knows nothing. Furthermore, he refuses to believe anything about what he knows nothing, and asserts that what can never be known should never be believed. While the Atheist neither affirms nor denies the unknown, he does reject anything that conflicts with the knowledge he has already achieved. For example, he knows that one is one, and that three times one equals three; he denies that three times one could be one. The Atheist's position is clear and reasonable: I know nothing about 'God,' and therefore I do not believe in Him or it; what you tell me about your God is self-contradictory and therefore unbelievable. I do not deny 'God,' which is a foreign concept to me; I do deny your God, who is impossible. I am without God."[5] Up to 1887, I find myself writing along the same lines: "No one can rationally assert 'There is no God,' until the word 'God' has a definite meaning for them and until everything that exists is known to them, and known with what Leibnitz calls 'perfect knowledge.' The Atheist's denial of the Gods only begins when these Gods are defined or described. Never has a God been defined in terms that were not clearly self-contradictory and absurd; never has a God been described in a way that made a concept of Him possible for human thought—Nor does it benefit those who assert Deity to claim that He is incomprehensible. If 'God' exists and is incomprehensible, His incomprehensibility is a good reason to remain silent about Him, but can never justify asserting self-contradictory claims and threatening people with damnation if they do not accept them."[6] "The belief of the Atheist ends where his evidence ends. He believes in the existence of the universe, judging the available proof to be sufficient, and he finds in this universe enough cause for all phenomena to happen. He finds no intellectual satisfaction in placing a huge mystery behind the universe, which only adds its own confusion to the already complicated issue of existence. Our lungs are not built to breathe beyond the atmosphere surrounding our planet, and our capabilities cannot function outside the atmosphere of the phenomenal."[7] And I concluded this essay with the words: "I do not believe in God. My mind finds no basis to establish a reasonable faith. My heart rejects the idea of an Almighty Indifference to the suffering of sentient beings. My conscience fights against the injustice, cruelty, and inequality that surround me on all sides. But I believe in Humanity. In humanity's redeeming power; in humanity's transformative energy; in humanity's forthcoming triumph through knowledge, love, and effort."[8]
These views of existence naturally colour all views of life and of the existence of the Soul. And here steps in the profound difference between Atheism and Pantheism; both posit an Existence at present inscrutable by human faculties, of which all phenomena are modes; but to the Atheist that Existence manifests as Force-Matter, unconscious, unintelligent, while to the Pantheist it manifests as Life-Matter, conscious, intelligent. To the one, life and consciousness are attributes, properties, dependent upon arrangements of matter; to the other they are fundamental, essential, and only limited in their manifestation by arrangements of matter. Despite the attraction held for me in Spinoza's luminous arguments, the over-mastering sway which Science was beginning to exercise over me drove me to seek for the explanation of all problems of life and mind at the hands of the biologist and the chemist. They had done so much, explained so much, could they not explain all? Surely, I thought, the one safe ground is that of experiment, and the remembered agony of doubt made me very slow to believe where I could not prove. So I was fain to regard life as an attribute, and this again strengthened the Atheistic position. "Scientifically regarded, life is not an entity but a property; it is not a mode of existence, but a characteristic of certain modes. Life is the result of an arrangement of matter, and when rearrangement occurs the former result can no longer be present; we call the result of the changed arrangement death. Life and death are two convenient words for expressing the general outcome of two arrangements of matter, one of which is always found to precede the other."[9] And then, having resorted to chemistry for one illustration, I took another from one of those striking and easily grasped analogies, facility for seeing and presenting which has ever been one of the secrets of my success as a propagandist. Like pictures, they impress the mind of the hearer with a vivid sense of reality. "Every one knows the exquisite iridiscence of mother-of-pearl, the tender, delicate hues which melt into each other, glowing with soft radiance. How different is the dull, dead surface of a piece of wax. Yet take that dull, black wax and mould it so closely to the surface of the mother-of-pearl that it shall take every delicate marking of the shell, and when you raise it the seven-hued glory shall smile at you from the erstwhile colourless surface. For, though it be to the naked eye imperceptible, all the surface of the mother-of-pearl is in delicate ridges and furrows, like the surface of a newly-ploughed field; and when the waves of light come dashing up against the ridged surface, they are broken like the waves on a shingly shore, and are flung backwards, so that they cross each other and the oncoming waves; and, as every ray of white light is made up of waves of seven colours, and these waves differ in length each from the others, the fairy ridges fling them backward separately, and each ray reaches the eye by itself; so that the colour of the mother-of-pearl is really the spray of the light waves, and comes from arrangement of matter once again. Give the dull, black wax the same ridges and furrows, and its glory shall differ in nothing from that of the shell. To apply our illustration: as the colour belongs to one arrangement of matter and the dead surface to another, so life belongs to some arrangements of matter and is their resultant, while the resultant of other arrangements is death."[10]
These views of existence naturally influence all perspectives on life and the existence of the Soul. This is where the significant difference between Atheism and Pantheism comes in; both acknowledge an Existence that is currently beyond human understanding, of which all phenomena are expressions. But for the Atheist, that Existence appears as Force-Matter, which is unconscious and unintelligent, while for the Pantheist, it appears as Life-Matter, which is conscious and intelligent. For one, life and consciousness are attributes or properties that depend on the arrangement of matter; for the other, they are fundamental and essential, limited only by how matter is arranged. Despite the appeal of Spinoza's clear arguments, the powerful influence that Science was beginning to have on me led me to search for explanations of all life and mind problems from biologists and chemists. They had explained so much; could they not explain everything? Surely, I thought, the safest approach is through experimentation, and the painful memory of doubt made me very hesitant to believe what I couldn't prove. So, I reluctantly considered life as an attribute, reinforcing the Atheistic stance. "From a scientific standpoint, life is not an entity but a property; it is not a mode of existence but a characteristic of certain modes. Life results from the arrangement of matter, and when the arrangement changes, the previous outcome is gone; we call the outcome of the new arrangement death. Life and death are just convenient terms to express the general result of two arrangements of matter, one of which always precedes the other."[9] Then, after using chemistry as one example, I employed another from one of those striking and easily understood analogies, a skill I've found to be one of the secrets of my success as a communicator. Like images, they create a vivid sense of reality in the listener's mind. "Everyone knows the beautiful iridescence of mother-of-pearl, with its soft, delicate colors that blend together, glowing with a gentle light. How different is the dull, lifeless surface of a piece of wax. Yet if you take that dull, black wax and shape it so closely to the surface of the mother-of-pearl that it picks up every delicate detail of the shell, when you lift it, the seven-colored beauty will smile back at you from what was once a colorless surface. Although it may not be visible to the naked eye, the entire surface of the mother-of-pearl consists of tiny ridges and grooves, like a freshly plowed field; and when waves of light hit that textured surface, they break like waves on a pebbly shore and bounce back, crossing over each other and the incoming waves. Since every ray of white light is made up of waves of seven colors, which differ in length from one another, the tiny ridges reflect them back separately, so each ray reaches the eye on its own; therefore, the color of the mother-of-pearl is actually the result of the light waves bouncing off its surface, originating from the arrangement of matter once again. If you give the dull, black wax the same ridges and grooves, its beauty will be indistinguishable from that of the shell. To relate this back to our example: just as color belongs to one arrangement of matter and the dull surface to another, life belongs to certain arrangements of matter and is their outcome, while death is the outcome of different arrangements."[10]
The same line of reasoning naturally was applied to the existence of "spirit" in man, and it was argued that mental activity, the domain of the "spirit," was dependent on bodily organisation. "When the babe is born it shows no sign of mind. For a brief space hunger and repletion, cold and warmth are its only sensations. Slowly the specialised senses begin to function; still more slowly muscular movements, at first aimless and reflex, become co-ordinated and consciously directed. There is no sign here of an intelligent spirit controlling a mechanism; there is every sign of a learning and developing intelligence, developing pari passu with the organism of which it is a function. As the body grows, the mind grows with it, and the childish mind of the child develops into the hasty, quickly-judging, half-informed, unbalanced youthful mind of the youth; with maturity of years comes maturity of mind, and body and mind are vigorous and in their prime. As old age comes on and the bodily functions decay, the mind decays also, until age passes into senility, and body and mind sink into second childhood. Has the immortal spirit decayed with the organisation, or is it dwelling in sorrow, bound in its 'house of clay'? If this be so, the 'spirit' must be unconscious, or else separate from the very individual whose essence it is supposed to be, for the old man does not suffer when his mind is senile, but is contented as a little child. And not only is this constant, simultaneous growth and decay of body and mind to be observed, but we know that mental functions are disordered and suspended by various physical conditions. Alcohol, many drugs, fever, disorder the mind; a blow on the cranium suspends its functions, and the 'spirit' returns with the surgeon's trepanning. Does the 'spirit' take part in dreams? Is it absent from the idiot, from the lunatic? Is it guilty of manslaughter when the madman murders, or does it helplessly watch its own instrument performing actions at which it shudders? If it can only work here through an organism, is its nature changed in its independent life, severed from all with which it was identified? Can it, in its 'disembodied state,' have anything in common with its past?"[11]
The same reasoning was naturally applied to the existence of "spirit" in humans, and it was argued that mental activity, the realm of the "spirit," depended on physical organization. "When a baby is born, it shows no signs of having a mind. For a little while, hunger and fullness, cold and warmth are its only feelings. Gradually, the specialized senses begin to work; even more slowly, muscle movements that start off as random and reflexive become coordinated and consciously aimed. There's no indication here of an intelligent spirit controlling a mechanism; instead, there’s clear evidence of an intelligence that is learning and developing along with the body it serves. As the body grows, the mind develops alongside it, and the immature mind of the child evolves into the impulsive, quick-to-judge, poorly-informed, and unbalanced mind of youth; with the passage of time comes mental maturity, and both body and mind are robust and at their peak. As old age sets in and the body starts to decline, the mind also deteriorates until it gives way to senility, and both body and mind regress into a second childhood. Has the immortal spirit deteriorated along with the body, or is it trapped in sorrow within its 'house of clay'? If that’s the case, the 'spirit' must be unconscious or separate from the very individual it’s supposed to embody, since the elderly person doesn’t suffer when their mind is frail, but instead finds contentment like a small child. Not only do we observe this constant, simultaneous growth and decline of body and mind, but we also know that various physical conditions disrupt and suspend mental functions. Alcohol, many drugs, fever can confuse the mind; a blow to the head can halt its functions, and the 'spirit' returns with the surgeon's intervention. Does the 'spirit' take part in dreams? Is it absent from the person with intellectual disabilities or from the insane? Is it responsible for manslaughter when a madman kills, or does it passively watch as its own body commits acts that horrify it? If it can only function through a body, does its nature change when it exists independently, cut off from everything it was once part of? Can it, in its 'disembodied state,' have any connection with its past?"[11]
It will be seen that my unbelief in the existence of the Soul or Spirit was a matter of cold, calm reasoning. As I wrote in 1885: "For many of us evidence must precede belief. I would gladly believe in a happy immortality for all, as I would gladly believe that all misery and crime and poverty will disappear in 1885—if I could. But I am unable to believe an improbable proposition unless convincing evidence is brought in support of it. Immortality is most improbable; no evidence is brought forward in its favour. I cannot believe only because I wish."[12] Such was the philosophy by which I lived from 1874 to 1886, when first some researches that will be dealt with in their proper place, and which led me ultimately to the evidence I had before vainly demanded, began to shake my confidence in its adequacy. Amid outer storm and turmoil and conflict, I found it satisfy my intellect, while lofty ideals of morality fed my emotions. I called myself Atheist, and rightly so, for I was without God, and my horizon was bounded by life on earth; I gloried in the name then, as it is dear to my heart now, for all the associations with which it is connected. "Atheist is one of the grandest titles a man can wear; it is the Order of Merit of the world's heroes. Most great discoverers, most deep-thinking philosophers, most earnest reformers, most toiling pioneers of progress, have in their turn had flung at them the name of Atheist. It was howled over the grave of Copernicus; it was clamoured round the death-pile of Bruno; it was yelled at Vanini, at Spinoza, at Priestley, at Voltaire, at Paine; it has become the laurel-bay of the hero, the halo of the martyr; in the world's history it has meant the pioneer of progress, and where the cry of 'Atheist' is raised there may we be sure that another step is being taken towards the redemption of humanity. The saviours of the world are too often howled at as Atheists, and then worshipped as Deities. The Atheists are the vanguard of the army of Freethought, on whom falls the brunt of the battle, and are shivered the hardest of the blows; their feet trample down the thorns that others may tread unwounded; their bodies fill up the ditch that, by the bridge thus made, others may pass to victory. Honour to the pioneers of progress, honour to the vanguard of Liberty's army, honour to those who to improve earth have forgotten heaven, and who in their zeal for man have forgotten God."[13]
It will be clear that my disbelief in the existence of the Soul or Spirit was based on logical reasoning. As I wrote in 1885: "For many of us, evidence must come before belief. I would love to believe in a happy afterlife for everyone, just like I would love to believe that all misery, crime, and poverty will disappear in 1885—if only I could. But I can't accept an unlikely idea without convincing evidence to support it. Immortality is highly unlikely; no evidence has been presented for it. I can't believe just because I want to."[12] Such was the philosophy I lived by from 1874 to 1886, until certain research—discussed later—that ultimately provided the evidence I had previously sought began to shake my confidence in that belief system. Amid chaos and conflict, it satisfied my intellect, while high ideals of morality nourished my emotions. I called myself an Atheist, and rightly so, as I lived without God, and my worldview was limited to life on Earth; I took pride in that label then, as I do now, cherishing all the associations that come with it. "Atheist is one of the greatest titles a person can hold; it signifies the Order of Merit among the world’s heroes. Many great discoverers, profound philosophers, earnest reformers, and pioneering advocates of progress have all faced the label of Atheist. It was shouted over Copernicus’s grave; it surrounded Bruno's death; it was hurled at Vanini, Spinoza, Priestley, Voltaire, and Paine; it has become the badge of honor for heroes, the halo of martyrs; in the history of the world, it has represented the forefront of progress, and whenever the term 'Atheist' is proclaimed, we can be sure that another step is being taken toward the betterment of humanity. The saviors of the world are often called Atheists, only to later be revered as deities. Atheists are the vanguard of the movement for Free Thought, taking the brunt of the battle and facing the hardest blows; they tread down the obstacles so others can walk unharmed; their sacrifices build the path that allows others to achieve victory. Honor to the pioneers of progress, honor to the front line of Liberty's army, honor to those who, in improving life on Earth, have overlooked heaven and, in their commitment to humanity, have forgotten God."[13]
This poor sketch of the conception of the universe, to which I had conquered my way at the cost of so much pain, and which was the inner centre round which my life revolved for twelve years, may perhaps show that the Atheistic Philosophy is misjudged sorely when it is scouted as vile or condemned as intellectually degraded. It has outgrown anthropomorphic deities, and it leaves us face to face with Nature, open to all her purifying, strengthening inspirations. "There is only one kind of prayer," it says, "which is reasonable, and that is the deep, silent adoration of the greatness and beauty and order around us, as revealed in the realms of non-rational life and in Humanity; as we bow our heads before the laws of the universe, and mould our lives into obedience to their voice, we find a strong, calm peace steal over our hearts, a perfect trust in the ultimate triumph of the right, a quiet determination to 'make our lives sublime.' Before our own high ideals, before those lives which show us 'how high the tides of Divine life have risen in the human world,' we stand with hushed voice and veiled face; from them we draw strength to emulate, and even dare struggle to excel. The contemplation of the ideal is true prayer; it inspires, it strengthens, it ennobles. The other part of prayer is work; from contemplation to labour, from the forest to the street. Study nature's laws, conform to them, work in harmony with them, and work becomes a prayer and a thanksgiving, an adoration of the universal wisdom, and a true obedience to the universal law."[14]
This rough idea of how the universe works, which I struggled to understand at such a great cost over twelve years, might reveal that the Atheistic Philosophy is unfairly judged when it's dismissed as worthless or deemed intellectually inferior. It has moved beyond human-like gods and leaves us directly facing Nature, open to all her purifying and strengthening inspirations. "There’s only one kind of prayer," it says, "that makes sense, and that is the deep, silent admiration of the greatness, beauty, and order around us, as we see in the realms of non-rational life and in Humanity; as we bow our heads before the laws of the universe and shape our lives to follow their guidance, we discover a strong, calm peace wash over us, a perfect trust in the ultimate victory of what is right, and a quiet determination to 'make our lives outstanding.' In front of our own high ideals, before those lives that show us 'how elevated the tides of Divine life have risen in the human world,' we stand in silence and awe; from them we draw strength to emulate and even dare to strive to surpass. Reflecting on the ideal is true prayer; it inspires, strengthens, and elevates us. The other part of prayer is work; from contemplation to action, from the forest to the street. Study nature’s laws, align with them, work in harmony with them, and work turns into a prayer and a gratitude, an admiration for universal wisdom, and true obedience to universal law."[14]
To a woman of my temperament, filled with passionate desire for the bettering of the world, the elevation of humanity, a lofty system of ethics was of even more importance than a logical, intellectual conception of the universe; and the total loss of all faith in a righteous God only made me more strenuously assertive of the binding nature of duty and the overwhelming importance of conduct. In 1874 this conviction found voice in a pamphlet on the "True Basis of Morality," and in all the years of my propaganda on the platform of the National Secular Society no subject was more frequently dealt with in my lectures than that of human ethical growth and the duty of man to man. No thought was more constantly in my mind than that of the importance of morals, and it was voiced at the very outset of my public career. Speaking of the danger lest "in these stirring times of inquiry," old sanctions of right conduct should be cast aside ere new ones were firmly established, I wrote: "It therefore becomes the duty of every one who fights in the ranks of Freethought, and who ventures to attack the dogmas of the Churches, and to strike down the superstitions which enslave men's intellect, to beware how he uproots sanctions of morality which he is too weak to replace, or how, before he is prepared with better ones, he removes the barriers which do yet, however poorly, to some extent check vice and repress crime.... That which touches morality touches the heart of society; a high and pure morality is the life-blood of humanity; mistakes in belief are inevitable, and are of little moment; mistakes in life destroy happiness, and their destructive consequences spread far and wide. It is, then, a very important question whether we, who are endeavouring to take away from the world the authority on which has hitherto been based all its morality, can offer a new and firm ground whereupon may safely be built up the fair edifice of a noble life."
To a woman like me, driven by a strong desire to improve the world and uplift humanity, a high standard of ethics mattered even more than a logical, intellectual understanding of the universe. The complete loss of faith in a just God only made me more determined to emphasize our duty and the critical importance of our actions. In 1874, this belief was expressed in a pamphlet titled "True Basis of Morality," and throughout my years of speaking for the National Secular Society, no topic came up more often in my lectures than the growth of human ethics and our responsibility to each other. The significance of morality was always on my mind and was evident from the very beginning of my public career. I expressed concern that in these times of questioning, old standards of right conduct might be discarded before new ones were established. I wrote: "It becomes the responsibility of anyone who fights for Freethought and challenges the dogmas of the Churches, as well as the superstitions that limit people's intellect, to be cautious about eliminating moral standards they aren't strong enough to replace, or to be sure they have better ones ready before they take away the barriers that, even if imperfectly, help control vice and reduce crime. What touches morality strikes at the heart of society; a high and pure morality is essential for humanity. Mistakes in belief are unavoidable and relatively inconsequential; mistakes in life, however, ruin happiness, and their damaging effects spread far and wide. Therefore, it's crucial that we, who are trying to remove the authority that has traditionally upheld all morality, can provide a new and solid foundation on which a noble life can be built."
I then proceeded to analyse revelation and intuition as a basis for morals, and, discarding both, I asserted: "The true basis of morality is utility; that is, the adaptation of our actions to the promotion of the general welfare and happiness; the endeavour so to rule our lives that we may serve and bless mankind." And I argued for this basis, showing that the effort after virtue was implied in the search for happiness: "Virtue is an indispensable part of all true and solid happiness.... But it is, after all, only reasonable that happiness should be the ultimate test of right and wrong, if we live, as we do, in a realm of law. Obedience to law must necessarily result in harmony, and disobedience in discord. But if obedience to law result in harmony it must also result in happiness—all through nature obedience to law results in happiness, and through obedience each living thing fulfils the perfection of its being, and in that perfection finds its true happiness." It seemed to me most important to remove morality from the controversies about religion, and to give it a basis of its own: "As, then, the grave subject of the existence of Deity is a matter of dispute, it is evidently of deep importance to society that morality should not be dragged into this battlefield, to stand or totter with the various theories of the Divine nature which human thought creates and destroys. If we can found morality on a basis apart from theology, we shall do humanity a service which can scarcely be overestimated." A study of the facts of nature, of the consequences of man in society, seemed sufficient for such a basis. "Our faculties do not suffice to tell us about God; they do suffice to study phenomena, and to deduce laws from correlated facts. Surely, then, we should do wisely to concentrate our strength and our energies on the discovery of the attainable, instead of on the search after the unknowable. If we are told that morality consists in obedience to the supposed will of a supposed perfectly moral being, because in so doing we please God, then we are at once placed in a region where our faculties are useless to us, and where our judgment is at fault. But if we are told that we are to lead noble lives, because nobility of life is desirable for itself alone, because in so doing we are acting in harmony with the laws of Nature, because in so doing we spread happiness around our pathway and gladden our fellow-men—then, indeed, motives are appealed to which spring forward to meet the call, and chords are struck in our hearts which respond in music to the touch." It was to the establishment of this secure basis that I bent my energies, this that was to me of supreme moment. "Amid the fervid movement of society, with its wild theories and crude social reforms, with its righteous fury against oppression and its unconsidered notions of wider freedom and gladder life, it is of vital importance that morality should stand on a foundation unshakable; that so through all political and religious revolutions human life may grow purer and nobler, may rise upwards into settled freedom, and not sink downwards into anarchy. Only utility can afford us a sure basis, the reasonableness of which will be accepted alike by thoughtful student and hard-headed artisan. Utility appeals to all alike, and sets in action motives which are found equally in every human heart. Well shall it be for humanity that creeds and dogmas pass away, that superstition vanishes, and the clear light of freedom and science dawns on a regenerated earth—but well only if men draw tighter and closer the links of trustworthiness, of honour, and of truth. Equality before the law is necessary and just; liberty is the birthright of every man and woman; free individual development will elevate and glorify the race. But little worth these priceless jewels, little worth liberty and equality with all their promise for mankind, little worth even wider happiness, if that happiness be selfish, if true fraternity, true brotherhood, do not knit man to man, and heart to heart, in loyal service to the common need, and generous self-sacrifice to the common good."[15]
I then went on to examine revelation and intuition as foundations for morals, and, setting both aside, I argued: "The real foundation of morality is utility; that is, shaping our actions to enhance general welfare and happiness; striving to live our lives in a way that serves and uplifts humanity." I provided reasons for this foundation, demonstrating that the pursuit of virtue is tied to the quest for happiness: "Virtue is a crucial part of all true and genuine happiness.... But it makes sense that happiness should be the ultimate measure of right and wrong, since we live in a world governed by laws. Following the law should naturally lead to harmony, while breaking it leads to discord. If following the law results in harmony, it must also lead to happiness—all throughout nature, following the law brings happiness, and through obedience, each living being achieves the fullness of its purpose and finds its true happiness." It seemed to me incredibly important to separate morality from religious debates and establish a foundation of its own: "Since the serious issue of God's existence is disputed, it’s clearly crucial for society that morality not be dragged into this battlefield, to stand or falter with the various theories of divine nature that human thought creates and destroys. If we can establish morality on a foundation separate from theology, we will serve humanity in a way that is hard to overstate." A study of natural facts and the impacts of humanity in society seemed adequate for such a foundation. "Our faculties aren't enough to tell us about God; they are sufficient to study phenomena and deduce laws from related facts. Surely, then, it would be wise to focus our efforts on discovering what we can grasp instead of chasing the unknowable. If we are told that morality is about obeying the alleged will of an assumed perfectly moral being, simply because it pleases God, then we are placed in a realm where our faculties are ineffective and our judgment is mistaken. But if we are told that we should lead noble lives, because living nobly is valuable in itself, because it aligns us with the laws of Nature, because it spreads happiness along our path and brings joy to others—then, indeed, we appeal to motives that resonate and strike chords in our hearts that respond harmoniously." It was to establish this firm foundation that I dedicated my energy, this was of utmost importance to me. "In the midst of society's fervent movements, with its wild theories and rough social reforms, with its righteous anger towards oppression and its unthoughtful ideas of broader freedom and happier life, it’s vital that morality stands on an unshakeable foundation; so that through all political and religious revolutions, human life can become purer and nobler, can rise into settled freedom, and not fall into chaos. Only utility can give us a reliable foundation, the rationality of which will be recognized by both thoughtful scholars and practical workers. Utility resonates with everyone and activates motives found in every human heart. It would be a good day for humanity if creeds and dogmas disappeared, if superstition faded, and the bright light of freedom and science shone upon a renewed earth—but only if people strengthen the bonds of trustworthiness, honor, and truth. Equality before the law is essential and just; liberty is the fundamental right of every individual; free personal development will elevate and honor the human race. However, these priceless treasures, like liberty and equality with their promise for humanity, and even broader happiness, are worth little if that happiness is selfish, if true fraternity and brotherhood do not connect people to each other, heart to heart, in loyal service to common needs and generous selflessness for the common good."[15]
To the forwarding of this moral growth of man, two things seemed to me necessary—an Ideal which should stir the emotions and impel to action, and a clear understanding of the sources of evil and of the methods by which they might be drained. Into the drawing of the first I threw all the passion of my nature, striving to paint the Ideal in colours which should enthral and fascinate, so that love and desire to realise might stir man to effort. If "morality touched by emotion" be religion, then truly was I the most religious of Atheists, finding in this dwelling on and glorifying of the Ideal full satisfaction for the loftiest emotions. To meet the fascination exercised over men's hearts by the Man of Sorrows, I raised the image of man triumphant, man perfected. "Rightly is the ideal Christian type of humanity a Man of Sorrows. Jesus, with worn and wasted body; with sad, thin lips, curved into a mournful droop of penitence for human sin; with weary eyes gazing up to heaven because despairing of earth; bowed down and aged with grief and pain, broken-hearted with long anguish, broken-spirited with unresisted ill-usage—such is the ideal man of the Christian creed. Beautiful with a certain pathetic beauty, telling of the long travail of earth, eloquent of the sufferings of humanity, but not the model type to which men should conform their lives, if they would make humanity glorious. And, therefore, in radiant contrast with this, stands out in the sunshine and under the blue summer sky, far from graveyards and torture of death agony, the fair ideal Humanity of the Atheist. In form strong and fair, perfect in physical development as the Hercules of Grecian art, radiant with love, glorious in self-reliant power; with lips bent firm to resist oppression, and melting into soft curves of passion and of pity; with deep, far-seeing eyes, gazing piercingly into the secrets of the unknown, and resting lovingly on the beauties around him; with hands strong to work in the present; with heart full of hope which the future shall realise; making earth glad with his labour and beautiful with his skill—this, this is the Ideal Man, enshrined in the Atheist's heart. The ideal humanity of the Christian is the humanity of the slave, poor, meek, broken-spirited, humble, submissive to authority, however oppressive and unjust; the ideal humanity of the Atheist is the humanity of the free man who knows no lord, who brooks no tyranny, who relies on his own strength, who makes his brother's quarrel his, proud, true-hearted, loyal, brave."[16]
To promote the moral growth of humanity, I believe two things are essential—an Ideal that can inspire emotions and drive action, and a clear understanding of the roots of evil and the ways to eliminate them. I poured all my passion into creating the first, trying to depict the Ideal in vibrant colors that would captivate and enchant, so that love and the desire to achieve it would motivate people to strive. If "morality touched by emotion" is what defines religion, then I was undoubtedly the most religious of Atheists, finding complete satisfaction in contemplating and glorifying the Ideal for my highest emotions. In response to the profound impact the Man of Sorrows has on people's hearts, I created the image of a triumphant, perfected human. "It's true that the ideal Christian model of humanity is the Man of Sorrows. Jesus, with a worn and weary body; with sad, thin lips that reflect sorrow for human sin; with tired eyes turned toward heaven in despair of earth; bowed down, aged with grief and pain, broken-hearted after long suffering, and defeated by the relentless cruelty—this is the ideal man of the Christian faith. He has a certain tragic beauty, representing the long struggles of life and the suffering of humanity, but he is not the type of person we should aspire to be if we want to make humanity truly glorious. Therefore, in bright contrast to this, stands the beautiful Ideal Humanity of the Atheist, shining in the sunlight and under a blue summer sky, far away from graveyards and anguish of death. In form, strong and handsome, perfectly developed like the Hercules of Greek art, glowing with love, and radiant with self-reliant power; with lips firmly set against oppression yet softening into curves of passion and compassion; with deep, insightful eyes piercing into the mysteries of the unknown while resting lovingly on the beauty around him; with hands capable of working in the present; with a heart full of hope for the future; making the earth joyful through his labor and beautiful through his skills—this, this is the Ideal Man, cherished in the Atheist's heart. The ideal humanity of the Christian is that of the slave—poor, meek, broken-spirited, humble, and submissive to authority, no matter how oppressive or unjust; the ideal humanity of the Atheist is that of the free person who knows no master, who accepts no tyranny, who relies on their own strength, who takes up their brother's cause as their own, proud, true-hearted, loyal, and brave."[16]
A one-sided view? Yes. But a very natural outcome of a sunny nature, for years held down by unhappiness and the harshness of an outgrown creed. It was the rebound of such a nature suddenly set free, rejoicing in its liberty and self-conscious strength, and it carried with it a great power of rousing the sympathetic enthusiasm of men and women, deeply conscious of their own restrictions and their own longings. It was the cry of the freed soul that had found articulate expression, and the many inarticulate and prisoned souls answered to it tumultously, with fluttering of caged wings. With hot insistence I battled for the inspiration to be drawn from the beauty and grandeur of which human life was capable. "Will any one exclaim, 'You are taking all beauty out of human life, all hope, all warmth, all inspiration; you give us cold duty for filial obedience, and inexorable law in the place of God'? All beauty from life? Is there, then, no beauty in the idea of forming part of the great life of the universe, no beauty in conscious harmony with Nature, no beauty in faithful service, no beauty in ideals of every virtue? 'All hope'? Why, I give you more than hope, I give you certainty; if I bid you labour for this world, it is with the knowledge that this world will repay you a, thousand-fold, because society will grow purer, freedom more settled, law more honoured, life more full and glad. What is your heaven? A heaven in the clouds! I point to a heaven attainable on earth. 'All warmth'? What! you serve warmly a God unknown and invisible, in a sense the projected shadow of your own imaginings, and can only serve coldly your brother whom you see at your side? There is no warmth in brightening the lot of the sad, in reforming abuses, in establishing equal justice for rich and poor? You find warmth in the church, but none in the home? Warmth in imagining the cloud glories of heaven, but none in creating substantial glories on earth?' All inspiration'? If you want inspiration to feeling, to sentiment, perhaps you had better keep to your Bible and your creeds; if you want inspiration to work, go and walk through the East of London, or the back streets of Manchester. You are inspired to tenderness as you gaze at the wounds of Jesus, dead in Judaea long ago, and find no inspiration in the wounds of men and women, dying in the England of to-day? You 'have tears to shed for Him,' but none for the sufferer at your doors? His passion arouses your sympathies, but you see no pathos in the passion of the poor? Duty is colder than 'filial obedience'? What do you mean by filial obedience? Obedience to your ideal of goodness and love—is it not so? Then how is duty cold? I offer you ideals for your homage: here is Truth for your Mistress, to whose exaltation you shall devote your intellect; here is Freedom for your General, for whose triumph you shall fight; here is Love for your Inspirer, who shall influence your every thought; here is Man for your Master—not in heaven, but on earth—to whose service you shall consecrate every faculty of your being. 'Inexorable law in the place of God'? Yes; a stern certainty that you shall not waste your life, yet gather a rich reward at the close; that you shall not sow misery, yet reap gladness; that you shall not be selfish, yet be crowned with love; nor shall you sin, yet find safety in repentance. True, our creed is a stern one, stern with the beautiful sternness of Nature. But if we be in the right, look to yourselves; laws do not check their action for your ignorance; fire will not cease to scorch, because you 'did not know.'"[17]
A one-sided perspective? Sure. But it’s a completely natural result of a cheerful spirit that’s been suppressed for years by unhappiness and the harshness of outdated beliefs. It reflects the enthusiasm of a spirit finally liberated, celebrating its freedom and newfound strength, stirring up the sympathetic passion of people who are all too aware of their own limitations and desires. It was the call of a freed soul that found its voice, and many voiceless, trapped souls responded to it intensely, like caged birds fluttering. With urgency, I fought for the inspiration that can be drawn from the beauty and greatness of human life. "Is someone going to shout, 'You're taking all beauty from human life, all hope, all warmth, all inspiration; you offer us cold duty instead of loving obedience, and an unyielding law instead of God'? All beauty taken from life? Is there, then, no beauty in being part of the vast universe, no beauty in being in harmony with Nature, no beauty in devoted service, no beauty in striving for every virtue? 'All hope'? I’m giving you more than hope; I’m giving you certainty. If I encourage you to work for this world, it’s with the belief that it will reward you a thousand times over, because society will become purer, freedom more established, law more respected, and life more fulfilling and joyful. What is your heaven? A distant paradise! I point to a heaven that is achievable right here on earth. 'All warmth'? What! You fervently serve a God you can’t see or know, who is essentially the reflection of your own imagination, yet you can only serve your neighbor next to you with indifference? There’s no warmth in improving the lives of the sad, in correcting wrongs, in bringing equal justice to the rich and poor? You feel warmth in church, but none in your own home? Warmth in dreaming about the heavenly glories above, but none in creating real glories here on earth? 'All inspiration'? If you seek inspiration for feelings and emotions, maybe you should stick to your Bible and traditions; if you want inspiration for action, take a walk through East London or the back streets of Manchester. You’re moved to compassion when you look at the wounds of Jesus, who died in Judea long ago, and yet feel no inspiration from the wounds of men and women suffering in today’s England? You shed tears for Him, but none for those suffering right outside your door? His suffering stirs your compassion, but you see no tragedy in the struggles of the poor? Duty is colder than 'loving obedience'? What do you even mean by loving obedience? Isn’t it obedience to your ideals of goodness and love? So how can duty be cold? I offer you ideals to honor: here is Truth as your guide, to whom you will dedicate your intellect; here is Freedom as your leader, for whose victory you will fight; here is Love as your muse, who will shape every thought; here is Humanity as your master—not in heaven, but on earth—to whose service you will devote every part of yourself. 'Unyielding law instead of God'? Yes; a strict certainty that you will not waste your life, but will be rewarded richly at the end; that you will not create misery, but reap joy; that you will not be selfish, yet will be embraced by love; that you will not sin, but will find safety in repentance. It’s true, our beliefs are strict, rooted in the beautiful harshness of Nature. But if we are right, look to yourselves; laws don’t pause their effects for your ignorance; fire won’t stop burning just because you 'didn’t know.'"[17]
With equal vigour did I maintain that "virtue was its own reward," and that payment on the other side of the grave was unnecessary as an incentive to right living. "What shall we say to Miss Cobbe's contention that duty will 'grow grey and cold' without God and immortality? Yes, for those with whom duty is a matter of selfish calculation, and who are virtuous only because they look for a 'golden crown' in payment on the other side the grave. Those of us who find joy in right-doing, who work because work is useful to our fellows, who live well because in such living we pay our contribution to the world's wealth, leaving earth richer than we found it—we need no paltry payment after death for our life's labour, for in that labour is its own 'exceeding great reward.'"[18] But did any one yearn for immortality, that "not all of me shall die"? "Is it true that Atheism has no immortality? What is true immortality? Is Beethoven's true immortality in his continued personal consciousness, or in his glorious music deathless while the world endures? Is Shelley's true life in his existence in some far-off heaven, or in the pulsing liberty his lyrics send through men's hearts, when they respond to the strains of his lyre? Music does not die, though one instrument be broken; thought does not die, though one brain be shivered; love does not die, though one heart's strings be rent; and no great thinker dies so long as his thought re-echoes through the ages, its melody the fuller-toned the more human brains send its music on. Not only to the hero and the sage is this immortality given; it belongs to each according to the measure of his deeds; world-wide life for world-wide service; straitened life for straitened work; each reaps as he sows, and the harvest is gathered by each in his rightful order."[19]
I firmly believe that "virtue is its own reward," and that any payment after death is unnecessary as motivation for living rightly. "What do we say to Miss Cobbe's argument that duty will 'grow grey and cold' without God and immortality? Sure, for those who view duty as a selfish calculation, and who are virtuous only because they expect a 'golden crown' as payment after death. Those of us who find joy in doing what's right, who work because it benefits others, and who live well because our lives contribute to the world's prosperity, leaving it better than we found it—we don’t need some petty reward after death for our hard work, because in that work itself lies its own 'great reward.'"[18] But does anyone long for immortality, to ensure that "not all of me shall die"? "Is it true that Atheism offers no immortality? What really is true immortality? Is Beethoven's true immortality found in his continued personal awareness, or in the timeless beauty of his music that lives on as long as the world exists? Is Shelley's true life in his existence in some distant heaven, or in the vibrant freedom his lyrics inspire in people's hearts when they hear his melodies? Music doesn't die, even if one instrument is broken; ideas don't die, even if one mind is damaged; love doesn't die, even if one heart is torn apart; and no great thinker truly dies as long as their thoughts resonate through the years, their message becoming richer the more human minds carry it forward. This form of immortality isn't reserved just for heroes and sages; it belongs to everyone according to the extent of their actions; a wide-reaching life for wide-reaching service; a limited life for limited work; each person reaps what they sow, and the harvest is collected by each in their rightful order."[19]
This longing to leave behind a name that will live among men by right of service done them, this yearning for human love and approval that springs naturally from the practical and intense realisation of human brotherhood—these will be found as strong motives in the breasts of the most earnest men and women who have in our generation identified themselves with the Freethought cause. They shine through the written and spoken words of Charles Bradlaugh all through his life, and every friend of his knows how often he has expressed the longing that "when the grass grows green over my grave, men may love me a little for the work I tried to do."
This desire to leave behind a name that will be remembered for the service done to others, this need for human love and approval that naturally arises from a deep understanding of our shared humanity—these are powerful motivators for the most dedicated men and women who in our time have aligned themselves with the Freethought movement. They are evident in the writings and speeches of Charles Bradlaugh throughout his life, and every friend of his knows how often he expressed the wish that "when the grass is green over my grave, people may care for me a little for the work I tried to do."
Needless to say that, in the many controversies in which I took part, it was often urged against me that such motives were insufficient, that they appealed only to natures already ethically developed, and left the average man, and, above all, the man below the average, with no sufficiently constraining motive for right conduct. I resolutely held to my faith in human nature, and the inherent response of the human heart when appealed to from the highest grounds; strange—I often think now—this instinctive certainty I had of man's innate grandeur, that governed all my thought, inconsistent as that certainty was with my belief in his purely animal ancestry. Pressed too hard, I would take refuge in a passionate disdain for all who did not hear the thrilling voice of Virtue and love her for her own sweet sake. "I have myself heard the question asked: 'Why should I seek for truth, and why should I lead a good life, if there be no immortality in which to reap a reward?' To this question the Freethinker has one clear and short answer: 'There is no reason why you should seek Truth, if to you the search has no attracting power. There is no reason why you should lead a noble life, if you find your happiness in leading a poor and a base one.' Friends, no one can enjoy a happiness which is too high for his capabilities; a book may be of intensest interest, but a dog will very much prefer being given a bone. To him whose highest interest is centred in his own miserable self, to him who cares only to gain his own ends, to him who seeks only his own individual comfort, to that man Freethought can have no attraction. Such a man may indeed be made religious by a bribe of heaven; he may be led to seek for truth, because he hopes to gain his reward hereafter by the search; but Truth disdains the service of the self-seeker; she cannot be grasped by a hand that itches for reward. If Truth is not loved for her own pure sake, if to lead a noble life, if to make men happier, if to spread brightness around us, if to leave the world better than we found it—if these aims have no attraction for us, if these thoughts do not inspire us, then we are not worthy to be Secularists, we have no right to the proud title of Freethinkers. If you want to be paid for your good lives by living for ever in a lazy and useless fashion in an idle heaven; if you want to be bribed into nobility of life; if, like silly children, you learn your lesson not to gain knowledge but to win sugar-plums, then you had better go back to your creeds and your churches; they are all you are fit for; you are not worthy to be free. But we—who, having caught a glimpse of the beauty of Truth, deem the possession of her worth more than all the world beside; who have made up our minds to do our work ungrudgingly, asking for no reward beyond the results which spring up from our labour—we will spread the Gospel of Freethought among men, until the sad minor melodies of Christianity have sobbed out their last mournful notes on the dying evening breeze, and on the fresh morning winds shall ring out the chorus of hope and joyfulness, from the glad lips of men whom the Truth has at last set free."[20]
Needless to say, in the many controversies I was involved in, it was often argued against me that such motives were not enough, that they only appealed to people who were already ethically developed, and left the average person, especially those below average, without a strong enough motive for good behavior. I firmly held on to my belief in human nature and the inherent response of the human heart when appealed to on the highest grounds; it's strange—I often think now—how certain I was of man's innate greatness, which governed all my thoughts, even though that certainty contradicted my belief in his purely animal ancestry. When pressed too hard, I would take refuge in a passionate disdain for anyone who didn't hear the inspiring call of Virtue and love her for her own sake. "I've heard the question asked: 'Why should I seek the truth, and why should I lead a good life if there's no immortality to receive a reward?' To this question, the Freethinker has a clear and simple answer: 'There's no reason for you to seek Truth if the search does not attract you. There's no reason for you to live a noble life if you find happiness in leading a poor and base one.' Friends, no one can enjoy happiness that is beyond their capabilities; a book may be incredibly interesting, but a dog will much prefer being given a bone. To someone whose highest interest is focused on their own miserable self, who only cares about their own goals and seeks only their comfort, Freethought holds no appeal. Such a person may be made religious by the promise of heaven; they may be led to seek truth because they hope to gain their reward later, but Truth disdains the service of the self-seeker; she cannot be grasped by a hand that craves a reward. If Truth is not loved for her own sake, if living nobly, making people happier, spreading positivity, and leaving the world better than we found it—if these goals hold no attraction for us, if these thoughts do not inspire us, then we are not worthy to be Secularists; we have no right to the proud title of Freethinkers. If you want to be rewarded for your good lives by living forever in a lazy and useless way in a comfortable heaven; if you want to be enticed into living nobly; if, like foolish children, you learn your lessons not to gain knowledge but to earn treats, then you should go back to your creeds and churches; they are all you are fit for; you are not worthy to be free. But we—who have caught a glimpse of the beauty of Truth and deem its possession more valuable than anything else in the world; who have resolved to do our work willingly, asking for no reward beyond the results that come from our efforts—we will spread the Gospel of Freethought among people until the sad, minor melodies of Christianity have played their last mournful notes in the evening breeze, and the fresh morning winds will carry the chorus of hope and joy from the happy voices of those whom the Truth has finally set free."[20]
The intellectual comprehension of the sources of evil and the method of its extinction was the second great plank in my ethical platform. The study of Darwin and Herbert Spencer, of Huxley, Büchner and Haeckel, had not only convinced me of the truth of evolution, but, with help from W.H. Clifford, Lubbock, Buckle, Lecky, and many another, had led me to see in the evolution of the social instinct the explanation of the growth of conscience and of the strengthening of man's mental and moral nature. If man by study of the conditions surrounding him and by the application of intelligence to the subdual of external nature, had already accomplished so much, why should not further persistence along the same road lead to his complete emancipation? All the evil, anti-social side of his nature was an inheritance from his brute ancestry, and could be gradually eradicated; he could not only "let the ape and tiger die," but he could kill them out." It may be frankly acknowledged that man inherits from his brute progenitors various bestial tendencies which are in course of elimination. The wild-beast desire to fight is one of these, and this has been encouraged, not checked, by religion.... Another bestial tendency is the lust of the male for the female apart from love, duty, and loyalty; this again has been encouraged by religion, as witness the polygamy and concubinage of the Hebrews—as in Abraham, David, and Solomon, not to mention the precepts of the Mosaic laws—the bands of male and female prostitutes in connection with Pagan temples, and the curious outbursts of sexual passion in connection with religious revivals and missions. Another bestial tendency is greed, the strongest grabbing all he can and trampling down the weak, in the mad struggle for wealth; how and when has religion modified this tendency, sanctified as it is in our present civilisation? All these bestial tendencies will be eradicated only by the recognition of human duty, of the social bond. Religion has not eradicated them, but science, by tracing them to their source in our brute ancestry, has explained them and has shown them in their true light. As each recognises that the anti-social tendencies are the bestial tendencies in man, and that man in evolving further must evolve out of these, each also feels it part of his personal duty to curb these in himself, and so to rise further from the brute. This rational 'co-operation with Nature' distinguishes the scientific from the religious person, and this constraining sense of obligation is becoming stronger and stronger in all those who, in losing faith in God, have gained hope for man."[21]
The understanding of the sources of evil and the way to eliminate it was the second main point in my ethical beliefs. The study of Darwin and Herbert Spencer, along with Huxley, Büchner, and Haeckel, convinced me not only of the truth of evolution but, with insight from W.H. Clifford, Lubbock, Buckle, Lecky, and others, helped me realize that the evolution of the social instinct explains the development of conscience and the enhancement of humanity's mental and moral character. If humans have already achieved so much by studying their environment and applying intelligence to control nature, why shouldn't continued effort in the same direction lead to complete liberation? All the harmful, anti-social aspects of human nature are inherited from our animal ancestors and can be gradually eliminated; we can not only "let the ape and tiger die," but we can also eradicate them entirely. It is clear that humans inherit various animalistic tendencies from their ancestors that are in the process of being eliminated. The instinct to fight is one of these, and it has been encouraged rather than restrained by religion.... Another animalistic tendency is male desire for females outside of love, duty, and loyalty; this too has been promoted by religion, as seen in the polygamy and concubinage of the Hebrews—as with Abraham, David, and Solomon, along with the Mosaic laws—the bands of male and female prostitutes associated with Pagan temples, and the sudden bursts of sexual desire during religious revivals and missions. Greed is another animalistic tendency, where the strongest take everything they can and trample the weak in the wild race for wealth; how and when has religion changed this tendency, which is so deeply ingrained in our current civilization? All these animalistic tendencies will only disappear through the acknowledgment of human duty and social connection. Religion hasn't eliminated them, but science, by tracing their roots back to our animal ancestors, has explained and revealed them for what they truly are. As each person recognizes that the anti-social tendencies are simply these animal instincts, and that humanity must evolve beyond them, each also feels it is their personal responsibility to control these tendencies and thus rise above their animal nature. This rational "cooperation with Nature" sets the scientific mindset apart from the religious perspective, and this growing sense of obligation is becoming stronger among those who, having lost faith in God, have found hope in humanity.
For this rational setting of oneself on the side of the forces working for evolution implied active co-operation by personal purity and nobility." To the Atheist it seems that the knowledge that the perfecting of the race is only possible by the improvement of the individual, supplies the most constraining motive which can be imagined for efforts after personal perfection. The Theist may desire personal perfection, but his desire is self-centred; each righteous individual is righteous, as it were, alone, and his righteousness does not benefit his fellows save as it may make him helpful and loving in his dealings with them. The Atheist desires personal perfection not only for his joy in it as beautiful in itself, but because science has taught him the unity of the race, and he knows that each fresh conquest of his over the baser parts of his nature, and each strengthening of the higher, is a gain for all, and not for himself alone."[22]
For this rational approach of aligning oneself with the forces of evolution requires active cooperation through personal purity and nobility. To the Atheist, the understanding that improving the race is only achievable by enhancing the individual provides the most compelling reason imaginable for striving for personal perfection. The Theist may seek personal perfection, but this desire is self-focused; each righteous person is righteous on their own, and their righteousness only helps others to the extent that it makes them more caring and supportive in their interactions. The Atheist seeks personal perfection not just for the joy of it as something beautiful in itself, but because science has taught him about the unity of humanity. He realizes that every victory over the lesser parts of his nature and every strengthening of the higher aspects benefits everyone, not just himself.
Besides all this, the struggle against evil, regarded as transitory and as a necessary concomitant of evolution, loses its bitterness. "In dealing with evil, Atheism is full of hope instead of despair. To the Christian, evil is as everlasting as good; it exists by the permission of God, and, therefore, by the will of God. Our nature is corrupt, inclined to evil; the devil is ever near us, working all sin and all misery. What hope has the Christian face to face with a world's wickedness? what answer to the question, Whence comes sin? To the Atheist the terrible problem has in it no figure of despair. Evil comes from ignorance, we say; ignorance of physical and of moral facts. Primarily, from ignorance of physical order; parents who dwell in filthy, unventilated, unweathertight houses, who live on insufficient, innutritious, unwholesome food, will necessarily be unhealthy, will lack vitality, will probably have disease lurking in their veins; such parents will bring into the world ill-nurtured children, in whom the brain will generally be the least developed part of the body; such children, by their very formation, will incline to the animal rather than to the human, and by leading an animal, or natural, life will be deficient in those qualities which are necessary in social life. Their surroundings as they grow up, the home, the food, the associates, all are bad. They are trained into vice, educated into criminality; so surely as from the sown corn rises the wheat-ear, so from the sowing of misery, filth, and starvation shall arise crime. And the root of all is poverty and ignorance. Educate the children, and give them fair wage for fair work in their maturity, and crime will gradually diminish and ultimately disappear. Man is God-made, says Theism; man is circumstance-made, says Atheism. Man is the resultant of what his parents were, of what his surroundings have been and are, and of what they have made him; himself the result of the past he modifies the actual, and so the action and reaction go on, he himself the effect of what is past, and one of the causes of what is to come. Make the circumstances good and the results will be good, for healthy bodies and healthy brains may be built up, and from a State composed of such the disease of crime will have disappeared. Thus is our work full of hope; no terrible will of God have we to struggle against; no despairful future to look forward to, of a world growing more and more evil, until it is, at last, to burned up; but a glad, fair future of an ever-rising race, where more equal laws, more general education, more just division, shall eradicate pauperism, destroy ignorance, nourish independence, a future to be made the grander by our struggles, a future to be made the nearer by our toil."[23]
Besides all this, the fight against evil, seen as temporary and a necessary part of evolution, loses its harshness. "When it comes to dealing with evil, Atheism is filled with hope instead of despair. For Christians, evil is as eternal as good; it exists with God's permission and, therefore, by God's will. Our nature is flawed and inclined toward evil; the devil is always nearby, causing all sin and misery. What hope does a Christian have when faced with the world's wickedness? What answer is there to the question, Where does sin come from? For Atheists, this daunting problem doesn’t bring despair. We say evil arises from ignorance—ignorance of both physical and moral realities. Primarily, it comes from a lack of understanding of the physical world; parents living in dirty, poorly ventilated, and drafty homes, who survive on inadequate, unhealthy food, will inevitably be unhealthy, lack vitality, and likely carry diseases. Such parents will raise malnourished children, where the brain is usually the least developed part of the body; these children, by their very nature, will lean more towards animal instincts rather than human qualities, and by living a purely instinctual life, will lack the traits necessary for social living. Their upbringing—their home, food, and companions—are all detrimental. They are conditioned into vice, educated into criminal behaviors; just as wheat rises from sowed corn, crime will arise from a foundation of misery, filth, and hunger. And at the heart of it all are poverty and ignorance. Educate the children and pay them a fair wage for fair work as adults, and crime will gradually decrease and eventually fade away. Theism says man is made by God; Atheism says man is shaped by his circumstances. Man is the result of who his parents were, the environment he grew up in, and what those factors have made him; being shaped by the past, he alters the present, and this process continues—the past influences him, and he becomes one of the factors that shape the future. Improve the circumstances, and good results will follow, as we can build healthy bodies and minds. In a society made up of such individuals, the issue of crime will have vanished. Hence, our work is filled with hope; there is no cruel will of God we must fight against; there’s no bleak future to dread, of a world becoming increasingly evil until it is eventually destroyed; instead, there is a bright, promising future of an ever-evolving humanity, where more equitable laws, broader education, and fairer distribution will eliminate poverty, eradicate ignorance, foster independence—a future that will be enhanced by our efforts and become closer through our labor."[23]
This joyous, self-reliant facing of the world with the resolute determination to improve it is characteristic of the noblest Atheism of our day. And it is thus a distintly elevating factor in the midst of the selfishness, luxury, and greed of modern civilisation. It is a virile virtue in the midst of the calculating and slothful spirit which too ofter veils itself under the pretence or religion. It will have no putting off of justice to a far-off day of reckoning, and it is ever spurred on by the feeling, "The night cometh, when no man can work." Bereft of all hope of a personal future, it binds up its hopes with that of the race; unbelieving in any aid from Deity, it struggles the more strenuously to work out man's salvation by his own strength. "To us there is but small comfort in Miss Cobbe's assurance that 'earth's wrongs and agonies' 'will be righted hereafter.' Granting for a moment that man survives death what certainty have we that 'the next world' will be any improvement on this? Miss Cobbe assures us that this is 'God's world'; whose world will the next be, if not also His? Will He be stronger there or better, that He should set right in that world the wrongs He has permitted here? Will He have changed His mind, or have become weary of the contemplation of suffering? To me the thought that the world was in the hands of a God who permitted all the present wrongs and pains to exist would be intolerable, maddening in its hopelessness. There is every hope of righting earth's wrongs and of curing earth's pains if the reason and skill of man which have already done so much are free to do the rest; but if they are to strive against omnipotence, hopeless indeed is the future of the world. It is in this sense that the Atheist looks on good as 'the final goal of ill,' and believing that that goal will be reached the sooner the more strenuous the efforts of each individual, he works in the glad certainty that he is aiding the world's progress thitherward. Not dreaming of a personal reward hereafter, not craving a personal payment from heavenly treasury, he works and loves, content that he is building a future fairer than his present, joyous that he is creating a new earth for a happier race."[24]
This joyful, self-sufficient approach to the world, combined with a strong determination to make it better, is a hallmark of the noblest Atheism of today. It serves as an uplifting force amid the selfishness, luxury, and greed present in modern civilization. It represents a strong virtue within a calculating and lazy mindset that often disguises itself as religion. It rejects the idea of pushing justice off to some distant day of reckoning and is always motivated by the feeling, "The night is coming when no one can work." Lacking all hope of a personal future, it ties its hopes to those of humanity; without believing in any divine assistance, it works even harder to secure man's salvation through his own strength. "We find little comfort in Miss Cobbe's assurance that 'earth's wrongs and agonies' 'will be righted hereafter.' Even if we assume that man survives death, what certainty do we have that 'the next world' will be any better than this one? Miss Cobbe insists that this is 'God's world'; whose world will the next be if not His as well? Will He be more powerful or better there, so He can correct the wrongs He allows here? Will He have changed His mind or grown tired of witnessing suffering? To me, the idea that a God who allows all the current wrongs and pains to exist is in control of the world is unbearable, maddening in its hopelessness. There is hope for correcting the wrongs of the earth and healing its pains if the reason and skill of humanity, which have already accomplished so much, are free to continue their work; but if they are to contend with omnipotence, the future of the world looks bleak. In this sense, the Atheist sees goodness as 'the final goal of evil,' and believing that this goal will be reached sooner with the more vigorous efforts of each individual, works with the joyful certainty that he is contributing to the world's progress toward that goal. Not dreaming of a personal reward in the afterlife or seeking personal payment from some heavenly treasury, he works and loves, content in the knowledge that he is building a future that is better than his present and delighted that he is creating a new world for a happier generation."[24]
Such was the creed and such the morality which governed my life and thoughts from 1874 to 1886, and with some misgivings to 1889, and from which I drew strength and happiness amid all outer struggles and distress. And I shall ever remain grateful for the intellectual and moral training it gave me, for the self-reliance it nurtured, for the altruism it inculcated, for the deep feeling of the unity of man that it fostered, for the inspiration to work that it lent. And perhaps the chief debt of gratitude I owe to Freethought is that it left the mind ever open to new truth, encouraged the most unshrinking questioning of Nature, and shrank from no new conclusions, however adverse to the old, that were based on solid evidence. I admit sorrowfully that all Freethinkers do not learn this lesson, but I worked side by side with Charles Bradlaugh, and the Freethought we strove to spread was strong-headed and broad-hearted.
This was the belief system and morality that shaped my life and thoughts from 1874 to 1886, and with some doubts until 1889. It gave me strength and happiness amid all external struggles and hardships. I will always be thankful for the intellectual and moral guidance it provided, for the self-reliance it fostered, for the sense of altruism it instilled, for the deep feeling of human unity it encouraged, and for the motivation to work it inspired. Perhaps my biggest debt of gratitude to Freethought is that it kept my mind open to new truths, encouraged fearless questioning of Nature, and welcomed any new conclusions, no matter how contrary to the old ones, as long as they were based on solid evidence. I sadly acknowledge that not all Freethinkers learn this lesson, but I worked alongside Charles Bradlaugh, and the Freethought we aimed to promote was bold and compassionate.
The antagonism which, as we shall see in a few moments, blazed out against me from the commencement of my platform work, was based partly on ignorance, was partly aroused by my direct attacks on Christianity, and by the combative spirit I myself showed in those attacks, and very largely by my extreme Radicalism in politics. I had against me all the conventional beliefs and traditions of society in general, and I attacked them, not with bated breath and abundant apologies, but joyously and defiantly, with sheer delight in the intellectual strife. I was fired, too, with passionate sympathy for the sufferings of the poor, for the overburdened, overdriven masses of the people, not only here but in every land, and wherever a blow was struck at Liberty or Justice my pen or tongue brake silence. It was a perpetual carrying of the fiery cross, and the comfortable did not thank me for shaking them out of their soft repose.
The hostility that, as we'll see shortly, erupted against me from the start of my public speaking was partly due to ignorance, partly fueled by my direct challenges to Christianity, and largely driven by my extreme Radicalism in politics. I faced opposition from all the traditional beliefs and norms of society, and I confronted them not cautiously and with apologies, but joyfully and defiantly, finding pure pleasure in the intellectual battle. I was also deeply passionate about the struggles of the poor, the overburdened, and the oppressed masses, not just here but in every country, and whenever there was an attack on Liberty or Justice, I spoke out. It was like carrying a fiery cross, and those who were comfortable didn't appreciate me shaking them out of their easy lives.
The antagonism that grew out of ignorance regarded Atheism as implying degraded morality and bestial life, and they assailed my conduct not on evidence that it was evil, but on the presumption that an Atheist must be immoral. Thus a Christian opponent at Leicester assailed me as a teacher of free love, fathering on me views which were maintained in a book that I had not read, but which, before I had ever seen the National Reformer, had been reviewed in its columns—as it was reviewed in other London papers—and had been commended for its clear statement of the Malthusian position, but not for its contention as to free love, a theory to which Mr. Bradlaugh was very strongly opposed. Nor were the attacks confined to the ascription to me of theories which I did not hold, but agents of the Christian Evidence Society, in their street preaching, made the foulest accusations against me of personal immorality. Remonstrances addressed to the Rev. Mr. Engström, the secretary of the society, brought voluble protestations of disavowal and disapproval; but as the peccant agents were continued in their employment, the apologies were of small value. No accusation was too coarse, no slander too baseless, for circulation by these men; and for a long time these indignities caused me bitter suffering, outraging my pride, and soiling my good name. The time was to come when I should throw that good name to the winds for the sake of the miserable, but in those early days I had done nothing to merit, even ostensibly, such attacks. Even by educated writers, who should have known better, the most wanton accusations of violence and would-be destructiveness were brought against Atheists; thus Miss Frances Power Cobbe wrote in the Contemporary Review that loss of faith in God would bring about the secularisation or destruction of all cathedrals, churches, and chapels. "Why," I wrote in answer, "should cathedrals, churches, and chapels be destroyed? Atheism will utilise, not destroy, the beautiful edifices which, once wasted on God, shall hereafter be consecrated for man. Destroy Westminster Abbey, with its exquisite arches, its glorious tones of soft, rich colour, its stonework light as if of cloud, its dreamy, subdued twilight, soothing as the 'shadow of a great rock in a weary land'? Nay, but reconsecrate it to humanity. The fat cherubs who tumble over guns and banners on soldiers' graves will fitly be removed to some spot where their clumsy forms will no longer mar the upward-springing grace of lines of pillar and of arch; but the glorious building wherein now barbaric psalms are chanted and droning canons preach of Eastern follies, shall hereafter echo the majestic music of Wagner and Beethoven, and the teachers of the future shall there unveil to thronging multitudes the beauties and the wonders of the world. The 'towers and spires' will not be effaced, but they will no longer be symbols of a religion which sacrifices earth to heaven and Man to God."[25] Between the cultured and the uncultured burlesques of Atheism we came off pretty badly, being for the most part regarded, as the late Cardinal Manning termed us, as mere "cattle."
The hostility that arose from ignorance saw Atheism as linked to poor morality and a brutal lifestyle, and critics attacked my actions not based on any real evidence of wrongdoing, but on the assumption that an Atheist must be immoral. One Christian opponent in Leicester accused me of promoting free love, attributing to me ideas from a book I had never read, which had been reviewed in the National Reformer and other London papers before I even saw it. The book was praised for clearly articulating the Malthusian stance, but not for advocating free love, a theory that Mr. Bradlaugh strongly opposed. The assaults weren't limited to misattributing me to theories I didn't believe, but representatives of the Christian Evidence Society hurled the most vile accusations of personal immorality at me during their street preaching. Complaints sent to Rev. Mr. Engström, the society's secretary, received loud refusals and disapproval, but since the offending agents were kept on, those apologies meant little. No accusation was too crude, no slander too unfounded for these men to spread, and for a long time, these insults caused me deep pain, damaging my pride and tarnishing my reputation. A time would come when I would sacrifice that reputation for the sake of the less fortunate, but in those early days, I had done nothing to deserve, even on the surface, such attacks. Even educated writers, who should have known better, made reckless accusations of violence and destruction against Atheists; for example, Miss Frances Power Cobbe wrote in the Contemporary Review that losing faith in God would lead to the secularization or destruction of all cathedrals, churches, and chapels. "Why," I replied, "should cathedrals, churches, and chapels be destroyed? Atheism will use, not destroy, the beautiful buildings that, once dedicated to God, will now be devoted to humanity. Should we destroy Westminster Abbey, with its stunning arches, its rich, soft colors, its stonework as light as a cloud, its dreamy, subdued twilight, as soothing as 'the shadow of a great rock in a weary land'? No, let’s reconsecrate it for humanity. The chubby cherubs tumbling over cannons and flags on soldiers’ graves should be placed somewhere they won’t spoil the graceful lines of pillars and arches; but the magnificent building where barbaric psalms are sung and droning canons preach about Eastern foolishness will instead resonate with the grand music of Wagner and Beethoven, and future teachers will reveal the beauty and wonders of the world to crowds there. The 'towers and spires' won’t disappear, but they will no longer symbolize a religion that prioritizes heaven over earth and Man over God."[25] Between the cultured and uncultured mocking of Atheism, we didn't come off well, often being viewed, as the late Cardinal Manning put it, as nothing more than "cattle."
The moral purity and elevation of Atheistic teaching were overlooked by many who heard only of my bitter attacks on Christian theology. Against the teachings of eternal torture, of the vicarious atonement, of the infallibility of the Bible, I levelled all the strength of my brain and tongue, and I exposed the history of the Christian Church with unsparing hand, its persecutions, its religious wars, its cruelties, its oppressions. Smarting under the suffering inflicted on myself, and wroth with the cruel pressure continually put on Freethinkers by Christian employers, speaking under constant threats of prosecution, identifying Christianity with the political and social tyrannies of Christendom, I used every weapon that history, science, criticism, scholarship could give me against the Churches; eloquence, sarcasm, mockery, all were called on to make breaches in the wall of traditional belief and crass superstition.
The moral clarity and depth of Atheistic ideas were missed by many who only heard my sharp criticisms of Christian theology. I directed all my intellect and speech against the doctrines of eternal damnation, the idea of vicarious atonement, and the claim of the Bible’s infallibility. I revealed the history of the Christian Church without holding back, detailing its persecutions, religious wars, cruelties, and oppressions. Outraged by the suffering I endured and angry about the ongoing pressure that Christian employers place on Freethinkers, I spoke under constant threat of legal action, linking Christianity to the political and social oppressions of Christendom. I used every tool that history, science, criticism, and scholarship could provide against the Churches; I employed eloquence, sarcasm, and mockery to chip away at the walls of traditional beliefs and blatant superstition.
To argument and reason I was ever ready to listen, but I turned a front of stubborn defiance to all attempts to compel assent to Christianity by appeals to force. "The threat and the enforcement of legal and social penalties against unbelief can never compel belief. Belief must be gained by demonstration; it can never be forced by punishment. Persecution makes the stronger among us bitter; the weaker among us hypocrites; it never has made and never can make an honest convert."[26]
I was always open to discussion and reasoning, but I resisted any attempts to force me to accept Christianity through threats. "Using legal and social penalties against those who don’t believe can never make someone believe. Faith must be earned through proof; it can’t be imposed through punishment. Persecution only makes the stronger among us resentful and the weaker among us insincere; it has never produced and can never produce a genuine convert."[26]
That men and women are now able to speak and think as openly as they do, that a broader spirit is visible in the Churches, that heresy is no longer regarded as morally disgraceful—these things are very largely due to the active and militant propaganda carried on under the leadership of Charles Bradlaugh, whose nearest and most trusted friend I was. That my tongue was in the early days bitterer than it should have been, I frankly acknowledge; that I ignored the services done by Christianity and threw light only on its crimes, thus committing injustice, I am ready to admit. But these faults were conquered long ere I left the Atheistic camp, and they were the faults of my personality, not of the Atheistic philosophy. And my main contentions were true, and needed to be made; from many a Christian pulpit to-day may be heard the echo of the Freethought teachings; men's minds have been awakened, their knowledge enlarged; and while I condemn the unnecessary harshness of some of my language, I rejoice that I played my part in that educating of England which has made impossible for evermore the crude superstitions of the past, and the repetition of the cruelties and injustices under which preceding heretics suffered.
That men and women can now express their thoughts and opinions so freely, that a more open-minded attitude is visible in churches, and that heresy is no longer seen as morally shameful—these changes are largely the result of the active and passionate efforts led by Charles Bradlaugh, of whom I was a close and trusted friend. I openly acknowledge that my earlier words were often harsher than they should have been, and that I overlooked the positive contributions of Christianity, focusing instead only on its wrongs; I admit this injustice. However, I overcame those faults long before I left the Atheist movement, recognizing they were personal issues, not flaws of Atheist philosophy. My main arguments were valid and necessary; echoes of Freethought teachings can now be heard from many Christian pulpits; people's minds have been awakened, and their knowledge has expanded. While I criticize the unnecessary severity of some of my language, I take pride in having contributed to the education of England, which has made the crude superstitions of the past and the repetition of the cruelties faced by previous heretics impossible for all time.
But my extreme political views had also much to do with the general feeling of hatred with which I was regarded. Politics, as such, I cared not for at all, for the necessary compromises of political life were intolerable to me; but wherever they touched on the life of the people they became to me of burning interest. The land question, the incidence of taxation, the cost of Royalty, the obstructive power of the House of Lords—these were the matters to which I put my hand; I was a Home Ruler, too, of course, and a passionate opponent of all injustice to nations weaker than ourselves, so that I found myself always in opposition to the Government of the day. Against our aggressive and oppressive policy in Ireland, in the Transvaal, in India, in Afghanistan, in Burmah, in Egypt, I lifted up my voice in all our great towns, trying to touch the consciences of the people, and to make them feel the immorality of a land-stealing, piratical policy. Against war, against capital punishment, against flogging, demanding national education instead of big guns, public libraries instead of warships—no wonder I was denounced as an agitator, a firebrand, and that all orthodox society turned up at me its most respectable nose.
But my extreme political views were a big part of the intense dislike people had for me. I didn't care about politics in general; I found the compromises that came with political life unbearable. However, when politics affected people's lives, I became deeply interested. Issues like land rights, taxation, the cost of the monarchy, and the blocking power of the House of Lords were what I focused on. I was also a supporter of Home Rule and a passionate opponent of injustice toward nations weaker than us, which often put me at odds with the government. I spoke out against our aggressive and oppressive policies in Ireland, the Transvaal, India, Afghanistan, Burma, and Egypt, trying to awaken people's sense of morality about our land-grabbing, piratical policies. I stood against war, capital punishment, and flogging, calling for national education instead of military spending, and public libraries instead of battleships. It’s no surprise I was labeled an agitator and a troublemaker, and that all conventional society looked down on me.
CHAPTER VIII.
CHAPTER 8.
AT WORK.
From this sketch of the inner sources of action let me turn to the actions themselves, and see how the outer life was led which fed itself at these springs.
From this overview of the inner motivations for action, let me shift to the actions themselves and examine how the outer life was lived, drawing from these sources.
I have said that the friendship between Mr. Bradlaugh and myself dated from our first meeting, and a few days after our talk in Turner Street he came down to see me at Norwood. It was characteristic of the man that he refused my first invitation, and bade me to think well ere I asked him to my house. He told me that he was so hated by English society that any friend of his would be certain to suffer, and that I should pay heavily for any friendship extended to him. When, however, I wrote to him, repeating my invitation, and telling him that I had counted the cost, he came to see me. His words came true; my friendship for him alienated from me even many professed Freethinkers, but the strength and the happiness of it outweighed a thousand times the loss it brought, and never has a shadow of regret touched me that I clasped hands with him in 1874, and won the noblest friend that woman ever had. He never spoke to me a harsh word; where we differed, he never tried to override my judgment, nor force on me his views; we discussed all points of difference as equal friends; he guarded me from all suffering as far as friend might, and shared with me all the pain he could not turn aside; all the brightness of my stormy life came to me through him, from his tender thoughtfulness, his ever-ready sympathy, his generous love. He was the most unselfish man I ever knew, and as patient as he was strong. My quick, impulsive nature found in him the restful strength it needed, and learned from him the self-control it lacked.
I’ve mentioned that the friendship between Mr. Bradlaugh and me started right from our first meeting, and a few days after our conversation on Turner Street, he came to visit me in Norwood. It was typical of him to decline my initial invitation and advised me to think carefully before asking him to my home. He told me that he was so disliked by English society that anyone associated with him would definitely face consequences, and that I would pay dearly for any friendship I extended to him. However, when I wrote to him again, reiterating my invitation and assuring him that I had considered the repercussions, he agreed to come see me. His words turned out to be true; my friendship with him distanced me from many self-proclaimed Freethinkers, but the depth and joy of our bond far outweighed the losses, and I have never felt a moment of regret for joining hands with him in 1874, nor for gaining the noblest friend a woman could ever have. He never spoke harshly to me; even when we disagreed, he never tried to impose his views or overshadow my judgment; we discussed our differences as equals. He shielded me from suffering as much as a friend could, and shared with me all the pain he couldn’t avoid. All the joy in my turbulent life flowed to me through him, stemming from his thoughtful care, his constant empathy, and his generous love. He was the most selfless person I ever knew, as patient as he was strong. My quick, impulsive nature found in him the calm strength it needed, and learned from him the self-control it was missing.
He was the merriest of companions in our rare hours of relaxation; for many years he was wont to come to my house in the morning, after the hours always set aside by him for receiving poor men who wanted advice on legal and other matters—for he was a veritable poor man's lawyer, always ready to help and counsel—and, bringing his books and papers, he would sit writing, hour after hour, I equally busy with my own work, now and then, perhaps, exchanging a word, breaking off just for lunch and dinner, and working on again in the evening till about ten o'clock—he always went early to bed when at home—he would take himself off again to his lodgings, about three-quarters of a mile away. Sometimes he would play cards for an hour, euchre being our favourite game. But while we were mostly busy and grave, we would make holiday sometimes, and then he was like a boy, brimming over with mirth, full of quaint turns of thought and speech; all the country round London has for me bright memories of our wanderings—Richmond, where we tramped across the park, and sat under its mighty trees; Windsor, with its groves of bracken; Kew, where we had tea in a funny little room, with watercress ad libitum; Hampton Court, with its dishevelled beauties; Maidenhead and Taplow, where the river was the attraction; and, above all, Broxbourne, where he delighted to spend the day with his fishing-rod, wandering along the river, of which he knew every eddy. For he was a great fisherman, and he taught me all the mysteries of the craft, mirthfully disdainful of my dislike of the fish when I had caught them. And in those days he would talk of all his hopes of the future, of his work, of his duty to the thousands who looked to him for guidance, of the time when he would sit in Parliament as member for Northampton, and help to pass into laws the projects of reform for which he was battling with pen and tongue. How often he would voice his love of England, his admiration of her Parliament, his pride in her history. Keenly alive to the blots upon it in her sinful wars of conquest, in the cruel wrongs inflicted upon subject peoples, he was yet an Englishman to the heart's core, but feeling above all the Englishman's duty, as one of a race that had gripped power and held it, to understand the needs of those he ruled, and to do justice willingly, since compulsion to justice there was none. His service to India in the latest years of his life was no suddenly accepted task. He had spoken for her, pleaded for her, for many a long year, through press and on platform, and his spurs as member for India were won long ere he was member of Parliament.
He was the happiest of friends during our rare moments of downtime; for many years, he would come to my house in the morning after the hours he always set aside to meet with poor people seeking advice on legal and other issues—he was truly a lawyer for the less fortunate, always ready to help and give guidance—and, bringing his books and papers, he would sit writing for hours while I worked on my own tasks. Occasionally, we would exchange a word, break for lunch and dinner, and then continue working in the evening until about ten o'clock—he always went to bed early when home—and then he would head back to his place, about three-quarters of a mile away. Sometimes, he would play cards for an hour, with euchre being our favorite game. Despite our mostly serious work, we would occasionally take a break, and then he would become like a boy, overflowing with joy, full of quirky thoughts and speech; all the areas around London hold vibrant memories of our adventures—Richmond, where we hiked across the park and relaxed under its grand trees; Windsor, with its ferns; Kew, where we had tea in a quirky little room, enjoying unlimited watercress; Hampton Court, with its untamed beauty; Maidenhead and Taplow, where the river was the main attraction; and especially Broxbourne, where he loved to spend the day with his fishing rod, wandering along the river that he knew so well. He was an excellent fisherman who taught me all the secrets of the sport, playfully dismissing my aversion to the fish once I caught them. During those times, he often spoke about his hopes for the future, his work, his responsibility to the thousands who looked to him for guidance, the time when he would sit in Parliament as the representative for Northampton, and help turn into law the reform projects he passionately supported with his writing and speaking. How often he expressed his love for England, his admiration for its Parliament, and his pride in its history. While he was very aware of its flaws, like its painful wars of conquest and the cruel injustices done to subjugated people, he was, at his core, a true Englishman, deeply aware of the Englishman’s duty, as part of a nation that had held power, to understand the needs of those he governed and to provide justice willingly, as there was no obligation to do so. His service to India in the later years of his life was not a sudden decision. He had advocated for her, spoken on her behalf, for many years through the press and public speaking, earning his stripes as a member for India long before he became a member of Parliament.
A place on the staff of the National Reformer was offered me by Mr. Bradlaugh a few days after our first meeting, and the small weekly salary thus earned—it was only a guinea, for national reformers are always poor—was a very welcome addition to my resources. My first contribution appeared in the number for August 30, 1874, over the signature of "Ajax," and I wrote in it regularly until Mr. Bradlaugh died; from 1877 until his death I sub-edited it, so as to free him from all the technical trouble and the weary reading of copy, and for part of this period was also co-editor. I wrote at first under a nom de guerre, because the work I was doing for Mr. Scott would have been prejudiced had my name appeared in the columns of the terrible National Reformer, and until this work—commenced and paid for—was concluded I did not feel at liberty to use my own name. Afterwards, I signed my National Reformer articles, and the tracts written for Mr. Scott appeared anonymously.
A role on the staff of the National Reformer was offered to me by Mr. Bradlaugh just a few days after we first met, and the small weekly salary I earned—it was only a guinea, since national reformers are always short on cash—was a very welcome boost to my finances. My first article was published in the issue dated August 30, 1874, under the name "Ajax," and I wrote for it regularly until Mr. Bradlaugh passed away; from 1877 until his death, I sub-edited the publication to relieve him of all the technical details and the exhausting reading of copy, and during part of this time, I was also a co-editor. Initially, I wrote under a nom de guerre because the work I was doing for Mr. Scott would have been affected if my name appeared in the controversial National Reformer, and until this work—started and paid for—was completed, I didn't feel free to use my real name. Later on, I began signing my National Reformer articles, while the pamphlets written for Mr. Scott were published anonymously.
The name was suggested by the famous statue of "Ajax Crying for Light," a cast of which may be seen in the centre walk by any visitor to the Crystal Palace, Sydenham. The cry through the darkness for light, even though light should bring destruction, was one that awoke the keenest sympathy of response from my heart:
The name came from the famous statue of "Ajax Crying for Light," a cast of which can be seen in the main path by any visitor to the Crystal Palace, Sydenham. The plea through the darkness for light, even if that light could bring destruction, stirred the deepest sympathy in my heart:
"If our fate be death
Give light, and let us die!"
"If we're meant to die
Shine a light, and let us go!"
To see, to know, to understand, even though the seeing blind, though the knowledge sadden, though the understanding shatter the dearest hopes—such has ever been the craving of the upward-striving mind in man. Some regard it as a weakness, as a folly, but I am sure that it exists most strongly in some of the noblest of our race; that from the lips of those who have done most in lifting the burden of ignorance from the overstrained and bowed shoulders of a stumbling world has gone out most often into the empty darkness the pleading, impassioned cry:
To see, to know, to understand, even when seeing is blinding, when knowledge brings sadness, and when understanding shatters our deepest hopes—this has always been the desire of the ambitious mind in humanity. Some consider it a weakness or foolishness, but I believe it is strongest in some of the finest among us; that from the mouths of those who have contributed the most to easing the burden of ignorance from the weary and burdened shoulders of a struggling world has often emerged the desperate, heartfelt cry into the vast emptiness:
"Give light!"
"Provide light!"
The light may come with a blinding flash, but it is light none the less, and we can see.
The light might arrive with a bright flash, but it's still light, and we can see.
And now the time had come when I was to use that gift of speech which I had discovered in Sibsey Church that I possessed, and to use it to move hearts and brains all over the English land. In 1874, tentatively, and in 1875 definitely, I took up this keen weapon, and have used it ever since. My first attempt was at a garden party, in a brief informal debate, and I found that words came readily and smoothly: the second in a discussion at the Liberal Social Union on the opening of museums and art galleries on Sunday. My first lecture was given at the Co-operative Institute, 55, Castle Street, Oxford Street, on August 25, 1874. Mr. Greening—then, I think, the secretary—had invited me to read a paper before the society, and had left me the choice of the subject. I resolved that my first public lecture should be on behalf of my own sex, so I selected for my theme, "The Political Status of Women," and wrote thereon a paper. But it was a very nervous person who presented herself at the Co-operative Institute on that August evening. When a visit to the dentist is made, and one stands on the steps outside, desiring to run away ere the neat little boy in buttons opens the door and beams on one with a smile of compassionate superiority and implike triumph, then the world seems dark and life is as a huge blunder. But all such feelings are poor and weak as compared with the sinking of the heart and the trembling of the knees which seize upon the unhappy lecturer as he advances towards his first audience, and as before his eyes rises a ghastly vision of a tongue-tied would-be lecturer, facing rows of listening faces, listening to—silence. But to my surprise all this miserable feeling vanished the moment I was on my feet and was looking at the faces before me. I felt no tremor of nervousness from the first word to the last, and as I heard my own voice ring out over the attentive listeners I was conscious of power and of pleasure, not of fear. And from that day to this my experience has been the same; before a lecture I am horribly nervous, wishing myself at the ends of the earth, heart beating violently, and sometimes overcome by deadly sickness. Once on my feet, I feel perfectly at my ease, ruler of the crowd, master of myself. I often jeer at myself mentally as I feel myself throbbing and fearful, knowing that when I stand up I shall be all right, and yet I cannot conquer the physical terror and trembling, illusory as I know them to be. People often say to me, "You look too ill to go on the platform." And I smile feebly and say I am all right, and I often fancy that the more miserably nervous I am in the ante-room, the better I speak when once on the platform. My second lecture was delivered on September 27th, at Mr. Moncure D. Conway's Chapel, in St. Paul's Road, Camden Town, and redelivered a few weeks later at a Unitarian Chapel, where the Rev. Peter Dean was minister. This was on the "True Basis of Morality," and was later printed as a pamphlet, which attained a wide circulation. This was all I did in the way of speaking in 1874, but I took silent part in an electioneering struggle at Northampton, where a seat for the House of Commons had fallen vacant by the death of Mr. Charles Gilpin. Mr. Bradlaugh had contested the borough as a Radical in 1868, obtaining 1,086 votes, and again in February, 1874, when he received 1,653; of these no less than 1,060 were plumpers, while his four opponents had only 113, 64, 21 and 12 plumpers respectively; this band formed the compact and personally loyal following which was to win the seat for its chief in 1880, after twelve years of steady struggle, and to return him over and over again to Parliament during the long contest which followed his election, and which ended in his final triumph. They never wavered in their allegiance to "our Charlie," but stood by him through evil report and good report, when he was outcast as when he was triumphant, loving him with a deep, passionate devotion, as honourable to them as it was precious to him. I have seen him cry like a child at evidences of their love for him, he whose courage no danger could daunt, and who was never seen to blench before hatred nor change his stern immobility in the face of his foes. Iron to enmity, he was soft as a woman to kindness; unbending as steel to pressure, he was ductile as wax to love. John Stuart Mill had the insight in 1868 to see his value, and the courage to recognise it. He strongly supported his candidature, and sent a donation to his election expenses. In his "Autobiography" he wrote (pp. 311, 312):—
And now the time had come for me to use that gift of speech I discovered I had in Sibsey Church, to touch hearts and minds all over England. In 1874, I tentatively started, and in 1875, I fully embraced this powerful tool, and I've been using it ever since. My first attempt was at a garden party during a brief informal debate, and I found that my words flowed easily. The second time was during a discussion at the Liberal Social Union about opening museums and art galleries on Sundays. My first lecture was at the Co-operative Institute, 55 Castle Street, Oxford Street, on August 25, 1874. Mr. Greening—who was, I believe, the secretary—invited me to present a paper to the society and let me choose the topic. I decided my first public lecture would be in support of my own gender, so I picked "The Political Status of Women" as my theme and wrote a paper on it. But it was a very nervous person who showed up at the Co-operative Institute that August evening. When you're about to visit the dentist and you're standing on the steps outside, wishing you could escape before the neatly dressed assistant opens the door and greets you with a smug smile, life can feel pretty bleak. But all those feelings are weak compared to the sinking feeling in my stomach and shaking knees that take hold of an unhappy lecturer as they walk toward their first audience, faced with a terrifying vision of a tongue-tied speaker standing in front of rows of attentive faces, waiting for—silence. However, to my surprise, all that awful feeling disappeared the moment I got to my feet and looked at the faces in front of me. I felt no nervousness from the first word to the last, and as I heard my own voice resonate over the engaged listeners, I felt empowered and joyful, not afraid. From that day on, my experience has been the same; before a lecture, I'm incredibly nervous, wishing I were anywhere else, with my heart racing and sometimes feeling nauseous. But once I'm on stage, I feel completely at ease, in control of the crowd and myself. I often laugh at myself mentally, feeling the anxiety and dread, knowing that once I stand up, I'll be fine, yet I can’t shake off the physical fear and trembling, despite knowing they're just illusions. People frequently tell me, "You look too sick to go on stage." I smile weakly and say I'm fine, and I've come to believe that the more anxious I feel backstage, the better I perform once on stage. My second lecture took place on September 27th, at Mr. Moncure D. Conway's Chapel in St. Paul's Road, Camden Town, and I presented it again a few weeks later at a Unitarian Chapel, where the Rev. Peter Dean was the minister. This lecture was about "The True Basis of Morality" and was later published as a pamphlet that circulated widely. That was all I did in terms of speaking in 1874, but I also took part quietly in an election campaign in Northampton, where a seat in the House of Commons became vacant after the death of Mr. Charles Gilpin. Mr. Bradlaugh had contested the borough as a Radical in 1868, getting 1,086 votes, and again in February 1874, when he received 1,653; 1,060 of those were plumpers, while his four opponents had only 113, 64, 21, and 12 plumpers respectively. This group formed a close-knit and loyal following that would secure the seat for him in 1880 after a twelve-year struggle, and would repeatedly elect him to Parliament during the lengthy battle that followed his election, culminating in his ultimate victory. They never wavered in their support for "our Charlie," standing by him through both good times and bad, loving him with a deep, passionate devotion that was as honorable for them as it was cherished by him. I have seen him cry like a child at signs of their affection, he who was undaunted by danger and never showed fear in the face of enmity. Strong against hostility, he was gentle as a woman toward kindness; inflexible under pressure, he was as pliable as wax to love. John Stuart Mill recognized his worth in 1868 with a boldness that was impressive. He strongly backed his candidacy and contributed to his election campaign. In his "Autobiography," he wrote (pp. 311, 312):—
"He had the support of the working classes; having heard him speak I knew him to be a man of ability, and he had proved that he was the reverse of a demagogue by placing himself in strong opposition to the prevailing opinion of the Democratic party on two such important subjects as Malthusianism and Proportional Representation. Men of this sort, who, while sharing the democratic feeling of the working classes, judge political questions for themselves, and have the courage to assert their individual convictions against popular opposition, were needed, as it seemed to me, in Parliament; and I did not think that Mr. Bradlaugh's anti-religious opinions (even though he had been intemperate in the expression of them) ought to exclude him."
"He had the support of the working class; after hearing him speak, I recognized him as a capable man, and he showed that he was definitely not a demagogue by strongly opposing the common views of the Democratic Party on two significant issues: Malthusianism and Proportional Representation. We needed people like him in Parliament—those who, while sharing the democratic sentiments of the working class, think for themselves on political matters and have the courage to defend their personal beliefs against popular opposition. I didn't believe that Mr. Bradlaugh's anti-religious views (even though he was sometimes extreme in expressing them) should disqualify him."
It has been said that Mr. Mill's support of Mr. Bradlaugh's candidature at Northampton cost him his own seat at Westminster, and so bitter was bigotry at that time that the statement is very likely to be true. On this, Mr. Mill himself said: "It was the right thing to do, and if the election were yet to take place, I would do it again."
It’s been said that Mr. Mill's support for Mr. Bradlaugh's run in Northampton cost him his own position in Westminster, and the bigotry back then was so intense that this claim is likely true. In response, Mr. Mill himself stated: "It was the right thing to do, and if the election were happening again, I would do it once more."
At this election of September, 1874—the second in the year, for the general election had taken place in the February, and Mr. Bradlaugh had been put up and defeated during his absence in America—I went down to Northampton to report electioneering incidents for the National Reformer, and spent some days there in the whirl of the struggle. The Whig party was more bitter against Mr. Bradlaugh than was the Tory. Strenuous efforts were made to procure a Liberal candidate, who would be able at least to prevent Mr. Bradlaugh's return, and, by dividing the Liberal and Radical party, should let in a Tory rather than the detested Radical. Messrs. Bell and James and Dr. Pearce came on the scene only to disappear. Mr. Jacob Bright and Mr. Arnold Morley were vainly suggested. Mr. Ayrton's name was whispered. Major Lumley was recommended by Mr. Bernal Osborne. Dr. Kenealy proclaimed himself ready to come to the rescue of the Whigs. Mr. Tillett, of Norwich, Mr. Cox, of Belper, were invited, but neither would consent to oppose a good Radical who had fought two elections at Northampton and had been the chosen of the Radical workers for six years. At last Mr. William Fowler, a banker, accepted the task of handing over the representation of a Liberal and Radical borough to a Tory, and duly succeeded in giving the seat to Mr. Mereweather, a very reputable Tory lawyer. Mr. Bradlaugh polled 1,766, thus adding another 133 voters to those who had polled for him in the previous February.
At the September 1874 election—the second one that year, following the general election in February—Mr. Bradlaugh was put forward as a candidate but was defeated while he was in America. I went down to Northampton to report on the election happenings for the National Reformer and spent several days caught up in the excitement of the campaign. The Whig party was more fiercely against Mr. Bradlaugh than the Tory party was. They made strong efforts to find a Liberal candidate who could at least stop Mr. Bradlaugh's return and, by splitting the Liberal and Radical votes, allow a Tory to win instead of the despised Radical. Messrs. Bell and James and Dr. Pearce showed up but quickly disappeared. Mr. Jacob Bright and Mr. Arnold Morley were suggested but without success. Mr. Ayrton's name was mentioned quietly. Major Lumley was recommended by Mr. Bernal Osborne. Dr. Kenealy declared himself ready to help the Whigs. Mr. Tillett from Norwich and Mr. Cox from Belper were invited, but neither would agree to challenge a good Radical who had fought two elections in Northampton and had been supported by the Radical workers for six years. Finally, Mr. William Fowler, a banker, took on the job of passing the representation of a Liberal and Radical borough to a Tory and successfully handed the seat to Mr. Mereweather, a well-respected Tory lawyer. Mr. Bradlaugh received 1,766 votes, increasing his support by 133 voters from the previous February.
That election gave me my first experience of anything in the nature of rioting. The violent abuse levelled against Mr. Bradlaugh by the Whigs, and the foul and wicked slanders circulated against him, assailing his private life and family relations, had angered almost to madness those who knew and loved him; and when it was found that the unscrupulous Whig devices had triumphed, had turned the election against him, and given over the borough to a Tory, the fury broke out into open violence. One illustration may be given as a type of these cruel slanders. It was known that Mr. Bradlaugh was separated from his wife, and it was alleged that being an Atheist, and, (therefore!) an opponent of marriage, he had deserted his wife and children, and left them to the workhouse. The cause of the separation was known to very few, for Mr. Bradlaugh was chivalrously honourable to women, and he would not shield his own good name at the cost of that of the wife of his youth and the mother of his children. But since his death his only remaining child has, in devotion to her father's memory, stated the melancholy truth: that Mrs. Bradlaugh gave way to drink; that for long years he bore with her and did all that man could do to save her; that finally, hopeless of cure, he broke up his home, and placed his wife in the care of her parents in the country, leaving her daughters with her, while he worked for their support. No man could have acted more generously and wisely under these cruel circumstances than he did, but it was, perhaps, going to an extreme of Quixotism, that he concealed the real state of the case, and let the public blame him as it would. His Northampton followers did not know the facts, but they knew him as an upright, noble man, and these brutal attacks on his personal character drove them wild. Stray fights had taken place during the election over these slanders, and, defeated by such foul weapons, the people lost control of their passions. As Mr. Bradlaugh was sitting well-nigh exhausted in the hotel, after the declaration of the poll, the landlord rushed in, crying to him to go out and try to stop the people, or there would be murder done at the "Palmerston," Mr. Fowler's headquarters; the crowd was charging the door, and the windows were being broken with showers of stones. Weary as he was, Mr. Bradlaugh sprang to his feet, and swiftly made his way to the rescue of those who had maligned and defeated him. Flinging himself before the doorway, from which the door had just been battered down, he knocked down one or two of the most violent, drove the crowd back, argued and scolded them into quietness, and finally dispersed them. But at nine o'clock he had to leave Northampton to catch the mail steamer for America at Queenstown, and after he had left, word went round that he had gone, and the riot he had quelled broke out afresh. The Riot Act was at last read, the soldiers were called out, stones flew freely, heads and windows were broken, but no very serious harm was done. The "Palmerston" and the printing-office of the Mercury, the Whig organ, were the principal sufferers; doors and windows disappearing somewhat completely. The day after the election I returned home, and soon after fell ill with a severe attack of congestion of the lungs. Soon after my recovery I left Norwood and settled in a house in Westbourne Terrace, Bayswater, where I remained till 1876.
That election gave me my first experience of anything like rioting. The violent abuse directed at Mr. Bradlaugh by the Whigs, along with the vile and malicious rumors spread about him, attacking his personal life and family relationships, had enraged almost everyone who knew and cared for him; and when it became clear that the unethical Whig tactics had succeeded, turning the election against him and handing the borough over to a Tory, the anger erupted into open violence. One example can illustrate these cruel slanders. It was known that Mr. Bradlaugh was separated from his wife, and it was claimed that as an atheist—and therefore an opponent of marriage—he had abandoned his wife and children, leaving them to fend for themselves in the workhouse. The reason for their separation was known to very few because Mr. Bradlaugh was gallantly honorable to women, refusing to protect his own reputation at the expense of his wife, who was the mother of his children. However, after his death, his only remaining child, out of devotion to her father's memory, revealed the sad truth: that Mrs. Bradlaugh had succumbed to alcoholism; that for many years he had put up with her struggle and done everything a man could do to help her; that ultimately, hopeless for a cure, he had to break up his home and place his wife in her parents' care in the country, leaving their daughters with her while he worked to support them. No one could have acted more generously and wisely under such harsh circumstances than he did, but perhaps it was a bit too Quixotic that he hid the real situation, allowing the public to blame him as they saw fit. His Northampton supporters didn’t know the details, but they recognized him as an upright, noble man, and these brutal attacks on his character drove them into a frenzy. Isolated fights occurred during the election over these slanders, and, pushed to the edge by such foul tactics, the people lost control of their tempers. While Mr. Bradlaugh was sitting nearly exhausted at the hotel after the poll was announced, the landlord rushed in, urging him to go out and try to calm the crowd, or there would be murder at the "Palmerston," Mr. Fowler's headquarters; the crowd was charging the door, and stones were breaking the windows. Despite being worn out, Mr. Bradlaugh jumped to his feet and quickly headed to protect those who had wronged and defeated him. Throwing himself in front of the doorway, from which the door had just been smashed in, he brought down one or two of the most aggressive individuals, pushed the crowd back, reasoned with and scolded them into quiet, and ultimately managed to disperse them. But at nine o'clock, he had to leave Northampton to catch the mail steamer for America at Queenstown, and once he had left, word spread that he was gone, and the riot he had quelled erupted again. The Riot Act was finally read, soldiers were called in, stones flew freely, heads and windows were broken, but fortunately, no serious harm was done. The "Palmerston" and the printing office of the Mercury, the Whig newspaper, were the major casualties, with doors and windows getting severely damaged. The day after the election, I returned home and soon fell ill with a severe case of lung congestion. Shortly after I recovered, I left Norwood and moved into a house on Westbourne Terrace in Bayswater, where I stayed until 1876.
In the following January (1875), after much thought and self-analysis, I resolved to give myself wholly to propagandist work, as a Freethinker and a Social Reformer, and to use my tongue as well as my pen in the struggle. I counted the cost ere I determined on this step, for I knew that it would not only outrage the feelings of such new friends as I had already made, but would be likely to imperil my custody of my little girl. I knew that an Atheist was outside the law, obnoxious to its penalties, but deprived of its protection, and that the step I contemplated might carry me into conflicts in which everything might be lost and nothing could be gained. But the desire to spread liberty and truer thought among men, to war against bigotry and superstition, to make the world freer and better than I found it—all this impelled me with a force that would not be denied. I seemed to hear the voice of Truth ringing over the battlefield: "Who will go? Who will speak for me?" And I sprang forward with passionate enthusiasm, with resolute cry: "Here am I, send me!" Nor have I ever regretted for one hour that resolution, come to in solitude, carried out amid the surging life of men, to devote to that sacred cause every power of brain and tongue that I possessed. Very solemn to me is the responsibility of the public teacher, standing forth in Press and on platform to partly mould the thought of his time, swaying thousands of readers and hearers year after year. No weighter responsibility can any take, no more sacred charge. The written and the spoken word start forces none may measure, set working brain after brain, influence numbers unknown to the forthgiver of the word, work for good or for evil all down the stream of time. Feeling the greatness of the career, the solemnity of the duty, I pledged my word then to the cause I loved that no effort on my part should be wanted to render myself worthy of the privilege of service that I took; that I would read and study, and would train every faculty that I had; that I would polish my language, discipline my thought, widen my knowledge; and this, at least, I may say, that if I have written and spoken much, I have studied and thought more, and that I have not given to my mistress Truth that "which hath cost me nothing."
In January 1875, after a lot of reflection and self-examination, I decided to fully dedicate myself to activist work as a Freethinker and Social Reformer, using both my voice and my writing in this cause. I weighed the consequences before making this choice because I knew it would not only upset the feelings of the new friends I had made but could also jeopardize my custody of my little girl. I understood that being an Atheist placed me outside the law—subject to its penalties but without its protections—and that the path I was considering might lead to conflicts where I could lose everything and gain nothing. Yet, the drive to promote freedom and genuine thought among people, to fight against ignorance and superstition, to make the world more just and better than I found it—this urge compelled me powerfully. I seemed to hear the voice of Truth calling out from the battlefield: "Who will go? Who will speak for me?" And I stepped forward with passionate enthusiasm, resolutely saying, "Here am I, send me!" I have never regretted that decision, made in solitude and acted upon amidst the vibrant life of people, committing every capability of my mind and voice to that noble cause. The responsibility of being a public educator is incredibly serious to me; standing before the press and on platforms, I partially shape the thoughts of my time, influencing thousands of readers and listeners every year. There is no greater responsibility or more sacred task. The words we write and speak unleash forces that cannot be measured, activating the minds of others, affecting countless individuals unbeknownst to the one who shared the words, working for good or ill throughout history. Understanding the magnitude of this journey and the gravity of my duty, I vowed then to the cause I cherished that I would make every effort to be worthy of the privilege of serving it; that I would read and study diligently, cultivate every skill I possessed, refine my language, discipline my thoughts, and expand my knowledge. At the very least, I can say that while I have written and spoken extensively, I have studied and contemplated even more, and I have not given my beloved Truth anything that did not come at a cost.
This same year (1875) that saw me launched on the world as a public advocate of Freethought, saw also the founding of the Theosophical Society to which my Freethought was to lead me. I have often since thought with pleasure that at the very time I began lecturing in England, H.P. Blavatsky was at work in the United States, preparing the foundation on which in November, 1875, the Theosophical Society was to be raised. And with deeper pleasure yet have I found her writing of what she called the noble work against superstition done by Charles Bradlaugh and myself, rendering the propaganda of Theosophy far more practicable and safer than it would otherwise have been. The fight soon began, and with some queer little skirmishes. I was a member of the "Liberal Social Union," and one night a discussion arose as to the admissibility of Atheists to the Society. Dr. Zerffi declared that he would not remain a member if avowed Atheists were admitted. I promptly declared that I was an Atheist, and that the basis of the union was liberty of opinion. The result was that I found myself cold-shouldered, and those that had been warmly cordial to me merely as a non-Christian looked askance at me when I had avowed that my scepticism had advanced beyond their "limits of religious thought." The Liberal Social Union soon knew me no more, but in the wider field of work open before me, the narrow-mindedness of this petty clique troubled me not at all.
This same year (1875) that saw me stepping into the spotlight as a public advocate for Freethought also marked the founding of the Theosophical Society, which my Freethought beliefs would eventually connect me to. I've often thought with joy that while I started lecturing in England, H.P. Blavatsky was in the United States, laying the groundwork for what would become the Theosophical Society in November 1875. Even more rewarding was discovering her writing about the meaningful efforts against superstition by Charles Bradlaugh and me, making the promotion of Theosophy much more feasible and safer than it might have been otherwise. The battle began soon after, featuring some odd little confrontations. I was part of the "Liberal Social Union," and one evening, a debate erupted over whether Atheists should be allowed in the Society. Dr. Zerffi stated he wouldn't remain a member if open Atheists were included. I quickly responded that I was an Atheist and that the foundation of the union was freedom of opinion. As a result, I found myself being treated coldly, and those who had previously been warmly welcoming to me simply for not being Christian looked at me differently once I revealed that my skepticism had gone beyond their "limits of religious thought." The Liberal Social Union soon forgot me, but the narrow-mindedness of this small group didn’t bother me at all in the broader field of work that lay ahead.
I started my definite lecturing work at South Place Chapel in January, 1875, Mr. Moncure D. Conway presiding for me, and I find in the National Reformer for January 17th, the announcement that "Mrs. Annie Besant ('Ajax') will lecture at South Place Chapel, Finsbury, on 'Civil and Religious Liberty.'" Thus I threw off my pseudonym, and rode into the field of battle with uplifted visor. The identification led to an odd little exhibition of bigotry. I had been invited by the Dialectical Society to read a paper, and had selected for subject, "The Existence of God." (It may be noted, in passing, that young students and speakers always select the most tremendous subjects for their discourses. One advances in modesty as one advances in knowledge, and after eighteen years of platform work, I am far more dubious than I was at their beginning as to my power of dealing in any sense adequately with the problems of life.) The Dialectical Society had for some years held their meetings in a room in Adam Street, rented from the Social Science Association. When the members gathered as usual on February 17th, the door was found to be locked, and they had to gather on the stairs; they found that "Ajax's" as yet undelivered paper was too much for Social Science nerves, and that entrance to their ordinary meeting-room was then and thenceforth denied them. So they, with "Ajax," found refuge at the Charing Cross Hotel, and speculated merrily on the eccentricities of religious bigotry.
I started my official speaking engagements at South Place Chapel in January 1875, with Mr. Moncure D. Conway presiding for me. I found in the National Reformer dated January 17th the announcement that "Mrs. Annie Besant ('Ajax') will lecture at South Place Chapel, Finsbury, on 'Civil and Religious Liberty.'" Thus, I dropped my pseudonym and stepped into the spotlight with my head held high. This identification led to a peculiar display of bigotry. I had been invited by the Dialectical Society to present a paper, and I chose the topic "The Existence of God." (It's worth mentioning that young students and speakers often pick the most challenging topics for their speeches. As you gain knowledge, you also become more modest, and after eighteen years of speaking, I feel way more uncertain about my ability to adequately address life’s problems than I did at the start.) The Dialectical Society had been holding their meetings for years in a room on Adam Street, rented from the Social Science Association. When the members gathered as usual on February 17th, they found the door locked and had to meet on the stairs; they discovered that "Ajax's" yet-to-be-delivered paper was too much for the Social Science nerves, and access to their usual meeting room was denied to them from that point onward. So, they, along with "Ajax," found refuge at the Charing Cross Hotel and joked about the quirks of religious bigotry.
On February 12th I started on my first provincial lecturing tour, and after speaking at Birkenhead that evening went on by the night mail to Glasgow. Some races—dog races—I think, had been going on, and very unpleasant were many of the passengers waiting on the platform. Some Birkenhead friends had secured me a compartment, and watched over me till the train began to move. Then, after we had fairly started, the door was flung open by a porter, and a man was thrust in who half tumbled on to the seat. As he slowly recovered he stood up, and as his money rolled out of his hand on to the floor, and he gazed vaguely at it, I saw to my horror that he was drunk. The position was not pleasant, for the train was an express, and was not timed to stop for a considerable time. My odious fellow-passenger spent some time on the floor, hunting after his scattered coins; then he slowly gathered himself up and presently became conscious of my presence. He studied me for some time, and then proposed to shut the window. I assented quietly, not wanting to discuss a trifle and feeling in deadly terror—alone at night in an express with a man not drunk enough to be helpless, but too drunk to be controlled. Never before nor since have I felt so thoroughly frightened. I can see him still, swaying as he stood, with eyes bleared and pendulous lips—but I sat there quiet and outwardly unmoved, as is always my impulse in danger till I see some way of escape, only grasping a penknife in my pocket, with a desperate resolve to use my feeble weapon as soon as the need arose. The man came towards me with a fatuous leer, when a jarring noise was heard and the train began to slacken.
On February 12th, I started my first provincial speaking tour, and after giving a talk in Birkenhead that evening, I took the night train to Glasgow. There had been some dog races, I think, and many of the passengers waiting on the platform were quite unpleasant. Some friends from Birkenhead had booked me a compartment and made sure I was settled before the train took off. Then, just as we were starting to move, a porter opened the door and shoved a man in who nearly fell into the seat. As he slowly got his bearings, he stood up, and when his money spilled out of his hand onto the floor, he stared at it in confusion. To my horror, I realized he was drunk. The situation was uncomfortable since the train was an express and wouldn’t stop for a while. My unpleasant fellow passenger spent some time on the floor trying to collect his scattered coins, and then he eventually pulled himself up and noticed me. He studied me for a bit before suggesting that we close the window. I agreed quietly, not wanting to argue over something minor and feeling completely terrified—alone at night in an express train with a guy who wasn’t drunk enough to be entirely helpless, but too drunk to be manageable. I had never felt so scared before or since. I can still picture him, swaying as he stood there, with bleary eyes and droopy lips—but I stayed still and acted unfazed, which is my usual instinct in dangerous situations until I see a way out, only gripping a penknife in my pocket, determined to use my weak weapon if the need arose. The man approached me with a foolish grin when suddenly there was a jarring noise, and the train began to slow down.
"What is that?" stammered my drunken companion.
"What is that?" my drunk friend stammered.
"They are putting on the brakes to stop the train," I answered very slowly and distinctly, though a very passion of relief made it hard to say quietly the measured words.
"They're putting on the brakes to stop the train," I replied slowly and clearly, even though a wave of relief made it difficult to keep my words calm and measured.
The man sat down stupidly, staring at me, and in a minute or two the train pulled up at a station—it had been stopped by signal. My immobility was gone. In a moment I was at the window, called the guard, and explained rapidly that I was a woman travelling alone, and that a half-drunken man was in the carriage. With the usual kindness of a railway official, he at once moved me and my baggage into another compartment, into which he locked me, and he kept a friendly watch over me at every station at which we stopped until he landed me safely at Glasgow.
The man sat down dumbly, staring at me, and after a minute or two, the train arrived at a station—it had been stopped by a signal. I was no longer frozen in place. In an instant, I was at the window, called the guard, and quickly explained that I was a woman traveling alone and that a half-drunk man was in the carriage. With the usual courtesy of a train official, he promptly moved me and my luggage into another compartment, locked me in, and kept a friendly watch over me at every station we stopped at until he safely delivered me to Glasgow.
At Glasgow a room had been taken for me at a temperance hotel, and it seemed to me so new and lonely a thing to be "all on my own account" in a strange hotel in a strange city, that I wanted to sit down and cry. This feeling, to which I was too proud to yield, was probably partly due to the extreme greyness and grubbiness of my surroundings. Things are better now, but in those days temperance hotels were for the most part lacking in cleanliness. Abstinence from alcohol and a superfluity of "matter in the wrong place" do not seem necessary correlatives, yet I rarely went to a temperance hotel in which water was liberally used for other purposes than that of drinking. From Glasgow I went north to Aberdeen, where I found a very stern and critical audience. Not a sound broke the stillness as I walked up the hall; not a sound as I ascended the platform and faced the people; the canny Scot was not going to applaud a stranger at sight; he was going to see what she was like first. In grim silence they listened; I could not move them; they were granite like their own granite city, and I felt I would like to take off my head and throw it at them, if only to break that hard wall. After about twenty minutes, a fortunate phrase drew a hiss from some child of the Covenanters. I made a quick retort, there was a burst of cheering, and the granite vanished. Never after that did I have to complain of the coldness of an Aberdeen audience. Back to London from Aberdeen, and a long, weary journey it was, in a third-class carriage in the cold month of February; but the labour had in it a joy that outpaid all physical discomfort, and the feeling that I had found my work in the world gave a new happiness to life.
In Glasgow, I had booked a room at a temperance hotel, and it felt so new and lonely to be “on my own” in a strange hotel in a strange city that I wanted to sit down and cry. I was too proud to give in to that feeling, but it was probably made worse by how gray and grimy everything around me was. Things are better now, but back then, temperance hotels often lacked cleanliness. Not drinking alcohol and having a lot of “stuff in the wrong place” don't seem to go hand in hand, yet I rarely stayed in a temperance hotel where water was used for more than just drinking. From Glasgow, I traveled north to Aberdeen, where I encountered a very stern and critical audience. Not a sound broke the silence as I walked up the hall; not a sound as I climbed the platform and faced the crowd; the cautious Scots weren't going to applaud a stranger just like that; they wanted to see what I was about first. In grim silence, they listened; I couldn't sway them; they were as unyielding as their own granite city, and I felt like taking off my head and tossing it at them, just to shatter that tough barrier. After about twenty minutes, a lucky phrase got a hiss from some kid of the Covenanters. I shot back a quick reply, and there was a burst of cheering, and just like that, the granite facade melted away. After that, I never had to worry about the coldness of an Aberdeen audience again. Then it was back to London from Aberdeen, and it was a long, tiring journey in a third-class carriage in the cold month of February; but the effort was filled with a joy that made up for all the physical discomfort, and the sense that I had found my purpose in the world brought me a new happiness in life.
On February 28th I stood for the first time on the platform of the Hall of Science, Old Street, St. Luke's, London, and was received with that warmth of greeting which Secularists are always so ready to extend to any who sacrifice aught to join their ranks. That hall is identified in my mind with many a bitter struggle, with both victory and defeat, but whether in victory or in defeat I found there always welcome; and the love and the courage wherewith Secularists stood by me have overpaid a thousandfold any poor services I was fortunate enough to render, while in their ranks, to the cause of Liberty, and wholly prevent any bitterness arising in my mind for any unfriendliness shown me by some, who have perhaps overstepped kindness and justice in their sorrowful wrath at my renunciation of Materialism and Atheism. So far as health was concerned, the lecturing acted as a tonic. My chest had always been a little delicate, and when I consulted a doctor on the possibility of my standing platform work, he answered, "It will either kill you or cure you." It entirely cured the lung weakness, and I grew strong and vigorous instead of being frail and delicate, as of old.
On February 28th, I stood for the first time on the platform of the Hall of Science, Old Street, St. Luke's, London, and was welcomed with the warmth that Secularists are always eager to show to anyone who sacrifices something to join their cause. That hall is etched in my memory with many struggles, filled with both victories and defeats, but whether I won or lost, I always found a warm welcome there; the love and courage that Secularists showed me have more than repaid any small contributions I was fortunate enough to make in support of Liberty, and completely eliminated any bitterness I might have felt towards those who expressed unfriendliness, perhaps going too far in their hurt and anger over my departure from Materialism and Atheism. As far as my health was concerned, lecturing acted as a tonic. My chest had always been a bit weak, and when I asked a doctor if I could handle platform work, he replied, "It will either kill you or cure you." It completely cured my lung issues, and I grew strong and vigorous instead of being fragile and delicate like before.
It would be wearisome to go step by step over eighteen years of platform work, so I will only select here and there incidents illustrative of the whole. And here let me say that the frequent attacks made on myself and others, that we were attracted to Free-thought propaganda by the gains it offered, formed a somewhat grotesque contrast to the facts. On one occasion I spent eight days in Northumberland and Durham, gave twelve lectures, and made a deficit of eleven shillings on the whole. Of course such a thing could not happen in later years, when I had made my name by sheer hard work, but I fancy that every Secularist lecturer could tell of similar experiences in the early days of "winning his way." The fact is that from Mr. Bradlaugh downwards every one of us could have earned a competence with comparative ease in any other line of work, and could have earned it with public approval instead of amid popular reproach. Much of my early lecturing was done in Northumberland and Durham; the miners there are, as a rule, shrewd and hard-headed men, and very cordial is the greeting given by them to those they have reason to trust. At Seghill and at Bedlington I have slept in their cottages and have been welcomed to their tables, and I have a vivid memory of one evening at Seghill, after a lecture, when my host, himself a miner, invited about a dozen of his comrades to supper to meet me; the talk ran on politics, and I soon found that my companions knew more of English politics, had a far shrewder notion of political methods, and were, therefore, much better worth talking to, than most of the ordinary men met at dinner parties "in society." They were of the "uneducated" class despised by "gentlemen," and had not then the franchise, but politically they were far better educated than their social superiors, and were far better fitted to discharge the duties of citizenship. How well, too, do I remember a ten-mile drive in a butcher's cart, to give a lecture in an out-of-the-way spot, unapproached by railway. Such was the jolting as we rattled over rough roads and stony places, that I felt as though all my bones were broken, and as though I should collapse on the platform like a bag half-filled with stones. How kind they were to me, those genial, cordial miners, how careful for my comfort, and how motherly were the women! Ah! if opponents of my views who did not know me were often cruel and malignant, there was compensation in the love and honour in which good men and women all the country over held me, and their devotion outweighed the hatred, and many a time and often soothed a weary and aching heart.
It would be exhausting to go through all eighteen years of my public speaking journey step by step, so I’ll just share a few examples that represent the whole experience. Let me point out that the repeated claims about me and others being drawn to Free Thought because of the benefits it brought us is quite ridiculous compared to the reality. There was one time when I spent eight days in Northumberland and Durham, delivered twelve lectures, and ended up losing eleven shillings overall. Of course, this kind of thing wouldn’t happen later on, after I established my name through hard work, but I believe every Secularist lecturer could share similar stories from their early days of “finding their way.” The truth is that from Mr. Bradlaugh on down, each of us could have easily made a good living in any other profession and could have done so with public approval rather than facing criticism. Much of my early lecturing took place in Northumberland and Durham; the miners there are generally smart and practical, and they greet those they trust warmly. At Seghill and Bedlington, I’ve stayed in their homes and shared meals with them. I vividly remember one evening at Seghill after a lecture when my host, a miner, invited about a dozen of his friends over for supper to meet me. We talked about politics, and I quickly realized that my companions were more knowledgeable about English politics, had a better understanding of political tactics, and were much more interesting to converse with than most of the typical dinner guests “in society.” They were part of the "uneducated" class looked down upon by "gentlemen," and they didn’t have the right to vote yet, but politically they were far more educated than their social betters and were much better prepared to fulfill the responsibilities of citizenship. I also remember a ten-mile ride in a butcher's cart to give a lecture in a remote area, far from a train station. The jolting over rough roads and rocky paths made me feel like all my bones were breaking, and I thought I might collapse on the stage like a bag that was half full of stones. Those warm-hearted miners were so kind to me, always looking out for my comfort, and the women were incredibly nurturing! Even though many of my opponents who didn’t know me were often unkind and spiteful, I found comfort in the love and respect that good people across the country showed me, and their support always outweighed the negativity, soothing my tired and aching heart time and time again.
Lecturing in June, 1875, at Leicester, I came for the first time across a falsehood that brought sore trouble and cost me more pain than I care to tell. An irate Christian opponent, in the discussion that followed the lecture, declared that I was responsible for a book entitled, "The Elements of Social Science," which was, he averred, "The Bible of Secularists." I had never heard of the book, but as he stated that it was in favour of the abolition of marriage, and that Mr. Bradlaugh agreed with it, I promptly contradicted him; for while I knew nothing about the book, I knew a great deal about Mr. Bradlaugh, and I knew that on the marriage question he was conservative rather than revolutionary. He detested "Free Love" doctrines, and had thrown himself strongly on the side of the agitation led so heroically for many years by Mrs. Josephine Butler. On my return to London after the lecture I naturally made inquiry as to the volume and its contents, and I found that it had been written by a Doctor of Medicine some years before, and sent to the National Reformer for review, as to other journals, in ordinary course of business. It consisted of three parts—the first advocated, from the standpoint of medical science, what is roughly known as "Free Love"; the second was entirely medical; the third consisted of a clear and able exposition of the law of population as laid down by the Rev. Mr. Malthus, and—following the lines of John Stuart Mill—insisted that it was the duty of married persons to voluntarily limit their families within their means of subsistence. Mr. Bradlaugh, in reviewing the book, said that it was written "with honest and pure intent and purpose," and recommended to working men the exposition of the law of population. His enemies took hold of this recommendation, declared that he shared the author's views on the impermanence of the marriage tie, and, despite his reiterated contradictions, they used extracts against marriage from the book as containing his views. Anything more meanly vile it would be difficult to conceive, but such were the weapons used against him all his life, and used often by men whose own lives contrasted most unfavourably with his own. Unable to find anything in his own writings to serve their purpose, they used this book to damage him with those who knew nothing at first-hand of his views. What his enemies feared were not his views on marriage—which, as I have said, was conservative—but his Radicalism and his Atheism. To discredit him as politician they maligned him socially, and the idea that a man desires "to abolish marriage and the home," is a most convenient poniard, and the one most certain to wound. This was the origin of his worst difficulties, to be intensified, ere long, by his defence of Malthusianism. On me also fell the same lash, and I found myself held up to hatred as upholder of views that I abhorred.
Lecturing in June 1875 in Leicester, I encountered a falsehood for the first time that caused me a lot of trouble and pain that I’d rather not discuss. An angry Christian opponent, during the debate that followed my lecture, claimed I was responsible for a book called "The Elements of Social Science," which he asserted was "The Bible of Secularists." I had never heard of this book, but when he said it advocated for the abolition of marriage and that Mr. Bradlaugh supported it, I quickly contradicted him. Even though I knew nothing about the book, I knew a lot about Mr. Bradlaugh, and I was aware that on the marriage issue, he was more conservative than revolutionary. He despised "Free Love" ideas and strongly supported the campaign led courageously for many years by Mrs. Josephine Butler. After returning to London from the lecture, I naturally wanted to learn more about the book and its contents. I discovered it had been written by a medical doctor some years earlier and sent to the National Reformer for review along with other publications as part of standard practice. The book had three parts: the first promoted, from a medical perspective, what is generally known as "Free Love"; the second part was entirely medical; and the third presented a clear and well-reasoned explanation of the law of population as articulated by the Rev. Mr. Malthus, which—following John Stuart Mill's ideas—argued that married couples had a duty to voluntarily limit their families based on their means of support. In his review, Mr. Bradlaugh stated that it was written "with honest and pure intent and purpose," and he recommended the exposition of the law of population to working men. His enemies seized on this recommendation, claiming he shared the author's opinions on the transient nature of marriage, and despite his repeated denials, they used excerpts against marriage from the book as if they embodied his own views. It's hard to imagine anything more vile, but these were the tactics used against him throughout his life, often by men whose own lives contrasted poorly with his. Unable to find anything in his own writings to use against him, they turned to this book to tarnish his reputation with those who were unfamiliar with his actual views. What his enemies were truly afraid of weren’t his views on marriage—which, as I mentioned, were conservative—but his Radicalism and Atheism. To undermine him as a politician, they slandered him socially, and the notion that a person wants "to abolish marriage and the home" is a very convenient weapon, one that’s sure to stab deep. This was the root of his greatest struggles, which would soon worsen due to his defense of Malthusianism. I too faced similar attacks and found myself vilified as a supporter of beliefs that I detested.
I may add that far warmer praise than that bestowed on this book by Mr. Bradlaugh was given by other writers, who were never attacked in the same way.
I should note that even more generous praise than what Mr. Bradlaugh gave to this book came from other writers, who were never criticized in the same way.
In the Reasoner, edited by Mr. George Jacob Holyoake, I find warmer praise of it than in the National Reformer; in the review the following passage appears:—
In the Reasoner, edited by Mr. George Jacob Holyoake, I see more enthusiastic praise for it than in the National Reformer; the review includes the following excerpt:—
"In some respects all books of this class are evils: but it would be weakness and criminal prudery—a prudery as criminal as vice itself—not to say that such a book as the one in question is not only a far lesser evil than the one that it combats, but in one sense a book which it is a mercy to issue and courage to publish."
"In some ways, all books of this kind are harmful: however, it would be both cowardly and shamefully prudish—a prudishness as wrong as the vice it fights—not to acknowledge that the book we're discussing is not just a much smaller evil than the one it opposes, but in a way, it's a book that is compassionate to release and brave to publish."
The Examiner, reviewing the same book, declared it to be—
The Examiner, reviewing the same book, stated that it was—
"A very valuable, though rather heterogeneous book.... This is, we believe, the only book that has fully, honestly, and in a scientific spirit recognised all the elements in the problem—How are mankind to triumph over poverty, with its train of attendant evils?—and fearlessly endeavoured to find a practical solution."
"A highly valuable, yet somewhat diverse book.... We believe this is the only book that has fully, honestly, and with a scientific approach recognized all the aspects of the issue—How will humanity overcome poverty and its associated problems?—and boldly tried to find a practical solution."
The British Journal of Homoeopathy wrote:—
The British Journal of Homoeopathy stated:—
"Though quite out of the province of our journal, we cannot refrain from stating that this work is unquestionably the most remarkable one, in many respects, we have ever met with. Though we differ toto coelo from the author in his views of religion and morality, and hold some of his remedies to tend rather to a dissolution than a reconstruction of society, yet we are bound to admit the benevolence and philanthropy of his motives. The scope of the work is nothing less than the whole field of political economy."
"Even though this isn't really about what our journal typically covers, we can't help but say that this work is definitely the most remarkable one we've ever encountered in many ways. Although we completely disagree with the author on his views of religion and morality, and believe some of his solutions might lead more towards breaking down society than building it up, we must acknowledge the kindness and humanitarian spirit behind his intentions. The purpose of the work is nothing less than the entire realm of political economy."
Ernest Jones and others wrote yet more strongly, but out of all these Charles Bradlaugh alone has been selected for reproach, and has had the peculiar views of the anonymous author fathered on himself.
Ernest Jones and others wrote even more insistently, but out of all these, only Charles Bradlaugh has been singled out for criticism, and the unusual ideas of the anonymous author have been wrongly attributed to him.
Some of the lecture work in those days was pretty rough. In Darwen, Lancashire, in June, 1875, stone-throwing was regarded as a fair argument addressed to the Atheist lecturer. At Swansea, in March, 1876, the fear of violence was so great that a guarantee against damage to the hall was exacted by the proprietor, and no local friend had the courage to take the chair for me. In September, 1876, at Hoyland, thanks to the exertions of Mr. Hebblethwaite, a Primitive Methodist, and two Protestant missionaries, I found the hall packed with a crowd that yelled at me with great vigour, stood on forms, shook fists at me, and otherwise showed feelings more warm than friendly. Taking advantage of a lull in the noise, I began to speak, and the tumult sank into quietness; but as I was leaving the hall it broke out afresh, and I walked slowly through a crowd that yelled and swore and struck at me, but somehow those nearest always shrank back and let me pass. In the dark, outside the hall, they took to kicking, but only one kick reached me, and the attempts to overturn the cab were foiled by the driver, who put his horse at a gallop. Later in the same month Mr. Bradlaugh and I visited Congleton together, having been invited there by Mr. and Mrs. Wolstenholme Elmy. Mr. Bradlaugh lectured on the first evening to an accompaniment of broken windows, and I, sitting with Mrs. Elmy facing the platform, received a rather heavy blow on the back of the head from a stone thrown by some one in the room. We had a mile and a half to walk from the hall to the house, and were accompanied all the way by a stone-throwing crowd, who sang hymns at the tops of their voices, with interludes of curses and foul words. On the following evening I lectured, and our stone-throwing admirers escorted us to the hall; in the middle of the lecture a man shouted, "Put her out!" and a well-known wrestler of the neighbourhood, named Burbery, who had come to the hall with some friends to break up the meeting, stood up as at a signal in front of the platform and loudly interrupted. Mr. Bradlaugh, who was in the chair, told him to sit down, and, as he persisted in interrupting, informed him that he must either be quiet or go out. "Put me out!" shouted Mr. Burbery, striking an attitude. Mr. Bradlaugh left the platform and walked up to the noisy swashbuckler, who at once grappled with him and tried to throw him. But Mr. Burbery had not reckoned on the massive strength of his opponent, and when the "throw" was complete Mr. Burbery was underneath. Amid much excitement Mr. Burbery was propelled towards the door, being gently used on the way as a battering-ram against his friends who rushed to the rescue, and at the door was handed over to the police. The chairman then resumed his normal duties, with a brief "Go on" to me, and I promptly went on, finishing the lecture in peace. But outside the hall there was plenty of stone-throwing, and Mrs. Elmy received a cut on the temple from a flint. This stormy work gradually lessened, and my experience of it was a mere trifle compared to that which my predecessors had faced. Mr. Bradlaugh's early experiences involved much serious rioting, and Mrs. Harriet Law, a woman of much courage and of strong natural ability, had many a rough meeting in her lecturing days.
Some of the lecture events back then were pretty intense. In Darwen, Lancashire, in June 1875, throwing stones was seen as a valid argument against the Atheist lecturer. At Swansea, in March 1876, the threat of violence was so serious that the owner required a guarantee against damage to the hall, and no local supporter was brave enough to take the chair for me. In September 1876, at Hoyland, with the help of Mr. Hebblethwaite, a Primitive Methodist, and two Protestant missionaries, I found the hall packed with a crowd that yelled at me energetically, stood on benches, shook their fists at me, and otherwise expressed feelings that were more hostile than friendly. Taking advantage of a lull in the noise, I started to speak, and the chaos quieted down; but as I was leaving the hall, the uproar started again, and I walked slowly through a crowd that yelled, cursed, and struck at me, but somehow those closest always backed away and let me through. Outside the hall in the dark, they started kicking, but only one kick hit me, and attempts to overturn the cab were thwarted by the driver, who made the horse gallop away. Later that same month, Mr. Bradlaugh and I visited Congleton together, having been invited by Mr. and Mrs. Wolstenholme Elmy. Mr. Bradlaugh lectured on the first night while windows were being broken, and I, sitting with Mrs. Elmy facing the stage, took a pretty hard hit on the back of the head from a stone thrown by someone in the audience. We had to walk a mile and a half from the hall to the house, followed the whole way by a stone-throwing crowd, who sang hymns loudly, mixed with curses and profane words. The next evening, I lectured, and our stone-throwing fans escorted us to the hall; during the lecture a man yelled, "Get her out!" and a well-known local wrestler, named Burbery, who had come with some friends to disrupt the meeting, stood up in front of the stage and interrupted loudly. Mr. Bradlaugh, who was in charge, told him to sit down, and when he continued to interrupt, he warned him that he needed to be quiet or leave. "Throw me out!" shouted Mr. Burbery, striking a pose. Mr. Bradlaugh left the stage and approached the loud troublemaker, who immediately grappled with him and tried to throw him. But Mr. Burbery didn't expect the massive strength of his opponent, and when the "throw" was finished, Mr. Burbery was the one on the floor. Amid a lot of commotion, Mr. Burbery was pushed toward the door, being gently used as a battering ram against his friends who rushed to help him, and at the door, he was handed over to the police. The chairman then returned to his regular duties, with a quick "Go on" to me, and I promptly continued, finishing the lecture without further incident. But outside the hall, there was still plenty of stone-throwing, and Mrs. Elmy got a cut on her temple from a flint. This chaotic experience gradually decreased, and what I went through was nothing compared to what my predecessors faced. Mr. Bradlaugh had to deal with serious riots early on, and Mrs. Harriet Law, a very brave woman with strong natural talent, had many rough meetings during her lecturing days.
In September, 1875, Mr. Bradlaugh again sailed for America, still to earn money there to pay his debts. Unhappily he was struck down by typhoid fever, and all his hopes of freeing himself thus were destroyed. His life was well-nigh despaired of, but the admirable skill of physician and nurse pulled him through. Said the Baltimore Advertiser:—
In September 1875, Mr. Bradlaugh sailed for America again, still trying to earn money to pay off his debts. Unfortunately, he contracted typhoid fever, and all his hopes of doing so were shattered. His life was nearly lost, but the incredible skill of the doctor and nurse saved him. The Baltimore Advertiser said:—
"This long and severe illness has disappointed the hopes and retarded the object for which he came to this country; but he is gentleness and patience itself in his sickness in this strange land, and has endeared himself greatly to his physicians and attendants by his gratitude and appreciation of the slightest attention."
"This prolonged and serious illness has dashed the hopes and delayed the purpose for which he came to this country; however, he is the embodiment of kindness and patience during his sickness in this unfamiliar place, and has greatly endeared himself to his doctors and caregivers through his gratitude and recognition of even the smallest acts of kindness."
His fortitude in face of death was also much commented on, lying there as he did far from home and from all he loved best. Never a quiver of fear touched him as he walked down into the valley of the shadow of death; the Rev. Mr. Frothingham bore public and admiring testimony in his own church to Mr. Bradlaugh's noble serenity, at once fearless and unpretending, and, himself a Theist, gave willing witness to the Atheist's calm strength. He came back to us at the end of September, worn to a shadow, weak as a child, and for many a long month he bore the traces of his wrestle with death.
His bravery in the face of death received a lot of attention, especially considering he lay there far from home and everything he cherished. Not a hint of fear showed as he walked into the valley of the shadow of death; Rev. Mr. Frothingham publicly praised Mr. Bradlaugh’s remarkable calm, which was both fearless and humble, and as a Theist, he acknowledged the Atheist’s steady strength. He returned to us at the end of September, looking like a shadow of his former self, weak as a child, and for many long months, he carried the marks of his battle with death.
One part of my autumn's work during his absence was the delivery and subsequent publication of six lectures on the French Revolution. That stormy time had for me an intense fascination. I brooded over it, dreamed over it, and longed to tell the story from the people's point of view. I consequently read a large amount of the current literature of the time, as well as Louis Blanc's monumental work and the histories of Michelet, Lamartine, and others. Fortunately for me, Mr. Bradlaugh had a splendid collection of books on the subject, and ere we left England he brought me two cabs-full of volumes, aristocratic, ecclesiastical, democratic, and I studied all these diligently, and lived in them, till the French Revolution became to me as a drama in which I had myself taken part, and the actors were to me as personal friends and foes. In this, again, as in so much of my public work, I have to thank Mr. Bradlaugh for the influence which led me to read fully all sides of a question, and to read most carefully those from which I differed most, ere I considered myself competent to write or to speak thereon. From 1875 onwards I held office as one of the vice-presidents of the National Secular Society—a society founded on a broad basis of liberty, with the inspiring motto, "We Search for Truth." Mr. Bradlaugh was president, and I held office under him till he resigned his post in February, 1890, nine months after I had joined the Theosophical Society. The N.S.S., under his judicious and far-sighted leadership, became a real force in the country, theologically and politically, embracing large numbers of men and women who were Freethinkers as well as Radicals, and forming a nucleus of earnest workers, able to gather round them still larger numbers of others, and thus to powerfully affect public opinion. Once a year the society met in conference, and many a strong and lasting friendship between men living far apart dated from these yearly gatherings, so that all over the country spread a net-work of comradeship between the staunch followers of "our Charlie." These were the men and women who paid his election expenses over and over again, supported him in his Parliamentary struggle, came up to London to swell the demonstrations in his favour. And round them grew up a huge party—"the largest personal following of any public man since Mr. Gladstone," it was once said by an eminent man—who differed from him in theology, but passionately supported him in politics; miners, cutlers, weavers, spinners, shoemakers, operatives of every trade, strong, sturdy, self-reliant men who loved him to the last.
One part of my autumn work while he was away was delivering and publishing six lectures on the French Revolution. That tumultuous period fascinated me deeply. I pondered it, dreamed about it, and wanted to tell the story from the people's perspective. So, I read a lot of the contemporary literature of the time, along with Louis Blanc's monumental work and the histories of Michelet, Lamartine, and others. Luckily for me, Mr. Bradlaugh had an amazing collection of books on the subject, and before we left England, he brought me two cab loads of volumes—aristocratic, ecclesiastical, democratic—and I studied them diligently, immersing myself in them until the French Revolution felt like a drama in which I had played a part, with the characters as personal friends and enemies. In this pursuit, as in much of my public work, I owe thanks to Mr. Bradlaugh for encouraging me to explore all sides of an issue and to pay particular attention to the ones I disagreed with the most before I felt ready to write or speak about them. From 1875 onward, I served as one of the vice-presidents of the National Secular Society—a group founded on a broad principle of freedom, with the inspiring motto, "We Search for Truth." Mr. Bradlaugh was president, and I served under him until he resigned in February 1890, nine months after I joined the Theosophical Society. Under his wise and visionary leadership, the N.S.S. became a significant force in the country, both theologically and politically, attracting many freethinkers and radicals and forming a core of dedicated workers who could rally an even larger following, thus significantly influencing public opinion. Once a year, the society held a conference, and many lasting friendships among people living far apart originated from these yearly gatherings, creating a network of camaraderie among the loyal supporters of "our Charlie." These were the men and women who repeatedly financed his election campaigns, supported him in his parliamentary battles, and traveled to London to join demonstrations in his favor. Around them, a massive movement emerged—"the largest personal following of any public figure since Mr. Gladstone,” as noted by a prominent individual—who may have disagreed with him theologically but passionately backed him politically; miners, cutlers, weavers, spinners, shoemakers, and workers from all trades, strong, resilient, self-reliant individuals who loved him until the end.
CHAPTER IX.
Chapter 9.
THE KNOWLTON PAMPHLET.
The year 1877 dawned, and in its early days began a struggle which, ending in victory all along the line, brought with it pain and anguish that I scarcely care to recall. An American physician, Dr. Charles Knowlton, convinced of the truth of the teaching of the Rev. Mr. Malthus, and seeing that that teaching had either no practical value or tended to the great increase of prostitution, unless married people were taught to limit their families within their means of livelihood—wrote a pamphlet on the voluntary limitation of the family. It was published somewhere in the Thirties—about 1835, I think—and was sold unchallenged in England as well as in America for some forty years. Philosophers of the Bentham school, like John Stuart Mill, endorsed its teachings, and the bearing of population on poverty was an axiom in economic literature. Dr. Knowlton's work was a physiological treatise, advocating conjugal prudence and parental responsibility; it argued in favour of early marriage, with a view to the purity of social life; but as early marriage between persons of small means generally implies a large family, leading either to pauperism or to lack of necessary food, clothing, education, and fair start in life for the children, Dr. Knowlton advocated the restriction of the number of the family within the means of subsistence, and stated the methods by which this restriction could be carried out. The book was never challenged till a disreputable Bristol bookseller put some copies on sale to which he added some improper pictures, and he was prosecuted and convicted. The publisher of the National Reformer and of Mr. Bradlaugh's and my books and pamphlets had taken over a stock of Knowlton's pamphlets among other literature he bought, and he was prosecuted and, to our great dismay, pleaded guilty. We at once removed our publishing from his hands, and after careful deliberation we decided to publish the incriminated pamphlet in order to test the right of discussion on the population question, when, with the advice to limit the family, information was given as to how that advice could be followed. We took a little shop, printed the pamphlet, and sent notice to the police that we would commence the sale at a certain day and hour, and ourselves sell the pamphlet, so that no one else might be endangered by our action. We resigned our offices in the National Secular Society that we might not injure the society, but the executive first, and then the Annual Conference, refused to accept the resignations. Our position as regarded the pamphlet was simple and definite; had it been brought to us for publication, we stated, we should not have published it, for it was not a treatise of high merit; but, prosecuted as immoral because it advised the limitation of the family, it at once embodied the right of publication. In a preface to the republished edition, we wrote:—
The year 1877 began, and in its early days started a struggle that, while resulting in victory all around, brought pain and suffering that I barely want to remember. An American doctor, Dr. Charles Knowlton, who believed in the ideas of Rev. Mr. Malthus, saw that those ideas either had no practical value or led to a significant increase in prostitution unless married people were educated on how to limit their families according to their means. He wrote a pamphlet on voluntary family limitation. It was published somewhere in the 1830s—around 1835, I think—and was sold without challenge in both England and America for about forty years. Philosophers from the Bentham school, like John Stuart Mill, supported its ideas, and the relationship between population and poverty became a fundamental principle in economic literature. Dr. Knowlton's work was a physiological treatise, promoting marital prudence and parental responsibility; it argued for early marriage to enhance the purity of social life. However, since early marriage for low-income individuals usually results in a large family, leading to either poverty or a lack of essential food, clothing, education, and a fair start for the children, Dr. Knowlton advocated for limiting family size to fit within survival means and outlined how to achieve that restriction. The book faced no challenges until a dishonest Bristol bookseller sold some copies along with inappropriate images, leading to his prosecution and conviction. The publisher of the National Reformer and of Mr. Bradlaugh's and my books and pamphlets had acquired a stock of Knowlton's pamphlets along with other literature, and he was prosecuted and, to our great disappointment, pleaded guilty. We immediately removed our publishing from his control, and after careful consideration, we decided to publish the accused pamphlet to test the right of discussion on the population issue, providing guidance on how to follow that advice. We rented a small shop, printed the pamphlet, and notified the police that we would start selling it at a specific time and date, allowing us to sell the pamphlet so that no one else would be at risk because of our actions. We resigned our positions in the National Secular Society to avoid harming the society, but the executive board and then the Annual Conference refused to accept our resignations. Our stance regarding the pamphlet was clear and straightforward; had it been offered to us for publication, we stated, we would not have published it because it wasn't a work of high quality; however, since it was prosecuted as immoral for advocating family limitation, it automatically became a matter of our right to publish. In a preface to the republished edition, we wrote:—
"We republish this pamphlet, honestly believing that on all questions affecting the happiness of the people, whether they be theological, political, or social, fullest right of free discussion ought to be maintained at all hazards. We do not personally endorse all that Dr. Knowlton says: his 'Philosophical Proem' seems to us full of philosophical mistakes, and—as we are neither of us doctors—we are not prepared to endorse his medical views; but since progress can only be made through discussion, and no discussion is possible where differing opinions are suppressed, we claim the right to publish all opinions, so that the public, enabled to see all sides of a question, may have the materials for forming a sound judgment."
"We are republishing this pamphlet because we truly believe that on all issues affecting people's happiness, whether they are theological, political, or social, the right to free discussion should be upheld no matter what. We don’t necessarily agree with everything Dr. Knowlton says; his 'Philosophical Proem' appears to us to contain many philosophical errors, and since neither of us is a doctor, we are not ready to back his medical opinions. However, since progress can only be achieved through discussion, and no discussion can happen if differing views are silenced, we assert our right to publish all opinions so that the public can see all perspectives on a question and have the information needed to form a sound judgment."
We were not blind to the danger to which this defiance of the authorities exposed us, but it was not the danger of failure, with the prison as penalty, that gave us pause. It was the horrible misconceptions that we saw might arise; the odious imputations on honour and purity that would follow. Could we, the teachers of a lofty morality, venture to face a prosecution for publishing what would be technically described as an obscene book, and risk the ruin of our future, dependent as that was on our fair fame? To Mr. Bradlaugh it meant, as he felt, the almost certain destruction of his Parliamentary position, the forging by his own hands of a weapon that in the hands of his foes would be well-nigh fatal. To me it meant the loss of the pure reputation I prized, the good name I had guarded—scandal the most terrible a woman could face. But I had seen the misery of the poor, of my sister-women with children crying for bread; the wages of the workmen were often sufficient for four, but eight or ten they could not maintain. Should I set my own safety, my own good name, against the helping of these? Did it matter that my reputation should be ruined, if its ruin helped to bring remedy to this otherwise hopeless wretchedness of thousands? What was worth all my talk about self-sacrifice and self-surrender, if, brought to the test, I failed? So, with heart aching but steady, I came to my resolution; and though I know now that I was wrong intellectually, and blundered in the remedy, I was right morally in the will to sacrifice all to help the poor, and I can rejoice that I faced a storm of obloquy fiercer and harder to bear than any other which can ever touch me again. I learned a lesson of stern indifference to all judgments from without that were not endorsed by condemnation from within. The long suffering that followed was a splendid school for the teaching of endurance.
We were aware of the risks that our defiance of the authorities posed, but it wasn't the fear of failure, with imprisonment as a penalty, that made us hesitate. It was the terrible misunderstandings that could arise; the disgraceful accusations against our honor and integrity that would follow. Could we, the champions of high morality, dare to confront prosecution for publishing what would be labeled an obscene book, jeopardizing our future, which depended on our good reputation? For Mr. Bradlaugh, it meant, as he felt, the almost certain downfall of his position in Parliament, creating a weapon that would be deadly in the hands of his enemies. For me, it meant losing the pure reputation I valued, the good name I had protected—scandal the most devastating a woman could face. Yet, I had witnessed the suffering of the poor, my fellow women with children crying for food; the incomes of workers were often enough for four, but they couldn't support eight or ten. Should I prioritize my own safety and reputation over helping them? Did it matter if my reputation was destroyed if that destruction helped alleviate the hopeless suffering of thousands? What was the point of all my talk about self-sacrifice and selflessness if, when tested, I failed? So, with a heavy heart but determined, I made my decision; and though I now realize I was wrong in my thinking and made a mistake in the approach, I was morally right in my willingness to sacrifice everything to help the poor, and I can take pride in facing a backlash that was fiercer and harder to endure than anything else I could ever face again. I learned a valuable lesson about ignoring external judgments that weren't backed by my own internal condemnation. The long suffering that followed taught me endurance.
The day before the pamphlet was put on sale we ourselves delivered copies to the Chief Clerk of the Magistrates at Guildhall, to the officer in charge at the City Police Office in Old Jewry, and to the Solicitor for the City of London. With each pamphlet was a notice that we would attend and sell the book from 4 to 5 p.m. on the following day, Saturday, March 24th. This we accordingly did, and in order to save trouble we offered to attend daily at the shop from 10 to 11 a.m. to facilitate our arrest, should the authorities determine to prosecute. The offer was readily accepted, and after some little delay—during which a deputation from the Christian Evidence Society waited upon Mr. Cross to urge the Tory Government to prosecute us—warrants were issued against us and we were arrested on April 6th. Letters of approval and encouragement came from the most diverse quarters, including among their writers General Garibaldi, the well-known economist, Yves Guyot, the great French constitutional lawyer, Emile Acollas, together with letters literally by the hundred from poor men and women thanking and blessing us for the stand taken. Noticeable were the numbers of letters from clergymen's wives, and wives of ministers of all denominations.
The day before the pamphlet went on sale, we delivered copies to the Chief Clerk of the Magistrates at Guildhall, the officer in charge at the City Police Office in Old Jewry, and the Solicitor for the City of London. Each pamphlet included a notice stating that we would be at the shop to sell the book from 4 to 5 p.m. the next day, Saturday, March 24th. We followed through and, to make things easier, offered to show up daily at the shop from 10 to 11 a.m. to facilitate our arrest if the authorities decided to prosecute us. The offer was quickly accepted, and after a short delay—during which a delegation from the Christian Evidence Society spoke to Mr. Cross to encourage the Tory Government to prosecute us—warrants were issued, and we were arrested on April 6th. We received letters of approval and encouragement from a wide range of people, including General Garibaldi, the well-known economist Yves Guyot, and the prominent French constitutional lawyer Emile Acollas, along with literally hundreds of letters from poor men and women thanking and blessing us for our stand. Notably, there were many letters from the wives of clergymen and ministers of all denominations.
After our arrest we were taken to the police-station in Bridewell Place, and thence to the Guildhall, where Alderman Figgins was sitting, before whom we duly appeared, while in the back of the court waited what an official described as "a regular waggon-load of bail." We were quickly released, the preliminary investigation being fixed for ten days later—April 17th. At the close of the day the magistrate released us on our own recognisances, without bail; and it was so fully seen on all sides that we were fighting for a principle that no bail was asked for during the various stages of the trial. Two days later we were committed for trial at the Central Criminal Court, but Mr. Bradlaugh moved for a writ of certiorari to remove the trial to the Court of Queen's Bench; Lord Chief Justice Cockburn said he would grant the writ if "upon looking at it (the book), we think its object is the legitimate one of promoting knowledge on a matter of human interest," but not if the science were only a cover for impurity, and he directed that copies of the book should be handed in for perusal by himself and Mr. Justice Mellor. Having read the book they granted the writ.
After our arrest, we were taken to the police station in Bridewell Place, and then to the Guildhall, where Alderman Figgins was presiding. We showed up before him while, in the back of the court, there was what an official called "a regular wagon-load of bail." We were quickly released, with the preliminary hearing set for ten days later—April 17th. By the end of the day, the magistrate let us go on our own recognizance, without bail. It was clear to everyone that we were standing up for a principle, so no bail was requested during the various stages of the trial. Two days later, we were committed for trial at the Central Criminal Court, but Mr. Bradlaugh applied for a writ of certiorari to move the trial to the Court of Queen's Bench. Lord Chief Justice Cockburn said he would grant the writ if "upon looking at it (the book), we think its object is the legitimate one of promoting knowledge on a matter of human interest," but not if the science was just a cover for something inappropriate. He also instructed that copies of the book be submitted for review by him and Mr. Justice Mellor. After reading the book, they granted the writ.
The trial commenced on June 18th before the Lord Chief Justice of England and a special jury, Sir Hardinge Giffard, the Solicitor-General of the Tory Government, leading against us, and we defending ourselves. The Lord Chief Justice "summed up strongly for an acquittal," as a morning paper said; he declared that "a more ill-advised and more injudicious proceeding in the way of a prosecution was probably never brought into a court of justice," and described us as "two enthusiasts who have been actuated by a desire to do good in a particular department of society." He then went on to a splendid statement of the law of population, and ended by praising our straightforwardness and asserting Knowlton's honesty of intention. Every one in court thought that we had won our case, but they had not taken into account the religious and political hatred against us and the presence on the jury of such men as Mr. Walter, of the Times. After an hour and thirty-five minutes of delay the verdict was a compromise: "We are unanimously of opinion that the book in question is calculated to deprave public morals, but at the same time we entirely exonerate the defendants from any corrupt motive in publishing it." The Lord Chief Justice looked troubled, and said that he should have to translate the verdict into one of guilty, and on that some of the jury turned to leave the box, it having been agreed—we heard later from one of them—that if the verdict were not accepted in that form they should retire again, as six of the jury were against convicting us; but the foreman, who was bitterly hostile, jumped at the chance of snatching a conviction, and none of those in our favour had the courage to contradict him on the spur of the moment, so the foreman's "Guilty" passed, and the judge set us free, on Mr. Bradlaugh's recognisances to come up for judgment that day week.
The trial began on June 18th in front of the Lord Chief Justice of England and a special jury, with Sir Hardinge Giffard, the Solicitor-General of the Tory Government, opposing us while we defended ourselves. The Lord Chief Justice "strongly summed up for an acquittal," as a morning paper noted; he stated that "a more misguided and poorly thought-out prosecution was probably never brought into a court of justice," and described us as "two enthusiasts motivated by a desire to do good in a specific area of society." He then delivered an impressive summary of the law of population and concluded by praising our sincerity and affirming Knowlton's honest intentions. Everyone in the courtroom thought we had won the case, but they hadn’t considered the religious and political animosity against us, as well as the presence of individuals like Mr. Walter from the Times on the jury. After an hour and thirty-five minutes of deliberation, the verdict was a compromise: "We are unanimously of the opinion that the book in question is likely to corrupt public morals, but we fully exonerate the defendants from any corrupt motive in publishing it." The Lord Chief Justice looked concerned and said he would have to translate the verdict into one of guilty, prompting some jurors to turn to leave the box; we later learned from one of them that they had agreed to return if the verdict wasn’t accepted as such, with six jurors opposing our conviction. However, the foreman, who was strongly against us, seized the opportunity to push for a conviction, and none of those in our favor had the courage to challenge him on the spot. So the foreman's "Guilty" went through, and the judge released us, with Mr. Bradlaugh guaranteeing our appearance for judgment a week later.
On that day we moved to quash the indictment and for a new trial, partly on a technical ground and partly on the ground that the verdict, having acquitted us of wrong motive, was in our favour, not against us. On this the Court did not agree with us, holding that the part of the indictment alleging corrupt motive was superfluous. Then came the question of sentence, and on this the Lord Chief Justice did his best to save us; we were acquitted of any intent to violate the law; would we submit to the verdict of the jury and promise not to sell the book? No, we would not; we claimed the right to sell, and meant to vindicate it. The judge pleaded, argued, finally got angry with us, and, at last, compelled to pass sentence, he stated that if we would have yielded he would have let us go free without penalty, but that as we would set ourselves against the law, break it and defy it—a sore offence from the judge's point of view—he could only pass a heavy sentence on each of six months' imprisonment, a fine of £200, and recognisances of £500 for two years, and this, as he again repeated, upon the assumption "that they do intend to set the law at defiance." Even despite this he made us first-class misdemeanants. Then, as Mr. Bradlaugh stated that we should move for a writ of error, he liberated us on Mr. Bradlaugh's recognisance for £100, the queerest comment on his view of the case and of our characters, since we were liable jointly to £1,400 under the sentence, to say nothing of the imprisonment. But prison and money penalties vanished into thin air, for the writ of error was granted, proved successful, and the verdict was quashed.
On that day, we sought to dismiss the indictment and request a new trial, partly on a technicality and partly because the verdict, which found us not guilty of any wrongful intent, worked in our favor. The Court didn’t agree with us, stating that the part of the indictment claiming corrupt intentions was unnecessary. Then came the sentencing question, and the Lord Chief Justice tried his best to help us; we were cleared of any intention to break the law—would we accept the jury's verdict and promise not to sell the book? No, we wouldn’t; we asserted our right to sell and intended to defend it. The judge pleaded, argued, and eventually got frustrated with us. Finally, having to issue a sentence, he said that if we had given in, he would have let us go without punishment, but since we stood against the law and defied it—an offense that really upset him—he could only impose a severe sentence of six months in prison, a £200 fine, and a £500 bond for two years, all based on the assumption "that they intend to defy the law." Even so, he labeled us as first-class misdemeanants. Then, as Mr. Bradlaugh indicated that we would seek a writ of error, he released us on Mr. Bradlaugh's bond for £100, which was a strange reflection on how he viewed the case and us, considering we faced a total of £1,400 in penalties from the sentence, not to mention the jail time. But the prison and financial penalties disappeared, as the writ of error was granted, proved successful, and the verdict was overturned.
Then ensued a somewhat anxious time. We were resolute to continue selling; were our opponents equally resolved to prosecute us? We could not tell. I wrote a pamphlet entitled "The Law of Population," giving the arguments which had convinced me of its truth, the terrible distress and degradation entailed on families by overcrowding and the lack of the necessaries of life, pleading for early marriages that prostitution might be destroyed, and limitation of the family that pauperism might be avoided; finally, giving the information which rendered early marriage without these evils possible. This pamphlet was put in circulation as representing our view of the subject, and we again took up the sale of Knowlton's. Mr. Bradlaugh carried the war into the enemy's country, and commenced an action against the police for the recovery of some pamphlets they had seized; he carried the action to a successful issue, recovered the pamphlets, bore them off in triumph, and we sold them all with an inscription across them, "Recovered from the police." We continued the sale of Knowlton's tract for some time, until we received an intimation that no further prosecution would be attempted, and on this we at once dropped its publication, substituting for it my "Law of Population."
Then a somewhat anxious time followed. We were determined to keep selling; were our opponents just as determined to go after us? We couldn't tell. I wrote a pamphlet titled "The Law of Population," outlining the arguments that convinced me of its truth, the awful suffering and decline caused by overcrowding and the lack of basic necessities, advocating for early marriages to eliminate prostitution, and limiting family size to prevent poverty; finally, providing information that made early marriage without these problems possible. This pamphlet was circulated as our perspective on the issue, and we resumed selling Knowlton's work. Mr. Bradlaugh took the fight to the opposition and started a legal action against the police for the return of some pamphlets they had seized; he successfully won the case, got the pamphlets back, proudly took them away, and we sold them all with a label that read, "Recovered from the police." We continued selling Knowlton's tract for a while until we got a message that no further legal action would be taken, and with that, we immediately stopped its publication, replacing it with my "Law of Population."
But the worst part of the fight, for me, was to come. Prosecution of the "Law of Population" was threatened, but never commenced; a worse weapon against me was in store. An attempt had been made in August, 1875, to deprive me of the custody of my little girl by hiding her away when she went on her annual visit of one month to her father, but I had promptly recovered her by threatening to issue a writ of habeas corpus. Now it was felt that the Knowlton trial might be added to the charges of blasphemy that could be urged against me, and that this double-barrelled gun might be discharged with effect. I received notice in January, 1878, that an application was to be made to the High Court of Chancery to deprive me of the child, but the petition was not filed till the following April. Mabel was dangerously ill with scarlet fever at the time, and though this fact was communicated to her father I received a copy of the petition while sitting at her bedside. The petition alleged that, "The said Annie Besant is, by addresses, lectures, and writings, endeavouring to propagate the principles of Atheism, and has published a book entitled 'The Gospel of Atheism.' She has also associated herself with an infidel lecturer and author named Charles Bradlaugh in giving lectures and in publishing books and pamphlets, whereby the truth of the Christian religion is impeached, and disbelief in all religion inculcated."
But the worst part of the fight was yet to come. There was a threat of prosecution under the "Law of Population," but it never happened; something worse was waiting for me. In August 1875, there was an attempt to take away my little girl by hiding her when she went for her annual month-long visit to her father, but I quickly got her back by threatening to issue a writ of habeas corpus. Now, it seemed that the Knowlton trial could be added to the charges of blasphemy against me, and that this two-pronged attack could be launched effectively. I was notified in January 1878 that an application would be made to the High Court of Chancery to take away my child, but the petition wasn't filed until the following April. Mabel was seriously ill with scarlet fever at the time, and even though her father was informed of her condition, I received a copy of the petition while sitting by her bedside. The petition claimed that, "The said Annie Besant is, by addresses, lectures, and writings, endeavouring to propagate the principles of Atheism, and has published a book entitled 'The Gospel of Atheism.' She has also associated herself with an infidel lecturer and author named Charles Bradlaugh in giving lectures and in publishing books and pamphlets, whereby the truth of the Christian religion is impeached, and disbelief in all religion inculcated."
It further alleged against me the publication of the Knowlton pamphlet, and the writing of the "Law of Population." Unhappily, the petition came for hearing before the then Master of the Rolls, Sir George Jessel, a man animated by the old spirit of Hebrew bigotry, to which he had added the time-serving morality of a "man of the world," sceptical as to all sincerity, and contemptuous of all devotion to an unpopular cause. The treatment I received at his hands on my first appearance in court told me what I had to expect. I had already had some experience of English judges, the stately kindness and gentleness of the Lord Chief Justice, the perfect impartiality and dignified courtesy of the Lords Justices of Appeal. My astonishment, then, can be imagined when, in answer to a statement by Mr. Ince, Q.C., that I appeared in person, I heard a harsh, loud voice exclaim:
It was also claimed that I published the Knowlton pamphlet and wrote the "Law of Population." Unfortunately, my petition was heard by the then Master of the Rolls, Sir George Jessel, a man influenced by the old spirit of Hebrew prejudice, who had also adopted the self-serving morality of a "man of the world," questioning all sincerity and looking down on any dedication to an unpopular cause. The way I was treated by him during my first appearance in court showed me what to expect. I had already encountered some English judges, experiencing the dignified kindness and gentleness of the Lord Chief Justice, as well as the perfect impartiality and gracious courtesy of the Lords Justices of Appeal. So, my surprise can be imagined when, in response to a statement by Mr. Ince, Q.C., that I was representing myself, I heard a harsh, loud voice say:
"Appear in person? A lady appear in person? Never heard of such a thing! Does the lady really appear in person?"
"Show up in person? A woman show up in person? Never heard of that! Is she really going to show up in person?"
As the London papers had been full of my appearing in person in the other courts and had contained the high compliments of the Lord Chief Justice on my conduct of my own case, Sir George Jessel's pretended astonishment seemed a little overdone. After a variety of similar remarks delivered in the most grating tones and in the roughest manner, Sir George Jessel tried to obtain his object by browbeating me directly. "Is this the lady?"
As the London papers had been full of me showing up in person in other courts and had included the high praise from the Lord Chief Justice about how I handled my own case, Sir George Jessel's fake surprise seemed a bit exaggerated. After making a series of similar remarks in the most irritating tones and in the harshest manner, Sir George Jessel tried to get what he wanted by intimidating me directly. "Is this the lady?"
"I am the respondent, my lord, Mrs. Besant."
"I’m the respondent, my lord, Mrs. Besant."
"Then I advise you, Mrs. Besant, to employ counsel to represent you, if you can afford it; and I suppose you can."
"Then I suggest you hire a lawyer to represent you, if you can afford it; and I assume you can."
"With all submission to your lordship, I am afraid I must claim my right of arguing my case in person."
"Respectfully, I believe I have the right to present my case in person."
"You will do so if you please, of course, but I think you had much better appear by counsel. I give you notice that, if you do not, you must not expect to be shown any consideration. You will not be heard by me at any greater length than the case requires, nor allowed to go into irrelevant matter, as persons who argue their own cases usually do."
"You can do it if you'd like, but I really think it's better if you have a lawyer represent you. Just so you know, if you don't, you can't expect any special treatment. I won’t listen to you for longer than necessary, nor will I let you bring up unrelated topics, which is something people often do when they represent themselves."
"I trust I shall not do so, my lord; but in any case I shall be arguing under your lordship's complete control."
"I trust I won't do that, my lord; but in any case, I'll be arguing under your full control."
This encouraging beginning may be taken as a sample of the case—it was one long fight against clever counsel, aided by a counsel instead of a judge on the bench. Only once did judge and counsel fall out. Mr. Ince and Mr. Bardswell had been arguing that my Atheism and Malthusianism made me an unfit guardian for my child; Mr. Ince declared that Mabel, educated by me, would "be helpless for good in this world," and "hopeless for good hereafter, outcast in this life and damned in the next." Mr. Bardswell implored the judge to consider that my custody of her "would be detrimental to the future prospects of the child in society, to say nothing of her eternal prospects." Had not the matter been to me of such heart-breaking importance, I could have laughed at the mixture of Mrs. Grundy, marriage establishment, and hell, presented as an argument for robbing a mother of her child. But Mr. Bardswell carelessly forgot that Sir George Jessel was a Jew, and lifting eyes to heaven in horrified appeal, he gasped out:
This encouraging start can be seen as a reflection of the situation—it was a long struggle against smart legal arguments, backed by a lawyer instead of a judge on the bench. The judge and the lawyer only clashed once. Mr. Ince and Mr. Bardswell argued that my atheism and support for Malthus made me an unfit guardian for my child; Mr. Ince claimed that Mabel, raised by me, would "be helpless for good in this world" and "hopeless for good in the afterlife, an outcast in this life and condemned in the next." Mr. Bardswell urged the judge to consider that my custody of her "would be harmful to the child’s future in society, not to mention her eternal fate." If it hadn't been so devastatingly important to me, I might have laughed at the mix of Mrs. Grundy, marriage norms, and damnation, used as a reason to take a child away from her mother. But Mr. Bardswell carelessly overlooked that Sir George Jessel was Jewish, and, raising his eyes to heaven in shock, he gasped out:
"Your lordship, I think, will scarcely credit it, but Mrs. Besant says, in a later affidavit, that she took away the Testament from the child because it contained coarse passages unfit for a child to read."
"Your lordship, I doubt you will believe this, but Mrs. Besant mentions in a later affidavit that she removed the Testament from the child because it had inappropriate passages that weren’t suitable for a child to read."
The opportunity was too tempting for a Jew to refrain from striking at a book written by apostate Jews, and Sir George Jessel answered sharply:
The chance was too appealing for a Jew to resist attacking a book written by former Jews, and Sir George Jessel replied sharply:
"It is not true to say there are no passages unfit for a child's reading, because I think there are a great many."
"It’s not accurate to say there aren’t any parts that aren’t suitable for a child’s reading, because I believe there are quite a few."
"I do not know of any passages that could fairly be called coarse."
"I don’t know of any sections that could honestly be considered crude."
"I cannot quite assent to that."
"I can't quite agree with that."
Barring this little episode judge and counsel showed a charming unanimity. I distinctly said I was an Atheist, that I had withdrawn the child from religious instruction at the day-school she attended, that I had written various anti-Christian books, and so on; but I claimed the child's custody on the ground that the deed of separation distinctly gave it to me, and had been executed by her father after I had left the Christian Church, and that my opinions were not sufficient to invalidate it. It was admitted on the other side that the child was admirably cared for, and there was no attempt at attacking my personal character. The judge stated that I had taken the greatest possible care of the child, but decided that the mere fact of my refusing to give the child religious instruction was sufficient ground for depriving me of her custody. Secular education he regarded as "not only reprehensible, but detestable, and likely to work utter ruin to the child, and I certainly should upon this ground alone decide that this child ought not to remain another day under the care of her mother."
Barring this little incident, both the judge and the lawyer showed a lovely agreement. I clearly stated that I was an atheist, that I had taken the child out of religious instruction at her day school, that I had written several anti-Christian books, and so on; but I claimed custody of the child based on the fact that the separation agreement clearly granted it to me, and that it had been signed by her father after I left the Christian Church, and that my beliefs were not enough to invalidate it. The other side admitted that the child was well cared for, and there was no attempt to attack my personal character. The judge noted that I had taken excellent care of the child but decided that my refusal to provide her with religious instruction was enough to take custody away from me. He viewed secular education as "not only wrong but terrible, and likely to lead to the child's complete ruin, and I certainly would decide on this basis alone that this child should not stay another day in her mother's care."
Sir George Jessel denounced also my Malthusian views in a fashion at once so brutal and so untruthful as to facts, that some years later another judge, the senior puisne judge of the Supreme Court of New South Wales, declared in a judgment delivered in his own court that there was "no language used by Lord Cockburn which justified the Master of the Rolls in assuming that Lord Cockburn regarded the book as obscene," and that "little weight is to be attached to his opinion on a point not submitted for his decision"; he went on to administer a sharp rebuke for the way in which Sir George Jessel travelled outside the case, and remarked that "abuse, however, of an unpopular opinion, whether indulged in by judges or other people, is not argument, nor can the vituperation of opponents in opinion prove them to be immoral." However, Sir George Jessel was all-powerful in his own court, and he deprived me of my child, refusing to stay the order even until the hearing of my appeal against his decision. A messenger from the father came to my house, and the little child was carried away by main force, shrieking and struggling, still weak from the fever, and nearly frantic with fear and passionate resistance. No access to her was given me, and I gave notice that if access were denied me, I would sue for a restitution of conjugal rights, merely that I might see my children. But the strain had been too great, and I nearly went mad, spending hours pacing up and down the empty rooms, striving to weary myself to exhaustion that I might forget. The loneliness and silence of the house, of which my darling had always been the sunshine and the music, weighed on me like an evil dream; I listened for the patter of the dancing feet, and merry, thrilling laughter that rang through the garden, the sweet music of the childish voice; during my sleepless nights I missed in the darkness the soft breathing of the little child; each morning I longed in vain for the clinging arms and soft, sweet kisses. At last health broke down, and fever struck me, and mercifully gave me the rest of pain and delirium instead of the agony of conscious loss. Through that terrible illness, day after day, Mr. Bradlaugh came to me, and sat writing beside me, feeding me with ice and milk, refused from all others, and behaving more like a tender mother than a man friend; he saved my life, though it seemed to me for awhile of little value, till the first months of lonely pain were over. When recovered, I took steps to set aside an order obtained by Mr. Besant during my illness, forbidding me to bring any suit against him, and even the Master of the Rolls, on hearing that all access had been denied to me, and the money due to me stopped, uttered words of strong condemnation of the way in which I had been treated. Finally the deed of separation executed in 1873 was held to be good as protecting Mr. Besant from any suit brought by me, whether for divorce or for restitution of conjugal rights, while the clauses giving me the custody of the child were set aside. The Court of Appeal in April, 1879, upheld the decision, the absolute right of the father as against a married mother being upheld. This ignoring of all right to her children on the part of the married mother is a scandal and a wrong that has since been redressed by Parliament, and the husband has no longer in his grasp this instrument of torture, whose power to agonise depends on the tenderness and strength of the motherliness of the wife. In the days when the law took my child from me, it virtually said to all women: "Choose which of these two positions, as wife and mother, you will occupy. If you are legally your husband's wife, you can have no legal claim to your children; if legally you are your husband's mistress, your rights as mother are secure." That stigma on marriage is now removed.
Sir George Jessel also harshly criticized my Malthusian views in a way that was both brutal and factually untrue. Years later, another judge, the senior puisne judge of the Supreme Court of New South Wales, stated in his court that "there was no language used by Lord Cockburn which justified the Master of the Rolls in assuming that Lord Cockburn regarded the book as obscene," and that "little weight is to be attached to his opinion on a point not submitted for his decision." He then issued a strong rebuke for how Sir George Jessel went beyond the case at hand, commenting that "abuse, however, of an unpopular opinion, whether indulged in by judges or other people, is not argument, nor can the vituperation of opponents in opinion prove them to be immoral." However, Sir George Jessel was all-powerful in his own court, and he took my child away from me, refusing to postpone the order even until my appeal against his decision could be heard. A messenger from the father came to my home, and the little child was forcibly taken away, crying and struggling, still weak from the fever, and nearly frantic with fear and resistance. I was not allowed to see her, and I warned that if I continued to be denied access, I would sue for a restitution of conjugal rights, just so I could see my children. But the emotional strain was too much, and I nearly went mad, spending hours pacing the empty rooms, trying to tire myself out to forget. The loneliness and silence of the house, which my darling had always filled with joy and music, weighed on me like a nightmare; I listened for the sound of her playful footsteps and joyful laughter that used to fill the garden, the sweet sound of her childish voice; during my sleepless nights, I missed the soft breathing of the little child in the dark; each morning, I longed in vain for her clinging arms and soft, sweet kisses. Eventually, my health declined, and a fever struck me, mercifully giving me a break from the pain and delirium instead of the agony of conscious loss. Throughout that terrible illness, Mr. Bradlaugh came to see me every day, sitting beside me and writing, feeding me ice and milk that no one else would provide, acting more like a caring mother than a male friend; he saved my life, even though for a time it seemed of little worth until those first months of lonely pain passed. Once I recovered, I took steps to challenge an order Mr. Besant had obtained during my illness, which prohibited me from bringing any lawsuit against him. Even the Master of the Rolls, upon learning that all access had been denied to me and the money owed to me had been withheld, strongly condemned the way I had been treated. Ultimately, the separation agreement executed in 1873 was deemed valid for protecting Mr. Besant from any lawsuit I initiated, whether for divorce or for restitution of conjugal rights, while the clauses granting me custody of the child were dismissed. In April 1879, the Court of Appeal upheld the ruling, affirming the father's absolute rights over the married mother. This disregard for the mother's rights to her children is a scandal and injustice that has since been corrected by Parliament, and now a husband no longer has this tool of torture, which relied on the tenderness and strength of a wife's motherhood. Back when the law took my child away, it practically told all women: "Choose which of these two roles, as wife and mother, you will take. If you are legally your husband's wife, you can have no legal claim to your children; if you are legally your husband's mistress, your rights as a mother are secure." That stigma on marriage has now been lifted.
One thing I gained in the Court of Appeal. The Court expressed a strong view as to my right of access, and directed me to apply to Sir George Jessel for it, adding that it could not doubt he would grant it. Under cover of this I applied to the Master of the Rolls, and obtained liberal access to the children; but I found that my visits kept Mabel in a continual state of longing and fretting for me, while the ingenious forms of petty insult that were devised against me and used in the children's presence would soon become palpable to them and cause continual pain. So, after a painful struggle with myself, I resolved to give up the right of seeing them, feeling that thus only could I save them from constantly recurring conflict, destructive of all happiness and of all respect for one or the other parent. Resolutely I turned my back on them that I might spare them trouble, and determined that, robbed of my own, I would be a mother to all helpless children I could aid, and cure the pain at my own heart by soothing the pain of others.
One thing I gained in the Court of Appeal was a strong affirmation of my right to access. The Court clearly stated that I should apply to Sir George Jessel for it, adding that it was certain he would grant it. Using this as a basis, I approached the Master of the Rolls and was granted generous access to the children. However, I noticed that my visits left Mabel in a constant state of longing and distress for me, while the clever little insults that were aimed at me in front of the children would soon be obvious to them and cause ongoing pain. After wrestling with myself over this, I decided to give up my right to see them, believing that this was the only way to protect them from persistent conflict, which was ruining their happiness and respect for their parents. Steeling myself, I turned away from them to spare them any trouble, and resolved that, now without my own children, I would be a mother to all the helpless kids I could help, easing my own heartache by soothing the pain of others.
As far as regards this whole struggle over the Knowlton pamphlet, victory was finally won all along the line. Not only did we, as related, recover all our seized pamphlets, and continue the sale till all prosecution and threat of prosecution were definitely surrendered; but my own tract had an enormous sale, so that when I withdrew it from sale in June, 1891, I was offered a large sum for the copyright, an offer which I, of course, refused. Since that time not a copy has been sold with my knowledge or permission, but long ere that the pamphlet had received a very complete legal vindication. For while it circulated untouched in England, a prosecution was attempted against it in New South Wales, but was put an end to by an eloquent and luminous judgment by the senior puisne judge of the Supreme Court, Mr. Justice Windmeyer, in December, 1888. This judge, the most respected in the great Australian colony, spoke out plainly and strongly on the morality of such teaching. "Take the case," he said, "of a woman married to a drunken husband, steadily ruining his constitution and hastening to the drunkard's doom, loss of employment for himself, semi-starvation for his family, and finally death, without a shilling to leave those whom he has brought into the world, but armed with the authority of the law to treat his wife as his slave, ever brutally insisting on the indulgence of his marital rights. Where is the immorality, if, already broken in health from unresting maternity, having already a larger family than she can support when the miserable breadwinner has drunk himself to death, the woman avails herself of the information given in this book, and so averts the consequences of yielding to her husband's brutal insistence on his marital rights? Already weighted with a family that she is unable to decently bring up, the immorality, it seems to me, would be in the reckless and criminal disregard of precautions which would prevent her bringing into the world daughters whose future outlook as a career would be prostitution, or sons whose inherited taint of alcoholism would soon drag them down with their sisters to herd with the seething mass of degenerate and criminal humanity that constitutes the dangerous classes of great cities. In all these cases the appeal is from thoughtless, unreasoning prejudice to conscience, and, if listened to, its voice will be heard unmistakably indicating where the path of duty lies."
As for the whole debate over the Knowlton pamphlet, we ultimately achieved a complete victory. Not only did we recover all the seized pamphlets and continue selling them until all threats of prosecution were dropped, but my own tract also sold very well. When I took it off the market in June 1891, I received a significant offer for the copyright, which I, of course, turned down. Since then, no copies have been sold with my knowledge or permission, but by that time, the pamphlet had already received a thorough legal vindication. While it circulated freely in England, there was an attempt to prosecute it in New South Wales, which was halted by a powerful and clear ruling from the senior judge of the Supreme Court, Mr. Justice Windmeyer, in December 1888. This judge, the most esteemed in the great Australian colony, spoke plainly and strongly about the morality of such teaching. "Take the case," he said, "of a woman married to a drunk husband, who is steadily destroying his health and heading toward a drunkard's end—losing his job, causing semi-starvation for his family, and ultimately dying without a penny to leave to those he brought into the world. Yet he has the legal power to treat his wife like a slave, constantly demanding his marital rights. Where is the immorality if, already weakened in health from relentless motherhood, with more children than she can support when the pathetic breadwinner has drunk himself to death, the woman uses the information in this book to avoid the consequences of her husband's brutal insistence? Burdened with a family she can't adequately care for, it seems to me that the real immorality would be in the reckless and criminal disregard for precautions that would prevent her from having daughters whose future prospects would lead to prostitution or sons whose hereditary alcoholism would soon drag them down with their sisters into the masses of degenerate and criminal people that make up the dangerous classes in big cities. In all these cases, the appeal is from thoughtless, unreasoning prejudice to conscience, and if it’s heeded, its voice will clearly show where duty lies."
The judge forcibly refused to be any party to the prohibition of such a pamphlet, regarding it as of high service to the community. He said: "So strong is the dread of the world's censure upon this topic that few have the courage openly to express their views upon it; and its nature is such that it is only amongst thinkers who discuss all subjects, or amongst intimate acquaintances, that community of thought upon the question is discovered. But let any one inquire amongst those who have sufficient education and ability to think for themselves, and who do not idly float, slaves to the current of conventional opinion, and he will discover that numbers of men and women of purest lives, of noblest aspirations, pious, cultivated, and refined, see no wrong in teaching the ignorant that it is wrong to bring into the world children to whom they cannot do justice, and who think it folly to stop short in telling them simply and plainly how to prevent it. A more robust view of morals teaches that it is puerile to ignore human passions and human physiology. A clearer perception of truth and the safety of trusting to it teaches that in law, as in religion, it is useless trying to limit the knowledge of mankind by any inquisitorial attempts to place upon a judicial Index Expurgatorius works written with an earnest purpose, and commending themselves to thinkers of well-balanced minds. I will be no party to any such attempt. I do not believe that it was ever meant that the Obscene Publication Act should apply to cases of this kind, but only to the publication of such matter as all good men would regard as lewd and filthy, to lewd and bawdy novels, pictures and exhibitions, evidently published and given for lucre's sake. It could never have been intended to stifle the expression of thought by the earnest-minded on a subject of transcendent national importance like the present, and I will not strain it for that purpose. As pointed out by Lord Cockburn in the case of the Queen v. Bradlaugh and Besant, all prosecutions of this kind should be regarded as mischievous, even by those who disapprove the opinions sought to be stifled, inasmuch as they only tend more widely to diffuse the teaching objected to. To those, on the other hand, who desire its promulgation, it must be a matter of congratulation that this, like all attempted persecutions of thinkers, will defeat its own object, and that truth, like a torch, 'the more it's shook it shines.'"
The judge firmly refused to be involved in banning such a pamphlet, seeing it as highly beneficial to the community. He remarked: "There's such a strong fear of public judgment on this topic that few people have the bravery to share their opinions openly; and the nature of the topic is such that understanding can only be found among thinkers who are willing to discuss anything, or among close friends. However, if you ask educated people who can think for themselves, who don’t just go along with conventional opinions, you'll find that many men and women of the highest integrity, noble aspirations, piety, education, and refinement see no wrong in teaching the uninformed that it's wrong to bring children into the world when they cannot provide for them, and they believe it’s foolish not to straightforwardly explain how to prevent that. A stronger moral perspective teaches that it’s naïve to ignore human desires and biology. A clearer understanding of truth and the safety of relying on it shows that, in law as in religion, trying to limit human knowledge through oppressive efforts to place works with serious intentions on a judicial censorship list is pointless, especially when these works are valued by thoughtful and sensible minds. I will not be part of any such attempt. I do not believe the Obscene Publication Act was ever intended to apply to situations like this, but only to materials that any decent person would consider lewd and disgusting, such as explicit novels, pictures, and performances, clearly produced for profit. It could never have been meant to suppress thoughtful discussion on a matter of such immense national significance like the one at hand, and I will not stretch the law for that purpose. As pointed out by Lord Cockburn in the case of the Queen v. Bradlaugh and Besant, all prosecutions of this kind should be viewed as harmful, even by those who disagree with the opinions being suppressed, since they only further spread the teachings they oppose. For those who wish for its spread, it must be a welcome thought that this, like all attempts to persecute thinkers, will backfire, and that truth, like a torch, 'shines brighter the more it's shaken.'"
The argument of Mr. Justice Windmeyer for the Neo-Malthusian position was (as any one may see who reads the full text of the judgment) one of the most luminous and cogent I have ever read. The judgment was spoken of at the time in the English press as a "brilliant triumph for Mrs. Besant," and so I suppose it was; but no legal judgment could undo the harm wrought on the public mind in England by malignant and persistent misrepresentation. What that trial and its results cost me in pain no one but myself will ever know; on the other hand, there was the passionate gratitude evidenced by letters from thousands of poor married women—many from the wives of country clergymen and curates—thanking and blessing me for showing them how to escape from the veritable hell in which they lived. The "upper classes" of society know nothing about the way in which the poor live; how their overcrowding destroys all sense of personal dignity, of modesty, of outward decency, till human life, as Bishop Fraser justly said, is "degraded below the level of the swine." To such, and among such I went, and I could not grudge the price that then seemed to me as the ransom for their redemption. To me, indeed, it meant the losing of all that made life dear, but for them it seemed to be the gaining of all that gave hope of a better future. So how could I hesitate—I whose heart had been fired by devotion to an ideal Humanity, inspired by that Materialism that is of love and not of hate?
The argument from Justice Windmeyer supporting the Neo-Malthusian viewpoint was one of the most insightful and persuasive I have ever encountered, as anyone can see by reading the full text of the judgment. At the time, the English press referred to the judgment as a "brilliant triumph for Mrs. Besant," and I guess it was; however, no legal decision could reverse the damage done to public perception in England by malicious and ongoing misrepresentation. No one but me will ever know the pain that trial and its outcomes cost me; yet, on the flip side, I received heartfelt gratitude through letters from thousands of struggling married women—many from the wives of country clergymen and curates—thanking me for showing them how to escape the true hell they were living in. The "upper classes" have no idea how the poor live; how their overcrowding strips away any sense of personal dignity, modesty, and outward decency, until human life, as Bishop Fraser rightly said, is "degraded below the level of the swine." I immersed myself among them, and I couldn't resent the price that, at the time, felt like the ransom for their freedom. For me, it meant losing everything that made life meaningful, but for them, it seemed to represent the possibility of a better future. So how could I hesitate—I, whose heart had been ignited by a commitment to an ideal Humanity, inspired by that Materialism that is rooted in love rather than hate?
And now, in August, 1893, we find the Christian World, the representative organ of orthodox Christian Protestantism, proclaiming the right and the duty of voluntary limitation of the family. In a leading article, after a number of letters had been inserted, it said:—
And now, in August 1893, we see the Christian World, the main voice of traditional Christian Protestantism, declaring the right and responsibility of people to voluntarily limit their families. In a prominent article, following several letters that had been published, it stated:—
"The conditions are assuredly wrong which bring one member of the married partnership into a bondage so cruel. It is no less evident that the cause of the bondage in such cases lies in the too rapid multiplication of the family. There was a time when any idea of voluntary limitation was regarded by pious people as interfering with Providence. We are beyond that now, and have become capable of recognising that Providence works through the common sense of individual brains. We limit population just as much by deferring marriage from prudential motives as by any action that may be taken after it.... Apart from certain methods of limitation, the morality of which is gravely questioned by many, there are certain easily-understood physiological laws of the subject, the failure to know and to observe which is inexcusable on the part either of men or women in these circumstances. It is worth noting in this connection that Dr. Billings, in his article in this month's Forum, on the diminishing birth-rate of the United States, gives as one of the reasons the greater diffusion of intelligence, by means of popular and school treatises on physiology, than formerly prevailed."
"The situation is clearly wrong when one partner in a marriage is subjected to such harsh conditions. It’s also clear that the reason for this situation often stems from the rapid growth of the family. There was a time when suggesting any kind of voluntary family planning was seen by religious people as stepping in the way of divine will. We’ve moved past that now and can see that divine will works through the common sense of individuals. We control population growth not only by delaying marriage for practical reasons but also by actions taken afterward... Besides certain controversial methods of limitation, there are basic physiological laws regarding this issue that both men and women must understand and adhere to in these circumstances. Notably, Dr. Billings, in his article in this month's Forum on the decreasing birth rate in the United States, cites one reason as the improved spread of knowledge through popular and educational materials on physiology, which is more widespread than it used to be."
Thus has opinion changed in sixteen years, and all the obloquy poured on us is seen to have been the outcome of ignorance and bigotry.
Thus, opinions have changed in sixteen years, and all the criticism directed at us is now understood to have been the result of ignorance and prejudice.
As for the children, what was gained by their separation from me? The moment they were old enough to free themselves, they came back to me, my little girl's too brief stay with me being ended by her happy marriage, and I fancy the fears expressed for her eternal future will prove as groundless as the fears for her temporal ruin have proved to be! Not only so, but both are treading in my steps as regards their views of the nature and destiny of man, and have joined in their bright youth the Theosophical Society to which, after so many struggles, I won my way.
As for the kids, what did they gain from being apart from me? As soon as they were able to make their own choices, they returned to me. My little girl's short time with me ended with her happy marriage, and I believe the worries expressed about her future will turn out to be just as unfounded as the concerns about her present downfall have been! Not only that, but both of them are following my path regarding their beliefs about human nature and purpose. They have even joined the Theosophical Society in their bright youth, which I finally gained entry to after many struggles.
The struggle on the right to discuss the prudential restraint of population did not, however, conclude without a martyr. Mr. Edward Truelove, alluded to above, was prosecuted for selling a treatise by Robert Dale Owen on "Moral Physiology," and a pamphlet entitled, "Individual, Family, and National Poverty." He was tried on February 1, 1878, before the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of Queen's Bench, and was most ably defended by Professor W.A. Hunter. The jury spent two hours in considering their verdict, and returned into court and stated that they were unable to agree. The majority of the jury were ready to convict, if they felt sure that Mr. Truelove would not be punished, but one of them boldly declared in court: "As to the book, it is written in plain language for plain people, and I think that many more persons ought to know what the contents of the book are." The jury was discharged, in consequence of this one man's courage, but Mr. Truelove's persecutors—the Vice Society—were determined not to let their victim free. They proceeded to trial a second time, and wisely endeavoured to secure a special jury, feeling that as prudential restraint would raise wages by limiting the supply of labour, they would be more likely to obtain a verdict from a jury of "gentlemen" than from one composed of workers. This attempt was circumvented by Mr. Truelove's legal advisers, who let a procedendo go which sent back the trial to the Old Bailey. The second trial was held on May 16th at the Central Criminal Court before Baron Pollock and a common jury, Professor Hunter and Mr. J.M. Davidson appearing for the defence. The jury convicted, and the brave old man, sixty-eight years of age, was condemned to four months' imprisonment and £50 fine for selling a pamphlet which had been sold unchallenged, during a period of forty-five years, by James Watson, George Jacob Holyoake, Austin Holyoake, and Charles Watts. Mr. Grain, the counsel employed by the Vice Society, most unfairly used against Mr. Truelove my "Law of Population," a pamphlet which contained, Baron Pollock said, "the head and front of the offence in the other [the Knowlton] case." I find an indignant protest against this odious unfairness in the National Reformer for May 19th: "My 'Law of Population' was used against Mr. Truelove as an aggravation of his offence, passing over the utter meanness—worthy only of Collette—of using against a prisoner a book whose author has never been attacked for writing it—does Mr. Collette, or do the authorities, imagine that the severity shown to Mr. Truelove will in any fashion deter me from continuing the Malthusian propaganda? Let me here assure them, one and all, that it will do nothing of the kind; I shall continue to sell the 'Law of Population' and to advocate scientific checks to population, just as though Mr. Collette and his Vice Society were all dead and buried. In commonest justice they are bound to prosecute me, and if they get, and keep, a verdict against me, and succeed in sending me to prison, they will only make people more anxious to read my book, and make me more personally powerful as a teacher of the views which they attack."
The debate on the right to talk about the responsible management of population didn’t end without a martyr. Mr. Edward Truelove, mentioned earlier, was prosecuted for selling a treatise by Robert Dale Owen on "Moral Physiology," and a pamphlet titled "Individual, Family, and National Poverty." He was tried on February 1, 1878, before the Lord Chief Justice in the Court of Queen's Bench, and was effectively defended by Professor W.A. Hunter. The jury took two hours to deliberate and returned to say they couldn't reach a verdict. Most jurors were ready to convict, provided they knew Mr. Truelove wouldn't be punished, but one bravely stated in court: "Regarding the book, it's written in straightforward language for ordinary people, and I think many more should know what it contains." The jury was released because of this man's bravery, but Mr. Truelove's persecutors—the Vice Society—were determined not to let him go. They pushed for a second trial, trying to get a special jury, believing that since responsible management would increase wages by controlling labor supply, they’d be more likely to get a verdict from a jury of "gentlemen" rather than laborers. Mr. Truelove's lawyers cleverly countered this plan, bringing the trial back to the Old Bailey. The second trial took place on May 16th at the Central Criminal Court before Baron Pollock and a regular jury, with Professor Hunter and Mr. J.M. Davidson defending. The jury convicted him, and the brave old man, 68 years old, was sentenced to four months in prison and a £50 fine for selling a pamphlet that had been openly sold for forty-five years by James Watson, George Jacob Holyoake, Austin Holyoake, and Charles Watts. Mr. Grain, the Vice Society's counsel, unfairly used my "Law of Population" against Mr. Truelove, which Baron Pollock stated was "the core of the offense in the other [the Knowlton] case." I found an angry protest against this unjust treatment in the National Reformer for May 19th: "My 'Law of Population' was used against Mr. Truelove as an aggravation of his offense, ignoring the utter meanness—only worthy of Collette—of using a book against a defendant whose author has never faced criticism for writing it. Does Mr. Collette, or do the authorities, think that the harshness shown to Mr. Truelove will in any way stop me from continuing the Malthusian campaign? Let me assure them that it won't; I will keep selling the 'Law of Population' and advocating scientific population control, as if Mr. Collette and his Vice Society were all dead and buried. Out of basic fairness, they are obligated to prosecute me, and if they manage to get a verdict against me and send me to prison, it will only make more people curious to read my book and strengthen my position as a proponent of the views they criticize."
A persistent attempt was made to obtain a writ of error in Mr. Truelove's case, but the Tory Attorney-General, Sir John Holker, refused it, although the ground on which it was asked was one of the grounds on which a similar writ had been granted to Mr. Bradlaugh and myself. Mr. Truelove was therefore compelled to suffer his sentence, but memorials, signed by 11,000 persons, asking for his release, were sent to the Home Secretary from every part of the country, and a crowded meeting in St. James's Hall, London, demanded his liberation with only six dissentients. The whole agitation did not shorten Mr. Truelove's sentence by a single day, and he was not released from Coldbath Fields Prison until September 5th. On the 12th of the same month the Hall of Science was crowded with enthusiastic friends, who assembled to do him honour, and he was presented with a beautifully-illuminated address and a purse containing £177 (subsequent subscriptions raised the amount to £197 16s. 6d.).
A continuous effort was made to get a writ of error in Mr. Truelove's case, but the Tory Attorney-General, Sir John Holker, denied it, even though the reason for the request was one that had previously granted a similar writ to Mr. Bradlaugh and me. As a result, Mr. Truelove had to serve his sentence, but memorials signed by 11,000 people asking for his release were sent to the Home Secretary from all over the country, and a packed meeting at St. James's Hall in London demanded his freedom, with only six people disagreeing. Despite all the activism, Mr. Truelove’s sentence wasn’t shortened by a single day, and he wasn’t released from Coldbath Fields Prison until September 5th. On the 12th of that same month, the Hall of Science was filled with enthusiastic supporters who gathered to honor him, and he was presented with a beautifully illuminated address and a purse containing £177 (later contributions increased the total to £197 16s. 6d.).
It is scarcely necessary to say that one of the results of the prosecution was a great agitation throughout the country, and a wide popularisation of Malthusian views. Some huge demonstrations were held in favour of free discussion; on one occasion the Free Trade Hall, Manchester, was crowded to the doors; on another the Star Music Hall, Bradford, was crammed in every corner; on another the Town Hall, Birmingham, had not a seat or a bit of standing-room unoccupied. Wherever we went, separately or together, it was the same story, and not only were Malthusian lectures eagerly attended, and Malthusian literature eagerly bought, but curiosity brought many to listen to our Radical and Freethought lectures, and thousands heard for the first time what Secularism really meant. The Press, both London and provincial, agreed in branding the prosecution as foolish, and it was generally remarked that it resulted only in the wider circulation of the indicted book, and the increased popularity of those who had stood for the right of publication. The furious attacks since made upon us have been made chiefly by those who differ from us in theological creed, and who have found a misrepresentation of our prosecution served them as a convenient weapon of attack. During the last few years public opinion has been gradually coming round to our side, in consequence of the pressure of poverty resulting from widespread depression of trade, and during the sensation caused in 1884 by "The Bitter Cry of Outcast London," many writers in the Daily News—notably Mr. G.R. Sims—boldly alleged that the distress was to a great extent due to the large families of the poor, and mentioned that we had been prosecuted for giving the very knowledge which would bring salvation to the sufferers in our great cities.
It’s hardly necessary to mention that one outcome of the prosecution was significant unrest across the country and a widespread acceptance of Malthusian ideas. Massive rallies were held in support of free speech; at one point, the Free Trade Hall in Manchester was packed to the doors; at another, the Star Music Hall in Bradford was full to every corner; and at yet another, the Town Hall in Birmingham had no seats or standing room left. Wherever we went, whether separately or together, the story was the same. Not only were Malthusian lectures enthusiastically attended and Malthusian literature eagerly purchased, but many came out of curiosity to listen to our Radical and Freethought talks, and thousands learned for the first time what Secularism truly meant. The media, both in London and elsewhere, unanimously condemned the prosecution as foolish, and it was commonly noted that it only led to the book being circulated more widely and increased popularity for those who defended the right to publish it. The intense criticisms aimed at us have mostly come from those who disagree with us theologically, and they have used misrepresentations of our prosecution as a convenient means to attack. Over the past few years, public opinion has gradually shifted in our favor due to the pressures of poverty brought on by widespread economic decline. During the sensation sparked in 1884 by "The Bitter Cry of Outcast London," several writers for the Daily News—notably Mr. G.R. Sims—boldly claimed that the distress was largely due to the large families of the poor, and pointed out that we had been prosecuted for providing the very knowledge that could help alleviate the suffering in our major cities.
Among the useful results of the prosecution was the establishment of the Malthusian League, "to agitate for the abolition of all penalties on the public discussion of the population question," and "to spread among the people, by all practicable means, a knowledge of the law of population, of its consequences, and of its bearing upon human conduct and morals." The first general meeting of the League was held at the Hall of Science on July 26, 1877, and a council of twenty persons was elected, and this council on August 2nd elected Dr. C.R. Drysdale, M.D., President; Mr. Swaagman, Treasurer; Mrs. Besant, Secretary; Mr. Shearer, Assistant-Secretary; and Mr. Hember, Financial Secretary. Since 1877 the League, under the same indefatigable president, has worked hard to carry out its objects; it has issued a large number of leaflets and tracts; it supports a monthly journal, the Malthusian; numerous lectures have been delivered under its auspices in all parts of the country; and it has now a medical branch, into which none but duly qualified medical men and women are admitted, with members in all European countries.
Among the key outcomes of the prosecution was the creation of the Malthusian League, "to advocate for the removal of all penalties on discussing population issues," and "to educate the public, using all available methods, about the law of population, its implications, and its impact on human behavior and ethics." The League's first general meeting took place at the Hall of Science on July 26, 1877, where a council of twenty members was elected. On August 2nd, this council chose Dr. C.R. Drysdale, M.D., as President; Mr. Swaagman as Treasurer; Mrs. Besant as Secretary; Mr. Shearer as Assistant Secretary; and Mr. Hember as Financial Secretary. Since 1877, the League, led by the same tireless president, has worked diligently to achieve its goals; it has published a significant number of leaflets and brochures; it supports a monthly journal, the Malthusian; numerous lectures have been held under its sponsorship throughout the country; and it now has a medical branch that only admits qualified medical professionals, with members across all European countries.
Another result of the prosecution was the accession of "D." to the staff of the National Reformer. This able and thoughtful writer came forward and joined our ranks as soon as he heard of the attack on us, and he further volunteered to conduct the journal during our expected imprisonment. From that time to this—a period of fifteen years—articles from his pen appeared in its columns week by week, and during all that time not one solitary difficulty arose between editors and contributor. In public a trustworthy colleague, in private a warm and sincere friend, "D." proved an unmixed benefit bestowed upon us by the prosecution.
Another result of the prosecution was "D." joining the staff of the National Reformer. This skilled and thoughtful writer stepped up and joined us as soon as he heard about the attack against us, and he even offered to run the journal during our expected imprisonment. From then until now—a span of fifteen years—articles from him have appeared in its pages every week, and throughout that time, not a single issue arose between the editors and the contributor. In public, he was a reliable colleague; in private, a warm and sincere friend. "D." turned out to be an absolute advantage that the prosecution granted us.
Nor was "D." the only friend brought to us by our foes. I cannot ever think of that time without remembering that the prosecution brought me first into close intimacy with Mrs. Annie Parris—the wife of Mr. Touzeau Parris, the Secretary of the Defence Committee throughout all the fight—a lady who, during that long struggle, and during the, for me, far worse struggle that succeeded it, over the custody of my daughter, proved to me the most loving and sisterly of friends. One or two other friendships which will, I hope, last my life, date from that same time of strife and anxiety.
Nor was "D." the only friend we gained through our enemies. I can never think back to that time without remembering how the prosecution brought me closer to Mrs. Annie Parris—the wife of Mr. Touzeau Parris, who was the Secretary of the Defence Committee throughout the entire battle—a woman who, during that long struggle, and during the much harder fight for me that followed over the custody of my daughter, showed me the most loving and sisterly friendship. A couple of other friendships that I hope will last a lifetime also began during that same time of struggle and worry.
The amount of money subscribed by the public during the Knowlton and succeeding prosecutions gives some idea of the interest felt in the struggle. The Defence Fund Committee in March, 1878, presented a balance-sheet, showing subscriptions amounting to £1,292 5s. 4d., and total expenditure in the Queen v. Bradlaugh and Besant, the Queen v. Truelove, and the appeal against Mr. Vaughan's order (the last two up to date) of £1,274 10s. This account was then closed and the balance of £17 15s. 4d. passed on to a new fund for the defence of Mr. Truelove, the carrying on of the appeal against the destruction of the Knowlton pamphlet, and the bearing of the costs incident on the petition lodged against myself. In July this new fund had reached £196 16s. 7d., and after paying the remainder of the costs in Mr. Truelove's case, a balance of £26 15s. 2d. was carried on. This again rose to £247 15s. 2½d., and the fund bore the expenses of Mr. Bradlaugh's successful appeal on the Knowlton pamphlet, the petition and subsequent proceedings in which I was concerned in the Court of Chancery, and an appeal on Mr. Truelove's behalf, unfortunately unsuccessful, against an order for the destruction of the Dale Owen pamphlet. This last decision was given on February 21, 1880, and on this the Defence Fund was closed. On Mr. Truelove's release, as mentioned above, a testimonial to the amount of £197 16s. 6d. was presented to him, and after the close of the struggle some anonymous friend sent to me personally £200 as "thanks for the courage and ability shown." In addition to all this, the Malthusian League received no less than £455 11s. 9d. during the first year of its life, and started on its second year with a balance in hand of £77 5s. 8d.
The amount of money contributed by the public during the Knowlton and subsequent prosecutions shows how much interest there was in the fight. In March 1878, the Defence Fund Committee presented a financial statement that displayed subscriptions totaling £1,292 5s. 4d., while the total expenses for the Queen v. Bradlaugh and Besant, the Queen v. Truelove, and the appeal against Mr. Vaughan's order (the last two up to that date) were £1,274 10s. This account was then closed, and the remaining balance of £17 15s. 4d. was transferred to a new fund for defending Mr. Truelove, continuing the appeal against the destruction of the Knowlton pamphlet, and covering the costs related to the petition against me. By July, this new fund had grown to £196 16s. 7d., and after settling the remaining costs in Mr. Truelove's case, there was a leftover of £26 15s. 2d. This increased again to £247 15s. 2½d., and the fund covered the costs of Mr. Bradlaugh's successful appeal regarding the Knowlton pamphlet, the petition, and the subsequent legal matters I was involved in at the Court of Chancery, along with an appeal on Mr. Truelove's behalf, which unfortunately was unsuccessful against an order for the destruction of the Dale Owen pamphlet. This final decision was made on February 21, 1880, and following that, the Defence Fund was closed. After Mr. Truelove's release, as mentioned earlier, a testimonial amounting to £197 16s. 6d. was given to him, and after the struggle ended, an anonymous supporter personally sent me £200 as "thanks for the courage and ability shown." Additionally, the Malthusian League received a total of £455 11s. 9d. in its first year and began its second year with a balance of £77 5s. 8d.
A somewhat similar prosecution in America, in which the bookseller, Mr. D.M. Bennett, sold a book with which he did not agree, and was imprisoned, led to our giving him a warm welcome when, after his release, he visited England. We entertained him at the Hall of Science at a crowded gathering, and I was deputed as spokesman to present him with a testimonial. This I did in the following speech, quoted here in order to show the spirit then animating me:—
A somewhat similar case in America involved bookseller Mr. D.M. Bennett, who sold a book he disagreed with and ended up in prison. When he visited England after his release, we welcomed him warmly. We hosted him at the Hall of Science during a crowded event, and I was chosen as the spokesperson to present him with a testimonial. I gave this speech, which I’m quoting here to capture the spirit I felt at the time:—
"Friends, Mr. Bradlaugh has spoken of the duty that calls us here to-night. It is pleasant to think that in our work that duty is one to which we are not unaccustomed. In our army there are more true soldiers than traitors, more that are faithful to the trust of keeping the truth than those who shrink when the hour of danger comes. And I would ask Mr. Bennett to-night not to measure English feeling towards him by the mere number of those present. They that are here are representatives of many thousands of our fellow-countrymen. Glance down this middle table, and you will see that it is not without some right that we claim to welcome you in the name of multitudes of the citizens of England. There are those who taunt us with want of loyalty, and with the name of infidels. In what church will they find men and women more loyal to truth and conscience? The name infidel is not for us so long as we are faithful to the truth we know. If I speak, as I have done, of national representation in this hall this evening, tell me, you who know those who sit here, who have watched some of them for years, others of them but for a brief time, do I not speak truth? Take them one by one. Your President but a little while ago in circumstances similar to those wherein our guest himself was placed, with the true lover's keenness that recognises the mistress under all disguise, beholding his mistress Liberty in danger, under circumstances that would have blinded less sure eyes, leapt to her rescue. He risked the ambition of his life rather than be disloyal to liberty. And next is seated a woman, who, student of a noble profession, thought that liberty had greater claim upon her than even her work. When we stood in worse peril than even loss of liberty, she risked her own good name for the truth's sake. One also is here who, eminent in his own profession, came with the weight of his position and his right to speak, and gave a kindred testimony. One step further, and you see one who, soldier to liberty, throughout a long and spotless life, when the task was far harder than it is to-day, when there were no greetings, no welcomes, when to serve was to peril name as well as liberty, never flinched from the first until now. He is crowned with the glory of the jail, that was his for no crime but for claiming the right to publish that wherein the noblest thought is uttered in the bravest words. And next to him is another who speaks for liberty, who has brought culture, university degree, position in men's sight, and many friends, and cast them all at her beloved feet. Sir, not alone the past and the present greet you to-night. The future also greets you with us. We have here also those who are training themselves to walk in the footsteps of the one most dear to them, who shall carry on, when we have passed away, the work which we shall have dropped from our hands. But he whom we delight to honour at this hour in truth honours us, in that he allows us to offer him the welcome that it is our glory and our pleasure to give. He has fought bravely. The Christian creed had in its beginning more traitors and less true hearts than the creed of to-day. We are happy to-day not only in the thought of what manner of men we have for leaders, but in the thought of what manner of men we have as soldiers in our army. Jesus had twelve apostles. One betrayed Him for thirty pieces of silver; a second denied Him. They all forsook Him and fled. We can scarcely point to one who has thus deserted our sacred cause. The traditions of our party tell us of many who went to jail because they claimed for all that right of free speech which is the heritage of all. One of the most famous members of our body in England, Richard Carlile, turned bookseller to sell books that were prosecuted. This man became Free-thinker, driven thereto by the bigotry and wickedness of the Churches. He sold the books of Hone not because he agreed with them, but because Hone was prosecuted. He saw that the book in whose prosecution freedom was attacked was the book for the freeman to sell; and the story of our guest shows that in all this England and America are one. Those who gave Milton to the world can yet bring forth men of the same stamp in continents leagues asunder. Because our friend was loyal and true, prison had to him no dread. It was far, far less of dishonour to wear the garb of the convict than to wear that of the hypocrite. The society we represent, like his society in America, pleads for free thought, speaks for free speech, claims for every one, however antagonistic, the right to speak the thought he feels. It is better that this should be, even though the thought be wrong, for thus the sooner will its error be discovered—better if the thought be right, for then the sooner does the gladness of a new truth find place in the heart of man. As the mouthpiece, Sir, of our National Secular Society, and of its thousands of members, I speak to you now:—
"Friends, Mr. Bradlaugh has talked about the duty that brings us here tonight. It’s nice to realize that this duty is something we're used to in our work. In our ranks, there are more true soldiers than traitors, more who are committed to upholding the truth than those who falter when danger arises. I ask Mr. Bennett tonight not to judge English sentiment towards him based solely on how many are present. Those of us here represent many thousands of our fellow citizens. Look down this middle table, and you’ll see that it’s with good reason we welcome you in the name of the many citizens of England. Some mock us for lacking loyalty and call us infidels. In which church will they find men and women more loyal to truth and conscience? The label infidel doesn't belong to us as long as we are true to the truth we know. If I talk about national representation in this hall this evening, then you, who know those sitting here, some of whom you’ve watched for years and others for a brief time, tell me, am I not speaking the truth? Take them one by one. Your President, not long ago, in a situation similar to that of our guest, with the passion of a true lover who sees through any disguise, recognized his beloved Liberty in danger, under circumstances that would have blinded less discerning eyes, and he rushed to her aid. He risked his life's ambition rather than betray liberty. Next to him is a woman, a student of a noble profession, who believed that liberty took precedence over even her own work. When we faced a greater danger than mere loss of liberty, she risked her good name for the sake of truth. One here is someone who, prominent in his profession, came forward with the authority of his position and gave a similar testimony. One more step, and you see someone who, a soldier for liberty throughout a long and unblemished life, never wavered from the start until now, even when the task was much tougher than it is today, when there were no accolades, no warm welcomes, and serving could endanger both name and liberty. He is honored for the time he spent in jail, not for any crime but for claiming the right to publish noble thoughts expressed in brave words. Next to him is another who speaks for liberty, someone who gave up culture, academic degrees, status in society, and many friends to dedicate themselves to her. Sir, not just the past and present welcome you tonight. The future also stands with us. We have here those who are getting ready to follow in the footsteps of the ones they hold dearest, who will continue the work we eventually leave behind. But the one we are proud to honor tonight also honors us by allowing us to give him this welcome that we take pride in offering. He has fought valiantly. The Christian faith initially had more traitors and fewer true believers than today's beliefs. We’re glad today not only because of the type of leaders we have but also for the kind of individuals standing with us in our cause. Jesus had twelve apostles. One betrayed Him for thirty pieces of silver; another denied Him. They all abandoned Him. We can hardly point to anyone who has deserted our sacred cause in such a manner. The history of our group speaks of many who went to jail for claiming the right to free speech, which is everyone’s heritage. One of the most notable members of our organization in England, Richard Carlile, became a bookseller to sell books that were prosecuted. This man became a Free-thinker, driven by the prejudice and wrongdoing of the Churches. He sold Hone’s books not because he agreed with them, but because Hone was prosecuted. He realized that the book under attack was one for a free person to sell. The story of our guest shows that England and America are one in this regard. Those who brought Milton to the world can still produce men of the same caliber across vast distances. Because our friend was loyal and true, prison held no fear for him. It was far less dishonorable to wear the convict’s clothes than the hypocrite’s. The society we represent, like his society in America, advocates for free thought, speaks for free speech, and claims the right to express one’s thoughts for everyone, even if their ideas clash with our own. It’s better for this to happen, even if the thought is wrong, because that way, the error will be uncovered sooner. It’s even better if the thought is right, for then the joy of a new truth will find its way into people’s hearts more quickly. As the representative, Sir, of our National Secular Society and its thousands of members, I speak to you now:—"
"'ADDRESS.
'ADDRESS.
"'We seek for Truth.'
"We're searching for the truth."
"'To D.M. Bennett.
"To D.M. Bennett."
"'In asking you to accept at the hands of the National Secular Society of England this symbol of cordial sympathy and brotherly welcome, we are but putting into act the motto of our Society. "We seek for Truth" is our badge, and it is as Truthseeker that we do you homage to-night. Without free speech no search for Truth is possible; without free speech no discovery of Truth is useful; without free speech progress is checked, and the nations no longer march forward towards the nobler life which the future holds for man. Better a thousandfold abuse of free speech than denial of free speech. The abuse dies in a day; the denial slays the life of the people and entombs the hope of the race.
"In asking you to accept this symbol of friendship and welcome from the National Secular Society of England, we are simply putting into action our Society's motto. 'We seek for Truth' is our badge, and it is as Truthseekers that we honor you tonight. Without free speech, no search for Truth is possible; without free speech, no discovery of Truth is useful; without free speech, progress is halted, and nations no longer move forward towards the better life that the future holds for humanity. It's better to have a thousand abuses of free speech than to deny free speech itself. The abuse fades away in a day; the denial kills the spirit of the people and buries the hopes of humanity."
"'In your own country you have pleaded for free speech, and when, under a wicked and an odious law, one of your fellow-citizens was imprisoned for the publication of his opinions, you, not sharing the opinions but faithful to liberty, sprang forward to defend in him the principle of free speech which you claimed for yourself, and sold his book while he lay in prison. For this act you were in turn arrested and sent to jail, and the country which won its freedom by the aid of Paine in the eighteenth century disgraced itself in the nineteenth by the imprisonment of a heretic. The Republic of the United States dishonoured herself, and not you, in Albany penitentiary. Two hundred thousand of your countrymen pleaded for your release, but bigotry was too strong. We sent you greeting in your captivity; we rejoiced when the time came for your release. We offer you to-night our thanks and our hope—thanks for the heroism which never flinched in the hour of battle, hope for a more peaceful future, in which the memory of a past pain may be a sacred heritage and not a regret.
"In your own country, you fought for free speech, and when, under a cruel and unjust law, one of your fellow citizens was imprisoned for expressing his opinions, you, not necessarily agreeing with him but staying true to the principle of liberty, stepped up to defend him by selling his book while he was in jail. For this, you were arrested and sent to prison, and the country that gained its freedom with the help of Paine in the eighteenth century disgraced itself in the nineteenth by imprisoning a dissenter. The Republic of the United States shamed itself, not you, in the Albany penitentiary. Two hundred thousand of your fellow citizens advocated for your release, but bigotry was too powerful. We sent you our support during your imprisonment; we celebrated when you were finally released. Tonight, we offer you our gratitude and our hope—thanks for your unwavering courage in the face of adversity, and hope for a more peaceful future where the memory of past suffering can become a treasured legacy instead of a source of regret."
"'Charles Bradlaugh, President.'
'Charles Bradlaugh, President.'
"Soldier of liberty, we give you this. Do in the future the same good service that you have done in the past, and your reward shall be in the love that true men shall bear to you."
"Soldier of liberty, we present this to you. In the future, continue providing the same excellent service that you have in the past, and your reward will be the love that genuine people will have for you."
That, however, which no force could compel me to do, which I refused to threats of fine and prison, to separation from my children, to social ostracism, and to insults and ignominy worse to bear than death, I surrendered freely when all the struggle was over, and a great part of society and of public opinion had adopted the view that cost Mr. Bradlaugh and myself so dear. I may as well complete the story here, so as not to have to refer to it again. I gave up Neo-Malthusianism in April, 1891, its renunciation being part of the outcome of two years' instruction from Mdme. H.P. Blavatsky, who showed me that however justifiable Neo-Malthusianism might be while man was regarded only as the most perfect outcome of physical evolution, it was wholly incompatible with the view of man as a spiritual being, whose material form and environment were the results of his own mental activity. Why and how I embraced Theosophy, and accepted H.P. Blavatsky as teacher, will soon be told in its proper place. Here I am concerned only with the why and how of my renunciation of the Neo-Malthusian teaching, for which I had fought so hard and suffered so much.
That, however, which no force could make me do, which I refused even under threats of fines and imprisonment, separation from my children, social rejection, and insults and shame that were worse than death, I surrendered willingly when all the struggle was over, and a significant part of society and public opinion had adopted the perspective that cost Mr. Bradlaugh and me so dearly. I might as well finish the story here, so I don’t have to refer back to it again. I gave up Neo-Malthusianism in April 1891; my decision was the result of two years of teachings from Madame H.P. Blavatsky, who showed me that while Neo-Malthusianism might seem justifiable when man was seen solely as the pinnacle of physical evolution, it was completely incompatible with the view of man as a spiritual being, whose material form and environment stemmed from his own mental activity. The reasons why and how I embraced Theosophy and accepted H.P. Blavatsky as my teacher will soon be explained in the appropriate section. Here, I am only focused on the reasons behind my renunciation of the Neo-Malthusian teaching, for which I had fought so hard and suffered so much.
When I built my life on the basis of Materialism I judged all actions by their effect on human happiness in this world now and in future generations, regarding man as an organism that lived on earth and there perished, with activities confined to earth and limited by physical laws. The object of life was the ultimate building-up of a physically, mentally, morally perfect man by the cumulative effects of heredity—mental and moral tendencies being regarded as the outcome of material conditions, to be slowly but surely evolved by rational selection and the transmission to offspring of qualities carefully acquired by, and developed in, parents. The most characteristic note of this serious and lofty Materialism had been struck by Professor W. K. Clifford in his noble article on the "Ethics of Belief."
When I based my life on Materialism, I evaluated all actions by how they impacted human happiness both now and for future generations, seeing humans as beings that lived on earth and eventually died, with their activities limited to the physical world and bound by natural laws. The goal of life was to eventually create a physically, mentally, and morally perfect person through the accumulated effects of heredity—where mental and moral traits were viewed as products of material conditions, slowly but surely developed through rational selection and the passing down of qualities that parents had thoughtfully acquired and nurtured. The most defining aspect of this serious and elevated Materialism was articulated by Professor W. K. Clifford in his insightful article on the "Ethics of Belief."
Taking this view of human duty in regard to the rational co-operation with nature in the evolution of the human race, it became of the first importance to rescue the control of the generation of offspring from mere blind brute passion, and to transfer it to the reason and to the intelligence; to impress on parents the sacredness of the parental office, the tremendous responsibility of the exercise of the creative function. And since, further, one of the most pressing problems for solution in the older countries is that of poverty, the horrible slums and dens into which are crowded and in which are festering families of eight and ten children, whose parents are earning an uncertain 10s., 12s., 15s., and 20s. a week; since an immediate palliative is wanted, if popular risings impelled by starvation are to be avoided; since the lives of men and women of the poorer classes, and of the worst paid professional classes, are one long, heart-breaking struggle "to make both ends meet and keep respectable"; since in the middle class marriage is often avoided, or delayed till late in life, from the dread of the large family, and late marriage is followed by its shadow, the prevalence of vice and the moral and social ruin of thousands of women; for these, and many other reasons, the teaching of the duty of limiting the family within the means of subsistence is the logical outcome of Materialism linked with the scientific view of evolution, and with a knowledge of the physical law, by which evolution is accelerated or retarded. Seeking to improve the physical type, scientific Materialism, it seemed to me, must forbid parentage to any but healthy married couples; it must restrict childbearing within the limits consistent with the thorough health and physical well-being of the mother; it must impose it as a duty never to bring children into the world unless the conditions for their fair nurture and development are present. Regarding it as hopeless, as well as mischievous, to preach asceticism, and looking on the conjunction of nominal celibacy with widespread prostitution as inevitable, from the constitution of human nature, scientific Materialism—quite rationally and logically—advises deliberate restriction of the production of offspring, while sanctioning the exercise of the sexual instinct within the limits imposed by temperance, the highest physical and mental efficiency, the good order and dignity of society, and the self-respect of the individual.
Taking this perspective on human duty regarding rational cooperation with nature in the evolution of our species, it became essential to take control of reproduction away from blind animal instinct and instead hand it over to reason and intelligence. It is crucial to emphasize to parents the sacredness of their role and the immense responsibility that comes with the ability to create life. Moreover, one of the most urgent issues in developed countries is poverty, represented by the terrible slums where families of eight or ten children are crammed into tiny spaces, with parents earning unstable weekly incomes of 10s, 12s, 15s, or 20s. An immediate solution is needed to prevent uprisings fueled by starvation. The lives of people from lower economic backgrounds and the least-paid professionals are filled with a heartbreaking struggle to make ends meet and maintain respectability. In the middle class, marriage is often postponed or avoided due to the fear of having a large family, and late marriages often result in issues like moral decline and the social ruin of many women. For these reasons and many others, teaching the responsibility of limiting family size to match the means of subsistence is the logical result of Materialism linked with a scientific understanding of evolution and the physical laws that govern it. In striving to enhance the physical type, scientific Materialism must restrict parenthood to healthy married couples only. It should limit childbearing to what is compatible with the mother's health and well-being and assert the duty never to bring children into the world unless the conditions for their proper upbringing and growth are met. Considering it both pointless and harmful to promote asceticism, and recognizing the inevitable link between a culture of nominal celibacy and pervasive prostitution due to human nature, scientific Materialism—rationally and logically—advocates for a conscious limitation on the production of offspring, while also supporting the expression of sexual instincts within the boundaries of moderation, which ensures physical and mental well-being, social dignity, and individual self-respect.
In all this there is nothing which for one moment implies approval of licentiousness, profligacy, unbridled self-indulgence. On the contrary, it is a well-considered and intellectually-defensible scheme of human evolution, regarding all natural instincts as matters for regulation, not for destruction, and seeking to develop the perfectly healthy and well-balanced physical body as the necessary basis for the healthy and well-balanced mind. If the premises of Materialism be true, there is no answer to the Neo-Malthusian conclusions; for even those Socialists who have bitterly opposed the promulgation of Neo-Malthusianism—regarding it as a "red herring intended to draw the attention of the proletariat away from the real cause of poverty, the monopoly of land and capital by a class"—admit that when society is built on the foundation of common property in all that is necessary for the production of wealth, the time will come for the consideration of the population question. Nor do I now see, any more than I saw then, how any Materialist can rationally avoid the Neo-Malthusian position. For if man be the outcome of purely physical causes, it is with these that we must deal in guiding his future evolution. If he be related but to terrestrial existence, he is but the loftiest organism of earth; and, failing to see his past and his future, how should my eyes not have been then blinded to the deep-lying causes of his present woe? I brought a material cure to a disease which appeared to me to be of material origin; but how when the evil came from a subtler source, and its causes lay not on the material plane? How if the remedy only set up new causes for a future evil, and, while immediately a palliative, strengthened the disease itself, and ensured its reappearance in the future? This was the view of the problem set before me by H.P. Blavatsky when she unrolled the story of man, told of his origin and his destiny, showed me the forces that went to the making of man, and the true relation between his past, his present, and his future.
In all of this, there’s nothing that for a moment suggests approval of promiscuity, irresponsibility, or excessive self-indulgence. On the contrary, it's a thoughtful and intellectually sound approach to human evolution, viewing all natural instincts as things to be managed, not eliminated, and aiming to develop a perfectly healthy and well-balanced physical body as the necessary foundation for a healthy and well-balanced mind. If the ideas of Materialism are correct, there’s no way to refute the conclusions of Neo-Malthusianism; even those Socialists who have strongly opposed Neo-Malthusianism—seeing it as a "distraction meant to divert the working class from the real causes of poverty, the monopoly of land and capital by a particular class"—acknowledge that when society is based on shared ownership of everything necessary for producing wealth, the time will come to address population issues. And I still don't see, nor did I then, how any Materialist can logically sidestep the Neo-Malthusian viewpoint. If humans are the result of purely physical causes, then we must address those in guiding their future evolution. If humans are only linked to earthly existence, they are merely the highest organism on the planet; and if I fail to recognize their past and future, how could I not have been blinded to the deeper causes of their current suffering? I offered a material solution to a problem that seemed to stem from a material origin; but what if the issues came from a more subtle source, and their causes weren't on the material level? What if the remedy merely created new causes for future problems, and while it provided immediate relief, it actually intensified the underlying issue and guaranteed its return? This was the perspective on the problem presented to me by H.P. Blavatsky when she revealed the story of humanity, explained its origins and destiny, unveiled the forces that contributed to human development, and clarified the true connection between our past, present, and future.
For what is man in the light of Theosophy? He is a spiritual intelligence, eternal and uncreate, treading a vast cycle of human experience, born and reborn on earth millennium after millennium, evolving slowly into the ideal man. He is not the product of matter, but is encased in matter, and the forms of matter with which he clothes himself are of his own making. For the intelligence and will of man are creative forces—not creative ex nihilo, but creative as is the brain of the painter—and these forces are exercised by man in every act of thought. Thus he is ever creating round him thought-forms, moulding subtlest matter into shape by these energies, forms which persist as tangible realities when the body of the thinker has long gone back to earth and air and water. When the time for rebirth into this earth-life comes for the soul these thought-forms, its own progeny, help to form the tenuous model into which the molecules of physical matter are builded for the making of the body, and matter is thus moulded for the new body in which the soul is to dwell, on the lines laid down by the intelligent and volitional life of the previous, or of many previous, incarnations. So does each man create for himself in verity the form wherein he functions, and what he is in his present is the inevitable outcome of his own creative energies in his past. Applying this to the Neo-Malthusian theory, we see in sexual love not only a passion which man has in common with the brute, and which forms, at the present stage of evolution, a necessary part of human nature, but an animal passion that may be trained and purified into a human emotion, which may be used as one of the levers in human progress, one of the factors in human growth. But, instead of this, man in the past has made his intellect the servant of his passions; the abnormal development of the sexual instinct in man—in whom it is far greater and more continuous than in any brute—is due to the mingling with it of the intellectual element, all sexual thoughts, desires, and imaginations having created thought-forms, which have been wrought into the human race, giving rise to a continual demand, far beyond nature, and in marked contrast with the temperance of normal animal life. Hence it has become one of the most fruitful sources of human misery and human degradation, and the satisfaction of its imperious cravings in civilised countries lies at the root of our worst social evils. This excessive development has to be fought against, and the instinct reduced within natural limits, and this will certainly never be done by easy-going self-indulgence within the marital relation any more than by self-indulgence outside it. By none other road than that of self-control and self-denial can men and women now set going the causes which will build for them brains and bodies of a higher type for their future return to earth-life. They have to hold this instinct in complete control, to transmute it from passion into tender and self-denying affection, to develop the intellectual at the expense of the animal, and thus to raise the whole man to the human stage, in which every intellectual and physical capacity shall subserve the purposes of the soul. From all this it follows that Theosophists should sound the note of self-restraint within marriage, and the gradual—for with the mass it cannot be sudden—restriction of the sexual relation to the perpetuation of the race.
For what is a person in the context of Theosophy? They are a spiritual being, eternal and uncreated, going through a vast cycle of human experiences, being born and reborn on Earth over thousands of years, slowly evolving into the ideal human. They aren't just the result of material existence; rather, they are encased in matter, and the physical forms they take are created by their own making. The intelligence and will of a person are creative forces—not creative ex nihilo, but creative like an artist's brain—and these forces are at work in every thought. Thus, a person is constantly creating around them thought-forms, shaping the most subtle matter with these energies, forms that endure as tangible realities even after the thinker’s body has returned to earth, air, and water. When the time comes for the soul to be reborn into physical life, these thought-forms, its own creations, help to shape the delicate template into which the physical molecules are assembled to create the body, and matter is thus shaped for the new body in which the soul will reside, based on the patterns established by the intelligent choices made in past lives. Each person genuinely creates for themselves the form in which they operate, and what they are now is the unavoidable result of their creative energies from the past. Relating this to the Neo-Malthusian theory, we see that sexual love is not just a passion shared with animals, which at this stage of evolution is an essential part of human nature, but also a primal urge that can be refined into a human emotion, serving as a tool for human progress and growth. However, in the past, people have allowed their intellect to serve their passions; the intensified development of the sexual instinct in humans—much greater and more persistent than in any animal—is a result of its intertwining with intellect. All sexual thoughts, desires, and fantasies have created thought-forms woven into humanity, leading to a continuous demand that far exceeds natural impulses and sharply contrasts with the moderation seen in normal animal life. Consequently, this has become one of the primary sources of human suffering and degradation, with the fulfillment of these powerful cravings in civilized society being at the root of our worst social issues. This excessive development must be countered, and the instinct curtailed to natural limits, which will certainly not be achieved through casual self-indulgence within marriage or outside of it. Only through self-control and self-denial can people begin to create the conditions that will build more advanced brains and bodies for their future incarnations on Earth. They need to fully control this instinct, transform it from passion into caring and selfless love, prioritize intellect over animalistic urges, and thereby elevate themselves to a level where every intellectual and physical ability serves the soul's purposes. From this, it follows that Theosophists should advocate for self-restraint within marriage and the gradual—because it cannot happen all at once for the masses—limitation of the sexual relationship to procreation.
Such was the bearing of Theosophical teaching on Neo-Malthusianism, as laid before me by H.P. Blavatsky, and when I urged, out of my bitter knowledge of the miseries endured by the poor, that it surely might, for a time at least, be recommended as a palliative, as a defence in the hands of a woman against intolerable oppression and enforced suffering, she bade me look beyond the moment, and see how the suffering must come back and back with every generation, unless we sought to remove the roots of wrong. "I do not judge a woman," she said, "who has resort to such means of defence in the midst of circumstances so evil, and whose ignorance of the real causes of all this misery is her excuse for snatching at any relief. But it is not for you, an Occultist, to continue to teach a method which you now know must tend to the perpetuation of the sorrow." I felt that she was right, and though I shrank from the decision—for my heart somewhat failed me at withdrawing from the knowledge of the poor, so far as I could, a temporary palliative of evils which too often wreck their lives and bring many to an early grave, worn old before even middle age has touched them—yet the decision was made. I refused to reprint the "Law of Population," or to sell the copyright, giving pain, as I sadly knew, to all the brave and loyal friends who had so generously stood by me in that long and bitter struggle, and who saw the results of victory thrown away on grounds to them inadequate and mistaken! Will it always be, I wonder, in man's climbing upward, that every step must be set on his own heart and on the hearts of those he loves?
This was the perspective of Theosophical teachings on Neo-Malthusianism that H.P. Blavatsky presented to me. When I insisted, based on my painful awareness of the suffering faced by the poor, that it might be suggested as a temporary relief—a defense for a woman against extreme oppression and forced hardship—she urged me to look beyond the immediate situation and realize that without addressing the root causes of these injustices, the suffering would return with each generation. "I don’t judge a woman," she said, "who resorts to such means of defense amidst such evil circumstances, and who, out of ignorance of the true causes of this misery, is desperate for any form of relief. But it is not your place as an Occultist to continue promoting a method that you now understand contributes to the ongoing pain." I felt she was correct, and although I hesitated to make this choice—my heart wavered at the thought of denying the poor even a temporary relief from the hardships that so often destroy their lives and lead many to an early grave, aging before they even reach middle age—the decision was made. I refused to republish the "Law of Population" or sell the copyright, knowing it would cause pain to all the brave and loyal friends who had supported me throughout that lengthy and difficult fight, and who viewed the abandonment of our victory as misplaced and misguided! I wonder, will it always be that as humanity strives to ascend, each step must come at the cost of one's own heart and the hearts of those we care about?
CHAPTER X.
CHAPTER X.
AT WAR ALL ROUND.
Coming back to my work after my long and dangerous illness, I took up again its thread, heartsick, but with courage unshaken, and I find myself in the National Reformer for September 15, 1878, saying in a brief note of thanks that "neither the illness nor the trouble which produced it has in any fashion lessened my determination to work for the cause." In truth, I plunged into work with added vigour, for only in that did I find any solace, but the pamphlets written at this time against Christianity were marked with considerable bitterness, for it was Christianity that had robbed me of my child, and I struck mercilessly at it in return. In the political struggles of that time, when the Beaconsfield Government was in full swing, with its policy of annexation and aggression, I played my part with tongue and pen, and my articles in defence of an honest and liberty-loving policy in India, against the invasion of Afghanistan and other outrages, laid in many an Indian heart a foundation of affection for me, and seem to me now as a preparation for the work among Indians to which much of my time and thought to-day are given. In November of this same year (1878) I wrote a little book on "England, India, and Afghanistan" that has brought me many a warm letter of thanks, and with this, the carrying on of the suit against Mr. Besant before alluded to, two and often three lectures every Sunday, to say nothing of the editorial work on the National Reformer, the secretarial work on the Malthusian League, and stray lectures during the week, my time was fairly well filled. But I found that in my reading I developed a tendency to let my thoughts wander from the subject in hand, and that they would drift after my lost little one, so I resolved to fill up the gaps in my scientific education, and to amuse myself by reading up for some examinations; I thought it would serve as an absorbing form of recreation from my other work, and would at the same time, by making my knowledge exact, render me more useful as a speaker on behalf of the causes to which my life was given.
After returning to my work following a long and serious illness, I picked up the threads of my responsibilities, feeling heartbroken but with my determination intact. In a brief note of thanks in the National Reformer for September 15, 1878, I stated that "neither the illness nor the trouble that caused it has in any way diminished my commitment to the cause." In reality, I threw myself into my work with renewed energy, as it was the only thing that provided me with any comfort. However, the pamphlets I wrote during this period attacking Christianity were filled with a lot of bitterness, as it was Christianity that had taken my child from me, and I lashed out at it in response. During the political struggles of that time, when the Beaconsfield Government was in full swing with its policy of expansion and aggression, I contributed with both my words and my writing. My articles advocating for a fair and liberty-loving approach in India, opposing the invasion of Afghanistan and other injustices, helped lay a foundation of affection for me in many Indian hearts, and now seem to me as preparation for the work I dedicate much of my time and thoughts to these days. In November of that same year (1878), I wrote a small book titled "England, India, and Afghanistan," which has received many warm letters of thanks. Along with this, the ongoing lawsuit against Mr. Besant I mentioned earlier, my schedule was filled with two or even three lectures every Sunday, not to mention my editorial work with the National Reformer, secretarial duties for the Malthusian League, and other lectures throughout the week. But I noticed that while reading, my mind tended to wander from the topic at hand, drifting off to thoughts of my lost child. So, I decided to fill the gaps in my scientific education and keep myself entertained by studying for some exams. I thought it would serve as a great way to take a break from my other work and, at the same time, improve my knowledge and make me a more effective speaker for the causes I committed my life to.
At the opening of the new year (1879) I met for the first time a man to whom I subsequently owed much in this department of work—Edward B. Aveling, a D.Sc. of London University, and a marvellously able teacher of scientific subjects, the very ablest, in fact, that I have ever met. Clear and accurate in his knowledge, with a singular gift for lucid exposition, enthusiastic in his love of science, and taking vivid pleasure in imparting his knowledge to others, he was an ideal teacher. This young man, in January, 1879, began writing under initials for the National Reformer, and in February I became his pupil, with the view of matriculating in June at the London University, an object which was duly accomplished. And here let me say to any one in mental trouble, that they might find an immense relief in taking up some intellectual recreation of this kind; during that spring, in addition to my ordinary work of writing, lecturing, and editing—and the lecturing meant travelling from one end of England to the other—I translated a fair-sized French volume, and had the wear-and-tear of pleading my case for the custody of my daughter in the Court of Appeal, as well as the case before the Master of the Rolls; and I found it the very greatest relief to turn to algebra, geometry, and physics, and forget the harassing legal struggles in wrestling with formulae and problems. The full access I gained to my children marked a step in the long battle of Freethinkers against disabilities, for, as noted in the National Reformer by Mr. Bradlaugh, it was "won with a pleading unequalled in any case on record for the boldness of its affirmation of Freethought," a pleading of which he generously said that it deserved well of the party as "the most powerful pleading for freedom of opinion to which it has ever been our good fortune to listen."
At the start of the new year (1879), I met for the first time a man to whom I would later owe a lot in this line of work—Edward B. Aveling, a Doctor of Science from London University, and an exceptionally skilled teacher of scientific subjects, in fact, the best I’ve ever encountered. He was clear and precise in his knowledge, had a unique talent for clear explanations, was passionate about science, and genuinely enjoyed sharing his knowledge with others. He was the perfect teacher. This young man began writing under initials for the National Reformer in January 1879, and in February I became his student, intending to matriculate in June at London University, which I successfully achieved. I want to say to anyone experiencing mental distress that they might find great relief in engaging in some intellectual activity like this; during that spring, alongside my usual responsibilities of writing, lecturing, and editing—which meant traveling all over England—I translated a substantial French book and dealt with the stress of arguing my case for custody of my daughter in the Court of Appeal, as well as before the Master of the Rolls. I found it incredibly relieving to dive into algebra, geometry, and physics and forget the exhausting legal battles while tackling equations and problems. Gaining full access to my children was a significant step in the long struggle of Freethinkers against discrimination, for, as mentioned in the National Reformer by Mr. Bradlaugh, it was "won with a pleading unmatched in any case on record for the boldness of its affirmation of Freethought," a pleading of which he generously remarked deserved recognition as "the most powerful argument for freedom of opinion to which it has ever been our good fortune to listen."
In the London Daily News some powerful letters of protest appeared, one from Lord Harberton, in which he declared that "the Inquisition acted on no other principle" than that applied to me; and a second from Mr. Band, in which he sarcastically observed that "this Christian community has for some time had the pleasure of seeing her Majesty's courts repeatedly springing engines of torture upon a young mother—a clergyman's wife who dared to disagree with his creed—and her evident anguish, her long and expensive struggles to save her child, have proved that so far as heretical mothers are concerned modern defenders of the faith need not envy the past those persuasive instruments which so long secured the unity of the Church. In making Mrs. Besant an example, the Master of the Rolls and Lord Justice James have been careful not to allow any of the effect to be lost by confusion of the main point—the intellectual heresy—with side questions. There was a Malthusian matter in the case, but the judges were very clear in stating that without any reference whatever to that, they would simply, on the ground of Mrs. Besant's 'religious, or anti-religious, opinions,' take her child from her." The great provincial papers took a similar tone, the Manchester Examiner going so far as to say of the ruling of the judges: "We do not say they have done so wrongly. We only say that the effect of their judgment is cruel, and it shows that the holding of unpopular opinions is, in the eye of the law, an offence which, despite all we had thought to the contrary, may be visited with the severest punishment a woman and a mother can be possibly called on to bear." The outcome of all this long struggle and of another case of sore injustice—in which Mrs. Agar-Ellis, a Roman Catholic, was separated from her children by a judicial decision obtained against her by her husband, a Protestant—was a change in the law which had vested all power over the children in the hands of the father, and from thenceforth the rights of the married mother were recognised to a limited extent. A small side-fight was with the National Sunday League, the president of which, Lord Thurlow, strongly objected to me as one of the vice-presidents. Mr. P.A. Taylor and others at once resigned their offices, and, on the calling of a general meeting, Lord Thurlow was rejected as president. Mr. P.A. Taylor was requested to assume the presidency, and the vice-presidents who had resigned were, with myself, re-elected. Little battles of this sort were a running accompaniment of graver struggles during all these battling years.
In the London Daily News, some strong letters of protest were published, one from Lord Harberton, who stated that "the Inquisition acted on no other principle" than what was applied to me; and a second from Mr. Band, who sarcastically noted that "this Christian community has for some time had the pleasure of seeing her Majesty's courts repeatedly using torture against a young mother—a clergyman's wife who dared to disagree with his beliefs—and her clear suffering, her long and costly efforts to save her child, have shown that as far as heretical mothers are concerned, modern defenders of the faith need not envy the past those persuasive tools that long kept the Church united. In making Mrs. Besant an example, the Master of the Rolls and Lord Justice James ensured that none of the impact was lost due to confusing the main issue—the intellectual heresy—with side issues. There was a Malthusian aspect to the case, but the judges were very clear in stating that without any reference to that, they would simply, based on Mrs. Besant's 'religious or anti-religious opinions,' take her child from her." The major provincial papers expressed a similar sentiment, with the Manchester Examiner going so far as to comment on the judges' ruling: "We do not say they have done so wrongly. We only say that the result of their judgment is cruel, and it indicates that holding unpopular opinions is, in the eyes of the law, an offense that, despite all we thought to the contrary, can be met with the harshest punishment a woman and a mother can endure." The outcome of this long struggle and another case of severe injustice—in which Mrs. Agar-Ellis, a Roman Catholic, was separated from her children by a court decision made against her by her husband, a Protestant—resulted in a change in the law that gave all power over the children to the father, and from then on, the rights of the married mother were recognized to a limited extent. A small side battle was with the National Sunday League, whose president, Lord Thurlow, strongly opposed me as one of the vice-presidents. Mr. P.A. Taylor and others immediately resigned their positions, and after a general meeting was called, Lord Thurlow was rejected as president. Mr. P.A. Taylor was asked to take on the presidency, and the vice-presidents who had resigned were, along with myself, re-elected. Small skirmishes like this accompanied the more serious battles throughout all those tumultuous years.
And through all the struggles the organised strength of the Freethought party grew, 650 new members being enrolled in the National Secular Society in the year 1878-79, and in July, 1879, the public adhesion of Dr. Edward B. Aveling brought into the ranks a pen of rare force and power, and gave a strong impulse to the educational side of our movement. I presided for him at his first lecture at the Hall of Science on August 10, 1879, and he soon paid the penalty of his boldness, finding himself, a few months later, dismissed from the Chair of Comparative Anatomy at the London Hospital, though the Board admitted that all his duties were discharged with punctuality and ability. One of the first results of his adhesion was the establishment of two classes under the Science and Art Department at South Kensington, and these grew year after year, attended by numbers of young men and women, till in 1883 we had thirteen classes in full swing, as well as Latin, and London University Matriculation classes; all these were taught by Dr. Aveling and pupils that he had trained. I took advanced certificates, one in honours, and so became qualified as a science teacher in eight different sciences, and Alice and Hypatia Bradlaugh followed a similar course, so that winter after winter we kept these classes going from September to the following May, from 1879 until the year 1888. In addition to these Miss Bradlaugh carried on a choral union.
And through all the struggles, the organized strength of the Freethought party grew, with 650 new members joining the National Secular Society in the year 1878-79. In July 1879, the public endorsement of Dr. Edward B. Aveling brought in a writer of exceptional talent and influence, significantly boosting the educational aspect of our movement. I chaired his first lecture at the Hall of Science on August 10, 1879, but he soon faced repercussions for his boldness, finding himself dismissed from the Chair of Comparative Anatomy at the London Hospital a few months later, even though the Board acknowledged that he performed all his duties with punctuality and competence. One of the first outcomes of his joining was the creation of two classes under the Science and Art Department at South Kensington, which expanded each year, attracting many young men and women. By 1883, we had thirteen classes running, along with Latin and London University Matriculation classes, all taught by Dr. Aveling and the students he trained. I received advanced certificates, one in honors, qualifying me as a science teacher in eight different sciences, and Alice and Hypatia Bradlaugh followed a similar path, ensuring that each winter from September to the following May, we maintained these classes from 1879 until 1888. In addition, Miss Bradlaugh ran a choral union.
Personally I found that this study and teaching together with attendance at classes held for teachers at South Kensington, the study for passing the First B.Sc. and Prel. Sc. Examinations at London University, and the study for the B.Sc. degree at London, at which I failed in practical chemistry three times—a thing that puzzled me not a little at the time, as I had passed a far more difficult practical chemical examination for teachers at South Kensington—all this gave me a knowledge of science that has stood me in good stead in my public work. But even here theological and social hatred pursued me.
Personally, I found that studying and teaching, along with attending classes for teachers at South Kensington, preparing for the First B.Sc. and Prel. Sc. Examinations at London University, and working toward the B.Sc. degree at London—where I failed practical chemistry three times—which puzzled me quite a bit back then since I had passed a much tougher practical chemistry exam for teachers at South Kensington—all of this provided me with a solid understanding of science that has been very helpful in my public work. But even during this time, I faced theological and social hatred.
When Miss Bradlaugh and myself applied for permission to attend the botany class at University College, we were refused, I for my sins, and she only for being her father's daughter; when I had qualified as teacher, I stood back from claiming recognition from the Department for a year in order not to prejudice the claims of Mr. Bradlaugh's daughters, and later, when I had been recognised, Sir Henry Tyler in the House of Commons attacked the Education Department for accepting me, and actually tried to prevent the Government grant being paid to the Hall of Science Schools because Dr. Aveling, the Misses Bradlaugh, and myself were unbelievers in Christianity. When I asked permission to go to the Botanical Gardens in Regent's Park the curator refused it, on the ground that his daughters studied there. On every side repulse and insult, hard to struggle against, bitter to bear. It was against difficulties of this kind on every side that we had to make our way, handicapped in every effort by our heresy. Let our work be as good as it might—and our Science School was exceptionally successful—the subtle fragrance of heresy was everywhere distinguishable, and when Mr. Bradlaugh and myself are blamed for bitterness in our anti-Christian advocacy, this constant gnawing annoyance and petty persecution should be taken into account. For him it was especially trying, for he saw his daughters—girls of ability and of high character, whose only crime was that they were his—insulted, sneered at, slandered, continually put at a disadvantage, because they were his children and loved and honoured him beyond all others.
When Miss Bradlaugh and I applied for permission to attend the botany class at University College, we were turned down—me for my mistakes, and her just for being her father’s daughter. After I qualified as a teacher, I waited a year to claim recognition from the Department so it wouldn’t impact Mr. Bradlaugh's daughters’ chances. Later, when I was recognized, Sir Henry Tyler in the House of Commons criticized the Education Department for accepting me and even tried to stop the Government grant from going to the Hall of Science Schools because Dr. Aveling, the Misses Bradlaugh, and I didn’t believe in Christianity. When I asked to visit the Botanical Gardens in Regent's Park, the curator denied my request, saying his daughters studied there. We faced rejection and insults on all sides, making it hard to push through and difficult to endure. It was these kinds of challenges that we had to navigate, always hindered by our beliefs. No matter how good our work was—and our Science School was quite successful—the underlying scent of heresy was always present. When Mr. Bradlaugh and I are criticized for being bitter in our opposition to Christianity, the constant annoyance and minor persecutions we faced should be considered. For him, it was especially difficult because he watched his daughters—smart, strong girls whose only wrongdoing was being his—face insults, mockery, slander, and always be at a disadvantage simply for being his children, who loved and respected him deeply.
It was in October, 1879, that I first met Herbert Burrows, though I did not become intimately acquainted with him till the Socialist troubles of the autumn of 1887 drew us into a common stream of work. He came as a delegate from the Tower Hamlets Radical Association to a preliminary conference, called by Mr. Bradlaugh, at the Hall of Science, on October 11th, to consider the advisability of holding a great London Convention on Land Law Reform, to be attended by delegates from all parts of the kingdom. He was appointed on the Executive Committee with Mr. Bradlaugh, Mr. Mottershead, Mr. Nieass, and others. The Convention was successfully held, and an advanced platform of Land Law Reform adopted, used later by Mr. Bradlaugh as a basis for some of the proposals he laid before Parliament.
It was in October 1879 that I first met Herbert Burrows, but I didn't really get to know him until the Socialist unrest of autumn 1887 brought us together in a shared effort. He attended a preliminary conference as a delegate from the Tower Hamlets Radical Association, called by Mr. Bradlaugh at the Hall of Science on October 11, to discuss whether to hold a major London Convention on Land Law Reform, which would include delegates from across the country. He was appointed to the Executive Committee alongside Mr. Bradlaugh, Mr. Mottershead, Mr. Nieass, and others. The Convention was successfully carried out, and a progressive platform for Land Law Reform was adopted, which Mr. Bradlaugh later used as the basis for some proposals he presented to Parliament.
CHAPTER XI.
CHAPTER 11.
MR. BRADLAUGH'S STRUGGLE.
And now dawned the year 1880, the memorable year in which commenced Mr. Bradlaugh's long Parliamentary battle. After a long and bitter struggle he was elected, with Mr. Labouchere, as member for Northampton, at the general election, and so the prize so long fought for was won. Shall I ever forget that election day, April 2, 1880? How at four o'clock Mr. Bradlaugh came into the room at the "George", where his daughters and I were sitting, flung himself into a chair with, "There's nothing more to do; our last man is polled." Then the waiting for the declaration through the long, weary hours of suspense, till as the time drew near we knelt by the window listening—listening to the hoarse murmur of the crowd, knowing that presently there would be a roar of triumph or a howl of anger when the numbers were read out from the steps of the Town Hall. And now silence sank, and we knew the moment had come, and we held our breath, and then—a roar, a wild roar of joy and exultation, cheer after cheer, ringing, throbbing, pealing, and then the mighty surge of the crowd bringing him back, their member at last, waving hats, handkerchiefs, a very madness of tumultuous delight, and the shrill strains of "Bradlaugh for Northampton!" with a ring of triumph in them they had never had before. And he, very grave, somewhat shaken by the outpour of love and exultation, very silent, feeling the weight of new responsibility more than the gladness of victory. And then the next morning, as he left the town, the mass of men and women, one sea of heads from hotel to station, every window crowded, his colours waving everywhere, men fighting to get near him, to touch him, women sobbing, the cries, "Our Charlie, our Charlie; we've got you and we'll keep you." How they loved him, how they joyed in the triumph won after twelve years of strife. Ah me! we thought the struggle over, and it was only beginning; we thought our hero victorious, and a fiercer, crueller fight lay in front. True, he was to win that fight, but his life was to be the price of the winning; victory for him was to be final, complete, but the laurel-wreath was to fall upon a grave.
And now it was the year 1880, the memorable year when Mr. Bradlaugh's long battle in Parliament began. After a tough and bitter struggle, he was elected, alongside Mr. Labouchere, as the representative for Northampton during the general election, and so the prize he had fought for so long was finally his. Shall I ever forget that election day, April 2, 1880? At four o'clock, Mr. Bradlaugh walked into the room at the “George,” where his daughters and I were sitting, threw himself into a chair and said, “There’s nothing more to do; our last man is polled.” Then came the long, weary hours of waiting for the declaration, filled with suspense, until as the time drew near, we knelt by the window listening—listening to the low murmur of the crowd, knowing that soon there would be either a roar of triumph or a howl of anger when the numbers were announced from the steps of the Town Hall. Then silence fell, and we knew the moment had arrived, we held our breath, and then—a roar, a wild roar of joy and excitement, cheer after cheer, ringing, pulsing, echoing, and then the mighty wave of the crowd bringing him back, their representative at last, waving hats and handkerchiefs, an absolute frenzy of joy, with the shrill cries of “Bradlaugh for Northampton!” ringing with a triumph they had never felt before. And he, very serious, a bit overwhelmed by the outpouring of love and joy, was quiet, feeling the heavy weight of new responsibilities more than the happiness of victory. The next morning, as he left the town, the crowd of men and women was one sea of heads from the hotel to the station, every window crowded, his colors waving everywhere, men pushing to get near him, to touch him, women in tears, shouting, “Our Charlie, our Charlie; we’ve got you and we’ll keep you.” How they loved him; how they rejoiced in the victory achieved after twelve years of struggle. Ah, how we thought the battle was over, when it was only just beginning; we thought our hero was victorious, but a fiercer, harsher fight lay ahead. True, he was going to win that fight, but his life would be the cost; victory for him would be final and complete, but the laurels would fall on a grave.
From a photograph by T. Westley, 57, Vernon Street,
Northampton.
CHARLES BRADLAUGH AND HENRY LABOUCHERE.
The outburst of anger from the more bigoted of the Christian community was as savage as the outburst of delight had been exultant, but we recked little of it. Was he not member, duly elected, without possibility of assailment in his legal right? Parliament was to meet on April 29th, the swearing-in beginning on the following day, and Mr. Bradlaugh had taken counsel with some other Freethinking members as to the right of Freethinkers to affirm. He held that under the Act 29 and 30 Vict. c. 19, and the Evidence Amendment Acts 1869 and 1870, the right to substitute affirmation for oath was clear; he was willing to take the oath as a necessary form if obligatory, but, believing it to be optional, he preferred affirmation. On May 3rd he presented himself and, according to the evidence of Sir Erskine May, the Clerk of the House, given before the second Select Committee on his case, he "came to the table and delivered the following statement in writing to the Clerk: 'To the Right Honourable the Speaker of the House of Commons. I, the undersigned, Charles Bradlaugh, beg respectfully to claim to be allowed to affirm, as a person for the time being by law permitted to make a solemn affirmation or declaration, instead of taking an oath. (Signed) Charles Bradlaugh.' And being asked by the Clerk upon what grounds he claimed to make an affirmation, he answered: 'By virtue of the Evidence Amendment Acts, 1869 and 1870.' Whereupon the Clerk reported to Mr. Speaker" the claim, and Mr. Speaker told Mr. Bradlaugh that he might address the House on the matter. "Mr. Bradlaugh's observations were very short. He repeated that he relied upon the Evidence Further Amendment Act, 1869, and the Evidence Amendment Act, 1870, adding: 'I have repeatedly, for nine years past, made an affirmation in the highest courts of jurisdiction in this realm. I am ready to make such a declaration or affirmation.' Substantially those were the words which he addressed to the Speaker." This was the simple, quiet, and dignified scene which took place in the House. Mr. Bradlaugh was directed to withdraw, and he withdrew, and, after debate, a Select Committee was appointed to consider whether he could make affirmation; that Committee decided against the claim, and gave in its report on May 20th. On the following day Mr. Bradlaugh presented himself at the table of the House to take the oath in the form prescribed by the law, and on the objection of Sir Henry Drummond Wolff, who submitted a motion that he should not be allowed to take the oath, another Committee was appointed.
The outburst of anger from the more bigoted members of the Christian community was as intense as the previous outburst of joy had been exuberant, but we cared little about it. Was he not a duly elected member, with no possibility of challenge to his legal right? Parliament was set to meet on April 29th, with the swearing-in starting the next day, and Mr. Bradlaugh had consulted with other Freethinking members about the right of Freethinkers to affirm. He believed that under the Act 29 and 30 Vict. c. 19, and the Evidence Amendment Acts of 1869 and 1870, the right to substitute affirmation for an oath was clear; he was willing to take the oath as a necessary form if required but preferred affirmation, believing it to be optional. On May 3rd, he presented himself, and according to the evidence of Sir Erskine May, the Clerk of the House, given before the second Select Committee on his case, he "came to the table and delivered the following written statement to the Clerk: 'To the Right Honourable the Speaker of the House of Commons. I, the undersigned, Charles Bradlaugh, respectfully request permission to affirm, as a person lawfully allowed to make a solemn affirmation or declaration, instead of taking an oath. (Signed) Charles Bradlaugh.' When asked by the Clerk on what grounds he claimed the right to affirm, he responded: 'By virtue of the Evidence Amendment Acts of 1869 and 1870.' The Clerk then reported this claim to Mr. Speaker," who informed Mr. Bradlaugh that he could address the House on the matter. "Mr. Bradlaugh's remarks were brief. He reiterated that he relied on the Evidence Further Amendment Act of 1869 and the Evidence Amendment Act of 1870, adding: 'I have repeatedly, for the past nine years, made an affirmation in the highest courts of this realm. I am prepared to make such a declaration or affirmation.' These were essentially the words he spoke to the Speaker." This was the simple, quiet, and dignified scene that unfolded in the House. Mr. Bradlaugh was instructed to withdraw, and he did so, and after some debate, a Select Committee was established to consider whether he could affirm; that Committee ultimately decided against the claim and submitted its report on May 20th. The following day, Mr. Bradlaugh returned to the table of the House to take the oath in the form required by law, and in response to Sir Henry Drummond Wolff's objection and motion that he should not be allowed to take the oath, another Committee was appointed.
Before this Committee Mr. Bradlaugh stated his case, and pointed out that the legal obligation lay on him to take the oath, adding: "Any form that I went through, any oath that I took, I should regard as binding upon my conscience in the fullest degree. I would go through no form, I would take no oath, unless I meant it to be so binding." He wrote in the same sense to the Times, saying that he should regard himself "as bound, not by the letter of its words, but by the spirit which the affirmation would have conveyed, had I been permitted to use it." The Committee reported against him, and on June 23rd he was heard at the Bar of the House, and made a speech so self-restrained, so noble, so dignified, that the House, in defiance of all its own rules, broke out over and over again into applause. In the debate that preceded his speech, members had lost sight of the ordinary rules of decency, and had used expressions against myself wholly gratuitous in such a quarrel; the grave rebuke to him who "was wanting in chivalry, because, while I can answer for myself and am able to answer for myself, nothing justified the introduction of any other name beside my own to make prejudice against me," brought irrepressible cheers. His appeal was wholly to the law. "I have not yet used—I trust no passion may tempt me into using—any words that would seem to savour of even a desire to enter into conflict with this House. I have always taught, preached, and believed the supremacy of Parliament, and it is not because for a moment the judgment of one Chamber of Parliament should be hostile to me that I am going to deny the ideas I have always held; but I submit that one Chamber of Parliament—even its grandest Chamber, as I have always held this to be—had no right to override the law. The law gives me the right to sign that roll, to take and subscribe the oath, and to take my seat there [with a gesture towards the benches]. I admit that the moment I am in the House, without any reason but your own good will, you can send me away. That is your right. You have full control over your members. But you cannot send me away until I have been heard in my place, not a suppliant as I am now, but with the rightful audience that each member has always had.... I am ready to admit, if you please, for the sake of argument, that every opinion I hold is wrong and deserves punishment. Let the law punish it. If you say the law cannot, then you admit that you have no right, and I appeal to public opinion against the iniquity of a decision which overrides the law and denies me justice. I beg your pardon, sir, and that of the House too, if in this warmth there seems to lack respect for its dignity. And as I shall have, if your decision be against me, to come to that table when your decision is given, I beg you, before the step is taken in which we may both lose our dignity—mine is not much, but yours is that of the Commons of England—I beg you, before the gauntlet is fatally thrown, I beg you, not in any sort of menace, not in any sort of boast, but as one man against six hundred, to give me that justice which on the other side of this hall the judges would give me, were I pleading there before them."
Before this Committee, Mr. Bradlaugh presented his case and emphasized that he was legally required to take the oath, adding: "Any process I went through, any oath I took, I would see as binding on my conscience to the fullest extent. I would go through no process, I would take no oath, unless I intended it to be so binding." He stated similarly in a letter to the Times, saying he would feel "bound, not by the literal words, but by the spirit that the affirmation would have conveyed, had I been allowed to use it." The Committee ruled against him, and on June 23rd, he spoke at the Bar of the House, delivering a speech that was so composed, so admirable, so dignified, that the House, breaking its own rules, repeatedly erupted in applause. During the debate before his speech, members had lost sight of common decency and made inappropriate remarks against him; the serious reprimand directed at those "lacking in chivalry, because while I can speak for myself and am capable of doing so, nothing justified dragging in any other name to prejudice me," was met with uncontrollable cheers. His appeal was solely to the law. "I have not yet used—I hope no passion will lead me to use—any words that might hint at a desire to clash with this House. I have always taught, advocated, and believed in the supremacy of Parliament, and it is not because one Chamber of Parliament might momentarily oppose me that I will deny the principles I have always maintained; but I argue that one Chamber of Parliament—even the most esteemed Chamber, as I have always regarded this one—has no right to disregard the law. The law entitles me to sign that roll, to take and subscribe the oath, and to take my seat there [gesturing towards the benches]. I acknowledge that once I am in the House, with no reason except your goodwill, you can remove me. That is your right. You have complete control over your members. But you cannot remove me until I have had my say, not as a beggar as I am now, but with the rightful audience each member has always received.... I am prepared to concede, for the sake of argument, that every opinion I hold is wrong and worthy of punishment. Let the law do the punishing. If you claim the law cannot, then you admit you have no right, and I appeal to public opinion against the injustice of a ruling that overrides the law and denies me justice. I apologize, sir, and to the House as well, if in this fervor there seems to be a lack of respect for its dignity. And since I will have to approach that table if your decision goes against me, I ask you, before we take that step where we might both lose our dignity—mine isn’t much, but yours represents the Commons of England—I ask you, before the gauntlet is fatally thrown, not in any kind of threat, not in any sort of boast, but as one man against six hundred, to grant me the justice that, on the other side of this hall, the judges would provide me, were I arguing my case there before them."
But no eloquence, no plea for justice, could stay the tide of Tory and religious bigotry, and the House voted that he should not be allowed to take the oath. Summoned to the table to hear the decision communicated by the Speaker, he answered that decision with the words firmly spoken: "I respectfully refuse to obey the order of the House, because that order was against the law." The Speaker appealed to the House for direction, and on a division—during which the Speaker and Charles Bradlaugh were left together in the chamber—the House ordered the enforcement of Mr. Bradlaugh's withdrawal. Once more the order is given, once more the refusal made, and then the Serjeant-at-Arms was bidden to remove him. Strange was the scene as little Captain Cosset walked up to the member of Herculean proportions, and men wondered how the order would be enforced; but Charles Bradlaugh was not the man to make a vulgar brawl, and the light touch on his shoulder was to him the touch of an authority he admitted and to which he bowed. So he gravely accompanied his small captor, and was lodged in the Clock Tower of the House as prisoner until the House should further consider what to do with him—the most awkward prisoner it had ever had, in that in his person it was imprisoning the law.
But no eloquence, no appeal for justice, could stop the wave of Tory and religious bigotry, and the House voted that he should not be allowed to take the oath. Summoned to the table to hear the decision announced by the Speaker, he replied to that decision with words spoken firmly: "I respectfully refuse to obey the order of the House, because that order was against the law." The Speaker asked the House for guidance, and on a vote—during which the Speaker and Charles Bradlaugh were left together in the chamber—the House ordered Mr. Bradlaugh's removal. Once again the order was given, once again the refusal made, and then the Serjeant-at-Arms was instructed to remove him. It was a strange scene as little Captain Cosset approached the member of Herculean build, and people wondered how the order would be carried out; but Charles Bradlaugh was not one to make a public scene, and the gentle touch on his shoulder was for him the sign of an authority he accepted and to which he complied. So he solemnly followed his small captor and was taken to the Clock Tower of the House as a prisoner until the House could decide what to do with him—the most unusual prisoner it had ever had, as in him it was imprisoning the law.
In a special issue of the National Reformer, giving an account of the Committee's work and of Mr. Bradlaugh's committal to the Clock Tower, I find the following from my own pen: "The Tory party, beaten at the polls by the nation, has thus, for the moment, triumphed in the House of Commons. The man chosen by the Radicals of Northampton has been committed to prison on the motion of the Tory ex-Chancellor of the Exchequer, simply because he desires to discharge the duty laid upon him by his constituency and by the law of the land. As this paper goes to press, I go to Westminster to receive from him his directions as to the conduct of the struggle with the nation into which the House of Commons has so recklessly plunged." I found him busily writing, prepared for all events, ready for a long imprisonment. On the following day a leaflet from my pen, "Law Makers and Law Breakers," appealed to the people; after reciting what had happened, it concluded: "Let the people speak. Gladstone and Bright are for Liberty, and the help denied them within the House must come to them from without. No time must be lost. While we remain idle, a representative of the people is illegally held in prison. Northampton is insulted, and in this great constituency every constituency is threatened. On freedom of election depends our liberty; on freedom of conscience depends our progress. Tory squires and lordlings have defied the people and measured their strength against the masses. Let the masses speak." But there was no need to make appeals, for the outrage itself caused so swiftly a growl of anger that on the very next day the prisoner was set free, and there came protest upon protest against the high-handed action of the House. In Westminster Hall 4,000 people gathered to cheer Mr. Bradlaugh when he came to the House on the day after his liberation. In less than a week 200 meetings had thundered out their protest. Liberal associations, clubs, societies, sent up messages of anger and of demand for justice. In Trafalgar Square there gathered—so said the papers—the largest crowd ever seen there, and on the Thursday following—the meeting was held on Monday—the House of Commons rescinded its resolution, refusing to allow Mr. Bradlaugh to affirm, and admitted him on Friday, July 2nd, to take his seat after affirmation. "At last the bitter struggle is over," I wrote, "and law and right have triumphed. The House of Commons has, by rescinding the resolution passed by Tories and Ultramontanes, re-established its good name in the eyes of the world. The triumph is not one of Freethought over Christianity, nor is it over the House of Commons; it is the triumph of law, brought about by good men—of all shades of opinion, but of one faith in justice—over Tory contempt of law and Ultramontane bigotry. It is the reassertion of civil and religious liberty under the most difficult circumstances, the declaration that the House of Commons is the creation of the people, and not a club of the aristocracy with the right of blackballing in its own hands."
In a special issue of the National Reformer, detailing the Committee's work and Mr. Bradlaugh's commitment to the Clock Tower, I find the following from my own writing: "The Tory party, defeated at the polls by the nation, has temporarily claimed victory in the House of Commons. The man chosen by the Radicals of Northampton has been sent to prison on the motion of the Tory former Chancellor of the Exchequer, simply because he wants to fulfill the duty imposed on him by his constituents and by the law. As this paper goes to press, I’m heading to Westminster to receive his instructions for the fight against the nation's challenges that the House of Commons has recklessly plunged into." I found him immersed in writing, prepared for any outcome, ready for a long imprisonment. The next day, I wrote a leaflet titled "Law Makers and Law Breakers," appealing to the public; after recounting what had happened, it concluded: "Let the people speak. Gladstone and Bright stand for liberty, and the support they lack within the House must come from outside. We must act fast. While we stay idle, a representative of the people is being held unlawfully. Northampton is insulted, and in this crucial constituency, every constituency is at risk. Our liberty depends on free elections; our progress depends on freedom of conscience. Tory landowners and aristocrats have defied the populace and tested their strength against the masses. Let the masses speak." However, there was no need for appeals, as the outrage sparked an immediate response, leading to the prisoner's release the very next day, and protests erupted against the heavy-handed actions of the House. In Westminster Hall, 4,000 people gathered to cheer Mr. Bradlaugh when he returned to the House after his release. Within a week, 200 meetings had vocally protested. Liberal associations, clubs, and societies sent messages of outrage and demands for justice. In Trafalgar Square, the papers reported the largest crowd ever seen there gathered—on the following Thursday—the meeting was held on Monday—the House of Commons repealed its resolution denying Mr. Bradlaugh the right to affirm, admitting him on Friday, July 2nd, to take his seat after affirmation. "Finally, the bitter struggle is over," I wrote, "and law and right have prevailed. The House of Commons, by overturning the resolution passed by Tories and Ultramontanes, has restored its good name in the eyes of the world. This victory is not about Freethought over Christianity, nor is it over the House of Commons; it is the triumph of law, achieved by good people—of all opinions but united in faith in justice—over Tory disdain for the law and Ultramontane prejudice. It is a reaffirmation of civil and religious liberty under challenging circumstances, a declaration that the House of Commons is a creation of the people, not an exclusive club of aristocrats with the power to exclude."
The battle between Charles Bradlaugh and his persecutors was now transferred to the law courts. As soon as he had taken his seat he was served with a writ for having voted without having taken the oath, and this began the wearisome proceedings by which his defeated enemies boasted that they would make him bankrupt, and so vacate the seat he had so hardly gained. Rich men like Mr. Newdegate sued him, putting forward a man of straw as nominal plaintiff; for many a weary month Mr. Bradlaugh kept all his enemies at bay, fighting each case himself; defeated time after time, he fought on, finally carrying the cases to the House of Lords, and there winning them triumphantly. But they were won at such heavy cost of physical strength and of money, that they undermined his strength and burdened him heavily with debt. For all this time he had not only to fight in the law courts and to attend scrupulously to his Parliamentary duties, but he had to earn his living by lecturing and writing, so that his nights away from the House were spent in travelling and his days in incessant labour. Many of his defeated foes turned their weapons against me, hoping thus to give him pain; thus Admiral Sir John Hay, at Wigton, used language of me so coarse that the Scotsman and Glasgow Herald refused to print it, and the editor of the Scotsman described it as "language so coarse that it could have hardly dropped from a yahoo." August 25th found me at Brussels, whither I went, with Miss Hypatia Bradlaugh, to represent the English Freethinkers at the International Freethought Conference. It was an interesting gathering, attended by men of world-wide reputation, including Dr. Ludwig Büchner, a man of noble and kindly nature. An International Federation of Freethinkers was there founded, which did something towards bringing together the Freethinkers of different countries, and held interesting congresses in the following years in London and Amsterdam; but beyond these meetings it did little, and lacked energy and vitality. In truth, the Freethought party in each country had so much to do in holding its own that little time and thought could be given to international organisation. For myself, my introduction to Dr. Büchner, led to much interesting correspondence, and I translated, with his approval, his "Mind in Animals," and the enlarged fourteenth edition of "Force and Matter," as well as one or two pamphlets. This autumn of 1880 found the so-called Liberal Government in full tilt against the Irish leaders, and I worked hard to raise English feeling in defence of Irish freedom even against attack by one so much honoured as was Mr. Gladstone. It was uphill work, for harsh language had been used against England and all things English, but I showed by definite figures—all up and down England—that life and property were far safer in Ireland than in England, that Ireland was singularly free from crime save in agrarian disputes, and I argued that these would disappear if the law should step in between landlord and tenant, and by stopping the crimes of rack-renting and most brutal eviction, put an end to the horrible retaliations that were born of despair and revenge. A striking point on these evictions I quoted from Mr. T.P. O'Connor, who, using Mr. Gladstone's words that a sentence of eviction was a sentence of starvation, told of 15,000 processes of eviction issued in that one year. The autumn's work was varied by the teaching of science classes, a debate with a clergyman of the Church of England, and an operation which kept me in bed for three weeks, but which, on the other hand, was useful, for I learned to write while lying on my back, and accomplished in this fashion a good part of the translation of "Mind in Animals."
The battle between Charles Bradlaugh and his persecutors was now moved to the law courts. As soon as he took his seat, he was served with a writ for voting without having taken the oath, which kicked off the tedious legal proceedings that his defeated enemies bragged would bankrupt him and remove him from the seat he had fought so hard to win. Wealthy men like Mr. Newdegate sued him, putting forward a figurehead as the nominal plaintiff; for many exhausting months, Mr. Bradlaugh kept all his enemies at bay, fighting each case himself; defeated time after time, he persevered, finally taking the cases to the House of Lords and triumphantly winning them there. However, the victories came at a steep price in terms of physical strength and finances, leaving him weakened and heavily in debt. During this time, he not only had to fight in the courts and diligently fulfill his Parliamentary duties, but he also needed to earn a living by lecturing and writing, which meant his nights away from the House were spent traveling and his days filled with relentless work. Many of his vanquished opponents turned their attacks toward me, hoping to inflict pain on him; Admiral Sir John Hay, in Wigton, used language about me so vulgar that both the Scotsman and Glasgow Herald refused to publish it, with the editor of the Scotsman describing it as "language so coarse that it could hardly have come from a yahoo." On August 25th, I found myself in Brussels, where I went with Miss Hypatia Bradlaugh to represent English Freethinkers at the International Freethought Conference. It was an intriguing gathering attended by renowned individuals from around the world, including Dr. Ludwig Büchner, a man of noble and kind character. An International Federation of Freethinkers was established there, which helped to connect Freethinkers from different countries, and it held engaging congresses in the years that followed in London and Amsterdam; however, apart from these meetings, it achieved little and was lacking in energy and vitality. In truth, the Freethought movement in each country had so much to do just to hold its ground that there was little time or energy left for international organization. As for me, my introduction to Dr. Büchner led to a lot of interesting correspondence, and with his approval, I translated his "Mind in Animals" and the expanded fourteenth edition of "Force and Matter," along with a couple of pamphlets. That autumn of 1880 saw the so-called Liberal Government fully against the Irish leaders, and I worked hard to boost English support for Irish freedom, even in the face of opposition from someone as respected as Mr. Gladstone. It was difficult work, as harsh language had been directed at England and everything English, but I demonstrated with concrete figures—that life and property were much safer in Ireland than in England, that Ireland was largely free from crime except for agrarian disputes, and I argued that these would vanish if the law intervened between landlord and tenant, and by curbing the crimes of rack-renting and brutal evictions, put an end to the horrific retaliations born from despair and revenge. A striking point about these evictions came from Mr. T.P. O'Connor, who, echoing Mr. Gladstone's words that an eviction sentence was a sentence of starvation, spoke of 15,000 eviction processes issued in that single year. The autumn work was varied: I taught science classes, debated with an Anglican clergyman, and underwent an operation that kept me in bed for three weeks. However, on the bright side, it allowed me to learn how to write while lying on my back, and I managed to complete a good portion of the translation of "Mind in Animals" this way.
And here let me point a moral about hard work. Hard work kills no one. I find a note in the National Reformer in 1880 from the pen of Mr. Bradlaugh: "It is, we fear, useless to add that, in the judgment of her best friends, Mrs. Besant has worked far too hard during the last two years." This is 1893, and the thirteen years' interval has been full of incessant work, and I am working harder than ever now, and in splendid health. Looking over the National Reformer for all these years, it seems to me that it did really fine educational work; Mr. Bradlaugh's strenuous utterances on political and theological matters; Dr. Aveling's luminous and beautiful scientific teachings; and to my share fell much of the educative work on questions of political and national morality in our dealings with weaker nations. We put all our hearts into our work, and the influence exercised was distinctly in favour of pure living and high thinking.
And let me share a lesson about hard work. Hard work doesn’t hurt anyone. I found a note in the National Reformer from 1880 written by Mr. Bradlaugh: "We fear it’s pointless to mention that, according to her closest friends, Mrs. Besant has worked way too hard over the past two years." It’s now 1893, and the thirteen years since have been filled with nonstop work, and I’m working harder than ever now, while enjoying excellent health. Looking back at the National Reformer during all these years, I feel it really contributed meaningfully to education; Mr. Bradlaugh's passionate comments on political and religious issues; Dr. Aveling's clear and beautiful scientific insights; and I took on a lot of the educational efforts regarding political and national ethics in our interactions with weaker nations. We dedicated ourselves fully to our work, and the impact we made was clearly in support of wholesome living and deep thinking.
In the spring of 1881 the Court of Appeal decided against Mr. Bradlaugh's right to affirm as Member of Parliament, and his seat was declared vacant, but he was at once returned again by the borough of Northampton, despite the virulence of slander directed against him, so that he rightly described the election as "the most bitter I have ever fought." His work in the House had won him golden opinions in the country, and he was already recognised as a power there; so Tory fear was added to bigoted hatred, and the efforts to keep him out of the House were increased.
In the spring of 1881, the Court of Appeal ruled against Mr. Bradlaugh's right to take his seat as a Member of Parliament, declaring his position vacant. However, he was immediately re-elected by the borough of Northampton, despite the intense slander against him, which led him to call the election "the most bitter I have ever fought." His contributions in the House had earned him a great reputation across the country, and he was already seen as an influential figure there. As a result, Tory fear combined with deep-seated hatred, leading to intensified efforts to keep him out of the House.
He was introduced to the House as a new member to take his seat by Mr. Labouchere and Mr. Burt, but Sir Stafford Northcote intervened, and after a lengthy debate, which included a speech from Mr. Bradlaugh at the Bar, a majority of thirty-three refused to allow him to take the oath. After a prolonged scene, during which Mr. Bradlaugh declined to withdraw and the House hesitated to use force, the House adjourned, and finally the Government promised to bring in an Affirmation Bill, and Mr. Bradlaugh promised, with the consent of his constituents, to await the decision of the House on this Bill. Meantime, a League for the Defence of Constitutional Rights was formed, and the agitation in the country grew: wherever Mr. Bradlaugh went to speak vast crowds awaited him, and he travelled from one end of the country to the other, the people answering his appeal for justice with no uncertain voice. On July 2nd, in consequence of Tory obstruction, Mr. Gladstone wrote to Mr. Bradlaugh that the Government were going to drop the Affirmation Bill, and Mr. Bradlaugh thereupon determined to present himself once more in the House, and fixed on August 3rd as the date of such action, so that the Irish Land Bill might get through the House ere any delay in business was caused by him. The House was then closely guarded with police; the great gates were closed, reserves of police were packed in the law courts, and all through July this state of siege continued. On August 2nd there was a large meeting in Trafalgar Square, at which delegates were present from all parts of England, and from as far north as Edinburgh, and on Wednesday, August 3rd, Mr. Bradlaugh went down to the House. His last words to me were: "The people know you better than they know any one, save myself; whatever happens, mind, whatever happens, let them do no violence; I trust to you to keep them quiet." He went to the House entrance with Dr. Aveling, and into the House alone. His daughters and I went together, and with some hundreds of others carrying petitions—ten only with each petition, and the ten rigidly counted and allowed to pass through the gate, sufficiently opened to let one through at a time—reached Westminster Hall, where we waited on the steps leading to the passage of the lobby.
He was introduced to the House as a new member by Mr. Labouchere and Mr. Burt, but Sir Stafford Northcote intervened. After a long debate, which included a speech from Mr. Bradlaugh at the Bar, a majority of thirty-three denied his request to take the oath. After a lengthy scene, during which Mr. Bradlaugh refused to withdraw and the House hesitated to use force, the House adjourned. The Government then promised to introduce an Affirmation Bill, and Mr. Bradlaugh, with the agreement of his constituents, promised to wait for the House's decision on this Bill. Meanwhile, a League for the Defense of Constitutional Rights was formed, and public support grew: wherever Mr. Bradlaugh spoke, huge crowds gathered to hear him, and he traveled across the country, with people responding to his call for justice loudly and clearly. On July 2nd, due to Tory obstruction, Mr. Gladstone informed Mr. Bradlaugh that the Government planned to drop the Affirmation Bill. Consequently, Mr. Bradlaugh decided to present himself in the House again, choosing August 3rd for this action, ensuring that the Irish Land Bill could pass without any delays caused by him. The House was heavily guarded by police; the main gates were shut, and police reserves were stationed in the law courts, maintaining this state of siege throughout July. On August 2nd, a large meeting took place in Trafalgar Square, attended by delegates from all over England and as far north as Edinburgh. On Wednesday, August 3rd, Mr. Bradlaugh went to the House. His last words to me were: "The people know you better than they know anyone, except me; whatever happens, remember, whatever happens, let them do no violence; I trust you to keep them calm." He entered the House with Dr. Aveling, but went in alone. His daughters and I joined hundreds of others carrying petitions—ten signatures allowed for each petition, with the ten strictly counted as we passed through the gate, which opened just wide enough for one person at a time—until we reached Westminster Hall, where we waited on the steps leading to the lobby passage.
An inspector ordered us off. I gently intimated that we were within our rights. Dramatic order: "Four officers this way." Up they marched and looked at us, and we looked at them. "I think you had better consult Inspector Denning before you use violence," I remarked placidly. They thought they had, and in a few moments up came the inspector, and seeing that we were standing in a place where we had a right to be, and were doing no harm, he rebuked his over-zealous subordinates, and they retired and left us in peace. A man of much tact and discretion was Inspector Denning. Indeed, all through this, the House of Commons police behaved admirably well. Even in the attack they were ordered to make on Mr. Bradlaugh, the police used as little violence as they could. It was Mr. Erskine, the Deputy Serjeant-at-Arms, and his ushers, who showed the brutality; as Dr. Aveling wrote at the time: "The police disliked their work, and, as brave men, had a sympathy for a brave man. Their orders they obeyed rigidly. This done, they were kindness itself." Gradually the crowd of petitioners grew and grew; angry murmurs were heard, for no news came from the House, and they loved "Charlie," and were mostly north country men, sturdy and independent. They thought they had a right to go into the lobby, and suddenly, with the impulse that will sway a crowd to a single action there was a roar, "Petition, petition, justice, justice," and they surged up the steps, charging at the policemen who held the door. Flashed into my mind my chief's charge, his words, "I trust to you to keep them quiet," and as the police sprang forward to meet the crowd I threw myself between them, with all the advantage of the position of the top of the steps that I had chosen, so that every man in the charging crowd saw me, and as they checked themselves in surprise I bade them stop for his sake, and keep for him the peace which he had bade us should not be broken. I heard afterwards that as I sprang forward the police laughed—they must have thought me a fool to face the rush of the charging men; but I knew his friends would never trample me down, and as the crowd stopped the laugh died out, and they drew back and left me my own way.
An inspector ordered us to leave. I calmly suggested that we had every right to be there. The inspector dramatically called out, "Four officers this way." They marched over and stared at us while we stared back. "I think you should check with Inspector Denning before getting violent," I said calmly. They seemed to agree, and a few moments later, Inspector Denning arrived. Seeing that we were in a place we were allowed to be and not causing any trouble, he reprimanded his overly eager subordinates, who then backed off and left us alone. Inspector Denning was very tactful and discreet. Throughout this situation, the House of Commons police behaved remarkably well. Even during the order to confront Mr. Bradlaugh, the police used minimal force. It was Mr. Erskine, the Deputy Serjeant-at-Arms, and his aides who were harsh; as Dr. Aveling noted at the time: "The police didn't like their job, and, being brave men, they sympathized with a courageous man. They strictly followed their orders, but once that was done, they were very kind." Gradually, the group of petitioners grew larger, and frustration mounted as no news came from the House. They were devoted to "Charlie," mostly from the north, strong and independent. They believed they had a right to enter the lobby, and suddenly, fueled by a shared impulse, a shout erupted: "Petition, petition, justice, justice," and they rushed up the steps, charging the policemen at the door. I remembered my chief's directive, his words, "I trust you to keep them calm," and as the police moved forward to confront the crowd, I stepped in between them, taking advantage of my position at the top of the steps so that every person in the crowd could see me. As they hesitated in surprise, I told them to stop for his sake and to maintain the peace he had asked us to keep. I later heard that when I jumped forward, the police laughed—they must have thought I was foolish to stand in front of the charging crowd. But I knew his friends would never trample me, and when the crowd halted, the laughter faded, and they pulled back, allowing me to stay on my path.
Sullenly the men drew back, mastering themselves with effort, reining in their wrath, still for his sake. Ah! had I known what was going on inside, would I have kept his trust unbroken! and, as many a man said to me afterwards in northern towns, "Oh! if you had let us go we would have carried him into the House up to the Speaker's chair." We heard a crash inside, and listened, and there was sound of breaking glass and splintering wood, and in a few minutes a messenger came to me: "He is in Palace Yard." And we went thither and saw him standing, still and white, face set like marble, coat torn, motionless, as though carved in stone, facing the members' door. Now we know the whole shameful story: how as that one man stood alone, on his way to claim his right, alone so that he could do no violence, fourteen men, said the Central News, police and ushers, flung themselves upon him, pushed and pulled him down the stairs, smashing in their violence the glass and wood of the passage door; how he struck no blow, but used only his great strength in passive resistance—" Of all I have ever seen, I never saw one man struggle with ten like that," said one of the chiefs, angrily disdainful of the wrong he was forced to do—till they flung him out into Palace Yard. An eye-witness thus reported the scene in the Press: "The strong, broad, heavy, powerful frame of Mr. Bradlaugh was hard to move, with its every nerve and muscle strained to resist the coercion. Bending and straining against the overpowering numbers, he held every inch with surprising tenacity, and only surrendered it after almost superhuman exertions to retain it. The sight—little of it as was seen from the outside—soon became sickening. The overborne man appeared almost at his last gasp. The face, in spite of the warmth of the struggle, had an ominous pallor. The limbs barely sustained him.... The Trafalgar Square phrase that this man might be broken but not bent occurred to minds apprehensive at the present appearance of him."
Sullenly, the men stepped back, trying hard to control their anger, still doing it for his sake. Ah! If I had known what was happening inside, I would have kept his trust intact! And, as many men told me later in northern towns, "Oh! if you had let us go, we would have carried him into the House right to the Speaker's chair." We heard a crash inside and listened; there was the sound of breaking glass and splintering wood. A few minutes later, a messenger came to me: "He is in Palace Yard." We went there and saw him standing still and pale, with a face set like marble, his coat torn, motionless, as if chiseled from stone, facing the members' door. Now we know the whole disgraceful story: how, as that one man stood alone, on his way to claim his right, so he could commit no violence, fourteen men—according to the Central News, police and ushers—leapt on him, pushing and dragging him down the stairs, smashing the glass and wood of the passage door in their violence. He struck no blows, only using his immense strength for passive resistance. “Of everything I've ever seen, I never saw one man struggle against ten like that,” said one of the leaders, angrily disdainful of the wrong he had to execute—until they threw him out into Palace Yard. An eye-witness reported the scene in the Press: “The strong, broad, heavy, powerful frame of Mr. Bradlaugh was hard to move, every nerve and muscle strained in resistance. Bending and pushing against the overwhelming numbers, he held his ground with surprising tenacity, surrendering only after almost superhuman effort to keep it. The sight—little of which was seen from the outside—soon became sickening. The overpowered man seemed almost at his last breath. Despite the warmth of the struggle, his face had an ominous paleness. His limbs barely held him up... The Trafalgar Square saying that this man might be broken but not bent came to mind for those worried about his current state."
They flung him out, and swift, short words were there interchanged. "I nearly did wrong at the door," he said afterwards, "I was very angry. I said to Inspector Denning, 'I shall come again with force enough to overcome it,' He said, 'When?' I said, 'Within a minute if I raise my hand.'" He stood in Palace Yard, and there outside the gate was a vast sea of heads, the men who had journeyed from all parts of England for love of him, and in defence of the great right he represented of a constituency to send to Parliament the man of its choice. Ah! he was never greater than in that moment of outrage and of triumphant wrong; with all the passion of a proud man surging within him, insulted by physical violence, injured by the cruel wrenching of all his muscles—so that for weeks his arms had to be swathed in bandages—he was never greater than when he conquered his own wrath, crushed down his own longing for battle, stirred to flame by the bodily struggle, and the bodily injury, and with thousands waiting within sound of his voice, longing to leap to his side, he gave the word to tell them to meet him that evening away from the scene of conflict, and meanwhile to disperse quietly, "no riot, no disorder." But how he suffered mentally no words of mine may tell, and none can understand how it wrung his heart who does not know how he reverenced the great Parliament of England, how he honoured law, how he believed in justice being done; it was the breaking down of his national ideals, of his pride in his country, of his belief that faith would be kept with a foe by English gentlemen, who with all their faults, he thought, held honour and chivalry dear. "No man will sleep in gaol for me to-night," he said to me that day; "no woman can blame me for her husband killed or wounded, but—" A wave of agony swept over his face, and from that fatal day Charles Bradlaugh was never the same man. Some hold their ideals lightly, but his heart-strings were twined round his; some care little for their country—he was an Englishman, law-abiding, liberty-loving, to his heart's core, of the type of the seventeenth-century patriot, holding England's honour dear. It was the treachery that broke his heart; he had gone alone, believing in the honour of his foes, ready to submit to expulsion, to imprisonment, and it was the latter that he expected; but he never dreamed that, going alone amongst his foes, they would use brutal and cowardly violence, and shame every Parliamentary tradition by personal outrage on a duly-elected member, outrage more worthy of a slum pot-house than of the great Commons House, the House of Hampden and of Vane, the House that had guarded its own from Royal violence, and had maintained its privileges in the teeth of kings.
They threw him out, and short, quick words were exchanged. "I almost messed up at the door," he said later, "I was really angry. I told Inspector Denning, 'I’ll come back with enough force to take it.' He asked, 'When?' I replied, 'In a minute if I raise my hand.'" He stood in Palace Yard, and outside the gate was a huge crowd, men who had traveled from all over England out of love for him, and in defense of the important right he represented for a constituency to send the person of their choice to Parliament. He was never greater than in that moment of outrage and triumphant injustice; with all the passion of a proud man surging inside him, insulted by physical violence, injured by the painful wrenching of all his muscles—so that for weeks his arms had to be wrapped in bandages—he was never greater than when he mastered his own anger, suppressed his own desire for a fight, ignited by the physical struggle and the bodily injury, and with thousands waiting within earshot, eager to rally at his side, he instructed them to meet him that evening away from the scene of conflict, and in the meantime to disperse quietly, “no riot, no disorder.” But how he suffered mentally, no words of mine can convey, and no one can understand how deeply it affected him who does not know how he revered the great Parliament of England, how he respected law, how he believed in justice being upheld; it was the destruction of his national ideals, of his pride in his country, of his faith that promises would be kept by a foe when it came to English gentlemen, who, despite their flaws, he believed cherished honor and chivalry. "No man will spend the night in jail for me," he told me that day; "no woman can blame me for her husband being killed or wounded, but—" A wave of agony crossed his face, and from that fateful day, Charles Bradlaugh was never the same man. Some take their ideals lightly, but his heart was tightly bound to his; some care little for their country—he was an Englishman, law-abiding, freedom-loving, to his very core, the type of the seventeenth-century patriot, valuing England's honor. It was the betrayal that broke his heart; he had gone alone, trusting in the honor of his enemies, ready to accept expulsion, to imprisonment, which he anticipated; but he never imagined that, going alone among his enemies, they would resort to brutal and cowardly violence, shaming every parliamentary tradition with personal attacks on a duly elected member, actions more fitting for a rundown pub than for the great House of Commons, the House of Hampden and Vane, the House that had defended its own from royal violence and upheld its privileges against kings.
These stormy scenes brought about a promise of Government aid; Mr. Bradlaugh failed to get any legal redress, as, indeed, he expected to fail, on the ground that the officials of the House were covered by the House's order, but the Government promised to support his claim to his seat during the next session, and thus prevented the campaign against them on which we had resolved. I had solely on my own responsibility organised a great band of people pledged to refrain from the use of all excisable articles after a certain date, and to withdraw all their moneys in the Savings Bank, thus seriously crippling the financial resources of the Government. The response from the workers to my appeal to "Stop the supplies" was great and touching. One man wrote that as he never drank nor smoked he would leave off tea; others that though tobacco was their one luxury, they would forego it; and so on. Somewhat reluctantly, I asked the people to lay aside this formidable weapon, as "we have no right to embarrass the Government financially save when they refuse to do the first duty of a Government to maintain law. They have now promised to do justice, and we must wait." Meanwhile the injuries inflicted on Mr. Bradlaugh, rupturing the sheaths of some of the muscles of the arm, laid him prostrate, and various small fights went on during the temporary truce in the great struggle. I turned up in the House two or three times, haled thither, though not in person, by the people who kept Mr. Bradlaugh out, and a speech of mine became the subject of a question by Mr. Ritchie, while Sir Henry Tyler waged war on the science classes. Another joy was added to life by the use of my name—which by all these struggles had gained a marketable value—as author of pamphlets I had never seen, and this forgery of my name by unscrupulous people in the colonies caused me a good deal of annoyance. In the strengthening of the constitutional agitation in the country, the holding of an International Congress of Freethinkers in London, the studying and teaching of science, the delivering of courses of scientific lectures in the Hall of Science, a sharp correspondence with the Bishop of Manchester, who had libelled Secularists, and which led to a fiery pamphlet, "God's Views on Marriage," as retort—in all these matters the autumn months sped rapidly away. One incident of that autumn I record with regret. I was misled by very partial knowledge of the nature of the experiments performed, and by my fear that if scientific men were forbidden to experiment on animals with drugs they would perforce experiment with them on the poor in hospitals, to write two articles, republished as a pamphlet, against Sir Eardley Wilmot's Bill for the "Total Suppression of Vivisection." I limited my approval to highly skilled men engaged in original investigations, and took the representations made of the character of the experiments without sufficient care to verify them. Hence the publication of the one thing I ever wrote for which I feel deep regret and shame, as against the whole trend and efforts of my life. I am thankful to say that Dr. Anna Kingsford answered my articles, and I readily inserted her replies in the paper in which mine had appeared—our National Reformer—and she touched that question of the moral sense to which my nature at once responded. Ultimately, I looked carefully into the subject, found that vivisection abroad was very different from vivisection in England, saw that it was in very truth the fiendishly cruel thing that its opponents alleged, and destroyed my partial defence of even its less brutal form.
These chaotic events led to a promise of government support; Mr. Bradlaugh didn’t get any legal remedy, as he expected, because the officials of the House were protected by the House's rules. However, the government promised to back his claim to his seat in the next session, which stopped us from launching our planned campaign against them. On my own initiative, I organized a large group of people who pledged to stop using all exciseable products after a specific date and to withdraw all their funds from the Savings Bank, which would seriously hurt the government's financial resources. The response from the workers to my call to "Stop the supplies" was tremendous and heartfelt. One man wrote that since he didn’t drink or smoke, he would give up tea; others said that although tobacco was their only luxury, they would sacrifice it; and so on. Reluctantly, I asked everyone to put down this powerful weapon, as "we have no right to place a financial burden on the Government unless they refuse to perform their primary duty of maintaining law. They’ve now promised to deliver justice, and we must wait." Meanwhile, the injuries suffered by Mr. Bradlaugh, which damaged some of the muscles in his arm, left him incapacitated, and various small skirmishes occurred during the temporary ceasefire in the larger struggle. I showed up in the House two or three times, summoned there, though not personally, by the people who prevented Mr. Bradlaugh from entering, and a speech of mine became the topic of a question from Mr. Ritchie, while Sir Henry Tyler attacked the science classes. Another joy was added to my life by the use of my name—now with market value—being used as the author of pamphlets I had never seen, and this forgery of my name by unscrupulous individuals in the colonies caused me quite a bit of annoyance. As the constitutional agitation in the country strengthened, with the organization of an International Congress of Freethinkers in London, the studying and teaching of science, the delivery of scientific lectures in the Hall of Science, and a sharp correspondence with the Bishop of Manchester, who had attacked Secularists, leading to a fiery pamphlet titled "God's Views on Marriage" as a response—in all these matters, the autumn months passed quickly. One incident from that autumn I note with regret. I was misled by limited knowledge of the nature of the experiments conducted and by my fear that if scientists were banned from experimenting on animals with drugs, they would inevitably experiment on the needy in hospitals. This led me to write two articles, which were republished as a pamphlet, against Sir Eardley Wilmot's Bill for the "Total Suppression of Vivisection." I restricted my approval to highly skilled individuals involved in original investigations and accepted the representations regarding the nature of the experiments without adequately verifying them. Thus, I published the one piece I've ever written that I deeply regret and feel ashamed of, counter to the entire direction and efforts of my life. I’m grateful that Dr. Anna Kingsford responded to my articles, and I readily published her replies in the same paper where mine had appeared—our National Reformer—and she addressed the moral question that resonated with me. Ultimately, I examined the topic closely, realized that vivisection abroad differed significantly from vivisection in England, understood that it was indeed the brutally cruel practice its opponents claimed, and discarded my partial defense of even its less brutal form.
1882 saw no cessation of the struggles in which Mr. Bradlaugh and those who stood by him were involved. On February 7th he was heard for the third time at the Bar of the House of Commons, and closed his speech with an offer that, accepted, would have closed the contest. "I am ready to stand aside, say for four or five weeks, without coming to that table, if the House within that time, or within such time as its great needs might demand, would discuss whether an Affirmation Bill should pass or not. I want to obey the law, and I tell you how I might meet the House still further, if the House will pardon me for seeming to advise it. Hon. members have said that would be a Bradlaugh Relief Bill. Bradlaugh is more proud than you are. Let the Bill pass without applying to elections that have taken place previously, and I will undertake not to claim my seat, and when the Bill has passed I will apply for the Chiltern Hundreds. I have no fear. If I am not fit for my constituents, they shall dismiss me, but you never shall. The grave alone shall make me yield." But the House would do nothing. He had asked for 100,000 signatures in favour of his constitutional right, and on February 8th, 9th, and 10th 1,008 petitions, bearing 241,970 signatures, were presented; the House treated them with contemptuous indifference. The House refused to declare his seat vacant, and also refused to allow him to fill it, thus half-disfranchising Northampton, while closing every avenue to legal redress. Mr. Labouchere—who did all a loyal colleague could do to assist his brother member—brought in an Affirmation Bill; it was blocked. Mr. Gladstone, appealed to support the law declared by his own Attorney-General, refused to do anything. An impasse was created, and all the enemies of freedom rejoiced. Out of this position of what the Globe called "quiet omnipotence" the House was shaken by an audacious defiance, for on February 21st the member it was trying to hold at arm's length took the oath in its startled face, went to his seat, and—waited events. The House then expelled him—and, indeed, it could scarcely do anything else after such defiance—and Mr. Labouchere moved for a new writ, declaring that Northampton was ready, its "candidate was Charles Bradlaugh, expelled this House." Northampton, ever steadfast, returned him for the third time—the vote in his favour showing an increase of 359 over the second bye-election—and the triumph was received in all the great towns of England with wild enthusiasm. By the small majority of fifteen in a House of 599 members—and this due to the vacillation of the Government—he was again refused the right to take his seat. But now the whole Liberal Press took up his quarrel; the oath question became a test question for every candidate for Parliament, and the Government was warned that it was alienating its best friends. The Pall Mall Gazette voiced the general feeling. "What is the evidence that an Oaths Bill would injure the Government in the country? Of one thing we may be sure, that if they shirk the Bill they will do no good to themselves at the elections. Nobody doubts that it will be made a test question, and any Liberal who declines to vote for such a Bill will certainly lose the support of the Northampton sort of Radicalism in every constituency. The Liberal Press throughout the country is absolutely unanimous. The political Non-conformists are for it. The local clubs are for it. All that is wanted is that the Government should pick up a little more moral courage, and recognise that even in practice honesty is the best policy." The Government did not think so, and they paid the penalty, for one of the causes that led to their defeat at the polls was the disgust felt at their vacillation and cowardice in regard to the rights of constituencies. Not untruly did I write, in May, 1882, that Charles Bradlaugh was a man "who by the infliction of a great wrong had become the incarnation of a great principle"; for the agitation in the country grew and grew, until, returned again to Parliament at the General Election, he took the oath and his seat, brought in and carried an Oaths Bill, not only giving Members of Parliament the right to affirm, but making Freethinkers competent as jurymen, and relieving witnesses from the insult hitherto put upon those who objected to swearing; he thus ended an unprecedented struggle by a complete victory, weaving his name for ever into the constitutional history of his country.
In 1882, Mr. Bradlaugh and his supporters continued their fight without pause. On February 7th, he spoke before the House of Commons for the third time, concluding his speech with an offer that, if accepted, would have ended the dispute. "I'm willing to step aside for four or five weeks, not coming to the table, if the House will discuss whether an Affirmation Bill should pass during that time or when it's needed. I want to obey the law, and I’ll even suggest how I could meet the House further, if you'll forgive me for seeming to give advice. Honorable members have said this would be a Bradlaugh Relief Bill. I care more about this than you do. Let the bill pass without applying it to previous elections, and I won't claim my seat, and once the bill is passed, I’ll apply for the Chiltern Hundreds. I’m not afraid. If I'm unfit for my constituents, they can dismiss me, but you cannot. Only death will make me give up." But the House did nothing. He had requested 100,000 signatures in support of his constitutional right, and on February 8th, 9th, and 10th, 1,008 petitions with 241,970 signatures were presented; the House treated them with dismissive indifference. They refused to declare his seat vacant and also denied him the right to take it, effectively disenfranchising Northampton and closing off any legal recourse. Mr. Labouchere, who did everything a loyal colleague could do to help him, introduced an Affirmation Bill, but it was blocked. Mr. Gladstone, whom he appealed to in support of the law his own Attorney-General had declared, refused to take any action. A stalemate was reached, and all of freedom's enemies celebrated. Out of this situation, which the Globe described as "quiet omnipotence," the House was shaken by a bold act of defiance, as on February 21st, the member they were trying to keep at arm's length took the oath right in front of them, then went to his seat and waited for what would happen next. The House then expelled him, which was virtually the only option after such a defiance. Mr. Labouchere moved for a new writ, stating that Northampton was ready, with its "candidate Charles Bradlaugh, expelled from this House." Northampton, ever loyal, returned him for a third time—the vote in his favor showing an increase of 359 from the second bye-election—and the triumph was celebrated with wild enthusiasm in all the major towns of England. By a narrow majority of fifteen in a House of 599 members—thanks to the Government's indecision—he was again denied the right to take his seat. However, this time, the entire Liberal Press took up his cause; the oath issue became a litmus test for every parliamentary candidate, and the Government was warned they were alienating their strongest supporters. The Pall Mall Gazette captured the overall sentiment. "What is the evidence that an Oaths Bill would harm the Government’s standing? One thing is certain: if they avoid the Bill, they'll only hurt themselves at the polls. There's no doubt it will be made a test question, and any Liberal who doesn't vote for it will surely lose the support of the Northampton-style Radicals in every constituency. The Liberal Press across the country is completely united. The political Non-conformists support it. The local clubs back it. All that’s needed is for the Government to show a bit more moral courage and recognize that honesty is the best policy, even in practice." The Government disagreed, and they faced the consequences, as one reason for their election defeat was the public’s disgust with their indecision and cowardice concerning the rights of their constituents. I wrote, in May 1882, that Charles Bradlaugh was a man "who by the infliction of a great wrong had become the embodiment of a great principle"; for the movement in the country continued to grow, until he was returned to Parliament in the General Election, took the oath and his seat, introduced and passed an Oaths Bill, which not only gave Members of Parliament the right to affirm, but also allowed Freethinkers to serve as jurymen, and relieved witnesses from the disrespect previously faced by those who opposed swearing. He thus brought an unprecedented struggle to a close with a complete victory, forever weaving his name into the constitutional history of his country.
In the House of Lords, Lord Redesdale brought in a Bill disqualifying Atheists from sitting in Parliament, but in face of the feeling aroused in the country, the Lords, with many pathetic expressions of regret, declined to pass it. But, meanwhile, Sir Henry Tyler in the Commons was calling out for prosecutions for blasphemy to be brought against Mr. Bradlaugh and his friends, while he carried on his crusade against Mr. Bradlaugh's daughters, Dr. Aveling, and myself, as science teachers. I summed up the position in the spring of 1882 in the following somewhat strong language: "This short-lived 'Parliamentary Declaration Bill' is but one of the many clouds which presage a storm of prosecution. The reiterated attempts in the House of Commons to force the Government into prosecuting heretics for blasphemy; the petty and vicious attacks on the science classes at the Hall; the odious and wicked efforts of Mr. Newdegate to drive Mr. Bradlaugh into the Bankruptcy Court; all these are but signs that the heterogeneous army of pious and bigoted Christians are gathering together their forces for a furious attack on those who have silenced them in argument, but whom they hope to conquer by main force, by sheer brutality. Let them come. Free-thinkers were never so strong, never so united, never so well organised as they are to-day. Strong in the goodness of our cause, in our faith in the ultimate triumph of Truth, in our willingness to give up all save fidelity to the sacred cause of liberty of human thought and human speech, we await gravely and fearlessly the successors of the men who burned Bruno, who imprisoned Galileo, who tortured Vanini—the men who have in their hands the blood-red cross of Jesus of Nazareth, and in their hearts the love of God and the hate of man."
In the House of Lords, Lord Redesdale introduced a bill to disqualify atheists from sitting in Parliament, but in light of the public outcry, the Lords, with many heartfelt expressions of regret, decided not to pass it. Meanwhile, Sir Henry Tyler in the Commons was demanding that prosecutions for blasphemy be brought against Mr. Bradlaugh and his associates, while he continued his campaign against Mr. Bradlaugh’s daughters, Dr. Aveling, and me as science teachers. I summed up the situation in the spring of 1882 with this rather strong statement: "This short-lived 'Parliamentary Declaration Bill' is merely one of the many signs that a storm of prosecution is coming. The repeated attempts in the House of Commons to pressure the Government into prosecuting heretics for blasphemy; the petty and spiteful attacks on the science classes at the Hall; the vicious efforts of Mr. Newdegate to drag Mr. Bradlaugh into bankruptcy; all these are just indicators that the diverse group of pious and bigoted Christians are mobilizing their forces for a fierce attack on those who have bested them in argument, but whom they hope to overpower by sheer force and brutality. Let them come. Free thinkers have never been stronger, more united, or better organized than they are today. Confident in the goodness of our cause, in our belief in the ultimate victory of Truth, and in our commitment to uphold the sacred cause of freedom of thought and speech, we stand ready and unafraid for the successors of those who burned Bruno, imprisoned Galileo, and tortured Vanini—the individuals who hold the blood-red cross of Jesus of Nazareth in their hands, and in their hearts, the love of God and the hatred of humanity."
CHAPTER XII.
CHAPTER 12.
STILL FIGHTING.
All this hot fighting on the religious field did not render me blind to the misery of the Irish land so dear to my heart, writhing in the cruel grip of Mr. Forster's Coercion Act. An article "Coercion in Ireland and its Results," exposing the wrongs done under the Act, was reprinted as a pamphlet and had a wide circulation.
All this intense conflict over religion didn’t blind me to the suffering in Ireland, a place I hold dear, struggling under the harsh reality of Mr. Forster's Coercion Act. An article titled "Coercion in Ireland and its Results," which highlighted the injustices caused by the Act, was published as a pamphlet and circulated widely.
I pleaded against eviction—7,020 persons had been evicted during the quarter ending in March—for the trial of those imprisoned on suspicion, for indemnity for those who before the Land Act had striven against wrongs the Land Act had been carried to prevent, and I urged that "no chance is given for the healing measures to cure the sore of Irish disaffection until not only are the prisoners in Ireland set at liberty, but until the brave, unfortunate Michael Davitt stands once more a free man on Irish soil." At last the Government reconsidered its policy and resolved on juster dealings; it sent Lord Frederick Cavendish over to Ireland, carrying with him the release of the "suspects," and scarcely had he landed ere the knife of assassination struck him—a foul and cowardly murder of an innocent messenger of peace. I was at Blackburn, to lecture on "The Irish Question," and as I was walking towards the platform, my heart full of joy for the dawning hope of peace, a telegram announcing the assassination was placed in my hands. Never shall I forget the shock, the incredulous horror, the wave of despair. "It is not only two men they have killed," I wrote, a day or two later; "they have stabbed the new-born hope of friendship between two countries, and have reopened the gulf of hatred that was just beginning to close." Alas! the crime succeeded in its object, and hurried the Government into new wrong. Hastily a new Coercion Bill was brought in, and rushed through its stages in Parliament, and, facing the storm of public excitement, I pleaded still, "Force no remedy," despite the hardship of the task. "There is excessive difficulty in dealing with the Irish difficulty at the present moment. Tories are howling for revenge on a whole nation as answer to the crime committed by a few; Whigs are swelling the outcry; many Radicals are swept away by the current, and feeling that 'something must be done,' they endorse the Government action, forgetting to ask whether the 'something' proposed is the wisest thing. A few stand firm, but they are very few—too few to prevent the new Coercion Bill from passing into law. But few though we be who lift up the voice of protest against the wrong which we are powerless to prevent, we may yet do much to make the new Act of brief duration, by so rousing public opinion as to bring about its early repeal. When the measure is understood by the public half the battle will be won; it is accepted at the moment from faith in the Government; it will be rejected when its true character is grasped. The murders which have given birth to this repressive measure came with a shock upon the country, which was the more terrible from the sudden change from gladness and hope to darkness and despair. The new policy was welcomed so joyfully; the messenger of the new policy was slain ere yet the pen was dry which had signed the orders of mercy and of liberty. Small wonder that cry of horror should be followed by measures of vengeance; but the murders were the work of a few criminals, while the measure of vengeance strikes the whole of the Irish people. I plead against the panic which confounds political agitation and political redressal of wrong with crime and its punishment; the Government measure gags every mouth in Ireland, and puts, as we shall see, all political effort at the mercy of the Lord-Lieutenant, the magistracy, and the police." I then sketched the misery of the peasants in the grip of absentee landlords, the turning out on the roadside to die of the mother with new-born babe at her breast, the loss of "all thought of the sanctity of human life when the lives of the dearest are reckoned as less worth than the shillings of overdue rack-rental." I analysed the new Act: "When this Act passes, trial by jury, right of public meeting, liberty of press, sanctity of house, will one and all be held at the will of the Lord-Lieutenant, the irresponsible autocrat of Ireland, while liberty of person will lie at the mercy of every constable. Such is England's way of governing Ireland in the year 1882. And this is supposed to be a Bill for the 'repression of crime.'" Bluntly, I put the bald truth: "The plain fact is that the murderers have succeeded. They saw in the new policy the reconciliation of England and Ireland; they knew that friendship would follow justice, and that the two countries, for the first time in history, would clasp hands. To prevent this they dug a new gulf, which they hoped the English nation would not span; they sent a river of blood across the road of friendship, and they flung two corpses to bar the newly-opened gate of reconciliation and peace. They have succeeded."
I protested against the evictions—7,020 people had been evicted in the quarter ending in March—for the trial of those imprisoned on suspicion, for compensation for those who had fought against injustices that the Land Act was supposed to prevent, and I emphasized that "no chance is given for the healing measures to address the issues of Irish disaffection until not only are the prisoners in Ireland released, but until the brave, unfortunate Michael Davitt is once again a free man on Irish soil." Finally, the Government reconsidered its approach and decided on fairer actions; it sent Lord Frederick Cavendish to Ireland with the release of the "suspects," and as soon as he landed, he was struck down by an act of assassination—a brutal and cowardly murder of an innocent messenger of peace. I was in Blackburn to lecture on "The Irish Question," and as I walked toward the platform with my heart filled with joy for the hopeful prospects of peace, a telegram announcing the assassination was handed to me. I will never forget the shock, the disbelief, the wave of despair. "It is not just two men they have killed," I wrote a day or two later; "they have stabbed the newly kindled hope of friendship between two countries and reopened the chasm of hatred that was just beginning to close." Unfortunately, the crime achieved its goal and pushed the Government into further wrongdoing. A new Coercion Bill was quickly introduced and rushed through Parliament, and as the public outrage grew, I continued to plead, "Force no remedy," despite the difficulty of the situation. "There is excessive difficulty in addressing the Irish issue at this moment. Tories are screaming for revenge on an entire nation as payback for the actions of a few; Whigs are joining the chorus; many Radicals are swept along by the tide, feeling that 'something must be done,' they support the Government’s actions without considering whether the proposed 'something' is the best choice. A few stand firm, but they are very few—too few to prevent the new Coercion Bill from becoming law. But even though we are few who raise our voices against the wrong we cannot stop, we can still do a lot to make the new Act short-lived by rallying public opinion for its early repeal. When the public understands the measure, half the battle will be won; it is currently accepted due to faith in the Government; it will be rejected once its true nature is recognized. The murders that led to this repressive measure hit the country suddenly, transitioning from joy and hope to darkness and despair. The new policy was welcomed with such enthusiasm; the messenger of this new policy was killed before the ink was dry on the orders of mercy and liberty. It's no surprise that the shock of horror was followed by vengeful measures; however, the murders were committed by a handful of criminals, while the vengeful actions target the entire Irish population. I argue against the panic that conflates political activism and rightful redress with crime and its punishment; the Government's measures silence everyone in Ireland, and as we will see, place all political efforts at the mercy of the Lord-Lieutenant, the magistrates, and the police." I then described the suffering of the peasants under absentee landlords, the mother with a newborn baby left on the roadside to die, the disregard for "the sanctity of human life when the lives of loved ones are deemed less valuable than the overdue rent payments." I analyzed the new Act: "Once this Act is passed, trial by jury, the right to public meetings, freedom of the press, and the sanctity of homes will all be dependent on the Lord-Lieutenant, the unaccountable ruler of Ireland, while personal freedom will be at the mercy of every officer. This is England's way of governing Ireland in 1882. And this is claimed to be a Bill for the 'repression of crime.'" Honestly, I stated the harsh truth: "The plain fact is that the murderers have succeeded. They saw in the new policy the potential for reconciliation between England and Ireland; they knew that friendship would follow justice, and for the first time in history, the two countries would join hands. To prevent this, they created a new divide, hoping the English nation would not bridge it; they spilled a river of blood across the path to friendship and threw two corpses to block the newly opened gate of reconciliation and peace. They have succeeded."
Into this whirl of political and social strife came the first whisper to me of the Theosophical Society, in the shape of a statement of its principles, which conveyed, I remarked, "no very definite idea of the requirements for membership, beyond a dreamy, emotional, scholarly interest in the religio-philosophic fancies of the past." Also a report of an address by Colonel Olcott, which led me to suppose that the society held to "some strange theory of 'apparitions' of the dead, and to some existence outside the physical and apart from it." These came to me from some Hindû Freethinkers, who asked my opinion as to Secularists joining the Theosophical Society, and Theosophists being admitted to the National Secular Society. I replied, judging from these reports, that "while Secularists would have no right to refuse to enrol Theosophists, if they desired it, among their members, there is a radical difference between the mysticism of Theosophy and the scientific materialism of Secularism. The exclusive devotion to this world implied in the profession of Secularism leaves no room for other-worldism; and consistent members of our body cannot join a society which professes belief therein."[27]
Into this chaos of political and social turmoil came my first exposure to the Theosophical Society, in the form of a statement outlining its principles. I noticed that it conveyed "no very clear idea of what was required for membership, other than a dreamy, emotional, scholarly interest in the religious and philosophical ideas of the past." There was also a report on a talk by Colonel Olcott, which made me think that the society subscribed to "some strange theory about 'apparitions' of the dead, and some existence beyond the physical world." This information came from some Hindu Freethinkers who sought my opinion on whether Secularists should join the Theosophical Society and whether Theosophists could be part of the National Secular Society. I replied, based on these reports, that "while Secularists wouldn't be justified in refusing to accept Theosophists as members if they wanted to join, there's a fundamental difference between the mysticism of Theosophy and the scientific materialism of Secularism. The commitment to this world inherent in Secularism doesn't allow for beliefs in another realm; therefore, consistent members of our group cannot join a society that professes such beliefs."[27]
H.P. Blavatsky penned a brief article in the Theosophist for August, 1882, in which she commented on my paragraph, remarking, in her generous way, that it must have been written "while labouring under entirely misconceived notions about the real nature of our society. For one so highly intellectual and keen as that renowned writer to dogmatise and issue autocratic ukases, after she has herself suffered so cruelly and undeservedly at the hands of blind bigotry and social prejudice in her lifelong struggle for freedom of thought seems, to say the least, absurdly inconsistent." After quoting my paragraph she went on: "Until proofs to the contrary, we prefer to believe that the above lines were dictated to Mrs. Besant by some crafty misrepresentations from Madras, inspired by a mean personal revenge rather than a desire to remain consistent with the principles of 'the scientific materialism of Secularism.' We beg to assure the Radical editors of the National Reformer that they were both very strangely misled by false reports about the Radical editors of the Theosophist. The term 'supernaturalists' can no more apply to the latter than to Mrs. A. Besant and Mr. C. Bradlaugh."
H.P. Blavatsky wrote a short article in the Theosophist for August 1882, where she commented on my statement, saying, in her usual generous manner, that it must have been written "while working under completely misunderstood ideas about the true nature of our society. For someone as intelligent and sharp as that famous writer to be dogmatic and issue authoritative orders, after she has herself suffered so brutally and unfairly at the hands of blind bigotry and social prejudice in her lifelong fight for freedom of thought, seems, to say the least, absurdly inconsistent." After quoting my statement, she continued: "Until proven otherwise, we choose to believe that the above lines were dictated to Mrs. Besant by some cunning distortions from Madras, motivated by petty personal revenge rather than a genuine desire to stay true to the principles of 'the scientific materialism of Secularism.' We assure the Radical editors of the National Reformer that they were both very strangely misled by false reports concerning the Radical editors of the Theosophist. The term 'supernaturalists' can no more apply to the latter than to Mrs. A. Besant and Mr. C. Bradlaugh."
H.P. Blavatsky, when she commented, as she occasionally did, on the struggles going on in England, took of them a singularly large-hearted and generous view. She referred with much admiration to Mr. Bradlaugh's work and to his Parliamentary struggle, and spoke warmly of the services he had rendered to liberty. Again, in pointing out that spiritualistic trance orations by no means transcended speeches that made no such claim, I find her first mention of myself: "Another lady orator, of deservedly great fame, both for eloquence and learning—the good Mrs. Annie Besant—without believing in controlling spirits, or for that matter in her own spirit, yet speaks and writes such sensible and wise things, that we might almost say that one of her speeches or chapters contains more matter to benefit humanity than would equip a modern trance-speaker for an entire oratorical career."[28] I have sometimes wondered of late years whether, had I met her then or seen any of her writings, I should have become her pupil. I fear not; I was still too much dazzled by the triumphs of Western Science, too self-assertive, too fond of combat, too much at the mercy of my own emotions, too sensitive to praise and blame. I needed to sound yet more deeply the depths of human misery, to hear yet more loudly the moaning of "the great Orphan," Humanity, to feel yet more keenly the lack of wider knowledge and of clearer light if I were to give effective help to man, ere I could bow my pride to crave admittance as pupil to the School of Occultism, ere I could put aside my prejudices and study the Science of the Soul.
H.P. Blavatsky, when she occasionally commented on the struggles happening in England, took a remarkably open-hearted and generous perspective. She spoke with great admiration for Mr. Bradlaugh's work and his struggle in Parliament, acknowledging the services he had provided to freedom. Again, while pointing out that spiritualistic trance speeches were not necessarily superior to speeches that made no such claims, I find her first mention of me: "Another lady orator, who is justly famous for her eloquence and knowledge—the good Mrs. Annie Besant—without believing in controlling spirits, or even in her own spirit, still speaks and writes such sensible and wise things that we might almost say that one of her speeches or chapters contains more valuable insights for humanity than what could launch a modern trance-speaker into a full oratorical career."[28] I have sometimes wondered in recent years whether, had I met her then or seen any of her writings, I would have become her student. I doubt it; I was still too dazzled by the achievements of Western Science, too self-assured, too eager for debate, too much at the mercy of my own feelings, too sensitive to praise and criticism. I needed to delve even deeper into the depths of human suffering, to hear even louder the cries of "the great Orphan," Humanity, to feel even more acutely the lack of broader knowledge and clearer understanding if I was to effectively help others before I could lower my pride to seek admission as a student into the School of Occultism, before I could set aside my biases and study the Science of the Soul.
The long-continued attempts of Sir Henry Tyler and his friends to stimulate persecutions for blasphemy at length took practical shape, and in July, 1882, Mr. Foote, the editor, Mr. Ramsey, the publisher, and Mr. Whittle, the printer of the Freethinker, were summoned for blasphemy by Sir Henry Tyler himself. An attempt was made to involve Mr. Bradlaugh in the proceedings, and the solicitors promised to drop the case against the editor and printer if Mr. Bradlaugh would himself sell them some copies of the paper. But however ready Mr. Bradlaugh had always shown himself to shield his subordinates by taking his sins on his own shoulders, he saw no reason why he should assume responsibility for a paper over which he had no control, and which was, he thought, by its caricatures, lowering the tone of Freethought advocacy and giving an unnecessary handle to its foes. He therefore answered that he would sell the solicitors any works published by himself or with his authority, and sent them a catalogue of the whole of such works. The object of this effort of Sir Henry Tyler's was obvious enough, and Mr. Bradlaugh commented: "The above letters make it pretty clear that Sir Henry W. Tyler having failed in his endeavour to get the science classes stopped at the Hall of Science, having also failed in his attempt to induce Sir W. Vernon Harcourt to prosecute myself and Mrs. Besant as editors and publishers of this journal, desires to make me personally and criminally responsible for the contents of a journal I neither edit nor publish, over which I have not a shadow of control, and in which I have not the smallest interest. Why does Sir H.W. Tyler so ardently desire to prosecute, me for blasphemy? Is it because two convictions will under the 9th and 10th Will. III. cap. 32, render me 'for ever' incapable of sitting in Parliament?" The Whitehall Review frankly put this forward as an object to be gained, and Mr. Bradlaugh was summoned to the Mansion House on a charge of publishing blasphemous libels in the Freethinker; meanwhile Sir Henry Tyler put a notice on the Order Book to deprive "the daughters of Mr. Charles Bradlaugh" of the grant they had earned as science teachers, and got an order which proved to be invalid, but which was acted on, to inspect Mr. Bradlaugh's and my own private banking accounts, I being no party to the case. Looking back, I marvel at the incredible meannesses to which Sir Henry Tyler and others stooped in defence of "religion"—Heaven save the mark! Let me add that his motion in the House of Commons was a complete failure, and it was emphasised by the publication at the same time of the successful work, both as teachers and as students, of the "daughters of Mr. Charles Bradlaugh," and of my being the only student in all England who had succeeded in taking honours in botany.
The ongoing efforts of Sir Henry Tyler and his friends to incite prosecutions for blasphemy finally took action, and in July 1882, Mr. Foote, the editor, Mr. Ramsey, the publisher, and Mr. Whittle, the printer of the Freethinker, were called to court for blasphemy by Sir Henry Tyler himself. An attempt was made to involve Mr. Bradlaugh in the case, and the lawyers promised to drop the charges against the editor and printer if Mr. Bradlaugh would sell them some copies of the paper. However, despite Mr. Bradlaugh’s usual willingness to protect his teammates by taking the blame himself, he saw no reason to take responsibility for a paper he didn’t control, which he believed, due to its caricatures, was harming the reputation of Freethought advocacy and giving unnecessary ammunition to its opponents. He therefore stated that he would sell the solicitors any works published by him or with his permission, and sent them a list of all such works. The purpose of Sir Henry Tyler's actions was pretty clear, and Mr. Bradlaugh remarked: "The above letters make it quite obvious that Sir Henry W. Tyler, after failing to stop the science classes at the Hall of Science, and also failing to persuade Sir W. Vernon Harcourt to prosecute me and Mrs. Besant as editors and publishers of this journal, wants to make me personally and criminally responsible for the contents of a journal I neither edit nor publish, which I have no control over, and in which I have no interest. Why does Sir H.W. Tyler so desperately want to prosecute me for blasphemy? Is it because two convictions would, under the 9th and 10th Will. III. cap. 32, make me 'forever' unable to sit in Parliament?" The Whitehall Review openly stated this as a goal to achieve, and Mr. Bradlaugh was summoned to the Mansion House on a charge of publishing blasphemous libels in the Freethinker; meanwhile, Sir Henry Tyler issued a notice to remove "the daughters of Mr. Charles Bradlaugh" from the grant they earned as science teachers, and got a ruling, which turned out to be invalid, to inspect Mr. Bradlaugh's and my own private bank accounts, although I was not involved in the case. Looking back, I’m amazed at the incredible pettiness that Sir Henry Tyler and others displayed in defense of "religion"—Heaven help us! Let me add that his motion in the House of Commons was a complete failure, especially highlighted by the concurrent release of the successful achievements of "the daughters of Mr. Charles Bradlaugh" as teachers and students, and the fact that I was the only student in all of England who had managed to earn honors in botany.
I must pause a moment to chronicle, in September, 1882, the death of Dr. Pusey, whom I had sought in the whirl of my early religious struggles. I wrote an article on him in the National Reformer, and ended by laying a tribute on his grave: "A strong man and a good man. Utterly out of harmony with the spirit of his own time, looking with sternly-rebuking eyes on all the eager research, the joyous love of nature, the earnest inquiry into a world doomed to be burnt up at the coming of its Judge. An ascetic, pure in life, stern in faith, harsh to unbelievers because sincere in his own cruel creed, generous and tender to all who accepted his doctrines and submitted to his Church. He never stooped to slander those with whom he disagreed. His hatred of heresy led him not to blacken the character of heretics, nor to descend to the vulgar abuse used by pettier priests. And therefore I, who honour courage and sincerity wherever I find them; I, who do homage to steadfastness wherever I find it; I, Atheist, lay my small tribute of respect on the bier of this noblest of the Anglo-Catholics, Edward Bouverie Pusey."
I need to take a moment to remember that in September 1882, Dr. Pusey passed away, a man I sought out during my early religious struggles. I wrote an article about him for the National Reformer and concluded with a tribute on his grave: "A strong man and a good man. Completely out of sync with the spirit of his time, he looked with a stern gaze at all the eager research, the joyful love of nature, and the serious inquiry into a world doomed to be destroyed at the coming of its Judge. An ascetic, pure in life, firm in faith, and harsh to nonbelievers because he was sincere in his own harsh beliefs, yet generous and kind to everyone who accepted his teachings and joined his Church. He never resorted to slandering those he disagreed with. His opposition to heresy didn’t lead him to tarnish the reputations of heretics or to the petty insults used by lesser priests. And so, I, who respect courage and sincerity wherever I find them; I, who pay tribute to steadfastness wherever it is present; I, an Atheist, offer my small tribute of respect at the funeral of this noblest of Anglo-Catholics, Edward Bouverie Pusey."
As a practical answer to the numberless attacks made on us, and as a result of the enormous increase of circulation given to our theological and political writings by these harassing persecutions, we moved our publishing business to 63, Fleet Street, at the end of September, 1882, a shop facing that at which Richard Carlile had carried on his publishing business for a great time, and so seemed still redolent with memories of his gallant struggles. Two of the first things sold here were a pamphlet of mine, a strong protest against our shameful Egyptian policy, and a critical volume on "Genesis" which Mr. Bradlaugh found time to write in the intervals of his busy life. Here I worked daily, save when out of London, until Mr. Bradlaugh's death in 1891, assisted in the conduct of the business by Mr. Bradlaugh's elder daughter—a woman of strong character with many noble qualities, who died rather suddenly in December, 1888, and in the work on the National Reformer, first by Dr. Aveling, and then by Mr. John Robertson, its present editor. Here, too, from 1884 onwards, worked with me Thornton Smith, one of Mr. Bradlaugh's most devoted disciples, who became one of the leading speakers of the National Secular Society; like her well-loved chief, she was ever a good friend and a good fighter, and to me the most loyal and loving of colleagues, one of the few—the very few—Freethinkers who were large-hearted and generous enough not to turn against me when I became a Theosophist. A second of these—alas! I could count them on my fingers—was the John Robertson above mentioned, a man of rare ability and wide culture, somewhat too scholarly for popular propagandism of the most generally effective order, but a man who is a strength to any movement, always on the side of noble living and high thinking, loyal-natured as the true Scot should be, incapable of meanness or treachery, and the most genial and generous of friends.
As a practical response to the countless attacks against us, and due to the significant increase in circulation of our theological and political writings from these relentless persecutions, we moved our publishing business to 63 Fleet Street at the end of September 1882. This location was across from where Richard Carlile had operated his publishing business for quite some time, and it still felt filled with memories of his courageous struggles. Two of the first items sold here were a pamphlet I wrote, strongly protesting our disgraceful Egyptian policy, and a critical book on "Genesis" that Mr. Bradlaugh managed to write in between his busy life. I worked here daily, except when I was out of London, until Mr. Bradlaugh's passing in 1891, assisted by Mr. Bradlaugh's eldest daughter—a strong-willed woman with many admirable qualities, who died unexpectedly in December 1888—and in the operations of the National Reformer, first by Dr. Aveling, and then by Mr. John Robertson, its current editor. From 1884 onwards, Thornton Smith, one of Mr. Bradlaugh's most devoted followers, worked alongside me. She became a leading speaker for the National Secular Society; like her dearly respected leader, she was always a good friend and a fierce advocate, and to me, she was the most loyal and caring colleague—one of the very few Freethinkers who were generous enough not to turn against me when I became a Theosophist. The other was John Robertson, as previously mentioned—a man of exceptional talent and broad education, perhaps a bit too academic for popular advocacy, but a person who strengthened any cause, always promoting noble living and high thinking, loyal as any true Scot should be, incapable of pettiness or betrayal, and the most kind and generous of friends.
Among the new literary ventures that followed on our taking the large publishing premises in Fleet Street was a sixpenny magazine, edited by myself, and entitled Our Corner; its first number was dated January, 1883, and for six years it appeared regularly, and served me as a useful mouthpiece in my Socialist and Labour propagandist work. Among its contributors were Moncure D. Conway, Professor Ludwig Büchner, Yves Guyot, Professor Ernst Haeckel, G. Bernard Shaw, Constance Naden, Dr. Aveling, J.H. Levy, J.L. Joynes, Mrs. Edgren, John Robertson, and many another, Charles Bradlaugh and I writing regularly each month.
Among the new literary projects that started when we moved into the large publishing space on Fleet Street was a sixpenny magazine that I edited, called Our Corner; its first issue was published in January 1883, and for six years it came out regularly, serving as a helpful platform for my Socialist and Labour advocacy work. The magazine featured contributions from Moncure D. Conway, Professor Ludwig Büchner, Yves Guyot, Professor Ernst Haeckel, G. Bernard Shaw, Constance Naden, Dr. Aveling, J.H. Levy, J.L. Joynes, Mrs. Edgren, John Robertson, and many others, with Charles Bradlaugh and me writing regularly each month.
1883 broke stormily, fights on every hand, and a huge constitutional agitation going on in the country, which forced the Government into bringing in an Affirmation Bill; resolutions from Liberal Associations all over the land; preparations to oppose the re-election of disloyal members; no less than a thousand delegates sent up to London by clubs, Trade Unions, associations of every sort; a meeting that packed Trafalgar Square; an uneasy crowd in Westminster Hall; a request from Inspector Denning that Mr. Bradlaugh would go out to them—they feared for his safety inside; a word from him, "The Government have pledged themselves to bring in an Affirmation Bill at once;" roar after roar of cheering; a veritable people's victory on that 15th of February, 1883. It was the answer of the country to the appeal for justice, the rebuke of the electors to the House that had defied them.
1883 began with a storm, with fights everywhere and a massive push for constitutional change happening across the country, which pressured the government to introduce an Affirmation Bill. There were resolutions from Liberal Associations nationwide and plans to oppose the re-election of disloyal members. Clubs, Trade Unions, and various associations sent nearly a thousand delegates to London, leading to a meeting that packed Trafalgar Square and an anxious crowd in Westminster Hall. Inspector Denning requested that Mr. Bradlaugh come outside to them because they were worried for his safety inside. He responded, "The Government have pledged themselves to bring in an Affirmation Bill at once," which was met with roaring cheers. It was a true victory for the people on February 15, 1883. It showed the country’s response to the call for justice, a rebuke from the voters to the House that had defied them.
Scarcely was this over when a second prosecution for blasphemy against Messrs. Foote, Ramsey, and Kemp began, and was hurried on in the Central Criminal Court, before Mr. Justice North, a bigot of the sternest type. The trial ended in a disagreement of the jury, Mr. Foote defending himself in a splendid speech. The judge acted very harshly throughout, interrupted Mr. Foote continuously, and even refused bail to the defendants during the interval between the first and second trial; they were, therefore, confined in Newgate from Thursday to Monday, and we were only allowed to see them through iron bars and lattice, as they exercised in the prison yard between 8:30 and 9:30 a.m. Brought up to trial again on Monday, they were convicted, and Mr. Foote was sentenced to a year's imprisonment, Mr. Ramsey to nine months, and Mr. Kemp to three months. Mr. Foote especially behaved with great dignity and courage in a most difficult position, and heard his cruel sentence without wincing, and with the calm words, "My Lord, I thank you; it is worthy your creed." A few of us at once stepped in, to preserve to Mr. Ramsey his shop, and to Mr. Foote his literary property; Dr. Aveling undertook the editing of the Freethinker and of Mr. Foote's magazine Progress; the immediate necessities of their families were seen to; Mr. and Mrs. Forder took charge of the shop, and within a few days all was in working order. Disapproving as many of us did of the policy of the paper, there was no time to think of that when a blasphemy prosecution had proved successful, and we all closed up in the support of men imprisoned for conscience' sake. I commenced a series of articles on "The Christian Creed; what it is blasphemy to deny," showing what Christians must believe under peril of prosecution. Everywhere a tremendous impulse was given to the Freethought movement, as men awakened to the knowledge that blasphemy laws were not obsolete.
As soon as that was over, a second trial for blasphemy against Messrs. Foote, Ramsey, and Kemp started, and it was rushed through the Central Criminal Court in front of Mr. Justice North, a judge with a very rigid mindset. The trial ended with the jury deadlocked, with Mr. Foote representing himself in a brilliant speech. The judge was extremely harsh throughout, interrupting Mr. Foote repeatedly and even denying bail to the defendants between the first and second trials; as a result, they were held in Newgate from Thursday to Monday, and we could only see them through iron bars and lattice while they exercised in the prison yard between 8:30 and 9:30 a.m. When they were brought to trial again on Monday, they were found guilty, and Mr. Foote was sentenced to a year in prison, Mr. Ramsey to nine months, and Mr. Kemp to three months. Mr. Foote displayed remarkable dignity and courage in such a tough situation, accepting his harsh sentence without flinching, saying calmly, "My Lord, I thank you; it is worthy your creed." A few of us immediately stepped in to help Mr. Ramsey keep his shop and Mr. Foote retain his literary property; Dr. Aveling took on the editing of the Freethinker and Mr. Foote's magazine Progress; we made sure the immediate needs of their families were addressed; Mr. and Mrs. Forder took over the shop, and within a few days, everything was up and running again. Although many of us disagreed with the paper's policies, there was no time to dwell on that when a blasphemy prosecution had succeeded, and we all united to support men imprisoned for their beliefs. I began writing a series of articles titled "The Christian Creed: What It Is Blasphemy to Deny," outlining what Christians must believe to avoid prosecution. A tremendous surge of momentum was generated for the Freethought movement as people realized that blasphemy laws were still very much alive.
From over the sea came a word of sympathy from the pen of H.P. Blavatsky in the Theosophist. "We prefer Mr. Foote's actual position to that of his severe judge. Aye, and were we in his guilty skin, we would feel more proud, even in the poor editor's present position, than we would under the wig of Mr. Justice North."
From across the sea, a message of sympathy came from H.P. Blavatsky in the Theosophist. "We prefer Mr. Foote's actual situation over that of his harsh critic. Yes, if we were in his shoes, we would feel prouder, even in the poor editor's current position, than we would under the wig of Mr. Justice North."
In April, 1883, the long legal struggles of Mr. Bradlaugh against Mr. Newdegate and his common informer, that had lasted from July 2, 1880, till April 9, 1883, ended in his complete victory by the judgment of the House of Lords in his favour. "Court after Court decided against me," he wrote; "and Whig and Tory journals alike mocked at me for my persistent resistance. Even some good friends thought that my fight was hopeless, and that the bigots held me fast in their toils. I have, however, at last shaken myself free of Mr. Newdegate and his common informer. The judgment of the House of Lords in my favour is final and conclusive, and the boasts of the Tories that I should be made bankrupt for the penalties, have now, for ever, come to naught. Yet but for the many poor folk who have stood by me with their help and sympathy, I should have long since been ruined. The days and weeks spent in the Law Courts, the harassing work connected with each stage of litigation, the watching daily when each hearing was imminent, the absolute hindrance of all provincial lecturing—it is hardly possible for any one to judge the terrible mental and pecuniary strain of all this long-drawn-out struggle." Aye! it killed him at last, twenty years before his time, sapping his splendid vitality, undermining his iron constitution.
In April 1883, the long legal battles of Mr. Bradlaugh against Mr. Newdegate and his common informer, which had started on July 2, 1880, and continued until April 9, 1883, ended in his complete victory thanks to the judgment of the House of Lords in his favor. "Court after court decided against me," he wrote; "and both Whig and Tory newspapers mocked me for my relentless resistance. Even some good friends believed my fight was hopeless, and that the bigots had me trapped. However, I have finally freed myself from Mr. Newdegate and his common informer. The judgment of the House of Lords in my favor is final and definitive, and the boasts of the Tories that I would be made bankrupt due to the penalties have come to nothing. Yet without the many poor people who stood by me with their support and sympathy, I would have been ruined long ago. The days and weeks spent in the law courts, the exhausting work tied to each stage of litigation, the daily stress leading up to each hearing, and the complete hindrance of all my provincial lectures—it's nearly impossible for anyone to comprehend the incredible mental and financial strain of this prolonged struggle." Indeed! It ultimately took a toll on him, twenty years before his time, draining his amazing vitality and undermining his strong constitution.
The blasphemy trial of Mr. Bradlaugh, Mr. Foote, and Mr. Ramsey now came on, but this time in the Queen's Bench, before the Lord Chief Justice Coleridge. I had the honour of sitting between Mr. Bradlaugh and Mr. Foote, charged with the duty of having ready for the former all his references, and with a duplicate brief to mark off point after point as he dealt with it. Messrs. Foote and Ramsey were brought up in custody, but were brave and bright with courage unbroken. Mr. Bradlaugh applied to have his case taken separately, as he denied responsibility for the paper, and the judge granted the application; it was clearly proved that he and I—the "Freethought Publishing Company"—had never had anything to do with the production of the paper; that until November, 1881, we published it, and then refused to publish it any longer; that the reason for the refusal was the addition of comic Bible illustrations as a feature of the paper. I was called as witness and began with a difficulty; claiming to affirm, I was asked by the judge if the oath would not be binding on my conscience; I answered that any promise was binding on me whatever the form, and after some little argument the judge found a way out of the insulting form by asking whether the "invocation of the Deity added anything to it of a binding nature—added any sanction?" "None, my Lord," was the prompt reply, and I was allowed to affirm. Sir Hardinge Giffard subjected me to a very stringent cross-examination, doing his best to entangle me, but the perfect frankness of my answers broke all his weapons of finesse and inuendo.
The blasphemy trial of Mr. Bradlaugh, Mr. Foote, and Mr. Ramsey was now underway, this time in the Queen's Bench, before Lord Chief Justice Coleridge. I had the honor of sitting between Mr. Bradlaugh and Mr. Foote, responsible for having all of Mr. Bradlaugh’s references ready and a duplicate brief to mark off points as he addressed them. Messrs. Foote and Ramsey were brought in while in custody, but they remained brave and resilient. Mr. Bradlaugh requested to have his case heard separately, as he denied responsibility for the publication, and the judge granted this request; it was clearly established that he and I—the "Freethought Publishing Company"—had nothing to do with producing the publication; that until November 1881, we were its publishers, and then we decided not to publish it anymore because they had included comic Bible illustrations as a feature. I was called as a witness and faced a challenge; when asked to affirm, the judge wanted to know if the oath would be binding on my conscience. I replied that any promise was binding on me, regardless of its form, and after a bit of debate, the judge found a way around the awkward phrasing by asking if the "invocation of the Deity added anything binding or provided any sanction?" "None, my Lord," I promptly replied, and I was permitted to affirm. Sir Hardinge Giffard subjected me to a very tough cross-examination, trying his best to trap me, but the transparency of my answers dismantled all his attempts at manipulation and innuendo.
Some of the incidents of the trial were curious; Sir Hardinge Giffard's opening speech was very able and very unscrupulous. All facts in Mr. Bradlaugh's favour were distorted or hidden; anything that could be used against him was tricked out in most seductive fashion. Among the many monstrous perversions of the truth made by this most pious counsel, was the statement that changes of publisher, and of registration of the Freethinker were made in consequence of a question as to prosecuting it put in the House of Commons. The change of publisher was admittedly made in November; the registration was made for the first time in November, and could not be changed, as there was no previous one. The House of Commons was not sitting in November; the question alluded to was asked in the following February. This one deliberate lie of the "defender of the faith" will do as well as quoting a score of others to show how wickedly and maliciously he endeavoured to secure an unjust verdict.
Some of the events in the trial were strange; Sir Hardinge Giffard's opening speech was very skilled and very ruthless. Any facts that supported Mr. Bradlaugh were either twisted or concealed; anything that could be used against him was presented in the most appealing way. Among the many outrageous distortions of the truth made by this so-called pious lawyer was the claim that changes of publisher and the registration of the Freethinker occurred because of a question about prosecuting it raised in the House of Commons. The change of publisher was clearly made in November; the registration was done for the first time in November and couldn’t be changed since there was no prior one. The House of Commons wasn't in session in November; the question referred to was asked the following February. This one blatant lie from the "defender of the faith" is enough to illustrate the many ways he maliciously tried to secure an unfair verdict.
The speech over, a number of witnesses were called. Sir Hardinge did not call witnesses who knew the facts, such as Mr. Norrish, the shopman, or Mr. Whittle, the printer. These he carefully avoided, although he subpoenaed both, because he did not want the real facts to come out. But he put in two solicitor's clerks, who had been hanging about the premises, and buying endless National Reformers and Freethinkers, sheaves of them which were never used, but by which Sir Hardinge hoped to convey the impression of a mass of criminality. He put in a gentleman from the British Museum, who produced two large books, presumed to be National Reformers and Freethinkers; what they were brought for nobody understood, the counsel for the Crown as little as any one, and the judge, surveying them over his spectacles, treated them with supreme contempt, as utterly irrelevant. Then a man came to prove that Mr. Bradlaugh was rated for Stonecutter Street, a fact no one disputed. Two policemen came to say they had seen him go in. "You saw many people go in, I suppose?" queried the Lord Chief Justice. On the whole the most miserably weak and obviously malicious case that could be brought into a court of law.
The speech finished, several witnesses were called. Sir Hardinge didn't call witnesses who actually knew the facts, like Mr. Norrish, the shopkeeper, or Mr. Whittle, the printer. He carefully avoided them, even though he subpoenaed both, because he didn’t want the real facts to come out. Instead, he brought in two solicitors' clerks who had been hanging around the premises, buying endless copies of National Reformers and Freethinkers, stacks of them that were never used, but which Sir Hardinge hoped would suggest a lot of wrongdoing. He also called a man from the British Museum who brought two large books, supposedly National Reformers and Freethinkers; nobody understood why they were brought in, not even the Crown's counsel, and the judge, looking at them over his glasses, dismissed them with complete disdain as totally irrelevant. Then a man came to confirm that Mr. Bradlaugh was registered for Stonecutter Street, a fact that was not disputed. Two policemen testified that they had seen him enter. "You saw many people go in, I suppose?" asked the Lord Chief Justice. Overall, it was the most weak and obviously spiteful case that could be presented in a court of law.
One witness, however, must not be forgotten—Mr. Woodhams, bank manager. When he stated that Mr. Maloney, the junior counsel for the Crown, had inspected Mr. Bradlaugh's banking account, a murmur of surprise and indignation ran round the court. "Oh! Oh!" was heard from the crowd of barristers behind. The judge looked down incredulously, and for a moment the examination was stopped by the general movement. Unless Sir Hardinge Giffard is a splendid actor, he was not aware of the infamous proceeding, for he looked as startled as the rest of his legal brethren.
One witness, however, shouldn't be overlooked—Mr. Woodhams, the bank manager. When he revealed that Mr. Maloney, the junior counsel for the Crown, had looked into Mr. Bradlaugh's bank account, a murmur of surprise and outrage spread through the court. "Oh! Oh!" could be heard from the group of barristers behind. The judge looked down in disbelief, and for a moment, the examination paused due to the general commotion. Unless Sir Hardinge Giffard is an amazing actor, he wasn't aware of the shocking action, as he looked just as stunned as the rest of his legal colleagues.
Another queer incident occurred, showing, perhaps more than aught else, Mr. Bradlaugh's swift perception of the situation and adaptation to the environment. He wanted to read the Mansion House deposition of Norrish, to show why he was not called; the judge objected, and declined to allow it to be read. A pause while you might count five; then; "Well, I think I may say the learned counsel did not call Norrish because ..." and then the whole substance of the deposition was given in supposititious form. The judge looked down a minute, and then went off into silent laughter impossible to control at the adroit change of means and persistent gaining of end; barristers all round broke into ripples of laughter unrestrained; a broad smile pervaded the jury box; the only unmoved person was the defendant who proceeded in his grave statement as to what Norrish "might" have been asked. The nature of the defence was very clearly stated by Mr. Bradlaugh: "I shall ask you to find that this prosecution is one of the steps in a vindictive attempt to oppress and to crush a political opponent—that it was a struggle that commenced on my return to Parliament in 1880. If the prosecutor had gone into the box I should have shown you that he was one of the first then in the House to use the suggestion of blasphemy against me there. Since then I have never had any peace until the Monday of this week. Writs for penalties have been served, and suits of all kinds have been taken against me. On Monday last the House of Lords cleared me from the whole of one set, and, gentlemen, I ask you to-day to clear me from another. Three times I have been re-elected by my constituents, and what Sir Henry Tyler asks you to do is to send me to them branded with the dishonour of a conviction, branded not with the conviction for publishing heresy, but branded with the conviction, dishonourable to me, of having lied in this matter. I have no desire to have a prison's walls closed on me, but I would sooner ten times that, than that my constituents should think that for one moment I lied to escape the penalties. I am not indicted for anything I have ever written or caused to be written. As my Lord at the very first stage this morning pointed out, it is no question with me, Are the matters indicted blasphemous, or are they not blasphemous? Are they defensible, or are they not defensible? That is not my duty here. On this I make no comment. I have no duty here of even discussing the policy of the blasphemy laws, although I cannot help thinking that, if I were here making my defence against them, I might say that they were bad laws unfairly revived, doing more mischief to those who revive them than to those whom they are revived against. But it is not for anything I have said myself; it is not for anything I have written myself; it is not for anything I have published myself. It is an endeavour to make me technically liable for a publication with which I have nothing whatever to do, and I will ask you to defeat that here. Every time I have succeeded I have been met with some new thing. When I first fought it was hoped to defeat my election. When I was re-elected it was sought to make me bankrupt by enormous penalties, and when I escaped the suit for enormous penalties they hope now to destroy me by this. I have no question here about defending my heresy, not because I am not ready to defend it when it is challenged in the right way, and it there be anything in it that the law can challenge. I have never gone back from anything I have ever said; I have never gone back from anything I have ever written; I have never gone back from anything I have ever done; and I ask you not to allow this Sir Henry Whatley Tyler, who dares not come here to-day, to use you as the assassin uses the dagger, to stab a man from behind whom he never dares to face."
Another strange incident occurred, highlighting, perhaps more than anything else, Mr. Bradlaugh's quick grasp of the situation and his ability to adjust to the environment. He wanted to read the Mansion House deposition of Norrish to explain why he wasn’t called; the judge objected and refused to allow it to be read. There was a brief pause—you could count to five; then he said, “Well, I think I may say that the learned counsel didn’t call Norrish because…” and then he presented the entire substance of the deposition in a hypothetical way. The judge looked down for a moment, then erupted into uncontrollable silent laughter at the clever maneuver and the persistent achievement of the goal; barristers all around broke into fits of unrestrained laughter; a broad smile spread across the jury box; the only person who remained unmoved was the defendant, who continued in his serious statement about what Norrish “might” have been asked. Mr. Bradlaugh clearly stated the nature of the defense: “I will ask you to find that this prosecution is part of a vindictive attempt to oppress and crush a political opponent—that it is a struggle that began when I returned to Parliament in 1880. If the prosecutor had taken the stand, I would have shown you that he was one of the first in the House to suggest blasphemy against me there. Since then I have had no peace until this past Monday. Writs for penalties have been served, and all sorts of lawsuits have been launched against me. Last Monday, the House of Lords cleared me of one set, and today, gentlemen, I ask you to clear me of another. I have been re-elected three times by my constituents, and what Sir Henry Tyler is asking you to do is to send me back to them branded with the disgrace of a conviction—a conviction not for publishing heresy, but for the dishonor of having lied in this matter. I don’t want to have prison walls closed around me, but I would rather endure that ten times over than have my constituents think for even a moment that I lied to escape punishment. I am not indicted for anything I have ever written or caused to be written. As my Lord pointed out at the very beginning this morning, my question is not whether the charged matters are blasphemous or not, or whether they are defensible. That is not my responsibility here. I make no comments on this. I have no duty to even discuss the blasphemy laws, though I can’t help thinking that if I were defending myself against them, I might argue they are bad laws unfairly revived, causing more harm to those who revive them than to those targeted by them. But it’s not for anything I have said myself; it’s not for anything I have written or published myself. This is an attempt to make me technically liable for a publication that I have nothing to do with, and I ask you to defeat that here. Every time I have succeeded, I’ve faced something new. When I first fought, they hoped to defeat my election. When I was re-elected, they tried to make me bankrupt through enormous penalties, and when I escaped that lawsuit, they now hope to destroy me this way. I have no intention of defending my heresy here, not because I wouldn’t defend it in the right context, if there’s anything in it that the law can challenge. I have never backed down from anything I’ve ever said, I have never gone back on anything I’ve ever written, I have never retreated from anything I’ve ever done; and I ask you not to let this Sir Henry Whatley Tyler, who dares not come here today, use you like an assassin uses a dagger, to stab a man from behind whom he never dares to confront.”
The summing up by Lord Coleridge was perfect in eloquence, in thought, in feeling. Nothing more touching could be imagined than the conflict between the real religious feeling, abhorrent of heresy, and the determination to be just, despite all prejudice. The earnest effort lest the prejudice he felt as a Christian should weigh also in the minds of the jury, and should cause them to pervert justice. The absolute pleading to them to do what was right and not to admit against the unbeliever what they would not admit in ordinary cases. Then the protest against prosecution of opinions; the admission of the difficulties in the Hebrew Scriptures, and the pathetic fear lest by persecution "the sacred truths might be struck through the sides of those who are their enemies." For intellectual clearness and moral elevation this exquisite piece of eloquence, delivered in a voice of silvery beauty, would be hard to excel, and Lord Coleridge did this piece of service to the religion so dear to his heart, that he showed that a Christian judge could be just and righteous in dealing with a foe of his creed.
The summary by Lord Coleridge was incredibly eloquent, insightful, and full of emotion. Nothing could be more moving than the struggle between genuine religious conviction, which rejects heresy, and the commitment to be fair, despite personal biases. He made a sincere effort to prevent his Christian prejudices from influencing the jury and leading them to misapply justice. He earnestly urged them to do what was right and not to consider evidence against the unbeliever that they wouldn't accept in typical cases. He protested against prosecuting beliefs; acknowledged the challenges in the Hebrew Scriptures; and expressed a heartfelt concern that by persecuting others, “the sacred truths might be struck through the sides of those who are their enemies.” For intellectual clarity and moral integrity, this beautiful piece of eloquence, delivered in a voice of silver-like charm, would be hard to beat, and Lord Coleridge contributed this service to the faith he cherished by demonstrating that a Christian judge could be fair and honorable when addressing an opponent of his beliefs.
There was a time of terrible strain waiting for the verdict, and when at last it came, "Not Guilty," a sharp clap of applause hailed it, sternly and rightly reproved by the judge. It was echoed by the country, which almost unanimously condemned the prosecution as an iniquitous attempt on the part of Mr. Bradlaugh's political enemies to put a stop to his political career. Thus the Pall Mall Gazette wrote:—
There was a time of great tension waiting for the verdict, and when it finally arrived, "Not Guilty," a loud wave of applause erupted, only to be sternly and rightly silenced by the judge. It was mirrored by the nation, which almost universally criticized the prosecution as an unfair attempt by Mr. Bradlaugh's political opponents to end his career. Thus the Pall Mall Gazette wrote:—
"Whatever may be the personal or political or religious aversion which is excited by Mr. Bradlaugh, it is impossible for even his bitterest opponents to deny the brilliance of the series of victories which he has won in the law courts. His acquittal in the blasphemy prosecution of Saturday was but the latest of a number of encounters in which he has succeeded in turning the tables upon his opponents in the most decisive fashion. The policy of baiting Mr. Bradlaugh which has been persisted in so long, savours so strongly of a petty and malignant species of persecution that it is well that those who indulge in it should be made to smart for their pains. The wise and weighty words used by the Lord Chief Justice in summing up should be taken seriously to heart: 'Those persons are to be deprecated who would pervert the law, even with the best intentions, and "do evil that good may come, whose damnation" (says the apostle) "is just."' Without emulating the severity of the apostle, we may say that it is satisfactory that the promoters of all these prosecutions should be condemned in costs."
"Whatever personal, political, or religious dislike people have toward Mr. Bradlaugh, even his harshest critics can't deny the impressive series of victories he has achieved in court. His recent acquittal in the blasphemy case was just the latest in a string of battles where he successfully turned the tide against his adversaries. The ongoing harassment of Mr. Bradlaugh has become such a blatant form of petty and malicious persecution that it’s fitting for those who engage in it to face consequences. The wise and significant comments made by the Lord Chief Justice during his summation should be taken to heart: 'Those people who would twist the law, even with the best intentions, and "do evil that good may come," whose damnation' (as the apostle says) 'is just.' Without needing to echo the severity of the apostle, it's reassuring that those responsible for these prosecutions are burdened with legal costs."
In the separate trial of Messrs. Foote and Ramsey, Mr. Foote again defended himself in a speech of marked ability, and spoken of by the judge as "very striking." Lord Coleridge made a noble charge to the jury, in which he strongly condemned prosecutions of unpopular opinions, pointing out that no prosecution short of extermination could be effective, and caustically remarking on the very easy form of virtue indulged in by persecutors. "As a general rule," he said, "persecution, unless far more extreme than in England in the nineteenth century is possible, is certain to be in vain. It is also true, and I cannot help assenting to it, that it is a very easy form of virtue. It is a more difficult form of virtue, quietly and unostentatiously to obey what we believe to be God's will in our own lives. It is not very easy to do it; and it makes much less noise in the world. It is very easy to turn upon somebody else who differs from us, and in the guise of zeal of God's honour to attack somebody of a difference of opinion, whose life may be more pleasing to God and more conducive to His honour than our own. And when it is done by persons whose own lives are not free from reproach and who take that particular form of zeal for God which consists in putting the criminal law in force against others, that, no doubt, does more to create a sympathy with the defendant than with the prosecutor. And if it should be done by those who enjoy the wit of Voltaire, and who do not turn away from the sneers of Gibbon, and rather relish the irony of Hume, our feelings do not go with the prosecutors, and we are rather disposed to sympathise with the defendant. It is still worse if the person who takes such a course takes it, not from a kind of notion that God wants his assistance, and that he can give it less on his own account than by prosecuting others—but it is mixed up with anything of partisan or political feeling, then nothing can be more foreign to what is high-minded, or religious, or noble, in men's conduct; and indeed, it seems to me that any one who will do that, not for the honour of God but for the purpose of the ban, deserves the most disdainful disapprobation."
In the separate trial of Messrs. Foote and Ramsey, Mr. Foote once again defended himself with a notably skilled speech, which the judge described as "very striking." Lord Coleridge delivered a powerful charge to the jury, strongly denouncing prosecutions of unpopular opinions. He pointed out that no prosecution short of complete eradication could be effective and wryly commented on the very easy version of virtue practiced by persecutors. "As a general rule," he said, "persecution, unless much more extreme than what we see in England in the nineteenth century, is usually destined to fail. It is also true, and I can't help but agree, that it is a very easy form of virtue. It’s much more challenging to quietly and unobtrusively follow what we believe to be God's will in our own lives. Doing so is not easy, and it creates far less noise in the world. It's very easy to turn on someone else who disagrees with us and, under the guise of zeal for God's honor, attack someone whose life may be more pleasing to God and more reflective of His honor than our own. When this is done by people whose lives aren't without fault and who engage in the sort of zeal for God that involves enforcing criminal law against others, it undoubtedly generates more sympathy for the defendant than for the prosecutor. If this is carried out by those who appreciate the wit of Voltaire, don't shy away from Gibbon's sneers, and enjoy Hume's irony, our sympathies tend to lie with the defendant, not the prosecutors. It becomes even worse if the person taking such action does so not because they believe God needs their help and can provide it better by prosecuting others, but because it's mixed with any kind of partisan or political sentiment. Then nothing could be further from what is honorable, religious, or noble in human conduct. Indeed, it seems to me that anyone who acts in this way, not for the honor of God but to impose a ban, deserves the utmost disdain."
The jury disagreed, and a nolle prosequi was entered. The net results of the trials were a large addition to the membership of the National Secular Society, an increase of circulation of Freethought literature, the raising of Mr. Foote for a time to a position of great influence and popularity, and the placing of his name in history as a brave martyr for liberty of speech. The offence against good taste will be forgotten; the loyalty to conviction and to courage will remain. History does not ask if men who suffered for heresy ever published a rough word; it asks, Were they brave in their steadfastness; were they faithful to the truth they saw? It may be well to place on record Mr. Foote's punishment for blasphemy: he spent twenty-two hours out of the twenty-four alone in his cell; his only seat was a stool without a back; his employment was picking matting; his bed was a plank with a thin mattress. During the latter part of his imprisonment he was allowed some books.
The jury didn't agree, and a nolle prosequi was filed. The outcome of the trials led to a significant increase in membership for the National Secular Society, a rise in the circulation of Freethought literature, a temporary boost for Mr. Foote to a position of considerable influence and popularity, and his recognition in history as a courageous martyr for freedom of speech. The offense against good taste will be forgotten; the commitment to conviction and courage will endure. History doesn't question whether those who suffered for heresy ever said something inappropriate; it asks, Were they brave in their steadfastness? Did they remain true to the truth they believed in? It is important to document Mr. Foote's punishment for blasphemy: he spent twenty-two hours out of the day alone in his cell; his only seating was a backless stool; his job was picking matting; his bed was a wooden plank with a thin mattress. Towards the end of his imprisonment, he was allowed some books.
CHAPTER XIII.
CHAPTER 13.
SOCIALISM.
The rest of 1883 passed in the usual way of hard work; the Affirmation Bill was rejected, and the agitation for Constitutional right grew steadily; the Liberal Press was won over, and Mr. Bradlaugh was beginning to earn golden opinions on all sides for his courage, his tenacity, and his self-control. A successful International Congress at Amsterdam took some of us over to the Northern Venice, where a most successful gathering was held. To me, personally, the year has a special interest, as being the one in which my attention was called, though only partially, to the Socialist movement. I had heard Louise Michelle lecture in the early spring; a brief controversy in the National Reformer had interested me, but I had not yet concerned myself with the economic basis of Socialism; I had realised that the land should be public property, but had not gone into the deeper economic causes of poverty, though the question was pressing with ever-increasing force on heart and brain. Of Socialist teaching I knew nothing, having studied only the older English Economists in my younger days. In 1884 a more definite call to consider 299 these teachings was to come, and I may perhaps open the record of 1884 with the words of greeting spoken by me to our readers in the first number of the Reformer for that year: "What tests 1884 may have for our courage, what strains on our endurance, what trials of our loyalty, none can tell. But this we know—that every test of courage successfully met, every strain of endurance steadily borne, every trial of loyalty nobly surmounted, leaves courage braver, endurance stronger, loyalty truer, than each was before. And therefore, for our own and for the world's sake, I will not wish you, friends, an 1884 in which there shall be no toil and no battling; but I will wish you, each and all, the hero's heart and the hero's patience, in the struggle for the world's raising that will endure through the coming year."
The rest of 1883 went by with the usual hard work; the Affirmation Bill was rejected, and the push for Constitutional rights grew steadily. The Liberal Press began to support us, and Mr. Bradlaugh was starting to gain widespread respect for his bravery, determination, and self-control. A successful International Congress in Amsterdam took some of us to the Northern Venice, where a very successful gathering took place. Personally, this year holds special significance for me because it was when I first started to pay attention, albeit only partially, to the Socialist movement. I had heard Louise Michel speak in the early spring; a brief debate in the National Reformer interested me, but I hadn't yet looked into the economic foundation of Socialism. I understood that land should be public property, but I hadn’t explored the deeper economic reasons for poverty, even though the issue was pressing more and more firmly on my heart and mind. I didn’t know anything about Socialist teachings, having only studied the older English Economists in my younger years. In 1884, a clearer call to explore these teachings was on the way, and I might start the record of 1884 with the greeting I addressed to our readers in the first issue of the Reformer that year: "What challenges 1884 may bring for our courage, what tests of our endurance, what trials of our loyalty, no one can say. But this we know—that every test of courage we face, every strain of endurance we bear, every trial of loyalty we overcome, makes our courage stronger, our endurance firmer, and our loyalty truer than before. Therefore, for our own sake and for the world's, I won't wish you, friends, an 1884 without toil and struggle; instead, I wish you all the heart of a hero and the patience of a hero in the fight for a better world throughout the coming year."
On February 3rd I came for the first time across a paper called Justice, in which Mr. Bradlaugh was attacked, and which gave an account of a meeting of the Democratic Federation—not yet the Social Democratic—in which a man had, apparently unrebuked, said that "all means were justifiable to attain" working-class ends. I protested strongly against the advocacy of criminal means, declaring that those who urged the use of such means were the worst foes of social progress. A few weeks later the Echo repeated a speech of Mr. Hyndman's in which a "bloodier revolution" than that of France was prophesied, and the extinction of "book-learning" seemed coupled with the success of Socialism, and this again I commented on. But I had the pleasure, a week later, of reprinting from Justice a sensible paragraph, condemning the advocacy of violence so long as free agitation was allowed.
On February 3rd, I came across a paper called Justice, which criticized Mr. Bradlaugh and reported on a meeting of the Democratic Federation—not yet the Social Democratic—where someone apparently went unchallenged saying that "all means were justifiable to achieve" working-class goals. I strongly opposed the idea of using illegal methods, stating that those who promoted such means were actually the biggest enemies of social progress. A few weeks later, the Echo published a speech by Mr. Hyndman predicting a "bloodier revolution" than that of France, suggesting that the end of "book-learning" was linked to the success of Socialism, which I also commented on. However, I was pleased, a week later, to reprint from Justice a sensible paragraph condemning the promotion of violence as long as free expression was allowed.
The spring was marked by two events on which I have not time or space to dwell—the resignation by Mr. Bradlaugh of his seat, on the reiteration of the resolution of exclusion, and his triumphant return for the fourth time by an increased majority, a vote of 4,032, a higher poll than that of the general election; and the release of Mr. Foote, on February 25th, from Holloway, whence he was escorted by a procession a quarter of a mile in length. On the 12th of March he and his fellow-prisoners received a magnificent reception and were presented with valuable testimonials at the Hall of Science.
The spring was marked by two events that I don't have time or space to go into—the resignation of Mr. Bradlaugh from his seat after the decision to exclude him was reiterated, and his triumphant return for the fourth time with an increased majority, a vote of 4,032, which was a higher turnout than the general election; and the release of Mr. Foote on February 25th from Holloway, where he was escorted by a procession a quarter of a mile long. On March 12th, he and his fellow prisoners received a grand welcome and were presented with valuable gifts at the Hall of Science.
Taking up again the thread of Socialism, the great debate in St. James's Hall, London, between Mr. Bradlaugh and Mr. Hyndman on April 17th, roused me to a serious study of the questions raised. Socialism has in England no more devoted, no more self-sacrificing advocate than Henry Hyndman. A man of wide and deep reading, wielding most ably a singularly fascinating pen, with talents that would have made him wealthy in any career he adopted, he has sacrificed himself without a murmur to the people's cause. He has borne obloquy from without, suspicion and unkindness from those he served, and surrounded by temptations to betray the people, he has never swerved from his integrity. He has said rash things, has been stirred to passionate outbursts and reckless phrases, but love to the people and sympathy with suffering lay at the root of his wildest words, and they count but little as against his faithful service. Personally, my debt to him is of a mixed character; he kept me from Socialism for some time by his bitter and very unjust antagonism to Mr. Bradlaugh; but it was the debate at St. James's Hall that, while I angrily resented his injustice, made me feel that there was something more in practical Socialism than I had imagined, especially when I read it over afterwards, away from the magic of Mr. Bradlaugh's commanding eloquence and personal magnetism. It was a sore pity that English Socialists, from the outset of their movement, treated Mr. Bradlaugh so unfairly, so that his friends were set against Socialists ere they began to examine their arguments. I must confess that my deep attachment to him led me into injustice to his Socialist foes in those early days, and often made me ascribe to them calculated malignity instead of hasty and prejudiced assertion. Added to this, their uncurbed violence in discussion, their constant interruptions during the speeches of opponents, their reckless inaccuracy in matters of fact, were all bars standing in the way of the thoughtful. When I came to know them better, I found that the bulk of their speakers were very young men, overworked and underpaid, who spent their scanty leisure in efforts to learn, to educate themselves, to train themselves, and I learned to pardon faults which grew out of the bitter sense of injustice, and which were due largely to the terrible pressure of our system on characters not yet strong enough—how few are strong enough!—to bear grinding injustice without loss of balance and of impartiality. None save those who have worked with them know how much of real nobility, of heroic self-sacrifice, of constant self-denial, of brotherly affection, there is among the Social Democrats.
Picking up the thread of Socialism, the intense debate at St. James's Hall in London between Mr. Bradlaugh and Mr. Hyndman on April 17th pushed me to seriously study the issues raised. In England, there is no more dedicated or selfless supporter of Socialism than Henry Hyndman. A man of extensive and deep knowledge, he skillfully wields a particularly captivating pen, with talents that could have made him wealthy in any career he chose; he has devoted himself entirely to the people's cause without a complaint. He has faced criticism from outsiders, suspicion and unkindness from those he helped, and despite facing temptations to betray the people, he has never strayed from his principles. He has made rash statements, been driven to passionate outbursts and reckless remarks, but his love for the people and compassion for the suffering are at the core of his wildest comments, which count little compared to his faithful service. Personally, my feelings toward him are mixed; he kept me away from Socialism for a while because of his harsh and unjust opposition to Mr. Bradlaugh, but it was the debate at St. James's Hall that, while I angrily resented his unfairness, made me realize there was more to practical Socialism than I had thought, especially when I revisited it later, away from the influence of Mr. Bradlaugh's commanding speech and personal charm. It was truly unfortunate that English Socialists treated Mr. Bradlaugh so unfairly from the beginning of their movement, leading his friends to oppose Socialists before they even considered their arguments. I must admit that my strong loyalty to him caused me to be unjust to his Socialist opponents early on, often making me label their actions as calculated malice instead of hasty and biased statements. Additionally, their uncontrolled aggression during discussions, constant interruptions when opponents spoke, and reckless inaccuracies were all barriers preventing thoughtful engagement. As I got to know them better, I discovered that most of their speakers were very young men, overworked and underpaid, who spent their limited free time trying to learn, educate themselves, and develop their skills. I learned to forgive the faults that arose from their deep sense of injustice, largely caused by the immense pressure our system places on individuals whose characters are not strong enough—how few are strong enough!—to endure harsh injustice without losing their balance and objectivity. Only those who have worked alongside them truly understand the real nobility, heroic self-sacrifice, constant self-denial, and brotherly love among the Social Democrats.
At this time also I met George Bernard Shaw, one of the most brilliant of Socialist writers and most provoking of men; a man with a perfect genius for "aggravating" the enthusiastically earnest, and with a passion for representing himself as a scoundrel. On my first experience of him on the platform at South Place Institute he described himself as a "loafer," and I gave an angry snarl at him in the Reformer, for a loafer was my detestation, and behold! I found that he was very poor, because he was a writer with principles and preferred starving his body to starving his conscience; that he gave time and earnest work to the spreading of Socialism, spending night after night in workmen's clubs; and that "a loafer" was only an amiable way of describing himself because he did not carry a hod. Of course I had to apologise for my sharp criticism as doing him a serious injustice, but privately felt somewhat injured at having been entrapped into such a blunder. Meanwhile I was more and more turning aside from politics and devoting myself to the social condition of the people I find myself, in June, protesting against Sir John Lubbock's Bill which fixed a twelve-hour day as the limit of a "young person's" toil. "A 'day' of twelve hours is brutal," I wrote; "if the law fixes twelve hours as a 'fair day' that law will largely govern custom. I declare that a 'legal day' should be eight hours on five days in the week and not more than five hours on the sixth. If the labour is of an exhausting character these hours are too long." On every side now the Socialist controversy grew, and I listened, read, and thought much, but said little. The inclusion of John Robertson in the staff of the Reformer brought a highly intellectual Socialist into closer touch with us, and slowly I found that the case for Socialism was intellectually complete and ethically beautiful. The trend of my thought was shown by urging the feeding of Board School children, breaking down under the combination of education and starvation, and I asked, "Why should people be pauperised by a rate-supported meal, and not pauperised by, state-supported police, drainage, road-mending, street-lighting, &c? "Socialism in its splendid ideal appealed to my heart, while the economic soundness of its basis convinced my head. All my life was turned towards the progress of the people, the helping of man, and it leaped forward to meet the stronger hope, the lofty ideal of social brotherhood, the rendering possible to all of freer life; so long had I been striving thitherward, and here there opened up a path to the yearned-for goal! How strong were the feelings surging in my heart may be seen in a brief extract from an article published second week of January, 1885: "Christian charity? We know its work. It gives a hundred-weight of coal and five pounds of beef once a year to a family whose head could earn a hundred such doles if Christian justice allowed him fair wage for the work he performs. It plunders the workers of the wealth they make, and then flings back at them a thousandth part of their own product as 'charity.' It builds hospitals for the poor whom it has poisoned in filthy courts and alleys, and workhouses for the worn-out creatures from whom it has wrung every energy, every hope, every joy. Miss Cobbe summons us to admire Christian civilisation, and we see idlers flaunting in the robes woven by the toilers, a glittering tinselled super-structure founded on the tears, the strugglings, the grey, hopeless misery of the poor."
At this time, I also met George Bernard Shaw, one of the smartest Socialist writers and one of the most challenging people; a man with a knack for annoying those who are genuinely passionate and a tendency to present himself as a rogue. During my first encounter with him on stage at South Place Institute, he referred to himself as a "loafer," and I reacted angrily in the Reformer, since I couldn't stand loafers. But then, I realized he was actually very poor because he was a writer with principles, choosing to starve his body rather than compromise his conscience; he dedicated his time and hard work to promoting Socialism, spending countless nights in workers' clubs. The term "loafer" was just a light-hearted way to describe himself because he didn’t carry a load. Naturally, I had to apologize for my harsh criticism, which was unfair to him, but I couldn’t help feeling a bit hurt for falling into such a mistake. Meanwhile, I was increasingly stepping away from politics to focus on the people's social conditions. In June, I found myself protesting against Sir John Lubbock's Bill that set a twelve-hour workday as the limit for "young people." "A 'day' of twelve hours is brutal," I wrote; "if the law defines twelve hours as a 'fair day,' that law will heavily influence what’s considered normal. I declare that a 'legal day' should be eight hours for five days a week and no more than five hours on the sixth. If the work is exhausting, those hours are too long." The Socialist debate intensified around me, and I listened, read, and contemplated a lot, but spoke very little. The addition of John Robertson to the staff of the Reformer connected us with a highly intellectual Socialist, and I gradually discovered that the argument for Socialism was intellectually sound and ethically beautiful. The direction of my thoughts was evidenced by my calls to provide meals for Board School children who were suffering under the combined weight of education and hunger, as I asked, "Why should people be turned into paupers by a rate-funded meal, but not be made into paupers by state-funded police, drainage, road repairs, street lighting, etc.? "The ideal of Socialism spoke to my heart, while its economic foundation convinced my mind. My entire life was focused on advancing the welfare of the people and helping humanity, and it was drawn towards a stronger hope, a lofty ideal of social brotherhood, making a freer life attainable for all; I had long been striving for this, and now there was a clear path towards my longed-for goal! The intensity of the feelings I had can be seen in a brief excerpt from an article published in the second week of January 1885: "Christian charity? We know its effects. It gives a hundredweight of coal and five pounds of beef once a year to a family whose head could earn a hundred such gifts if Christian justice allowed him a fair wage for his work. It robs workers of the wealth they create and then throws back a tiny fraction of their own earnings as 'charity.' It builds hospitals for the poor whom it has sickened in filthy courts and alleys, and workhouses for the exhausted individuals from whom it has drained every ounce of energy, hope, and joy. Miss Cobbe encourages us to admire Christian civilization, and we see idlers flaunting in clothes made by the hard work of others, a flashy façade built on the tears, struggles, and bleak misery of the poor."
This first month of January, 1885, brought on me the first attack for my Socialistic tendencies, from the pen of Mr. W.P. Ball, who wrote to the Reformer complaining of my paragraph, quoted above, in which I had advocated rate-supported meals for Board School children. A brief controversy thus arose, in which I supported my opinion, waiving the question as to my being "at heart a Socialist." In truth, I dreaded to make the plunge of publicly allying myself with the advocates of Socialism, because of the attitude of bitter hostility they had adopted towards Mr. Bradlaugh. On his strong, tenacious nature, nurtured on self-reliant individualism, the arguments of the younger generation made no impression. He could not change his methods because a new tendency was rising to the surface, and he did not see how different was the Socialism of our day to the Socialist dreams of the past—noble ideals of a future not immediately realisable in truth, but to be worked towards and rendered possible in the days to come. Could I take public action which might bring me into collision with the dearest of my friends, which might strain the strong and tender tie so long existing between us? My affection, my gratitude, all warred against the idea of working with those who wronged him so bitterly. But the cry of starving children was ever in my ears; the sobs of women poisoned in lead works, exhausted in nail works, driven to prostitution by starvation, made old and haggard by ceaseless work. I saw their misery was the result of an evil system, was inseparable from private ownership of the instruments of wealth production; that while the worker was himself but an instrument, selling his labour under the law of supply and demand, he must remain helpless in the grip of the employing classes, and that trade combinations could only mean increased warfare—necessary, indeed, for the time as weapons of defence—but meaning war, not brotherly co-operation of all for the good of all. A conflict which was stripped of all covering, a conflict between a personal tie and a call of duty could not last long, and with a heavy heart I made up my mind to profess Socialism openly and work for it with all my energy. Happily, Mr. Bradlaugh was as tolerant as he was strong, and our private friendship remained unbroken; but he never again felt the same confidence in my judgment as he felt before, nor did he any more consult me on his own policy, as he had done ever since we first clasped hands.
This first month of January 1885 marked the beginning of my first criticism for my Socialistic views, from Mr. W.P. Ball, who wrote to the Reformer complaining about my earlier statement, where I had advocated for meals supported by school rates for Board School children. A brief debate followed, during which I defended my stance, setting aside the question of whether I was "at heart a Socialist." Honestly, I was hesitant to publicly associate myself with the advocates of Socialism because of their harsh hostility towards Mr. Bradlaugh. His strong, determined nature, shaped by self-reliant individualism, was unaffected by the arguments from the younger generation. He couldn't adjust his methods just because a new trend was emerging, and he didn’t recognize how different today's Socialism was compared to the Socialist ideals of the past—noble visions of a future that weren't immediately attainable but were goals to strive for in the days ahead. Could I take public action that might put me at odds with someone I cared for deeply, potentially straining the strong and affectionate bond we had maintained for so long? My love and gratitude clashed with the idea of working with those who had wronged him so deeply. But the cries of starving children haunted me; the wails of women poisoned in lead factories, exhausted in nail workshops, driven to prostitution by hunger, aged and worn out by relentless labor. I realized their suffering stemmed from a broken system and was tied to private ownership of the means of wealth production; as long as workers were mere instruments selling their labor under supply and demand laws, they would remain powerless under the control of the employing class. Trade unions could only lead to increased conflict—necessary for the moment as a way to defend themselves—but signified war, not the cooperative effort for the common good. A struggle stripped of all pretense—between a personal connection and a sense of duty—couldn't last long, and with a heavy heart, I resolved to openly embrace Socialism and dedicate my efforts to it. Fortunately, Mr. Bradlaugh was as tolerant as he was strong, and our personal friendship remained intact; however, he never again had the same trust in my judgment as before, nor did he consult me on his policies as he had from the time we first shook hands.
A series of articles in Our Corner on the "Redistribution of Political Power," on the "Evolution of Society," on "Modern Socialism," made my position clear. "Over against those who laud the present state of Society, with its unjustly rich and its unjustly poor, with its palaces and its slums, its millionaires and its paupers, be it ours to proclaim that there is a higher ideal in life than that of being first in the race for wealth, most successful in the scramble for gold. Be it ours to declare steadfastly that health, comfort, leisure, culture, plenty for every individual are far more desirable than breathless struggle for existence, furious trampling down of the weak by the strong, huge fortunes accumulated out of the toil of others, to be handed down to those who had done nothing to earn them. Be it ours to maintain that the greatness of a nation depends not on the number of its great proprietors, on the wealth of its great capitalists, or the splendour of its great nobles, but on the absence of poverty among its people, on the education and refinement of its masses, on the universality of enjoyment in life.... Enough for each of work, of leisure, of joy; too little for none, too much for none—such is the Social ideal. Better to strive after it worthily and fail, than to die without striving for it at all."
A series of articles in Our Corner on the "Redistribution of Political Power," on the "Evolution of Society," and on "Modern Socialism" made my stance clear. "Against those who praise the current state of society, with its unjustly rich and unjustly poor, its palaces and its slums, its millionaires and its paupers, we need to declare that there’s a higher ideal in life than just being first in the race for wealth or most successful in the chase for money. We must firmly state that health, comfort, leisure, culture, and abundance for everyone are far more valuable than a relentless struggle for survival, the ruthless trampling of the weak by the strong, and vast fortunes built from the labor of others, only to be passed down to those who didn’t do anything to earn them. We should assert that the greatness of a nation doesn't depend on the number of its wealthy owners, the riches of its wealthy capitalists, or the splendor of its elite nobility, but rather on the absence of poverty among its people, the education and refinement of its general populace, and the universal enjoyment of life.... Enough for each of work, leisure, and joy; not too little for anyone, not too much for anyone—such is the social ideal. It’s better to strive for it honorably and fail than to live and not strive for it at all."
Then I differentiated the methods of the Socialist and the Radical Individualist, pleading for union among those who formed the wings of the army of Labour, and urging union of all workers against the idlers. For the weakness of the people has ever been in their divisions, in the readiness of each section to turn its weapons against other sections instead of against the common foe. All privileged classes, when they are attacked, sink their differences and present a serried front to their assailants; the people alone fight with each other, while the battle between themselves and the privileged is raging.
Then I distinguished between the approaches of Socialists and Radical Individualists, advocating for unity among those who make up the labor movement, and calling for all workers to come together against the lazy. The people's greatest weakness has always been their divisions, with each group quick to turn their weapons on others instead of facing the common enemy. Privileged classes, when under attack, set aside their differences and present a united front against their attackers; meanwhile, the people are the only ones who fight amongst themselves while the struggle against the privileged class continues.
I strove, as so many others were striving, to sound in the ears of the thoughtless and the careless the cry of the sufferings of the poor, endeavouring to make articulate their misery. Thus in a description of Edinburgh slums came the following: "I saw in a 'house' which was made by boarding up part of a passage, which had no window, and in which it was necessary to burn an oil lamp all day, thus adding to the burden of the rent, a family of three—man, wife, and child—whose lot was hardly 'of their own making.' The man was tall and bronzed, but he was dying of heart disease; he could not do hard work, and he was too clumsy for light work; so he sat there, after two days' fruitless search, patiently nursing his miserable, scrofulous baby in his dim and narrow den. The cases of individual hopeless suffering are heartbreaking. In one room lay a dying child, dying of low fever brought on by want of food. 'It hae no faither,' sobbed the mother; and for a moment I did not catch the meaning that the father had left to the mother all the burden of a child unallowed by law. In another lay the corpse of a mother, with the children round her, and hard-featured, gentle-hearted women came in to take back to their overcrowded beds 'the mitherless bairns.' In yet another a woman, shrunken and yellow, crouched over a glimmer of fire; "I am dying of cancer of the womb," she said, with that pathetic resignation to the inevitable so common among the poor. I sat chatting for a few minutes. 'Come again, deary,' she said as I rose to go; 'it's gey dull sitting here the day through.'"
I worked hard, like many others, to make the voices of the thoughtless and careless hear the struggles of the poor, trying to articulate their misery. In one description of Edinburgh slums, I wrote: "I saw a 'house' that was just a boarded-up part of a passage, with no window, where they had to keep a burning oil lamp all day, which added to the already hefty rent. Inside lived a family of three—a man, a wife, and their child—whose situation was hardly 'of their own making.' The man was tall and tan, but he was dying from heart disease; he couldn’t do physical labor and was too awkward for light work, so he sat there, after two days of fruitless job searching, patiently caring for his sickly, scrofulous baby in their dim and cramped space. The stories of individual hopeless suffering are heartbreaking. In one room, a dying child lay, suffering from low fever caused by lack of food. 'It has no father,' the mother sobbed; and for a moment, I didn’t grasp that the father had left her with all the burden of a child that wasn’t legally recognized. In another, the body of a mother lay surrounded by her children, while hard-faced, kind-hearted women came in to take away 'the motherless kids' to their already overcrowded homes. In yet another space, a woman, thin and yellow, huddled over a faint fire; 'I am dying of cancer of the womb,' she said, with a sad acceptance of the inevitable that’s so common among the poor. I chatted for a few minutes. 'Come again, dearie,' she said as I got up to leave; 'it's really dull sitting here all day.'"
The article in which these, among other descriptions, occurred was closed with the following: "Passing out of the slums into the streets of the town, only a few steps separating the horror and the beauty, I felt, with a vividness more intense than ever, the fearful contrasts between the lots of men; and with more pressing urgency the question seemed to ring in my ears, 'Is there no remedy? Must there always be rich and poor?' Some say that it must be so; that the palace and the slum will for ever exist as the light and the shadow. Not so do I believe. I believe that the poverty is the result of ignorance and of bad social arrangements, and that therefore it may be eradicated by knowledge and by social change. I admit that for many of these adult dwellers in the slums there is no hope. Poor victims of a civilisation that hides its brutality beneath a veneer of culture and of grace, for them individually there is, alas! no salvation. But for their children, yes! Healthy surroundings, good food, mental and physical training, plenty of play, and carefully chosen work—these might save the young and prepare them for happy life. But they are being left to grow up as their parents were, and even when a few hours of school are given them the home half-neutralises what the education effects. The scanty aid given is generally begrudged, the education is to be but elementary, as little as possible is doled out. Yet these children have each one of them hopes and fears, possibilities of virtue and of crime, a life to be made or marred. We shower money on generals and on nobles, we keep high-born paupers living on the national charity, we squander wealth with both hands on army and navy, on churches and palaces; but we grudge every halfpenny that increases the education rate and howl down every proposal to build decent houses for the poor. We cover our heartlessness and indifference with fine phrases about sapping the independence of the poor and destroying their self-respect. With loathsome hypocrisy we repair a prince's palace for him, and let him live in it rent-free, without one word about the degradation involved in his thus living upon charity; while we refuse to 'pauperise' the toiler by erecting decent buildings in which he may live—not rent-free like the prince, but only paying a rent which shall cover the cost of erection and maintenance, instead of one which gives a yearly profit to a speculator. And so, year after year, the misery grows, and every great city has on its womb a cancer; sapping its vitality, poisoning its life-blood. Every great city is breeding in its slums a race which is reverting through the savage to the brute—a brute more dangerous in that degraded humanity has possibilities of evil in it beyond the reach of the mere wild beast. If not for Love's sake, then for fear; if not for justice or for human pity, then for sheer desire of self-preservation; I appeal to the wise and to the wealthy to set their hands to the cure of social evil, ere stolidity gives place to passion and dull patience vanishes before fury, and they
The article that included this and other descriptions ended with: "As I moved from the slums to the streets of the town, just a few steps separating horror from beauty, I felt, more vividly than ever, the shocking contrasts between people's lives; and with increasing urgency, the question echoed in my mind, 'Is there no solution? Will there always be rich and poor?' Some argue that it has to be this way; that the palace and the slum will forever coexist like light and shadow. I don’t believe that. I think poverty comes from ignorance and poor social systems, and can be eliminated through education and social reform. I acknowledge that for many adults living in the slums, there is little hope. They are unfortunate victims of a society that masks its brutality under the guise of culture and grace—sadly, there is no salvation for them. But for their children, there is hope! Healthy environments, nutritious food, mental and physical training, ample playtime, and thoughtfully chosen work—these could save the young and prepare them for a happy life. Instead, they are growing up just like their parents, and even the few hours of schooling they receive are often undermined by their home life. The little support they do get is usually begrudged, and the education they receive is only basic, as little as possible is provided. Yet, each of these children has their own hopes and fears, the potential for good or bad, and a life that can either prosper or suffer. We pour money into the pockets of generals and nobles, maintain high-born beggars living off national charity, and waste wealth frivolously on the army and navy, churches, and palaces. At the same time, we begrudge every penny that would increase funding for education and dismiss every suggestion to build decent housing for the poor. We disguise our heartlessness and apathy with fine words about undermining the independence of the poor and damaging their self-esteem. With disgusting hypocrisy, we renovate a prince's palace for him and let him live in it rent-free, without a thought about the humiliation of him living off charity; while we refuse to 'pauperize' the worker by building decent homes where he can live—not rent-free like the prince, but only paying rent that covers the cost of construction and upkeep, instead of one that yields profit for a speculator. And so, year after year, the misery increases, and every major city carries a cancer within it; draining its vitality and poisoning its lifeblood. Every major city is fostering in its slums a generation that is regressing from savage to brute—a brute that is more dangerous because this degraded humanity has potential for evil that surpasses that of a mere wild animal. If not for love, then for fear; if not for justice or human compassion, then for the simple urge for self-preservation, I urge the wise and wealthy to take action against social problems before apathy gives way to violence and dull patience evaporates in the face of rage."
"'Learn at last, in some wild hour, how much the wretched dare.'"
"'Finally learn, in some wild moment, how much the miserable are willing to do.'"
Because it was less hotly antagonistic to the Radicals than the two other Socialist organisations, I joined the Fabian Society, and worked hard with it as a speaker and lecturer. Sidney Webb, G. Bernard Shaw, Hubert and Mrs. Bland, Graham Wallas—these were some of those who gave time, thought, incessant work to the popularising of Socialist thought, the spreading of sound economics, the effort to turn the workers' energy toward social rather than merely political reform. We lectured at workmen's clubs wherever we could gain a hearing, till we leavened London Radicalism with Socialist thought, and by treating the Radical as the unevolved Socialist rather than as the anti-Socialist, we gradually won him over to Socialist views. We circulated questions to be put to all candidates for parliamentary or other offices, stirred up interest in local elections, educated men and women into an understanding of the causes of their poverty, won recruits for the army of propagandists from the younger of the educated middle class. That the London working classes to-day are so largely Socialist is greatly due to the years of work done among them by members of the Fabian Society, as well to the splendid, if occasionally too militant, energy of the Social Democratic Federation, and to the devotion of that noble and generous genius, William Morris.
Because it was less hostile to the Radicals than the other two Socialist organizations, I joined the Fabian Society and worked hard as a speaker and lecturer. Sidney Webb, G. Bernard Shaw, Hubert and Mrs. Bland, Graham Wallas—these were some of the people who dedicated their time, thought, and relentless effort to popularizing Socialist ideas, spreading sound economics, and directing workers' energy towards social rather than just political reform. We lectured at workers' clubs wherever we could find an audience until we infused London Radicalism with Socialist thought. By treating the Radical as an undeveloped Socialist rather than an anti-Socialist, we gradually won him over to Socialist views. We circulated questions to be asked of all candidates for parliamentary or other positions, generated interest in local elections, and educated men and women about the causes of their poverty, recruiting young people from the educated middle class into the movement of propagandists. The fact that the London working class today is largely Socialist is greatly due to the years of work done among them by members of the Fabian Society, as well as the impressive, if occasionally too aggressive, energy of the Social Democratic Federation, and the commitment of that noble and generous thinker, William Morris.
During this same year (1885) a movement was set on foot in England to draw attention to the terrible sufferings of the Russian political prisoners, and it was decided at a meeting held in my house to form a society of the friends of Russia, which should seek to spread accurate and careful information about the present condition of Russia. At that meeting were present Charles Bradlaugh, "Stepniak," and many others, E.R. Pease acting as honorary secretary. It is noteworthy that some of the most prominent Russian exiles—such as Kropotkin—take the view that the Tzar himself is not allowed to know what occurs, and is very largely the victim of the bureaucracy that surrounds him.
During this same year (1885), a movement started in England to highlight the terrible suffering of Russian political prisoners. At a meeting held in my house, it was decided to form a society for the friends of Russia, which aimed to provide accurate and careful information about the current situation in Russia. Those present at the meeting included Charles Bradlaugh, "Stepniak," and many others, with E.R. Pease serving as honorary secretary. It's worth noting that some of the most prominent Russian exiles—like Kropotkin—believe that the Tzar himself is not allowed to know what’s happening and is largely a victim of the bureaucracy around him.
Another matter, that increased as the months went on, was the attempt of the police authorities to stop Socialist speaking in the open air. Christians, Freethinkers, Salvationists, agitators of all kinds were, for the most part, left alone, but there was a regular crusade against the Socialists. Liberal and Tory journals alike condemned the way in which in Dod Street, in September, the Socialists' meetings were attacked. Quiet persistence was shown by the promoters—members of the Social Democratic Federation—and they were well supported by other Socialists and by the Radical clubs. I volunteered to speak on October 4th (my first Sunday in London after the summoning and imprisoning of the speakers had commenced), but the attitude of the people was so determined on the preceding Sunday that all interference was withdrawn.
Another issue that grew over the months was the police's effort to shut down Socialist speeches in public. Christians, Freethinkers, Salvationists, and various other groups mostly operated freely, but there was a consistent campaign targeting Socialists. Both Liberal and Tory newspapers condemned the violent disruption of the Socialists' meetings in Dod Street in September. The organizers—members of the Social Democratic Federation—showed quiet determination and received strong backing from other Socialists and Radical clubs. I offered to speak on October 4th (my first Sunday in London after the arrest and imprisonment of the speakers began), but the public's resolve the previous Sunday meant that all interference was dropped.
Herbert Burrows stood for the School Board for the Tower Hamlets in the November of this year, and I find a paragraph in the Reformer in which I heartily wished him success, especially as the first candidate who had put forward a demand for industrial education. In this, as in so many practical proposals, Socialists have led the way. He polled 4,232 votes, despite the furious opposition of the clergy to him as a Freethinker, of the publicans to him as a teetotaler, of the maintainers of the present social system to him as a Socialist. And his fight did much to make possible my own success in 1888.
Herbert Burrows ran for the School Board for Tower Hamlets in November of this year, and I came across a paragraph in the Reformer where I sincerely wished him success, especially since he was the first candidate to advocate for industrial education. In this area, as in many practical initiatives, Socialists have been at the forefront. He received 4,232 votes, despite intense opposition from the clergy who opposed him as a Freethinker, from pub owners who resisted him as a teetotaler, and from supporters of the current social system who objected to him as a Socialist. His struggle significantly contributed to my own success in 1888.
With this autumn, too, began, in connection with the struggle for the right of meeting, the helping of the workmen to fair trial by providing of bail and legal defence. The first case that I bailed out was that of Lewis Lyons, sent to gaol for two months with hard labour by Mr. Saunders, of the Thames Police Court. Oh, the weary, sickening waiting in the court for "my prisoner," the sordid vice, the revolting details of human depravity to which my unwilling eyes and ears were witnesses. I carried Lyons off in triumph, and the Middlesex magistrates quashed the conviction, the evidence being pronounced by them to be "confusing, contradictory, and worthless." Yet but for the chance of one of us stepping forward to offer bail and to provide the means for an appeal (I acted on Mr. Bradlaugh's suggestion and advice, for he acted as counsellor to me all through the weary struggles that lasted till 1888, putting his great legal knowledge at my disposal, though he often disapproved my action, thinking me Quixotic)—but for this, Lewis Lyons would have had to suffer his heavy sentence.
With this autumn came the start of helping workers get fair trials by providing bail and legal defense in connection with the fight for the right to assemble. The first case I bailed out was that of Lewis Lyons, who was sentenced to two months in jail with hard labor by Mr. Saunders at the Thames Police Court. Oh, the exhausting, nauseating wait in court for "my prisoner," the grim vice, the disgusting details of human depravity that I was unwillingly forced to see and hear. I took Lyons away in triumph, and the Middlesex magistrates overturned the conviction, declaring the evidence to be "confusing, contradictory, and worthless." If not for one of us stepping up to offer bail and fund an appeal (I followed Mr. Bradlaugh's suggestion and advice, as he guided me through the tiring struggles that lasted until 1888, offering his extensive legal knowledge, even though he often disagreed with my actions, considering me idealistic)—without this, Lewis Lyons would have had to endure his harsh sentence.
The general election took place this autumn, and Northampton returned Mr. Bradlaugh for the fifth time, thus putting an end to the long struggle, for he took the oath and his seat in the following January, and at once gave notice of an Oaths Bill, to give to all who claimed it, under all circumstances, the right to affirm. He was returned with the largest vote ever polled for him—4,315—and he entered Parliament with all the prestige of his great struggle, and went to the front at once, one of the recognised forces in the House. The action of Mr. Speaker Peel promptly put an end to an attempted obstruction. Sir Michael Hicks Beach, Mr. Cecil Raikes, and Sir John Hennaway had written to the Speaker asking his interference, but the Speaker declared that he had no authority, no right to stand between a duly elected member and the duty of taking the oath prescribed by statute. Thus ended the constitutional struggle of six years, that left the victor well-nigh bankrupt in health and in purse, and sent him to a comparatively early grave. He lived long enough to justify his election, to prove his value to the House and to his country, but he did not live long enough to render to England all the services which his long training, his wide knowledge, his courage, and his honesty so eminently fitted him to yield.
The general election happened this autumn, and Northampton elected Mr. Bradlaugh for the fifth time, finally ending the long struggle. He took the oath and his seat the following January and immediately announced an Oaths Bill, which would allow everyone the right to affirm under any circumstance. He was elected with the largest vote ever recorded for him—4,315—and entered Parliament with the reputation of his great struggle, quickly becoming one of the acknowledged forces in the House. Mr. Speaker Peel's action quickly ended an attempt to obstruct him. Sir Michael Hicks Beach, Mr. Cecil Raikes, and Sir John Hennaway had contacted the Speaker asking for his intervention, but the Speaker stated that he had no authority or right to intervene between a duly elected member and the requirement to take the oath as required by law. Thus ended the constitutional struggle of six years, which left the victor nearly bankrupt in health and finances and led to his relatively early death. He lived long enough to validate his election, to demonstrate his worth to the House and to his country, but he did not live long enough to provide England with all the services his extensive training, broad knowledge, courage, and integrity made him well-equipped to offer.
NORWICH BRANCH OF THE SOCIALIST LEAGUE.
Our Corner now served as a valuable aid in Socialist propaganda, and its monthly "Socialist Notes" became a record of Socialist progress in all lands. We were busy during the spring in organising a conference for the discussion of "The Present Commercial System, and the Better Utilisation of National Wealth for the Benefit of the Community," and this was successfully held at South Place Institute on June 9th, 10th, 11th, the three days being given respectively, to the "Utilisation of Land," the "Utilisation of Capital," and the "Democratic Policy." On the 9th Mr. Bradlaugh spoke on the utilisation of waste lands, arguing that in a thickly populated country no one had the right to keep cultivable land uncultivated, and that where land was so kept there should be compulsory expropriation, the state taking the land and letting it out to cultivating tenants. Among the other speakers were Edward Carpenter, William Morris, Sidney Webb, John Robertson, William Saunders, W. Donnisthorpe, Edward Aveling, Charlotte Wilson, Mrs. Fenwick Miller, Hubert Bland, Dr. Pankhurst, and myself—men and women of many views, met to compare methods, and so help on the cause of social regeneration.
Our Corner now functioned as a key tool in Socialist propaganda, and its monthly "Socialist Notes" recorded Socialist progress worldwide. We were busy in the spring organizing a conference to discuss "The Current Commercial System and the Better Use of National Wealth for the Benefit of the Community," successfully held at South Place Institute on June 9th, 10th, and 11th. Each day was dedicated to a specific topic: "Utilization of Land," "Utilization of Capital," and "Democratic Policy." On the 9th, Mr. Bradlaugh spoke about using waste lands, arguing that in a densely populated country, no one should have the right to leave cultivable land uncultivated, and that land being kept unused should be subject to compulsory expropriation, with the state taking the land and leasing it to those willing to cultivate it. Among the other speakers were Edward Carpenter, William Morris, Sidney Webb, John Robertson, William Saunders, W. Donnisthorpe, Edward Aveling, Charlotte Wilson, Mrs. Fenwick Miller, Hubert Bland, Dr. Pankhurst, and myself—men and women with diverse opinions, coming together to share methods and advance the cause of social regeneration.
Bitter attacks were made on me for my Socialist advocacy by some of the Radicals in the Freethought party, and looking back I find myself condemned as a "Saint Athanasius in petticoats," and as possessing a "mind like a milk-jug." This same courteous critic remarked, "I have heard Mrs. Besant described as being, like most women, at the mercy of her last male acquaintance for her views on economics." I was foolish enough to break a lance in self-defence with this assailant, not having then learned that self-defence was a waste of time that might be better employed in doing work for others. I certainly should not now take the trouble to write such a paragraph as the following: "The moment a man uses a woman's sex to discredit her arguments, the thoughtful reader knows that he is unable to answer the arguments themselves. But really these silly sneers at woman's ability have lost their force, and are best met with a laugh at the stupendous 'male self-conceit' of the writer. I may add that such shafts are specially pointless against myself. A woman who thought her way out of Christianity and Whiggism into Freethought and Radicalism absolutely alone; who gave up every old friend, male and female, rather than resign the beliefs she had struggled to in solitude; who, again, in embracing active Socialism, has run counter to the views of her nearest 'male friends'; such a woman may very likely go wrong, but I think she may venture, without conceit, to at least claim independence of judgment. I did not make the acquaintance of one of my present Socialist comrades, male or female, until I had embraced Socialism." A foolish paragraph, as are all self-defences, and a mischievous one, as all retort breeds fresh strife. But not yet had come the self-control that estimates the judgments of others at their true value, that recks not of praise and blame; not yet had I learned that evil should not be met with evil, wrath with wrath; not yet were the words of the Buddha the law to which I strove to render obedience: "Hatred ceases not by hatred at any time; hatred ceases by love." The year 1886 was a terrible one for labour, everywhere reductions of wages, everywhere increase of the numbers of the unemployed; turning over the pages of Our Corner, I see "Socialist Notes" filled, month after month, with a monotonous tale, "there is a reduction of wages at" such and such a place; so many "men have been discharged at —-, owing to the slackness of trade." Our hearts sank lower and lower as summer passed into autumn, and the coming winter threatened to add to starvation the bitter pains of cold. The agitation for the eight hours' day increased in strength as the unemployed grew more numerous week by week "We can't stand it," a sturdy, quiet fellow had said to me during the preceding winter; "flesh and blood can't stand it, and two months of this bitter cold, too." "We may as well starve idle as starve working," had said another, with a fierce laugh. And a spirit of sullen discontent was spreading everywhere, discontent that was wholly justified by facts. But ah! how patient they were for the most part, how sadly, pathetically patient, this crucified Christ, Humanity; wrongs that would set my heart and my tongue afire would be accepted as a matter of course. O blind and mighty people, how my heart went out to you; trampled on, abused, derided, asking so little and needing so much; so pathetically grateful for the pettiest services; so loving and so loyal to those who offered you but their poor services and helpless love. Deeper and deeper into my innermost nature ate the growing desire to succour, to suffer for, to save. I had long given up my social reputation, I now gave up with ever-increasing surrender ease, comfort, time; the passion of pity grew stronger and stronger, fed by each new sacrifice, and each sacrifice led me nearer and nearer to the threshold of that gateway beyond which stretched a path of renunciation I had never dreamed of, which those might tread who were ready wholly to strip off self for Man's sake, who for Love's sake would surrender Love's return from those they served, and would go out into the darkness for themselves that they might, with their own souls as fuel, feed the Light of the World.
Bitter attacks were launched against me for my Socialist beliefs by some Radicals in the Freethought party. Looking back, I find I was condemned as a "Saint Athanasius in petticoats" and accused of having a "mind like a milk-jug." This same polite critic noted, "I've heard Mrs. Besant described as being, like most women, at the mercy of her last male acquaintance for her views on economics." I was foolish enough to defend myself against this attacker, not having learned yet that self-defense was a waste of time that could be better spent helping others. I certainly wouldn't bother to write such a paragraph as the following now: "The moment a man uses a woman's gender to undermine her arguments, the thoughtful reader knows he can't respond to the arguments themselves. But honestly, these silly jabs at women's abilities have lost their impact and are best met with a laugh at the impressive 'male self-conceit' of the writer. I can add that such critiques are particularly ineffective against me. A woman who figured out her own way out of Christianity and Whiggism into Freethought and Radicalism completely on her own; who gave up every old friend, male and female, rather than give up the beliefs she struggled to reach in solitude; who, in embracing active Socialism, has gone against the views of her closest 'male friends'; such a woman might go astray, but I believe she can confidently claim to be independent in her judgment. I didn't know any of my current Socialist comrades, male or female, until I embraced Socialism." A foolish paragraph, like all self-defenses, and a mischievous one, as all retorts breed fresh conflict. But I had not yet attained the self-control that evaluates others' judgments at their true worth, that doesn't care for praise or blame; I hadn't learned that evil shouldn't be met with evil, and anger shouldn't be met with anger; I had not yet internalized the words of Buddha that state: "Hatred ceases not by hatred at any time; hatred ceases by love." The year 1886 was terrible for labor, with wage cuts everywhere and a growing number of unemployed. Flipping through the pages of Our Corner, I see "Socialist Notes" filled, month after month, with a monotonous account: "there's a wage cut at" this or that place; so many "men have been let go at —-, due to the slackness of trade." Our spirits sank lower and lower as summer turned into autumn, and the upcoming winter threatened to add the bitter pains of cold to starvation. The push for the eight-hour workday gained momentum as the number of unemployed increased week by week. "We can't take this any longer," a sturdy, calm guy had told me during the previous winter; "flesh and blood can't handle it, especially with two months of this bitter cold." "We may as well starve doing nothing as starve working," said another, with a fierce laugh. And a spirit of sullen discontent spread everywhere, justified by the harsh reality. But oh, how patient they were for the most part, how sadly and pathetically patient, this crucified Christ, Humanity; wrongs that would set my heart and tongue on fire were accepted as normal. O blind and mighty people, how my heart went out to you; trampled on, abused, ridiculed, asking for so little and needing so much; so pathetically grateful for the slightest kindness; so loving and loyal to those who offered only their meager help and helpless love. The growing desire to help, to suffer for, to save them dug deeper into my innermost being. I had long abandoned my social reputation, and now I surrendered even more ease, comfort, and time; the passion of pity grew stronger, fueled by each new sacrifice, and each sacrifice brought me closer to the threshold of a path of renunciation I had never imagined, a path that those willing to let go of self for humanity's sake could tread, those who, for love's sake, would give up love's return from those they served, and would step into the darkness for themselves so they could use their own souls as fuel to feed the Light of the World.
As the suffering deepened with the darkening months, the meetings of the unemployed grew in number, and the murmurs of discontent became louder. The Social Democratic Federation carried on an outdoor agitation, not without making blunders, being composed of human beings, but with abundant courage and self-sacrifice. The policy of breaking up Socialist meetings went on while other meetings were winked at, and John Williams, a fiery speaker, but a man with a record of pathetic struggle and patient heroism, was imprisoned for two months for speaking in the open air, and so nearly starved in gaol that he came out with his health broken for life.
As the suffering increased during the darkening months, the meetings for the unemployed grew more frequent, and the whispers of discontent became louder. The Social Democratic Federation continued with outdoor activism, not without making mistakes, since they were human, but they showed plenty of courage and self-sacrifice. The strategy of shutting down Socialist meetings continued while other gatherings were overlooked, and John Williams, an impassioned speaker with a history of heartbreaking struggles and quiet bravery, was jailed for two months for speaking in public. He was so close to starving in prison that he came out with his health permanently damaged.
1887 dawned, the year that was to close so stormily, and Socialists everywhere were busying themselves on behalf of the unemployed, urging vestries to provide remunerative work for those applying for relief, assailing the Local Government Board with practicable proposals for utilising the productive energies of the unemployed, circulating suggestions to municipalities and other local representative bodies, urging remedial measures. A four days' oral debate with Mr. Foote, and a written debate with Mr. Bradlaugh, occupied some of my energies, and helped in the process of education to which public opinion was being subjected. Both these debates were largely circulated as pamphlets. A series of afternoon debates between representative speakers was organised at South Place Institute, and Mr. Corrie Grant and myself had a lively discussion, I affirming "That the existence of classes who live upon unearned incomes is detrimental to the welfare of the community, and ought to be put an end to by legislation." Another debate—in this very quarrelsome spring of 1887—was a written one in the National Reformer between the Rev. G.F. Handel Rowe and myself on the proposition, "Is Atheism logically tenable, and is there a satisfactory Atheistic System for the guidance of Human Conduct." And so the months went on, and the menace of misery grew louder and louder, till in September I find myself writing: "This one thing is clear—Society must deal with the unemployed, or the unemployed will deal with Society. Stormier and stormier becomes the social outlook, and they at least are not the worst enemies of Society who seek to find some way through the breakers by which the ship of the Commonwealth may pass into quiet waters."
1887 started, a year that would end very tumultuously, and Socialists everywhere were busy helping the unemployed, pushing local councils to create paid work for those seeking aid, challenging the Local Government Board with practical ideas to use the productive skills of the unemployed, and sharing suggestions with municipalities and other local representatives, advocating for solutions. I spent some time engaged in a four-day oral debate with Mr. Foote and a written debate with Mr. Bradlaugh, which contributed to the education that public opinion was undergoing. Both debates were widely distributed as pamphlets. A series of afternoon discussions featuring representative speakers was organized at South Place Institute, where Mr. Corrie Grant and I had a lively debate; I argued, "The existence of classes who live off unearned income is harmful to the well-being of the community and should be eliminated through legislation." Another debate—in this very contentious spring of 1887—was a written one in the National Reformer between the Rev. G.F. Handel Rowe and me on the topic, "Is Atheism logically tenable, and does a satisfactory Atheistic System exist for guiding Human Conduct?" And so the months passed, with the threat of misery growing louder and louder, until in September I found myself writing: "This one thing is clear—Society must address the unemployed, or the unemployed will take action against Society. The social situation is becoming increasingly grim, and those seeking to navigate through the turmoil in order to steer the ship of the Commonwealth into calmer waters are at least not the worst enemies of Society."
Some amusement turned up in the shape of a Charing Cross Parliament, in which we debated with much vigour the "burning questions" of the day. We organised a compact Socialist party, defeated a Liberal Government, took the reins of office, and—after a Queen's Speech in which her Majesty addressed her loyal Commons with a plainness of speech never before (or since) heard from the throne—we brought in several Bills of a decidedly heroic character. G. Bernard Shaw, as President of the Local Government Board, and I, as Home Secretary, came in for a good deal of criticism in connection with various drastic measures. An International Freethought Congress, held in London, entailed fairly heavy work, and the science classes were ever with us. Another written debate came with October, this time on the "Teachings of Christianity," making the fifth of these set discussions held by me during the year. This same month brought a change, painful but just: I resigned my much-prized position as co-editor of the National Reformer, and the number for October 23rd bore Charles Bradlaugh's name alone. The change did not affect my work on the paper, but I became merely a subordinate, though remaining, of course, joint proprietor. The reason cannot be more accurately given than in the paragraph penned at the time: "For a considerable time past, and lately in increasing number, complaints have reached me from various quarters of the inconvenience and uncertainty that result from the divided editorial policy of this paper on the question of Socialism. Some months ago I proposed to avoid this difficulty by resigning my share in the editorship; but my colleague, with characteristic liberality, asked me to let the proposal stand over and see if matters would not adjust themselves. But the difficulty, instead of disappearing, has only become more pressing; and we both feel that our readers have a right to demand that it be solved.
Some fun popped up in the form of a Charing Cross Parliament, where we energetically debated the "burning questions" of the day. We formed a solid Socialist party, took down a Liberal Government, seized control, and—after a Queen's Speech where her Majesty addressed her loyal Commons with a straightforwardness never seen before (or since) from the throne—we introduced several Bills of a distinctly bold nature. G. Bernard Shaw, as President of the Local Government Board, and I, as Home Secretary, faced quite a bit of criticism regarding various drastic measures. An International Freethought Congress held in London kept us pretty busy, and the science classes were always ongoing. Another written debate came with October, this time on the "Teachings of Christianity," marking the fifth of these discussions I held that year. This same month brought a painful but necessary change: I resigned from my highly valued position as co-editor of the National Reformer, and the issue for October 23rd bore only Charles Bradlaugh's name. The change didn't impact my work on the paper, but I became simply a subordinate, though I remained, of course, a joint owner. The reason can't be stated any better than in the paragraph I wrote at the time: "For a considerable time now, and recently with increasing frequency, I've received complaints from various sources regarding the inconvenience and uncertainty caused by the divided editorial policy of this paper on the issue of Socialism. A few months ago, I suggested we resolve this by resigning my share of the editorship; however, my colleague, showing characteristic generosity, asked me to let the proposal sit and see if things would sort themselves out. But instead of improving, the issue has only grown more urgent, and we both feel our readers have the right to expect it be resolved."
"When I became co-editor of this paper I was not a Socialist; and, although I regard Socialism as the necessary and logical outcome of the Radicalism which for so many years the National Reformer has taught, still, as in avowing myself a Socialist I have taken a distinct step, the partial separation of my policy in labour questions from that of my colleague has been of my own making, and not of his, and it is, therefore, for me to go away. Over by far the greater part of our sphere of action we are still substantially agreed, and are likely to remain so. But since, as Socialism becomes more and more a question of practical politics, differences of theory tend to produce differences in conduct; and since a political paper must have a single editorial programme in practical politics, it would obviously be most inconvenient for me to retain my position as co-editor. I therefore resume my former position as contributor only, thus clearing the National Reformer of all responsibility for the views I hold."
"When I became co-editor of this paper, I wasn't a Socialist. Although I see Socialism as the necessary and logical result of the Radicalism that the National Reformer has promoted for many years, declaring myself a Socialist represents a clear shift for me. The partial divergence of my stance on labor issues from that of my colleague is my decision, not his, and therefore, it's up to me to step back. For the most part, we still largely agree on our goals and are likely to stay that way. However, as Socialism increasingly becomes a matter of practical politics, theoretical differences tend to lead to differences in actions; and since a political paper needs to have a unified editorial direction in practical politics, it would clearly be impractical for me to continue as co-editor. I will therefore return to my previous role as a contributor only, which will remove any responsibility from the National Reformer regarding my views."
To this Mr. Bradlaugh added the following:—
To this, Mr. Bradlaugh added the following:—
"I need hardly add to this how very deeply I regret the necessity for Mrs. Besant's resignation of the joint editorship of this Journal, and the real grief I feel in accepting this break in a position in which she has rendered such enormous service to the Freethought and Radical cause. As a most valued contributor I trust the National Reformer may never lose the efficient aid of her brain and pen. For thirteen years this paper has been richer for good by the measure of her never-ceasing and most useful work. I agree with her that a journal must have a distinct editorial policy; and I think this distinctness the more necessary when, as in the present case, every contributor has the greatest freedom of expression. I recognise in the fullest degree the spirit of self-sacrifice in which the lines, to which I add these words, have been penned by Mrs. Besant.
"I hardly need to say how deeply I regret that Mrs. Besant has had to resign from her joint editorship of this Journal, and how much I feel the sadness of this change in a role where she has provided such immense service to the Freethought and Radical movement. As a highly valued contributor, I hope the National Reformer will always benefit from her brilliant mind and writing. For thirteen years, this publication has been enriched by her relentless and incredibly helpful work. I agree with her that a journal needs to have a clear editorial policy; and I think this clarity is even more important when, as in this case, every contributor has the utmost freedom to express themselves. I fully acknowledge the spirit of self-sacrifice in which Mrs. Besant has written these lines, to which I add my own."
"CHARLES BRADLAUGH."
"Charles Bradlaugh."
It was a wrench, this breaking of a tie for which a heavy price had been paid thirteen years before, but it was just. Any one who makes a change with which pain is connected is bound, in honour and duty, to take that pain as much as possible on himself; he must not put his sacrifice on others, nor pay his own ransom with their coin. There must be honour kept in the life that reaches towards the Ideal, for broken faith to that is the only real infidelity.
It was tough to break the tie for which a high price had been paid thirteen years earlier, but it was the right thing to do. Anyone who makes a change that brings pain has a responsibility to shoulder that pain themselves as much as they can; they shouldn't shift their sacrifice onto others or use someone else's resources to settle their own debt. There needs to be integrity in the pursuit of the Ideal, as breaking faith with that is the only true betrayal.
And there was another reason for the change that I dared not name to him, for his quick loyalty would then have made him stubbornly determined against change. I saw the swift turning of public opinion, the gradual approach to him among Liberals who had hitherto held aloof, and I knew that they looked upon me as a clog and a burden, and that were I less prominently with him his way would be the easier to tread. So I slipped more and more into the background, no longer went with him to his meetings; my use to him in public was over, for I had become hindrance instead of help. While he was outcast and hated I had the pride of standing at his side; when all the fair-weather friends came buzzing round him I served him best by self-effacement, and I never loved him better than when I stood aside. But I continued all the literary work unaltered, and no change of opinions touched his kindness to me, although when, a little later, I joined the Theosophical Society, he lost his trust in my reasoning powers and judgment.
And there was another reason for the change that I couldn’t bring myself to mention to him, because his fierce loyalty would have made him stubbornly resist any change. I noticed how quickly public opinion was shifting, the way Liberals who had previously stayed distant were starting to approach him, and I realized they viewed me as a hindrance and a burden. I knew that if I were less visibly connected to him, it would make his path easier. So, I gradually faded into the background, stopped attending his meetings; my usefulness to him in public was done, as I had become more of a hindrance than a help. While he was outcast and despised, I had taken pride in standing by his side; when all the fair-weather friends started flocking to him, I served him best by stepping back, and I never felt closer to him than when I allowed myself to be in the shadows. But I continued all the literary work just as before, and no change in opinion affected his kindness towards me, although when I later joined the Theosophical Society, he started to doubt my reasoning and judgment.
In this same month of October the unemployed began walking in procession through the streets, and harshness on the part of the police led to some rioting. Sir Charles Warren thought it his duty to dragoon London meetings after the fashion of Continental prefects, with the inevitable result that an ill-feeling grew up between the people and the police.
In this same month of October, the unemployed started marching through the streets, and the police's harsh response led to some riots. Sir Charles Warren believed it was his responsibility to control meetings in London like the police do in continental countries, which inevitably caused tension between the public and the police.
At last we formed a Socialist Defence Association, in order to help poor workmen brought up and sentenced on police evidence only, without any chance being given them of proper legal defence, and I organised a band of well-to-do men and women, who promised to obey a telegraphic summons, night or day, and to bail out any prisoner arrested for exercising the ancient right of walking in procession and speaking. To take one instance: Mr. Burleigh, the well-known war correspondent, and Mr. Winks were arrested and "run in" with Mr. J. Knight, a workman, for seditious language. I went down to the police-station to offer bail for the latter: Chief-Constable Howard accepted bail for Messrs. Burleigh and Winks, but refused it for Mr. Knight. The next day, at the police-court, the preposterous bail of £400 was demanded for Mr. Knight and supplied by my faithful band, and on the next hearing Mr. Poland, solicitor to the Treasury, withdrew the charge against him for lack of evidence!
Finally, we formed a Socialist Defense Association to assist poor workers who were arrested and convicted based solely on police evidence, without any opportunity for a proper legal defense. I gathered a group of affluent men and women who agreed to respond to a telegraphic call, day or night, and to bail out anyone arrested for exercising their right to walk in procession and speak. For example, Mr. Burleigh, a well-known war correspondent, and Mr. Winks were arrested along with Mr. J. Knight, a worker, for allegedly using seditious language. I went to the police station to offer bail for Mr. Knight: Chief Constable Howard accepted bail for Messrs. Burleigh and Winks but refused it for Mr. Knight. The next day, at the police court, an outrageous bail of £400 was demanded for Mr. Knight, which was provided by my loyal group, and at the following hearing, Mr. Poland, solicitor to the Treasury, dropped the charges against him due to insufficient evidence!
Then came the closing of Trafalgar Square, and the unexpected and high-handed order that cost some men their lives, many their liberty, and hundreds the most serious injuries. The Metropolitan Radical Federation had called a meeting for November 13th to protest against the imprisonment of Mr. O'Brien, and as Mr. Matthews, from his place in the House, had stated that there was no intention of interfering with bonâ fide political meetings, the Radical clubs did not expect police interference. On November 9th Sir Charles Warren had issued an order forbidding all meetings in the Square, but the clubs trusted the promise of the Home Secretary. On Saturday evening only, November 12th, when all arrangements were completed, did he issue a peremptory order, forbidding processions within a certain area. With this trap suddenly sprung upon them, the delegates from the clubs, the Fabian Society, the Social Democratic Federation, and the Socialist League, met on that same Saturday evening to see to any details that had been possibly left unsettled. It was finally decided to go to the Square as arranged, and, if challenged by the police, to protest formally against the illegal interference, then to break up the processions and leave the members to find their own way to the Square. It was also decided to go Sunday after Sunday to the Square, until the right of public meetings was vindicated.
Then came the closure of Trafalgar Square, along with the unexpected and heavy-handed order that cost some men their lives, many their freedom, and hundreds serious injuries. The Metropolitan Radical Federation had scheduled a meeting for November 13th to protest the imprisonment of Mr. O'Brien, and since Mr. Matthews had stated in the House that there was no intention to interfere with genuine political meetings, the Radical clubs didn't expect police interference. On November 9th, Sir Charles Warren issued an order banning all meetings in the Square, but the clubs trusted the Home Secretary's promise. On the evening of Saturday, November 12th, after all plans were finalized, he issued a strict order prohibiting processions in a certain area. With this sudden trap sprung on them, delegates from the clubs, the Fabian Society, the Social Democratic Federation, and the Socialist League met on that same Saturday evening to finalize any unresolved details. They decided to go to the Square as planned, and if the police challenged them, to formally protest against the illegal interference, then disperse and let members find their own way to the Square. They also agreed to return to the Square Sunday after Sunday until the right to hold public meetings was upheld.
The procession I was in started from Clerkenwell Green, and walked with its banner in front, and the chosen speakers, including myself, immediately behind the flag. As we were moving slowly and quietly along one of the narrow streets debouching on Trafalgar Square, wondering whether we should be challenged, there was a sudden charge, and without a word the police were upon us with uplifted truncheons; the banner was struck down, and men and women were falling under a hail of blows. There was no attempt at resistance, the people were too much astounded at the unprepared attack. They scattered, leaving some of their number on the ground too much injured to move, and then made their way in twos and threes to the Square. It was garrisoned by police, drawn up in serried rows, that could only have been broken by a deliberate charge. Our orders were to attempt no violence, and we attempted none. Mr. Cunninghame Graham and Mr. John Burns, arm-in-arm, tried to pass through the police, and were savagely cut about the head and arrested. Then ensued a scene to be remembered; the horse police charged in squadrons at a hand-gallop, rolling men and women over like ninepins, while the foot police struck recklessly with their truncheons, cutting a road through the crowd that closed immediately behind them. I got on a waggonette and tried to persuade the driver to pull his trap across one of the roads, and to get others in line, so as to break the charges of the mounted police; but he was afraid, and drove away to the Embankment, so I jumped out and went back to the Square. At last a rattle of cavalry, and up came the Life Guards, cleverly handled but hurting none, trotting their horses gently and shouldering the crowd apart; and then the Scots Guards with bayonets fixed marched through and occupied the north of the Square. Then the people retreated as we passed round the word, "Go home, go home." The soldiers were ready to fire, the people unarmed; it would have been but a massacre. Slowly the Square emptied and all was still. All other processions were treated as ours had been, and the injuries inflicted were terrible. Peaceable, law-abiding workmen, who had never dreamed of rioting, were left with broken legs, broken arms, wounds of every description. One man, Linnell, died almost immediately, others from the effect of their injuries. The next day a regular court-martial in Bow Street Police Court, witnesses kept out by the police, men dazed with their wounds, decent workmen of unblemished character who had never been charged in a police-court before, sentenced to imprisonment without chance of defence. But a gallant band rallied to their rescue. William T. Stead, most chivalrous of journalists, opened a Defence Fund, and money rained in; my pledged bail came up by the dozen, and we got the men out on appeal. By sheer audacity I got into the police-court, addressed the magistrate, too astounded by my profound courtesy and calm assurance to remember that I had no right there, and then produced bail after bail of the most undeniable character and respectability, which no magistrate could refuse. Breathing-time gained, a barrister, Mr. W.M. Thompson, worked day after day with hearty devotion, and took up the legal defence. Fines we paid, and here Mrs. Marx Aveling did eager service. A pretty regiment I led out of Millbank Prison, after paying their fines; bruised, clothes torn, hatless, we must have looked a disreputable lot. We stopped and bought hats, to throw an air of respectability over our cortège, and we kept together until I saw the men into train and omnibus, lest, with the bitter feelings now roused, conflict should again arise. We formed the Law and Liberty League to defend all unjustly assailed by the police, and thus rescued many a man from prison; and we gave poor Linnell, killed in Trafalgar Square, a public funeral. Sir Charles Warren forbade the passing of the hearse through any of the main thoroughfares west of Waterloo Bridge, so the processions waited there for it. W.T. Stead, R. Cunninghame Graham, Herbert Burrows, and myself walked on one side the coffin, William Morris, F. Smith, R. Dowling, and J. Seddon on the other; the Rev. Stewart D. Headlam, the officiating clergyman, walked in front; fifty stewards carrying long wands guarded the coffin. From Wellington Street to Bow Cemetery the road was one mass of human beings, who uncovered reverently as the slain man went by; at Aldgate the procession took three-quarters of an hour to pass one spot, and thus we bore Linnell to his grave, symbol of a cruel wrong, the vast orderly, silent crowd, bareheaded, making mute protest against the outrage wrought.
The procession I was in started from Clerkenwell Green, with our banner leading the way and the selected speakers, including myself, right behind it. As we slowly and quietly moved along one of the narrow streets leading to Trafalgar Square, uncertain if we would be confronted, the police suddenly charged at us without a word. They came at us with raised truncheons; the banner was knocked down, and people were falling under a barrage of blows. There was no attempt at resistance; everyone was too shocked by the surprise attack. They scattered, leaving some members on the ground too injured to move, and then made their way in pairs and threes to the Square. The Square was occupied by police, lined up in tight rows that could only be breached by a deliberate charge. We were told not to use violence, and we didn’t. Mr. Cunninghame Graham and Mr. John Burns, linked arm-in-arm, tried to get through the police and were brutally hit in the head and arrested. A scene unfolded that would be remembered; the mounted police charged in squadrons at a fast gallop, knocking people over like bowling pins, while the foot police recklessly swung their truncheons, cutting a path through the crowd that quickly closed behind them. I climbed onto a wagon and tried to convince the driver to block one of the roads, gathering others to form a line to halt the mounted police's charges, but he was too scared and drove off to the Embankment, so I jumped out and went back to the Square. Eventually, a cavalry unit arrived, and the Life Guards appeared, expertly handling the situation but not hurting anyone, gently trotting their horses and parting the crowd. Then the Scots Guards marched in with fixed bayonets and took control of the north side of the Square. The crowd began to retreat as we spread the word to "Go home, go home." The soldiers were ready to fire, while the people were unarmed; it would have been a massacre. Gradually, the Square emptied, and everything was quiet. All other processions faced the same treatment as ours, and the injuries inflicted were severe. Peaceful, law-abiding workers, who had never considered rioting, were left with broken legs, broken arms, and various wounds. One man, Linnell, died almost immediately, and others succumbed to their injuries later. The following day, a regular court-martial took place at Bow Street Police Court, witnesses were kept away by the police, and men dazed by their wounds—decent workers with unblemished records who had never been charged in a police court before—were sentenced to imprisonment without any chance to defend themselves. But a brave group rallied to help them. William T. Stead, the most chivalrous journalist, started a Defence Fund, and money poured in; my pledged bail came in large amounts, and we managed to get the men out on appeal. Through sheer determination, I got into the police court, addressed the magistrate, who was too astonished by my courtesy and calm confidence to remember that I had no right to be there, and presented bail after bail from the most reputable sources, which no magistrate could refuse. With a little time gained, a barrister named Mr. W.M. Thompson worked tirelessly day after day on their legal defense. We paid fines, with Mrs. Marx Aveling eager to help. I led a group out of Millbank Prison after paying their fines; we looked ragged, with bruised bodies, torn clothes, and no hats. We stopped to buy hats to give our group a more respectable appearance, and we stayed together until I saw the men into trains and buses, cautious that the heightened emotions might lead to conflict again. We formed the Law and Liberty League to defend anyone unjustly attacked by the police, rescuing many from imprisonment; and we organized a public funeral for poor Linnell, who had been killed in Trafalgar Square. Sir Charles Warren prohibited the hearse from passing through any of the main roads west of Waterloo Bridge, so the procession waited there for it. W.T. Stead, R. Cunninghame Graham, Herbert Burrows, and I walked alongside the coffin, while William Morris, F. Smith, R. Dowling, and J. Seddon walked on the other side; the Rev. Stewart D. Headlam, the officiating clergyman, led the way, and fifty stewards carrying long wands surrounded the coffin. From Wellington Street to Bow Cemetery, the road was filled with people who respectfully removed their hats as the body passed; at Aldgate, the procession took three-quarters of an hour to pass one spot, and this way we escorted Linnell to his grave, a symbol of a cruel injustice, the vast, orderly, silent crowd, bareheaded, making a mute protest against the outrage committed.
It is pleasant to put on record here Mr. Bradlaugh's grave approval of the heavy work done in the police-courts, and the following paragraph shows how generously he could praise one not acting on his own lines: "As I have on most serious matters of principle recently differed very widely from my brave and loyal co-worker, and as the difference has been regrettably emphasised by her resignation of her editorial functions on this Journal, it is the more necessary that I should say how thoroughly I approve, and how grateful I am to her for, her conduct in not only obtaining bail and providing legal assistance for the helpless unfortunates in the hands of the police, but also for her daily personal attendance and wise conduct at the police-stations and police-courts, where she has done so much to abate harsh treatment on the one hand and rash folly on the other. While I should not have marked out this as fitting woman's work, especially in the recent very inclement weather, I desire to record my view that it has been bravely done, well done, and most usefully done, and I wish to mark this the more emphatically as my views and those of Mrs. Besant seem wider apart than I could have deemed possible on many of the points of principle underlying what is every day growing into a most serious struggle." Ever did I find Charles Bradlaugh thus tolerant of difference of opinion, generously eager to approve what to him seemed right even in a policy he disapproved.
It’s nice to note Mr. Bradlaugh's serious approval of the significant work done in the police courts. The following paragraph illustrates how generously he praised someone who didn't entirely share his views: "Although I have recently disagreed quite a bit with my brave and loyal co-worker on important matters of principle, and this difference has unfortunately been highlighted by her resignation from her editorial role in this Journal, it’s even more important for me to express how much I appreciate and support her actions. She not only secured bail and provided legal help for the vulnerable people caught up with the police, but she also attended police stations and courts daily, where she made a huge difference by reducing harsh treatment on one side and reckless behavior on the other. While I wouldn't typically consider this appropriate work for a woman, especially given the recent terrible weather, I want to emphasize that it has been done bravely, well, and very effectively. I feel the need to highlight this even more since my views and Mrs. Besant’s seem to have diverged more than I ever thought possible on many of the key principles underlying this increasingly serious struggle." I have always found Charles Bradlaugh to be tolerant of differing opinions, always eager to acknowledge what he believed was right, even in a policy he personally disagreed with.
The indignation grew and grew; the police were silently boycotted, but the people were so persistent and so tactful that no excuse for violence was given, until the strain on the police force began to tell, and the Tory Government felt that London was being hopelessly alienated; so at last Sir Charles Warren fell, and a wiser hand was put at the helm.
The anger escalated; the police faced a silent boycott, but the people were so determined and tactful that they didn’t give any reason for violence until the pressure on the police force became evident, and the Tory Government realized that London was becoming completely estranged. Eventually, Sir Charles Warren was replaced, and a more sensible leader took charge.
CHAPTER XIV.
CHAPTER 14.
THROUGH STORM TO PEACE.
Out of all this turmoil and stress rose a Brotherhood that had in it the promise of a fairer day. Mr. Stead and I had become close friends—he Christian, I Atheist, burning with one common love for man, one common hatred against oppression. And so in Our Corner for February, 1888, I wrote:—"Lately there has been dawning on the minds of men far apart in questions of theology, the idea of founding a new Brotherhood, in which service of Man should take the place erstwhile given to service of God—a brotherhood in which work should be worship and love should be baptism, in which none should be regarded as alien who was willing to work for human good. One day as I was walking towards Millbank Gaol with the Rev. S.D. Headlam, on the way to liberate a prisoner, I said to him: 'Mr. Headlam, we ought to have a new Church, which should include all who have the common ground of faith in and love for man.' And a little later I found that my friend Mr. W.T. Stead, editor of the Pall Mall Gazette, had long been brooding over a similar thought, and wondering whether men 'might not be persuaded to be as earnest about making this world happy as they are over saving their souls.' The teaching of social duty, the upholding of social righteousness, the building up of a true commonwealth—such would be among the aims of the Church of the future. Is the hope too fair for realisation? Is the winning of such beatific vision yet once more the dream of the enthusiast? But surely the one fact that persons so deeply differing in theological creeds as those who have been toiling for the last three months to aid and relieve the oppressed, can work in absolute harmony side by side for the one end—surely this proves that there is a bond which is stronger than our antagonisms, a unity which is deeper than the speculative theories which divide."
Out of all this chaos and stress emerged a Brotherhood that held the promise of a better future. Mr. Stead and I had become close friends—he Christian, I Atheist, united by a shared love for humanity and a common hatred of oppression. And so in Our Corner for February 1888, I wrote: "Recently, people with different theological views have started to consider the idea of creating a new Brotherhood, where serving humanity replaces the previous emphasis on serving God—a brotherhood where work is worship and love is our shared bond, in which no one is seen as an outsider as long as they're willing to work for the greater good. One day, while walking toward Millbank Gaol with the Rev. S.D. Headlam to free a prisoner, I said to him: 'Mr. Headlam, we should establish a new Church that includes everyone who shares a faith in and love for humanity.' Shortly after, I discovered that my friend Mr. W.T. Stead, editor of the Pall Mall Gazette, had also been contemplating a similar idea, questioning whether people could be motivated to care as much about making this world a happier place as they do about saving their souls. Teaching social responsibility, promoting social justice, and building a true community—these would be some of the goals of the Church of the future. Is this hope too idealistic to achieve? Is the pursuit of such a wonderful vision, once again, just a dream for the idealist? But the simple fact that people with such differing theological beliefs—those who have been working together for the past three months to help and support the oppressed—can collaborate in perfect harmony for this common goal surely proves that there is a bond stronger than our disagreements, a unity deeper than the theoretical differences that divide us."
How unconsciously I was marching towards the Theosophy which was to become the glory of my life, groping blindly in the darkness for that very brotherhood, definitely formulated on these very lines by those Elder Brothers of our race, at whose feet I was so soon to throw myself. How deeply this longing for something loftier than I had yet found had wrought itself into my life, how strong the conviction was growing that there was something to be sought to which the service of man was the road, may be seen in the following passage from the same article:—
How unknowingly I was walking towards the Theosophy that would become the highlight of my life, searching blindly in the dark for that very brotherhood, clearly defined along these lines by those Elder Brothers of our race, to whom I was soon going to submit myself. The depth of my longing for something greater than I had ever encountered and the strength of the belief that there was something worth pursuing, with the service of humanity as the pathway, can be seen in the following passage from the same article:—
"It has been thought that in these days of factories and of tramways, of shoddy, and of adulteration, that all life must tread with even rhythm of measured footsteps, and that the glory of the ideal could no longer glow over the greyness of a modern horizon. But signs are not awanting that the breath of the older heroism is beginning to stir men's breasts, and that the passion for justice and for liberty, which thrilled through the veins of the world's greatest in the past, and woke our pulses to responsive throb, has not yet died wholly out of the hearts of men. Still the quest of the Holy Grail exercises its deathless fascination, but the seekers no longer raise eyes to heaven, nor search over land and sea, for they know that it waits them in the suffering at their doors, that the consecration of the holiest is on the agonising masses of the poor and the despairing, the cup is crimson with the blood of the
"It has been believed that in this age of factories and trams, of cheap materials and food additives, all life must move to a monotonous beat, and that the beauty of ideals can no longer shine over the dull landscape of modern times. However, there are signs that the spirit of true heroism is starting to awaken within people, and that the passion for justice and freedom, which once thrilled the hearts of history's greatest figures and quickened our own pulses, has not completely vanished from human hearts. The search for the Holy Grail still holds its timeless allure, but the seekers no longer look up to the skies or wander across the earth, for they realize that it awaits them in the suffering they see around them, that the sanctity of the holy is found in the anguished lives of the poor and the hopeless, as the cup is stained red with their blood."
"'People, the grey-grown speechless Christ.'
"People, the muted elderly Christ."
... If there be a faith that can remove the mountains of ignorance and evil, it is surely that faith in the ultimate triumph of Right in the final enthronement of Justice, which alone makes life worth the living, and which gems the blackest cloud of depression with the rainbow-coloured arch of an immortal hope."
... If there is a belief that can eliminate the obstacles of ignorance and evil, it is definitely the belief in the eventual victory of what is right and the ultimate establishment of justice, which alone makes life worth living, and which adorns the darkest cloud of despair with the vibrant arc of eternal hope.
As a step towards bringing about some such union of those ready to work for man, Mr. Stead and I projected the Link, a halfpenny weekly, the spirit of which was described in its motto, taken from Victor Hugo: "The people are silence. I will be the advocate of this silence. I will speak for the dumb. I will speak of the small to the great and of the feeble to the strong.... I will speak for all the despairing silent ones. I will interpret this stammering; I will interpret the grumblings, the murmurs, the tumults of crowds, the complaints ill-pronounced, and all these cries of beasts that, through ignorance and through suffering, man is forced to utter ... I will be the Word of the People. I will be the bleeding mouth whence the gag is snatched out. I will say everything." It announced its object to be the "building up" of a "New Church, dedicated to the service of man," and "what we want to do is to establish in every village and in every street some man or woman who will sacrifice time and labour as systematically and as cheerfully in the temporal service of man as others do in what they believe to be the service of God." Week after week we issued our little paper, and it became a real light in the darkness. There the petty injustices inflicted on the poor found voice; there the starvation wages paid to women found exposure; there sweating was brought to public notice. A finisher of boots paid 2s. 6d. per dozen pairs and "find your own polish and thread"; women working for 10½ hours per day, making shirts—"fancy best"—at from 10d. to 3s. per dozen, finding their own cotton and needles, paying for gas, towel, and tea (compulsory), earning from 4s. to 10s. per week for the most part; a mantle finisher 2s. 2d. a week, out of which 6d. for materials; "respectable hard-working woman" tried for attempted suicide, "driven to rid herself of life from want." Another part of our work was defending people from unjust landlords, exposing workhouse scandals, enforcing the Employers' Liability Act, Charles Bradlaugh's Truck Act, forming "Vigilance Circles" whose members kept watch in their own district over cases of cruelty to children, extortion, insanitary workshops, sweating, &c., reporting each case to me. Into this work came Herbert Burrows, who had joined hands with me over the Trafalgar Square defence, and who wrote some noble articles in the Link. A man loving the people with passionate devotion, hating oppression and injustice with equal passion, working himself with remorseless energy, breaking his heart over wrongs he could not remedy. His whole character once came out in a sentence when he was lying delirious and thought himself dying: "Tell the people how I have loved them always."
As a step towards creating a union of those willing to work for humanity, Mr. Stead and I launched the Link, a weekly publication costing half a penny. Its spirit was captured in its motto, inspired by Victor Hugo: "The people are silent. I will be the voice for this silence. I will speak for the voiceless. I will speak from the small to the great and from the weak to the strong.... I will speak for all the desperate silent ones. I will interpret this confusion; I will interpret the grumbles, the murmurs, the outcries of crowds, the poorly expressed complaints, and all these cries of anguish that, through ignorance and suffering, humanity is forced to utter ... I will be the Voice of the People. I will be the bleeding mouth from which the gag is removed. I will say everything." We declared our mission to be the "building up" of a "New Church, dedicated to serving humanity," and "what we want to do is establish in every village and on every street someone who will dedicate their time and effort as consistently and cheerfully to the service of humanity as others do in what they believe to be the service of God." Week after week, we published our little paper, and it became a genuine beacon in the darkness. Here, the minor injustices faced by the poor were voiced; here, the starvation wages paid to women were exposed; here, sweatshop conditions were brought to public attention. A boot finisher was paid 2s. 6d. per dozen pairs and had to "provide their own polish and thread"; women working 10½ hours a day making shirts—"fancy best"—for anywhere from 10d. to 3s. per dozen, also providing their own cotton and needles, and covering costs for gas, towels, and mandatory tea, typically earning between 4s. and 10s. a week; a mantle finisher earned just 2s. 2d. a week, from which 6d. was deducted for materials; a "respectable hardworking woman" attempted suicide, "driven to end her life from desperation." Another part of our work involved defending individuals from unfair landlords, exposing scandals in workhouses, enforcing the Employers' Liability Act, and Charles Bradlaugh's Truck Act, forming "Vigilance Circles" whose members monitored their local areas for instances of cruelty to children, extortion, unhealthy workshops, sweatshop practices, etc., and reported each case to me. Herbert Burrows joined this effort after collaborating with me on the Trafalgar Square defense and wrote some powerful articles for the Link. He was a man who loved the people with passionate devotion, equally despising oppression and injustice, working tirelessly, and deeply troubled by the wrongs he couldn't fix. His entire character was revealed in a moment of delirium when he thought he was dying: "Tell the people how I have always loved them."
In our crusade for the poor we worked for the dockers." To-morrow morning, in London alone 20,000 to 25,000 adult men," wrote Sidney Webb, "will fight like savages for permission to labour in the docks for 4d. an hour, and one-third of them will fight in vain, and be turned workless away." We worked for children's dinners. "If we insist on these children being educated, is it not necessary that they shall be fed? If not, we waste on them knowledge they cannot assimilate, and torture many of them to death. Poor waifs of humanity, we drive them into the school and bid them learn; and the pitiful, wistful eyes question us why we inflict this strange new suffering, and bring into their dim lives this new pang. 'Why not leave us alone? 'ask the pathetically patient little faces. Why not, indeed, since for these child martyrs of the slums, Society has only formulas, not food." We cried out against "cheap goods," that meant "sweated and therefore stolen goods." "The ethics of buying should surely be simply enough. We want a particular thing, and we do not desire to obtain it either by begging or by robbery; but if in becoming possessed of it, we neither beg it nor steal, we must give for it something equivalent in exchange; so much of our neighbour's labour has been put into the thing we desire; if we will not yield him fair equivalent for that labour, yet take his article, we defraud him, and if we are not willing to give that fair equivalent we have no right to become the owners of his product."
In our fight for the poor, we advocated for the dock workers. "Tomorrow morning, in London alone, 20,000 to 25,000 adult men," Sidney Webb wrote, "will struggle fiercely for the chance to work in the docks for 4d. an hour, and a third of them will struggle in vain and be sent away without work." We advocated for children's meals. "If we insist on these children receiving an education, isn’t it essential that they are fed? Otherwise, we are wasting knowledge on them that they can’t absorb and torturing many of them to death. Poor souls, we push them into school and tell them to learn; and their sad, searching eyes ask us why we impose this strange new suffering and bring this new pain into their bleak lives. 'Why not just leave us alone?' ask the heartbreakingly patient little faces. Why not, indeed, since for these child victims of the slums, Society offers only theories, not food." We spoke out against "cheap goods," which meant "exploited and therefore stolen goods." "The ethics of purchasing should be straightforward. We want a specific item, and we don’t want to acquire it through begging or theft; but if we want to obtain it without begging or stealing, we must provide something of equal value in exchange. So much of our neighbor's labor has gone into the item we want; if we won’t offer a fair equivalent for that labor yet take his product, we are cheating him, and if we’re not willing to give that fair equivalent, we have no right to claim ownership of his work."
This branch of our work led to a big fight—a fight most happy in its results. At a meeting of the Fabian Society, Miss Clementina Black gave a capital lecture on Female Labour, and urged the formation of a Consumers' League, pledged only to buy from shops certificated "clean" from unfair wage. H.H. Champion, in the discussion that followed, drew attention to the wages paid by Bryant & May (Limited), while paying an enormous dividend to their shareholders, so that the value of the original £5 shares was quoted at £18 7s. 6d. Herbert Burrows and I interviewed some of the girls, got lists of wages, of fines, &c. "A typical case is that of a girl of sixteen, a piece-worker; she earns 4s. a week, and lives with a sister, employed by the same firm, who 'earns good money, as much as 8s. or 9s. a week.' Out of the earnings 2s. a week is paid for the rent of one room. The child lives only on bread and butter and tea, alike for breakfast and dinner, but related with dancing eyes that once a month she went to a meal where 'you get coffee and bread and butter, and jam and marmalade, and lots of it.'" We published the facts under the title of "White Slavery in London," and called for a boycott of Bryant & May's matches. "It is time some one came and helped us," said two pale-faced girls to me; and I asked: "Who will help? Plenty of people wish well to any good cause; but very few care to exert themselves to help it, and still fewer will risk anything in its support. 'Some one ought to do it, but why should I?' is the ever re-echoed phrase of weak-kneed amiability. 'Some one ought to do it, so why not I?' is the cry of some earnest servant of man, eagerly forward springing to face some perilous duty. Between those two sentences lie whole centuries of moral evolution."
This part of our work led to a significant confrontation—a confrontation that ended positively. At a meeting of the Fabian Society, Miss Clementina Black delivered an excellent lecture on Women's Labor and advocated for the creation of a Consumers' League, committed to buying only from stores certified as "clean" regarding fair wages. H.H. Champion, during the ensuing discussion, highlighted the wages paid by Bryant & May (Limited), which provided massive dividends to their shareholders, with the original £5 shares being valued at £18 7s. 6d. Herbert Burrows and I spoke with some of the girls, gathering information on wages, fines, and so on. "A typical case is a sixteen-year-old piece-worker; she earns 4s. a week and lives with a sister who works for the same company and 'earns good money, around 8s. or 9s. a week.' Out of her earnings, 2s. a week goes toward rent for one room. The girl’s diet consists only of bread, butter, and tea for both breakfast and dinner, but she excitedly shared that once a month she gets to enjoy a meal where 'you get coffee and bread and butter, and jam and marmalade, and lots of it.'" We published these findings under the title "White Slavery in London" and called for a boycott of Bryant & May's matches. "It's time someone came and helped us," said two pale-faced girls to me; I responded, "Who will help? Many people support good causes in theory, but very few are willing to put in the effort to aid them, and even fewer are willing to risk anything in the name of support. 'Someone should do it, but why should I?' is the common refrain of those lacking conviction. 'Someone ought to do it, so why not me?' is the rallying cry of those genuinely dedicated to helping others, eagerly stepping up to take on difficult responsibilities. Between those two statements lie centuries of moral progress."
I was promptly threatened with an action for libel, but nothing came of it; it was easier to strike at the girls, and a few days later Fleet Street was enlivened by the irruption of a crowd of match-girls, demanding Annie Besant. I couldn't speechify to match-girls in Fleet Street, so asked that a deputation should come and explain what they wanted. Up came three women and told their story: they had been asked to sign a paper certifying that they were well treated and contented, and that my statements were untrue; they refused. "You had spoke up for us," explained one, "and we weren't going back on you." A girl, pitched on as their leader, was threatened with dismissal; she stood firm; next day she was discharged for some trifle, and they all threw down their work, some 1,400 of them, and then a crowd of them started off to me to ask what to do next. If we ever worked in our lives, Herbert Burrows and I worked for the next fortnight. And a pretty hubbub we created; we asked for money, and it came pouring in; we registered the girls to receive strike pay, wrote articles, roused the clubs, held public meetings, got Mr. Bradlaugh to ask questions in Parliament, stirred up constituencies in which shareholders were members, till the whole country rang with the struggle. Mr. Frederick Charrington lent us a hall for registration, Mr. Sidney Webb and others moved the National Liberal Club to action; we led a procession of the girls to the House of Commons, and interviewed, with a deputation of them, Members of Parliament who cross-questioned them. The girls behaved splendidly, stuck together, kept brave and bright all through. Mr. Hobart of the Social Democratic Federation, Messrs. Shaw, Bland, and Oliver, and Headlam of the Fabian Society, Miss Clementina Black, and many another helped in the heavy work. The London Trades Council finally consented to act as arbitrators and a satisfactory settlement was arrived at; the girls went in to work, fines and deductions were abolished, better wages paid; the Match-makers' Union was established, still the strongest woman's Trades Union in England, and for years I acted as secretary, till, under press of other duties, I resigned, and my work was given by the girls to Mrs. Thornton Smith; Herbert Burrows became, and still is, the treasurer. For a time there was friction between the Company and the Union, but it gradually disappeared under the influence of common sense on both sides, and we have found the manager ready to consider any just grievance and to endeavour to remove it, while the Company have been liberal supporters of the Working Women's Club at Bow, founded by H.P. Blavatsky.
I was quickly threatened with a libel lawsuit, but nothing came of it; it was easier to go after the girls, and a few days later, Fleet Street was buzzing with a crowd of match-girls demanding Annie Besant. I couldn't address match-girls in Fleet Street, so I asked for a delegation to come and explain what they wanted. Three women came up and shared their story: they had been asked to sign a paper stating that they were well-treated and happy, and that my statements were false; they refused. "You stood up for us," one explained, "and we weren't going to go back on you." A girl, chosen as their leader, was threatened with being fired; she stood her ground; the next day she was let go for a minor reason, and all 1,400 of them quit their jobs, then a group came to me to ask what to do next. If we ever worked hard in our lives, Herbert Burrows and I did for the next two weeks. And we made quite a stir; we asked for donations, and they came pouring in; we registered the girls to receive strike pay, wrote articles, rallied the clubs, held public meetings, got Mr. Bradlaugh to ask questions in Parliament, and energized constituencies where shareholders were members, until the whole country was buzzing with the struggle. Mr. Frederick Charrington let us use a hall for registration, Mr. Sidney Webb and others got the National Liberal Club to take action; we led a procession of the girls to the House of Commons, and, with a delegation from them, we interviewed Members of Parliament who questioned them. The girls were fantastic, stuck together, and stayed brave and cheerful throughout. Mr. Hobart of the Social Democratic Federation, Messrs. Shaw, Bland, and Oliver, and Headlam of the Fabian Society, Miss Clementina Black, and many others helped with the heavy lifting. The London Trades Council eventually agreed to arbitrate, and a satisfactory settlement was reached; the girls returned to work, fines and deductions were eliminated, and better wages were paid; the Match-makers' Union was established, which is still the strongest women’s Trades Union in England, and for years I served as secretary until I resigned due to other commitments, and my role was passed on to Mrs. Thornton Smith by the girls; Herbert Burrows became, and still is, the treasurer. For a while, there was tension between the Company and the Union, but it gradually faded as common sense prevailed on both sides, and we found the manager willing to consider any valid complaint and work to resolve it, while the Company has been generous supporters of the Working Women's Club at Bow, founded by H.P. Blavatsky.
STRIKE COMMITTEE OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION.
The worst suffering of all was among the box-makers, thrown out of work by the strike, and they were hard to reach. Twopence-farthing per gross of boxes, and buy your own string and paste, is not wealth, but when the work went more rapid starvation came. Oh, those trudges through the lanes and alleys round Bethnal Green Junction late at night, when our day's work was over; children lying about on shavings, rags, anything; famine looking out of baby faces, out of women's eyes, out of the tremulous hands of men. Heart grew sick and eyes dim, and ever louder sounded the question, "Where is the cure for sorrow, what the way of rescue for the world?"
The worst suffering was among the box-makers, who lost their jobs because of the strike, and they were tough to reach. Two-and-a-half pence for a gross of boxes, and you have to buy your own string and glue, isn't wealth, but when the work stopped, starvation followed. Oh, those walks through the streets and alleys around Bethnal Green Junction late at night after our workday ended; children lying on scraps, rags, anything they could find; hunger showing in baby faces, in women's eyes, in the trembling hands of men. My heart grew sick and my vision blurred, and the question became louder: "Where is the cure for sorrow, and what is the way to rescue the world?"
In August I asked for a "match-girls' drawing-room." "It will want a piano, tables for papers, for games, for light literature; so that it may offer a bright, homelike refuge to these girls, who now have no real homes, no playground save the streets. It is not proposed to build an 'institution' with stern and rigid discipline and enforcement of prim behaviour, but to open a home, filled with the genial atmosphere of cordial comradeship, and self-respecting freedom—the atmosphere so familiar to all who have grown up in the blessed shelter of a happy home, so strange, alas! to too many of our East London girls." In the same month of August, two years later, H.P. Blavatsky opened such a home.
In August, I requested a "match-girls' lounge." "It will need a piano, tables for papers, games, and light reading so that it can provide a bright, welcoming space for these girls who currently have no real homes and no playgrounds except the streets. We don't plan to create an 'institution' with harsh rules and strict enforcement of proper behavior, but to establish a home filled with a warm atmosphere of friendly companionship and respectful freedom—the kind of environment that's familiar to anyone who grew up in the blessing of a happy home, but sadly unfamiliar to too many of our girls in East London." In the same month of August, two years later, H.P. Blavatsky opened such a home.
Then came a cry for help from South London, from tin-box makers, illegally fined, and in many cases grievously mutilated by the non-fencing of machinery; then aid to shop assistants, also illegally fined; legal defences by the score still continued; a vigorous agitation for a free meal for children, and for fair wages to be paid by all public bodies; work for the dockers and exposure of their wrongs; a visit to the Cradley Heath chain-makers, speeches to them, writing for them; a contest for the School Board for the Tower Hamlets division, and triumphant return at the head of the poll. Such were some of the ways in which the autumn days were spent, to say nothing of scores of lectures—Secularist, Labour, Socialist—and scores of articles written for the winning of daily bread. When the School Board work was added I felt that I had as much work as one woman's strength could do.
Then there was a call for help from South London, from tin-box makers who had been fined illegally and, in many cases, seriously injured due to unguarded machinery; then support for shop assistants, who were also fined illegally; legal defenses by the dozens still continued; a strong push for free meals for children and for fair wages to be paid by all public bodies; work for the dockworkers and exposing their issues; a visit to the Cradley Heath chain-makers, speaking to them, writing for them; a campaign for the School Board for the Tower Hamlets division, and a successful return at the top of the poll. Those were just some of the ways I spent my autumn days, not to mention the many lectures—Secularist, Labour, Socialist—and the numerous articles written to make ends meet. When the School Board work was added, I felt like I had as much work as one woman could handle.
Thus was ushered in 1889, the to me never-to-be-forgotten year in which I found my way "Home," and had the priceless good fortune of meeting, and of becoming the pupil of, H.P. Blavatsky. Ever more and more had been growing on me the feeling that something more than I had was needed for the cure of social ills. The Socialist position sufficed on the economic side, but where to gain the inspiration, the motive, which should lead to the realisation of the Brotherhood of Man? Our efforts to really organise bands of unselfish workers had failed. Much indeed had been done, but there was not a real movement of self-sacrificing devotion, in which men worked for Love's sake only, and asked but to give, not to take. Where was the material for the nobler Social Order, where the hewn stones for the building of the Temple of Man? A great despair would oppress me as I sought for such a movement and found it not.
Thus began 1889, a year I will never forget, when I found my way "Home" and had the priceless good fortune to meet and become a student of H.P. Blavatsky. I increasingly felt that something beyond what I had was necessary to address social issues. The Socialist viewpoint was sufficient on the economic front, but where could I find the inspiration and motivation to truly realize the Brotherhood of Man? Our attempts to organize groups of selfless workers had failed. A lot had been accomplished, but there wasn’t a genuine movement of self-sacrificing devotion, where individuals worked solely for the sake of Love, giving without expecting anything in return. Where was the material for a higher Social Order, where were the hewn stones for building the Temple of Man? A deep despair weighed on me as I searched for such a movement and found none.
MEMBERS OF THE MATCHMAKERS' UNION.
Not only so; but since 1886 there had been slowly growing up a conviction that my philosophy was not sufficient; that life and mind were other than, more than, I had dreamed. Psychology was advancing with rapid strides; hypnotic experiments were revealing unlooked-for complexities in human consciousness, strange riddles of multiplex personalities, and, most startling of all, vivid intensities of mental action when the brain, that should be the generator of thought, was reduced to a comatose state. Fact after fact came hurtling in upon me, demanding explanation I was incompetent to give. I studied the obscurer sides of consciousness, dreams, hallucinations, illusions, insanity. Into the darkness shot a ray of light—A.P. Sinnett's "Occult World," with its wonderfully suggestive letters, expounding not the supernatural but a nature under law, wider than I had dared to conceive. I added Spiritualism to my studies, experimenting privately, finding the phenomena indubitable, but the spiritualistic explanation of them incredible. The phenomena of clairvoyance, clairaudience, thought-reading, were found to be real. Under all the rush of the outer life, already sketched, these questions were working in my mind, their answers were being diligently sought. I read a variety of books, but could find little in them that satisfied me. I experimented in various ways suggested in them, and got some (to me) curious results. I finally convinced myself that there was some hidden thing, some hidden power, and resolved to seek until I found, and by the early spring of 1889 I had grown desperately determined to find at all hazards what I sought. At last, sitting alone in deep thought as I had become accustomed to do after the sun had set, filled with an intense but nearly hopeless longing to solve the riddle of life and mind, I heard a Voice that was later to become to me the holiest sound on earth, bidding me take courage for the light was near. A fortnight passed, and then Mr. Stead gave into my hands two large volumes. "Can you review these? My young men all fight shy of them, but you are quite mad enough on these subjects to make something of them." I took the books; they were the two volumes of "The Secret Doctrine," written by H.P. Blavatsky.
Not only that; but since 1886, I had been gradually realizing that my philosophy wasn't enough; that life and mind were different, more complex than I had imagined. Psychology was making significant progress; hypnotic experiments were uncovering unexpected complexities in human consciousness, strange puzzles of multiple personalities, and, most surprisingly, intense mental activity even when the brain—typically the source of thought—was in a comatose state. One fact after another bombarded me, each needing an explanation I couldn’t provide. I delved into the obscure areas of consciousness, dreams, hallucinations, illusions, and insanity. Suddenly, a beacon of light appeared—A.P. Sinnett's "Occult World," with its thought-provoking letters, explaining not the supernatural but a nature governed by laws more extensive than I had dared to imagine. I began to study Spiritualism, conducting private experiments and finding the phenomena undeniable, but the spiritualistic explanations simply unbelievable. I discovered that clairvoyance, clairaudience, and thought-reading were real. Amid the chaos of my outer life, which I had already outlined, these questions continued to occupy my mind, and I was diligently searching for answers. I read various books but struggled to find anything that truly satisfied me. I experimented with different methods suggested in them, getting some (to me) interesting results. I eventually convinced myself that there was something hidden, some unknown power, and resolved to seek it out. By early spring of 1889, I had become desperately determined to discover what I was looking for. Finally, while sitting alone in deep thought as I had become used to after sunset, filled with a strong yet nearly hopeless desire to unravel the mystery of life and mind, I heard a Voice that would later be the most sacred sound to me, encouraging me to be brave because the light was close. Two weeks passed, and then Mr. Stead handed me two large volumes. "Can you review these? My young men are all reluctant to tackle them, but you’re adventurous enough in these subjects to do something with them." I took the books; they were the two volumes of "The Secret Doctrine," written by H.P. Blavatsky.
Home I carried my burden, and sat me down to read. As I turned over page after page the interest became absorbing; but how familiar it seemed; how my mind leapt forward to presage the conclusions, how natural it was, how coherent, how subtle, and yet how intelligible. I was dazzled, blinded by the light in which disjointed facts were seen as parts of a mighty whole, and all my puzzles, riddles, problems, seemed to disappear. The effect was partially illusory in one sense, in that they all had to be slowly unravelled later, the brain gradually assimilating that which the swift intuition had grasped as truth. But the light had been seen, and in that flash of illumination I knew that the weary search was over and the very Truth was found.
Home, I carried my burden and sat down to read. As I flipped through page after page, my interest grew deeper; but it felt so familiar. My mind raced ahead, predicting the conclusions. It was so natural, so coherent, so subtle, and yet so clear. I was dazzled, blinded by the light that made disjointed facts look like pieces of a grand whole, and all my puzzles, riddles, and problems seemed to fade away. The feeling was somewhat misleading, though, since I knew I would have to slowly untangle everything later, my brain gradually absorbing what my quick intuition had recognized as truth. But the light had shone through, and in that moment of clarity, I knew that the long search was over and I had found the very Truth.
I wrote the review, and asked Mr. Stead for an introduction to the writer, and then sent a note asking to be allowed to call. I received the most cordial of notes, bidding me come, and in the soft spring evening Herbert Burrows and I—for his aspirations were as mine on this matter—walked from Netting Hill Station, wondering what we should meet, to the door of 17, Lansdowne Road. A pause, a swift passing through hall and outer room, through folding-doors thrown back, a figure in a large chair before a table, a voice, vibrant, compelling, "My dear Mrs. Besant, I have so long wished to see you," and I was standing with my hand in her firm grip, and looking for the first time in this life straight into the eyes of "H.P.B." I was conscious of a sudden leaping forth of my heart—was it recognition?—and then, I am ashamed to say, a fierce rebellion, a fierce withdrawal, as of some wild animal when it feels a mastering hand. I sat down, after some introductions that conveyed no ideas to me, and listened. She talked of travels, of various countries, easy brilliant talk, her eyes veiled, her exquisitely moulded fingers rolling cigarettes incessantly. Nothing special to record, no word of Occultism, nothing mysterious, a woman of the world chatting with her evening visitors. We rose to go, and for a moment the veil lifted, and two brilliant, piercing eyes met mine, and with a yearning throb in the voice: "Oh, my dear Mrs. Besant, if you would only come among us!" I felt a well-nigh uncontrollable desire to bend down and kiss her, under the compulsion of that yearning voice, those compelling eyes, but with a flash of the old unbending pride and an inward jeer at my own folly, I said a commonplace polite good-bye, and turned away with some inanely courteous and evasive remark. "Child," she said to me long afterwards, "your pride is terrible; you are as proud as Lucifer himself." But truly I think I never showed it to her again after that first evening, though it sprang up wrathfully in her defence many and many a time, until I learned the pettiness and the worthlessness of all criticism, and knew that the blind were objects of compassion not of scorn.
I wrote the review and asked Mr. Stead to introduce me to the writer. Then I sent a note requesting to be allowed to call. I received the most welcoming note, inviting me to come, and on that soft spring evening, Herbert Burrows and I—since his goals were the same as mine in this matter—walked from Netting Hill Station to the door of 17 Lansdowne Road, wondering what we would encounter. There was a pause, a quick passage through the hall and outer room, through the open folding doors, and then I saw a figure in a large chair before a table. A voice, vibrant and compelling, said, "My dear Mrs. Besant, I have long wanted to see you," and I found myself standing with my hand in her firm grip, looking straight into the eyes of "H.P.B." For a moment, my heart jumped—was it recognition?—and then, I’m embarrassed to admit, I felt a fierce rebellion, a strong withdrawal, like a wild animal sensing a commanding presence. After some introductions that didn’t register with me, I sat down and listened. She talked effortlessly about her travels and different countries, her conversation brilliant and easy, her eyes slightly veiled, her beautifully shaped fingers constantly rolling cigarettes. There was nothing remarkable to record, no mention of Occultism, nothing mysterious—just a worldly woman chatting with her evening guests. When we stood to leave, the veil lifted for a moment, and her brilliant, piercing eyes met mine. With a passionate throb in her voice, she said, "Oh, my dear Mrs. Besant, if you would only come among us!" I felt an almost uncontrollable urge to lean down and kiss her, compelled by that yearning voice and those captivating eyes. But, with a flash of my old unyielding pride and a silent mockery of my own foolishness, I simply said a polite goodbye and turned away with some mindless courteous and evasive remark. "Child," she said to me long afterward, "your pride is terrible; you are as proud as Lucifer himself." Yet, I truly believe I never showed it to her again after that first evening, although it flared up fiercely in her defense many times until I learned the pettiness and worthlessness of all criticism and understood that the blind are objects of compassion, not scorn.
Once again I went, and asked about the Theosophical Society, wishful to join, but fighting against it. For I saw, distinct and clear—with painful distinctness, indeed—what that joining would mean. I had largely conquered public prejudice against me by my work on the London School Board, and a smoother road stretched before me, whereon effort to help should be praised not blamed. Was I to plunge into a new vortex of strife, and make myself a mark for ridicule—worse than hatred—and fight again the weary fight for an unpopular truth? Must I turn against Materialism, and face the shame of publicly confessing that I had been wrong, misled by intellect to ignore the Soul? Must I leave the army that had battled for me so bravely, the friends who through all brutality of social ostracism had held me dear and true? And he, the strongest and truest friend of all, whose confidence I had shaken by my Socialism—must he suffer the pang of seeing his co-worker, his co-fighter, of whom he had been so proud, to whom he had been so generous, go over to the opposing hosts, and leave the ranks of Materialism? What would be the look in Charles Bradlaugh's eyes when I told him that I had become a Theosophist? The struggle was sharp and keen, but with none of the anguish of old days in it, for the soldier had now fought many fights and was hardened by many wounds. And so it came to pass that I went again to Lansdowne Road to ask about the Theosophical Society. H.P. Blavatsky looked at me piercingly for a moment. "Have you read the report about me of the Society for Psychical Research?" "No; I never heard of it, so far as I know." "Go and read it, and if, after reading it, you come back—well." And nothing more would she say on the subject, but branched off to her experiences in many lands.
Once again, I went to ask about the Theosophical Society, eager to join but conflicted about it. I clearly saw—painfully clearly, in fact—what joining would entail. I had mostly overcome the public prejudice against me through my work on the London School Board, and a smoother path lay ahead where my efforts to help would be praised, not criticized. Was I really going to dive into new conflicts and make myself a target for ridicule—worse than hatred—and fight again for an unpopular truth? Did I have to turn against Materialism and face the embarrassment of publicly admitting I had been wrong, misled by my intellect to neglect the Soul? Would I have to leave the group that had fought for me so fiercely, the friends who had remained loyal despite the harshness of social ostracism? And he, my strongest and truest friend, whose confidence I had shaken with my Socialism—would he have to endure the pain of seeing his teammate, his fellow fighter, whom he had been so proud of and so generous toward, switch sides and abandon Materialism? What would Charles Bradlaugh think when I told him I had become a Theosophist? The struggle was intense, but not as agonizing as it had been in the past, for I was a soldier who had fought many battles and had been hardened by many wounds. So, I found myself once more at Lansdowne Road to inquire about the Theosophical Society. H.P. Blavatsky looked at me intently for a moment. "Have you read the report about me from the Society for Psychical Research?" "No; I haven't heard of it as far as I know." "Go read it, and if, after reading it, you come back—well." She said nothing more on the subject and shifted to share her experiences in various lands.
I borrowed a copy of the Report, read and re-read it. Quickly I saw how slender was the foundation on which the imposing structure was built. The continual assumptions on which conclusions were based; the incredible character of the allegations; and—most damning fact of all—the foul source from which the evidence was derived. Everything turned on the veracity of the Coulombs, and they were self-stamped as partners in the alleged frauds. Could I put such against the frank, fearless nature that I had caught a glimpse of, against the proud fiery truthfulness that shone at me from the clear, blue eyes, honest and fearless as those of a noble child? Was the writer of "The Secret Doctrine" this miserable impostor, this accomplice of tricksters, this foul and loathsome deceiver, this conjuror with trap-doors and sliding panels? I laughed aloud at the absurdity and flung the Report aside with the righteous scorn of an honest nature that knew its own kin when it met them, and shrank from the foulness and baseness of a lie. The next day saw me at the Theosophical Publishing Company's office at 7, Duke Street, Adelphi, where Countess Wachtmeister—one of the lealest of H.P.B.'s friends—was at work, and I signed an application to be admitted as fellow of the Theosophical Society.
I borrowed a copy of the Report, read it, and re-read it. I quickly realized how shaky the foundation of the impressive claims was. The constant assumptions underlying the conclusions; the outrageous nature of the allegations; and—most damaging of all—the disgusting source of the evidence. Everything depended on the truthfulness of the Coulombs, who clearly presented themselves as accomplices in the supposed fraud. How could I reconcile that with the genuine, fearless character I had seen, with the proud, bright honesty reflected in those clear blue eyes, as honest and brave as those of a noble child? Was the writer of "The Secret Doctrine" really this pathetic fraud, this partner of tricksters, this vile and disgusting deceiver, this magician using trap-doors and sliding panels? I laughed out loud at the absurdity and tossed the Report aside with the righteous scorn of someone who knows their own kind when they see them and recoils from the filthiness and meanness of a lie. The next day, I was at the Theosophical Publishing Company's office at 7, Duke Street, Adelphi, where Countess Wachtmeister—one of H.P.B.'s most loyal friends—was working, and I signed an application to join the Theosophical Society.
On receiving my diploma I betook myself to Lansdowne Road, where I found H.P.B. alone. I went over to her, bent down and kissed her, but said no word. "You have joined the Society?" "Yes." "You have read the report?" "Yes." "Well?" I knelt down before her and clasped her hands in mine, looking straight into her eyes. "My answer is, will you accept me as your pupil, and give me the honour of proclaiming you my teacher in the face of the world?" Her stern, set face softened, the unwonted gleam of tears sprang to her eyes; then, with a dignity more than regal, she placed her hand upon my head. "You are a noble woman. May Master bless you."
On receiving my diploma, I headed over to Lansdowne Road, where I found H.P.B. sitting alone. I approached her, leaned down, and kissed her without saying a word. "Have you joined the Society?" she asked. "Yes." "Have you read the report?" "Yes." "Well?" I knelt in front of her and took her hands in mine, looking directly into her eyes. "My answer is, will you accept me as your pupil and give me the honor of calling you my teacher in front of the world?" Her stern, serious expression softened, and I noticed tears welling in her eyes; then, with a dignity that felt more than royal, she placed her hand on my head. "You are a noble woman. May the Master bless you."
From that day, the 10th of May, 1889, until now—two years three and half months after she left her body on May 8, 1891—my faith in her has never wavered, my trust in her has never been shaken. I gave her my faith on an imperious intuition, I proved her true day after day in closest intimacy living by her side; and I speak of her with the reverence due from a pupil to a teacher who never failed her, with the passionate gratitude which, in our School, is the natural meed of the one who opens the gateway and points out the path. "Folly! fanaticism!" scoffs the Englishman of the nineteenth century. Be it so. I have seen, and I can wait. I have been told that I plunged headlong into Theosophy and let my enthusiasm carry me away. I think the charge is true, in so far as the decision was swiftly taken; but it had been long led up to, and realised the dreams of childhood on the higher planes of intellectual womanhood. And let me here say that more than all I hoped for in that first plunge has been realised, and a certainty of knowledge has been gained on doctrines seen as true as that swift flash of illumination. I know, by personal experiment, that the Soul exists, and that my Soul, not my body, is myself; that it can leave the body at will; that it can, disembodied, reach and learn from living human teachers, and bring back and impress on the physical brain that which it has learned; that this process of transferring consciousness from one range of being, as it were, to another, is a very slow process, during which the body and brain are gradually correlated with the subtler form which is essentially that of the Soul, and that my own experience of it, still so imperfect, so fragmentary, when compared with the experience of the highly trained, is like the first struggles of a child learning to speak compared with the perfect oratory of the practised speaker; that consciousness, so far from being dependent on the brain, is more active when freed from the gross forms of matter than when encased within them; that the great Sages spoken of by H.P. Blavatsky exist; that they wield powers and possess knowledge before which our control of Nature and knowledge of her ways is but as child's play. All this, and much more, have I learned, and I am but a pupil of low grade, as it were in the infant class of the Occult School; so the first plunge has been successful, and the intuition has been justified. This same path of knowledge that I am treading is open to all others who will pay the toll demanded at the gateway—and that toll is willingness to renounce everything for the sake of spiritual truth, and willingness to give all the truth that is won to the service of man, keeping back no shred for self.
From that day, May 10, 1889, until now—two years, three and a half months after she passed on May 8, 1891—my faith in her has never faltered, and my trust in her has remained unshaken. I placed my faith in her based on a strong intuition, and I confirmed her truth day after day while living closely by her side; I speak of her with the respect owed to a mentor who has never let her student down, with the deep gratitude that, in our School, is the natural reward for someone who opens the door and shows the way. "Folly! fanaticism!" scoffs the Englishman of the nineteenth century. That's fine. I have seen, and I can wait. I have been told that I jumped headfirst into Theosophy and let my enthusiasm take over. I think this accusation is accurate, at least in the sense that the decision was made quickly; but it had been a long time coming, realizing the dreams of childhood on the higher levels of intellectual womanhood. Let me say that more than I hoped for during that initial leap has come true, and a certainty of knowledge has been achieved on doctrines that are as real as that sudden flash of insight. I know, from personal experience, that the Soul exists, and that my Soul, not my body, is my true self; that it can leave the body at will; that it can, when not in a body, reach out to learn from living human teachers and impress that knowledge onto the physical brain; that this process of shifting consciousness from one realm of existence to another is very slow, during which the body and brain gradually align with the more subtle form that is essentially the Soul, and that my own experience of it, still so imperfect and fragmented compared to the experience of the highly trained, is like a child's first attempts to speak compared to the skilled eloquence of an experienced speaker; that consciousness, far from being tied to the brain, is more active when released from the dense forms of matter than when confined within them; that the great Sages mentioned by H.P. Blavatsky truly exist; that they possess powers and knowledge that make our control over nature and understanding of her ways seem like child's play. I have learned all this, and much more, yet I am just a low-level student, as if I am in the beginner class of the Occult School; so that first leap has been successful, and my intuition has been validated. This same path of knowledge that I am following is open to all others who are willing to pay the price at the entrance—and that price is the willingness to give up everything for the sake of spiritual truth, and the readiness to devote all the truth gained to the service of humanity, holding nothing back for oneself.
On June 23rd, in a review of "The Secret Doctrine" in the National Reformer, the following passages occur, and show how swiftly some of the main points of the teaching had been grasped. (There is a blunder in the statement that of the seven modifications of Matter Science knows only four, and till lately knew only three; these four are sub-states only, sub-divisions of the lowest plane.)
On June 23rd, in a review of "The Secret Doctrine" in the National Reformer, the following passages appear, showing how quickly some of the key points of the teachings were understood. (There’s an error in the claim that Science knows only four of the seven modifications of Matter, and until recently knew only three; these four are just sub-states, subdivisions of the lowest plane.)
After saying that the nineteenth-century Englishman would be but too likely to be repelled if he only skimmed the book, I went on: "With telescope and with microscope, with scalpel and with battery, Western Science interrogates nature, adding fact to fact, storing experience after experience, but coming ever to gulfs unfathomable by its plummets, to heights unscalable by its ladders. Wide and masterful in its answers to the 'How?' the 'Why?' ever eludes it, and causes remain enwrapped in gloom. Eastern Science uses as its scientific instrument the penetrating faculties of the mind alone, and regarding the material plane as Maya—illusion—seeks in the mental and spiritual planes of being the causes of the material effects. There, too, is the only reality; there the true existence of which the visible universe is but the shadow.
After saying that a nineteen-century Englishman would likely be put off if he just skimmed the book, I continued: "With telescopes and microscopes, with scalpels and batteries, Western Science interrogates nature, adding fact upon fact, storing experience after experience, but always coming to depths unfathomable by its tools, to heights unreachable by its ladders. While it can answer the 'How?' with great mastery, the 'Why?' always eludes it, leaving causes wrapped in darkness. Eastern Science uses the penetrating abilities of the mind as its scientific tool, viewing the material world as Maya—illusion—and seeks in the mental and spiritual realms the causes of material effects. There, too, lies the only reality; there is the true existence of which the visible universe is merely a shadow."
"It is clear that from such investigations some further mental equipment is necessary than that normally afforded by the human body. And here comes the parting of the ways between East and West. For the study of the material universe, our five senses, aided by the instruments invented by Science, may suffice. For all we can hear and see, taste and handle, these accustomed servitors, though often blundering, are the best available guides to knowledge. But it lies in the nature of the case that they are useless when the investigation is to be into modes of existence which cannot impress themselves on our nerve-ends. For instance, what we know as colour is the vibration frequency of etheric waves striking on the retina of the eye, between certain definite limits—759 trillions of blows from the maximum, 436 trillions from the minimum—these waves give rise in us to the sensation which the brain translates into colour. (Why the 436 trillion blows at one end of a nerve become 'Red' at the other end we do not know; we chronicle the fact but cannot explain it.) But our capacity to respond to the vibration cannot limit the vibrational capacity of the ether; to us the higher and lower rates of vibration do not exist, but if our sense of vision were more sensitive we should see where now we are blind. Following this line of thought we realise that matter may exist in forms unknown to us, in modifications to which our senses are unable to respond. Now steps in the Eastern Sage and says: 'That which you say may be, is; we have developed and cultivated senses as much superior to yours as your eye is superior to that of the jelly-fish; we have evolved mental and spiritual faculties which enable us to investigate on the higher planes of being with as much certainty as you are investigating on the physical plane; there is nothing supernatural in the business, any more than your knowledge is supernatural, though much above that accessible to the fish; we do not speculate on these higher forms of existence; we know them by personal study, just as you know the fauna and flora of your world. The powers we possess are not supernatural, they are latent in every human being, and will be evolved as the race progresses. All that we have done is to evolve them more rapidly than our neighbours, by a procedure as open to you as it was to us. Matter is everywhere, but it exists in seven modifications of which you only know four, and until lately only knew three; in those higher forms reside the causes of which you see the effects in the lower, and to know these causes you must develop the capacity to take cognisance of the higher planes.'"
"It’s clear that to really understand these things, we need some extra mental tools beyond what our bodies naturally provide. This is where East and West start to differ. When it comes to studying the material world, our five senses, along with tools created by Science, might be enough. For everything we can hear, see, taste, and touch, these familiar senses, despite their frequent mistakes, are our best teachers. However, they fall short when we need to explore forms of existence that can’t trigger our nerves. For example, what we perceive as color comes from the frequency vibration of ether waves hitting our eyes, between specific limits—759 trillion vibrations at the maximum and 436 trillion at the minimum—these waves create the sensation that our brain processes as color. (We don’t know why 436 trillion vibrations on one end of a nerve result in 'Red' at the other; we note the fact but can’t explain it.) Our ability to sense vibration doesn’t set a limit on the ether's vibrational range; for us, higher and lower vibrations don’t exist, but if our vision were more sensitive, we could see what we’re currently blind to. This leads us to realize that matter could exist in forms we’re not aware of, in variations our senses can’t perceive. Then the Eastern Sage steps in and says: ‘What you think might be, is; we have refined our senses to be much more advanced than yours, just like your eye is far better than that of a jellyfish; we’ve developed mental and spiritual abilities that allow us to explore higher planes of existence with as much certainty as you explore the physical world; there’s nothing supernatural about this, any more than your knowledge is supernatural, even if it’s much more advanced than what a fish can comprehend; we don’t just theorize about these higher forms of existence; we know them through personal experience, just like you know the wildlife and plants of your world. The abilities we have aren’t supernatural; they’re inherent in every person and will surface as humanity evolves. All we’ve done is evolve them more quickly than others, through a method just as accessible to you as it was to us. Matter is everywhere, but it exists in seven forms, of which you only recognize four, and until recently only recognized three; the reasons behind your visible effects in the lower forms are found in these higher forms, and to understand these reasons, you need to develop the ability to be aware of the higher planes.’"
Then followed a brief outline of the cycle of evolution, and I went on: "What part does man play in this vast drama of a universe? Needless to say, he is not the only living form in a Cosmos, which for the most part is uninhabitable by him. As Science has shown living forms everywhere on the material plane, races in each drop of water, life throbbing in every leaf and blade, so the 'Secret Doctrine' points to living forms on higher planes of existence, each suited to its environment, till all space thrills with life, and nowhere is there death, but only change. Amid these myriads are some evolving towards humanity, some evolving away from humanity as we know it, divesting themselves of its grosser parts. For man is regarded as a sevenfold being, four of these parts belonging to the animal body, and perishing at, or soon after, death; while three form his higher self, his true individuality, and these persist and are immortal. These form the Ego, and it is this which passes through many incarnations, learning life's lesson as it goes, working out its own redemption within the limits of an inexorable law, sowing seeds of which it ever reaps the harvest, building its own fate with tireless fingers, and finding nowhere in the measureless time and space around it any that can lift for it one weight it has created, one burden it has gathered, unravel for it one tangle it has twisted, close for it one gulf it has digged."
Then I provided a brief overview of the cycle of evolution and continued: "What role does humanity play in this vast drama of the universe? Naturally, we aren't the only living beings in a cosmos that's mostly uninhabitable for us. Science has demonstrated that life exists everywhere on the material plane, with countless organisms in every drop of water and life pulsing through every leaf and blade. Likewise, the 'Secret Doctrine' suggests there are living forms on higher planes of existence, each adapted to its environment, so that all of space vibrates with life, and there is no death—only change. Among these countless forms are some evolving toward humanity and others moving away, shedding their more primitive aspects. Humanity is seen as a sevenfold being, with four of these aspects tied to the physical body, which perish at or shortly after death, while three make up our higher self, our true individuality, which endures and is immortal. These three constitute the Ego, and it's this part that experiences many lifetimes, learning life's lessons along the way, achieving its own salvation within the constraints of an unyielding law, sowing seeds from which it continually reaps the harvest, shaping its own destiny with relentless effort, and finding no one in the vastness of time and space who can lift even a single weight it has created, relieve it of any burden it has accumulated, untangle any knot it has tied, or close any chasm it has dug."
Then after noting the approaches of Western Science to Eastern, came the final words: "it is of curious interest to note how some of the latest theories seem to catch glimpses of the occult Doctrines, as though Science were standing on the very threshold of knowledge which shall make all her past seem small. Already her hand is trembling towards the grasp of forces beside which all those now at her command are insignificant. How soon will her grip fasten on them? Let us hope not until social order has been transformed, lest they should only give more to those who have, and leave the wretched still wretcheder by force of contrast. Knowledge used by selfishness widens the gulf that divides man from man and race from race, and we may well shrink from the idea of new powers in Nature being yoked to the car of Greed. Hence the wisdom of those 'Masters,' in whose name Madame Blavatsky speaks, has ever denied the knowledge which is power until Love's lesson has been learned, and has given only into the hands of the selfless the control of those natural forces which, misused, would wreck society."
Then after observing the connections between Western and Eastern Science, came the final words: "it's interesting to see how some of the latest theories seem to hint at the mystical teachings, as if Science is on the brink of knowledge that will make everything it has learned seem minor. Already, its hand is reaching for forces that dwarf everything currently under its control. How soon will it seize them? Let’s hope not until society has been transformed, or else these forces may only benefit those who already have, leaving the less fortunate even worse off by comparison. Knowledge misused out of selfishness deepens the divide between individuals and races, and we should be wary of the notion of new powers in Nature being harnessed by greed. This is why the wisdom of those 'Masters,' on whose behalf Madame Blavatsky speaks, has always withheld knowledge that is power until the lesson of Love has been understood, only granting control of those natural forces to the selfless, as misusing them could destroy society."
This review, and the public announcement, demanded by honesty, that I had joined the Theosophical Society, naturally raised somewhat of a storm of criticism, and the National Reformer of June 30th contained the following: "The review of Madame Blavatsky's book in the last National Reformer, and an announcement in the Star, have brought me several letters on the subject of Theosophy. I am asked for an explanation as to what Theosophy is, and as to my own opinion on Theosophy—the word 'theosoph' is old, and was used among the Neo-platonists. From the dictionary its new meaning appears to be, 'one who claims to have a knowledge of God, or of the laws of nature by means of internal illumination.' An Atheist certainly cannot be a Theosophist. A Deist might be a Theosophist. A Monist cannot be a Theosophist. Theosophy must at least involve Dualism. Modern Theosophy, according to Madame Blavatsky, as set out in last week's issue, asserts much that I do not believe, and alleges some things that, to me, are certainly not true. I have not had the opportunity of reading Madame Blavatsky's two volumes, but I have read during the past ten years many publications from the pen of herself, Colonel Olcott, and of other Theosophists. They appear to me to have sought to rehabilitate a kind of Spiritualism in Eastern phraseology. I think many of their allegations utterly erroneous, and their reasonings wholly unsound. I very deeply regret indeed that my colleague and co-worker has, with somewhat of suddenness, and without any interchange of ideas with myself, adopted as facts matters which seem to me to be as unreal as it is possible for any fiction to be. My regret is greater as I know Mrs. Besant's devotion to any course she believes to be true. I know that she will always be earnest in the advocacy of any views she undertakes to defend, and I look to possible developments of her Theosophic views with the very gravest misgiving. The editorial policy of this paper is unchanged, and is directly antagonistic to all forms of Theosophy. I would have preferred on this subject to have held my peace, for the public disagreeing with Mrs. Besant on her adoption of Socialism has caused pain to both; but on reading her article and taking the public announcement made of her having joined the Theosophical organisation, I owe it to those who look to me for guidance to say this with clearness. "CHARLES BRADLAUGH."
This review and the public announcement, which I made out of honesty, that I had joined the Theosophical Society, understandably sparked quite a bit of criticism. The National Reformer on June 30th included this: "The review of Madame Blavatsky's book in the last National Reformer and an announcement in the Star have led to several letters about Theosophy. People are asking me to explain what Theosophy is and what my own opinion on it is—the term 'theosoph' is old and was used among the Neo-platonists. According to the dictionary, its new meaning seems to be 'one who claims to have knowledge of God or the laws of nature through internal illumination.' An Atheist cannot be a Theosophist. A Deist might be. A Monist cannot be a Theosophist. Theosophy must involve at least some form of Dualism. Modern Theosophy, as explained by Madame Blavatsky in last week's issue, claims a lot that I don’t believe and states some things that, to me, are definitely not true. I haven't had the chance to read Madame Blavatsky's two volumes, but over the past ten years, I've read many publications by her, Colonel Olcott, and other Theosophists. They seem to have tried to revive a kind of Spiritualism using Eastern terminology. I find many of their claims completely wrong, and their reasoning entirely flawed. I truly regret that my colleague and co-worker has, rather abruptly and without any discussion with me, accepted as facts issues that seem to me as unreal as any fiction could be. My regret is even greater knowing Mrs. Besant's dedication to any course she believes to be true. I know she will always passionately support any views she chooses to defend, and I look to possible developments of her Theosophic views with serious concern. The editorial policy of this paper remains unchanged and is directly opposed to all forms of Theosophy. I would have preferred to stay quiet on this matter, as the public disagreement with Mrs. Besant over her adoption of Socialism has caused distress to both of us; however, after reading her article and the public announcement of her joining the Theosophical organization, I owe it to those who look to me for guidance to state this clearly. "CHARLES BRADLAUGH."
"It is not possible for me here to state fully my reasons for joining
the Theosophical Society, the three objects of which are: To found a
Universal Brotherhood without distinction of race or creed; to forward
the study of Aryan literature and philosophy; to investigate
unexplained laws of nature and the physical powers latent in man. On
matters of religious opinion the members are absolutely free. The
founders of the society deny a personal God, and a somewhat subtle
form of Pantheism is taught as the Theosophic view of the universe,
though even this is not forced on members of the society. I have no
desire to hide the fact that this form of Pantheism appears to me to
promise solution of some problems, especially problems in psychology,
which Atheism leaves untouched.
"ANNIE BESANT."
"I can’t fully explain my reasons for joining the Theosophical Society here, but its three main goals are: to create a Universal Brotherhood without regard to race or belief; to promote the study of Aryan literature and philosophy; and to explore unexplained natural laws and the hidden powers within humanity. Members are completely free to hold their own religious beliefs. The founders of the society reject the idea of a personal God, and a somewhat nuanced version of Pantheism is presented as the Theosophic perspective of the universe, though it isn't imposed on the members. I’m open about the fact that this kind of Pantheism seems to offer answers to certain questions, especially those in psychology that Atheism doesn’t address.
"ANNIE BESANT."
Theosophy, as its students well know, so far from involving Dualism, is based on the One, which becomes Two on manifestation, just as Atheism posits one existence, only cognisable in the duality force and matter, and as philosophic—though not popular—Theism teaches one Deity whereof are spirit and matter. Mr. Bradlaugh's temperate disapproval was not copied in its temperance by some other Freethought leaders, and Mr. Foote especially distinguished himself by the bitterness of his attacks. In the midst of the whirl I was called away to Paris to attend, with Herbert Burrows, the great Labour Congress held there from July 15th to July 20th, and spent a day or two at Fontainebleau with H.P. Blavatsky, who had gone abroad for a few weeks' rest. There I found her translating the wonderful fragments from "The Book of the Golden Precepts," now so widely known under the name of "The Voice of the Silence." She wrote it swiftly, without any material copy before her, and in the evening made me read it aloud to see if the "English was decent." Herbert Burrows was there, and Mrs. Candler, a staunch American Theosophist, and we sat round H.P.B. while I read. The translation was in perfect and beautiful English, flowing and musical; only a word or two could we find to alter, and she looked at us like a startled child, wondering at our praises—praises that any one with the literary sense would endorse if they read that exquisite prose poem.
Theosophy, as its students know well, is not about Dualism; it's based on the One, which becomes Two when manifested, similar to how Atheism claims there's a single existence that can only be understood through the duality of force and matter. Likewise, philosophical—though not popular—Theism discusses one Deity, from which spirit and matter arise. Mr. Bradlaugh's measured disapproval wasn't mirrored by some other Freethought leaders, particularly Mr. Foote, who stood out for the intensity of his criticisms. Amid all this turmoil, I was called to Paris to attend the major Labour Congress that took place from July 15th to July 20th, along with Herbert Burrows. I also spent a day or two at Fontainebleau with H.P. Blavatsky, who had gone abroad for a few weeks' rest. While there, I found her translating the amazing fragments from "The Book of the Golden Precepts," now well-known as "The Voice of the Silence." She wrote it quickly, without a physical copy in front of her, and in the evening, she asked me to read it aloud to check if the "English was decent." Herbert Burrows and Mrs. Candler, a dedicated American Theosophist, were there as we gathered around H.P.B. while I read. The translation was in perfect and beautiful English, flowing and musical; we only found a word or two to change, and she looked at us like a startled child, amazed by our compliments—compliments that anyone with a literary sense would agree with if they read that exquisite prose poem.
A little earlier in the same day I had asked her as to the agencies at work in producing the taps so constantly heard at Spiritualistic Séances. "You don't use spirits to produce taps," she said; "see here." She put her hand over my head, not touching it, and I heard and felt slight taps on the bone of my skull, each sending a little electric thrill down the spine. She then carefully explained how such taps were producible at any point desired by the operator, and how interplay of the currents to which they were due might be caused otherwise than by conscious human volition. It was in this fashion that she would illustrate her verbal teachings, proving by experiment the statements made as to the existence of subtle forces controllable by the trained mind. The phenomena all belonged to the scientific side of her teaching, and she never committed the folly of claiming authority for her philosophic doctrines on the ground that she was a wonder-worker. And constantly she would remind us that there was no such thing as "miracle"; that all the phenomena she had produced were worked by virtue of a knowledge of nature deeper than that of average people, and by the force of a well-trained mind and will; some of them were what she would describe as "psychological tricks," the creation of images by force of imagination, and in pressing them on others as a "collective hallucination"; others, such as the moving of solid articles, either by an astral hand projected to draw them towards her, or by using an Elemental; others by reading in the Astral Light, and so on. But the proof of the reality of her mission from those whom she spoke of as Masters lay not in these comparatively trivial physical and mental phenomena, but in the splendour of her heroic endurance, the depth of her knowledge, the selflessness of her character, the lofty spirituality of her teaching, the untiring passion of her devotion, the incessant ardour of her work for the enlightening of men. It was these, and not her phenomena, that won for her our faith and confidence—we who lived beside her, knowing her daily life—and we gratefully accepted her teaching not because she claimed any authority, but because it woke in us powers, the possibility of which in ourselves we had not dreamed of, energies of the Soul that demonstrated their own existence.
A little earlier that same day, I had asked her about the sources of the taps we frequently heard at Spiritualist séances. "You don’t need spirits to make those taps," she said; "look." She held her hand over my head without touching it, and I heard and felt faint taps on my skull, each one sending a small electric thrill down my spine. She then carefully explained how these taps could be made at any desired point by the operator and how the interaction of the currents responsible for them might occur without deliberate human intent. This was how she illustrated her verbal teachings, proving through experiments the existence of subtle forces that could be controlled by a trained mind. The phenomena belonged to the scientific aspect of her teaching, and she never made the mistake of claiming authority for her philosophical beliefs based on her ability to perform what seemed like miracles. She often reminded us that there was no such thing as a "miracle"; that all the phenomena she produced were achieved through a deeper understanding of nature than that of most people and by the power of a well-trained mind and will. Some of these were what she called "psychological tricks," created through imagination and presented to others as a "collective hallucination"; others involved moving solid objects, either using an astral hand projected to draw them near or by employing an Elemental; others involved reading the Astral Light, and so on. But the proof of the reality of her mission, referring to those she called her Masters, was not in these relatively minor physical and mental phenomena, but in the brilliance of her heroic endurance, the depth of her knowledge, the selflessness of her character, the high spirituality of her teachings, the tireless passion of her devotion, and the constant enthusiasm she had for enlightening others. It was these qualities, not her phenomena, that earned our faith and trust—those of us who lived alongside her, aware of her daily life—and we gratefully embraced her teachings not because she asserted any authority, but because they awakened in us powers we hadn't imagined were possible within ourselves, energies of the Soul that made their existence clear.
Returning to London from Paris, it became necessary to make a very clear and definite presentment of my change of views, and in the Reformer of August 4th I find the following: "Many statements are being made just now about me and my beliefs, some of which are absurdly, and some of which are maliciously, untrue. I must ask my friends not to give credence to them. It would not be fair to my friend Mr. Bradlaugh to ask him to open the columns of this Journal to an exposition of Theosophy from my pen, and so bring about a long controversy on a subject which would not interest the majority of the readers of the National Reformer. This being so I cannot here answer the attacks made on me. I feel, however, that the party with which I have worked for so long has a right to demand of me some explanation of the step I have taken, and I am therefore preparing a pamphlet dealing fully with the question. Further, I have arranged with Mr. R.O. Smith to take as subject of the lectures to be delivered by me at the Hall of Science on August 4th and 11th 'Why I became a Theosophist.' Meanwhile I think that my years of service in the ranks of the Freethought party give me the right to ask that I should not be condemned unheard, and I even venture to suggest, in view of the praises bestowed on me by Freethinkers in the past, that it is possible that there may be something to be said, from the intellectual standpoint, in favour of Theosophy. The caricatures of it which have appeared from some Freethinkers' pens represent it about as accurately as the Christian Evidence caricatures of Atheism represent that dignified philosophy of life; and, remembering how much they are themselves misrepresented, I ask them to wait before they judge."
Returning to London from Paris, I found it necessary to clearly express my changed views. In the Reformer on August 4th, I stated the following: "Many claims are being made about me and my beliefs right now, some are completely false, and some are maliciously untrue. I ask my friends not to believe them. It wouldn't be fair to my friend Mr. Bradlaugh to request that he publish an explanation of Theosophy from me in this Journal, as it would lead to a lengthy debate on a topic that wouldn’t interest most readers of the National Reformer. Given this, I can't respond to the attacks against me here. However, I feel that the group I've worked with for so long has the right to ask me for some explanation about the step I’ve taken, so I’m preparing a pamphlet that will fully cover the issue. Additionally, I’ve arranged with Mr. R.O. Smith to lecture at the Hall of Science on August 4th and 11th on 'Why I Became a Theosophist.' In the meantime, I believe that my years of service in the Freethought movement give me the right to ask not to be judged without a hearing, and I would even like to suggest that, considering the praise I've received from Freethinkers in the past, there might be some valid points from an intellectual perspective in favor of Theosophy. The caricatures of it that have been created by some Freethinkers are as misleading as the Christian Evidence caricatures of Atheism are of that respected philosophy of life; and, remembering how often they themselves are misrepresented, I ask them to hold off on their judgment."
The lectures were delivered, and were condensed into a pamphlet bearing the same title, which has had a very great circulation. It closed as follows:—
The lectures were given and summarized in a pamphlet with the same title, which has circulated widely. It ended like this:—
"There remains a great stumblingblock in the minds of many Freethinkers which is certain to prejudice them against Theosophy, and which offers to opponents a cheap subject for sarcasm—the assertion that there exist other living beings than the men and animals found on our own globe. It may be well for people who at once turn away when such an assertion is made to stop and ask themselves whether they really and seriously believe that throughout this mighty universe, in which our little planet is but as a tiny speck of sand in the Sahara, this one planet only is inhabited by living things? Is all the universe dumb save for our voices? eyeless save for our vision? dead save for our life? Such a preposterous belief was well enough in the days when Christianity regarded our world as the centre of the universe, the human race as the one for which the Creator had deigned to die. But now that we are placed in our proper position, one among countless myriads of worlds, what ground is there for the preposterous conceit which arrogates as ours all sentient existence? Earth, air, water, all are teeming with living things suited to their environment; our globe is overflowing with life. But the moment we pass in thought beyond our atmosphere everything is to be changed. Neither reason nor analogy support such a supposition. It was one of Bruno's crimes that he dared to teach that other worlds than ours were inhabited; but he was wiser than the monks who burned him. All the Theosophists aver is that each phase of matter has living things suited to it, and that all the universe is pulsing with life. 'Superstition!' shriek the bigoted. It is no more superstition than the belief in Bacteria, or in any other living thing invisible to the ordinary human eye. 'Spirit' is a misleading word, for, historically, it connotes immateriality and a supernatural kind of existence, and the Theosophist believes neither in the one nor the other. With him all living things act in and through a material basis, and 'matter' and 'spirit' are not found dissociated. But he alleges that matter exists in states other than those at present known to science. To deny this is to be about as sensible as was the Hindû prince who denied the existence of ice because water, in his experience, never became solid. Refusal to believe until proof is given is a rational position; denial of all outside of our own limited experience is absurd.
There’s still a major hurdle for many Freethinkers that makes them skeptical of Theosophy, and it gives critics an easy target for ridicule—the claim that there are other living beings beyond the humans and animals on our planet. It might be a good idea for people who dismiss this claim outright to pause and consider if they truly believe that, in this vast universe, where our little planet is just a tiny grain of sand in the Sahara, only this one planet is home to living creatures. Is the entire universe silent except for our voices? Blind except for our sight? Lifeless except for our existence? Such a ridiculous belief was acceptable when Christianity viewed our world as the center of the universe and the human race as the only creation for which the Creator sacrificed Himself. But now that we understand our place as just one of countless worlds, what justification is there for the absurd notion that all sentient life belongs only to us? Earth, air, and water are overflowing with living beings adapted to their environments; our planet is rich with life. However, as soon as we think beyond our atmosphere, everything changes. Neither reason nor analogy backs up such an assumption. One of Bruno's offenses was claiming that other worlds besides ours were inhabited, yet he was wiser than the monks who executed him. All the Theosophists assert is that every form of matter has living beings suited to it, and that the entire universe is alive. “Superstition!” cry the narrow-minded. But it’s no more superstition than believing in bacteria or any other living organism that's invisible to the naked eye. The term “spirit” can be misleading because, historically, it implies immateriality and a supernatural existence, and Theosophists don’t believe in either. They view all living beings as acting through a material basis, and “matter” and “spirit” aren't separate. Instead, they argue that matter exists in states beyond those currently understood by science. Denying this is as sensible as the Hindu prince who refused to believe in ice because, in his experience, water had never solidified. Refusing to believe without proof is a rational stance; denying everything outside our limited experience is ridiculous.
"One last word to my Secularist friends. If you say to me, 'Leave our ranks,' I will leave them; I force myself on no party, and the moment I feel myself unwelcome I will go.[29] It has cost me pain enough and to spare to admit that the Materialism from which I hoped all has failed me, and by such admission to bring on myself the disapproval of some of my nearest friends. But here, as at other times in my life, I dare not purchase peace with a lie. An imperious necessity forces me to speak the truth, as I see it, whether the speech please or displease, whether it bring praise or blame. That one loyalty to Truth I must keep stainless, whatever friendships fail me or human ties be broken. She may lead me into the wilderness, yet I must follow her; she may strip me of all love, yet I must pursue her; though she slay me, yet will I trust in her; and I ask no other epitaph on my tomb but
"One last thing to my Secularist friends. If you tell me to 'leave our ranks,' I will leave; I don’t force myself into any group, and the moment I feel unwelcome, I’ll walk away. It has caused me enough pain to admit that the Materialism I had hoped for has let me down, and by admitting this, I’ve faced disapproval from some of my closest friends. But here, as in other moments in my life, I refuse to buy peace with a lie. A strong need compels me to speak the truth as I see it, whether people like it or not, whether I receive praise or criticism. That one loyalty to Truth I must keep pure, no matter what friendships fade or human connections break. She may lead me into the wilderness, but I must follow her; she may strip me of all love, yet I must seek her; though she may kill me, I will still trust in her; and I ask for no other tombstone inscription but
"'SHE TRIED TO FOLLOW TRUTH.'"
"She tried to seek truth."
Meanwhile, with this new controversy on my hands, the School Board work went on, rendered possible, I ought to say, by the generous assistance of friends unknown to me, who sent me, £150 a year during the last year and a half. So also went on the vigorous Socialist work, and the continual championship of struggling labour movements, prominent here being the organisation of the South London fur-pullers into a union, and the aiding of the movement for shortening the hours of tram and 'bus men, the meetings for which had to be held after midnight. The feeding and clothing of children also occupied much time and attention, for the little ones in my district were, thousands of them, desperately poor. My studies I pursued as best I could, reading in railway carriages, tramcars, omnibuses, and stealing hours for listening to H.P.B. by shortening the nights.
Meanwhile, with this new controversy on my plate, the School Board work continued, made possible, I should mention, by the generous support of friends I didn't know, who sent me £150 a year for the last year and a half. The active Socialist work also continued, along with my ongoing support for struggling labor movements, which prominently included organizing the South London fur-pullers into a union and supporting the effort to reduce the working hours of tram and bus drivers, whose meetings had to be held after midnight. Feeding and clothing children also took up a lot of my time and attention, as the little ones in my area were, thousands of them, extremely poor. I pursued my studies as best as I could, reading in railway carriages, trams, and buses, and stealing hours to listen to H.P.B. by cutting back on sleep.
In October, Mr. Bradlaugh's shaken strength received its death-blow, though he was to live yet another fifteen months. He collapsed suddenly under a most severe attack of congestion and lay in imminent peril, devotedly nursed by his only remaining child, Mrs. Bonner, his elder daughter having died the preceding autumn. Slowly he struggled back to life, after four weeks in bed, and, ordered by his physician to take rest and if possible a sea voyage, he sailed for India on November 28th, to attend the National Congress, where he was enthusiastically acclaimed as "Member for India."
In October, Mr. Bradlaugh's fragile health took a serious turn for the worse, even though he would live for another fifteen months. He suddenly collapsed due to a severe congestion attack and was in critical danger, being cared for by his only surviving child, Mrs. Bonner, after his older daughter had passed away the previous autumn. After four weeks in bed, he gradually fought his way back to health. Following his doctor's advice to rest and, if possible, take a sea trip, he departed for India on November 28th to attend the National Congress, where he was warmly celebrated as "Member for India."
In November I argued a libel suit, brought by me against the Rev. Mr. Hoskyns, vicar of Stepney, who had selected some vile passages from a book which was not mine and had circulated them as representing my views, during the School Board election of 1888. I had against me the Solicitor-General, Sir Edward Clarke, at the bar, and Baron Huddleston on the bench; both counsel and judge did their best to browbeat me and to use the coarsest language, endeavouring to prove that by advocating the limitation of the family I had condemned chastity as a crime. Five hours of brutal cross-examination left my denial of such teachings unshaken, and even the pleadings of the judge for the clergyman, defending his parishioners against an unbeliever and his laying down as law that the statement was privileged, did not avail to win a verdict. The jury disagreed, not, as one of them told me afterwards, on the question of the libel, but on some feeling that a clergyman ought not to be mulcted in damages for his over-zeal in defence of his faith against the ravening wolf of unbelief, while others, regarding the libel as a very cruel one, would not agree to a verdict that did not carry substantial damages. I did not carry the case to a new trial, feeling that it was not worth while to waste time over it further, my innocence of the charge itself having been fully proved.
In November, I argued a libel case that I had brought against Rev. Mr. Hoskyns, the vicar of Stepney, who picked out some nasty quotes from a book that wasn’t mine and spread them as if they represented my views during the 1888 School Board election. I faced off against the Solicitor-General, Sir Edward Clarke, in court, and Baron Huddleston presiding. Both the lawyers and the judge tried their hardest to intimidate me and used very harsh language, trying to argue that by suggesting limits on family size, I had made chastity out to be a crime. After five hours of a brutal cross-examination, my denial of those claims remained intact, and even the judge's attempts to support the clergyman—claiming he was defending his parishioners from an unbeliever and stating that the comments were privileged—weren't enough to sway the jury. They couldn’t agree, not because of the issue of libel itself, but because some felt a clergyman shouldn’t be penalized for being overly passionate in defending his faith against the threat of disbelief, while others viewed the libel as particularly cruel and refused to agree to a verdict without substantial damages. I chose not to pursue a retrial, feeling it wasn’t worth my time, especially since my innocence of the charges had already been clearly established.
Busily the months rolled on, and early in the year 1890 H.P.Blavatsky had given to her £1,000, to use in her discretion for human service, and if she thought well, in the service of women. After a good deal of discussion she fixed on the establishment of a club in East London for working girls, and with her approval Miss Laura Cooper and I hunted for a suitable place. Finally we fixed on a very large and old house, 193, Bow Road, and some months went in its complete renovation and the building of a hall attached to it. On August 15th it was opened by Madame Blavatsky, and dedicated by her to the brightening of the lot of hardworking and underpaid girls. It has nobly fulfilled its mission for the last three years. Very tender was H.P.B.'s heart to human suffering, especially to that of women and children. She was very poor towards the end of her earthly life, having spent all on her mission, and refusing to take time from her Theosophical work to write for the Russian papers which were ready to pay highly for her pen. But her slender purse was swiftly emptied when any human pain that money could relieve came in her way. One day I wrote a letter to a comrade that was shown to her, about some little children to whom I had carried a quantity of country flowers, and I had spoken of their faces pinched with want. The following characteristic note came to me:—
Busily, the months went by, and early in 1890, H.P. Blavatsky had given £1,000 to use at her discretion for humanitarian purposes, and if she deemed fit, in support of women. After considerable discussion, she decided to set up a club in East London for working girls, and with her approval, Miss Laura Cooper and I searched for a suitable location. We eventually chose a large, old house at 193 Bow Road, and spent several months completely renovating it and building a hall attached to it. On August 15th, it was inaugurated by Madame Blavatsky and dedicated to improving the lives of hardworking, underpaid girls. It has nobly fulfilled its mission for the past three years. H.P.B. had a very compassionate heart toward human suffering, especially that of women and children. She was quite poor toward the end of her life, having spent everything on her mission, and she refused to take time away from her Theosophical work to write for Russian newspapers that were willing to pay well for her writing. However, her meager finances were quickly drained whenever she encountered human suffering that money could alleviate. One day, I wrote a letter to a colleague, which was shown to her, regarding some little children to whom I had brought a bunch of country flowers, and I mentioned their faces drawn with hunger. I received the following characteristic note:—
"MY DEAREST FRIEND,—I have just read your letter to — and my heart is sick for the poor little ones! Look here; I have but 30s. of my own money of which I can dispose (for as you know I am a pauper, and proud of it), but I want you to take them and not say a word. This may buy thirty dinners for thirty poor little starving wretches, and I may feel happier for thirty minutes at the thought. Now don't say a word, and do it; take them to those unfortunate babies who loved your flowers and felt happy. Forgive your old uncouth friend, useless in this world!
"MY DEAREST FRIEND,—I just read your letter to — and my heart aches for the poor little ones! Look, I only have 30s. of my own money that I can give (since you know I’m broke, and I’m okay with that), but I want you to take it and not say a word. This could buy thirty dinners for thirty poor starving kids, and I might feel happier for thirty minutes just thinking about it. Now please don’t say anything, just do it; take it to those unfortunate babies who loved your flowers and found joy in them. Forgive your old awkward friend, useless in this world!
"Ever yours,
"Always yours,"
"H.P.B."
"H.P.B."
It was this tenderness of hers that led us, after she had gone, to found the "H.P.B. Home for little children," and one day we hope to fulfil her expressed desire that a large but homelike Refuge for outcast children should be opened under the auspices of the Theosophical Society.
It was her kindness that inspired us, after she left, to create the "H.P.B. Home for Little Children," and one day we hope to fulfill her wish that a large but welcoming refuge for abandoned children be established under the Theosophical Society's guidance.
The lease of 17, Lansdowne Road expiring in the early summer of 1890, it was decided that 19, Avenue Road should be turned into the headquarters of the Theosophical Society in Europe. A hall was built for the meetings of the Blavatsky Lodge—the lodge founded by her—and various alterations made. In July her staff of workers was united under one roof; thither came Archibald and Bertram Keightley, who had devoted themselves to her service years before, and the Countess Wachtmeister, who had thrown aside all the luxuries of wealth and of high social rank to give all to the cause she served and the friend she loved with deep and faithful loyajty; and George Mead, her secretary and earnest disciple, a man of strong brain and strong character, a fine scholar and untiring worker; thither, too, Claude Wright, most lovable of Irishmen, with keen insight underlying a bright and sunny nature, careless on the surface, and Walter Old, dreamy and sensitive, a born psychic, and, like many such, easily swayed by those around him; Emily Kislingbury also, a studious and earnest woman; Isabel Cooper Oakley, intuitional and studious, a rare combination, and a most devoted pupil in Occult studies; James Pryse, an American, than whom none is more devoted, bringing practical knowledge to the help of the work, and making possible the large development of our printing department. These, with myself, were at first the resident staff, Miss Cooper and Herbert Burrows, who were also identified with the work, being prevented by other obligations from living always as part of the household.
The lease for 17 Lansdowne Road was set to expire in early summer 1890, so it was decided to establish the headquarters of the Theosophical Society in Europe at 19 Avenue Road. A hall was built for the meetings of the Blavatsky Lodge, which she founded, and various changes were made. In July, her staff was brought together under one roof; Archibald and Bertram Keightley, who had devoted themselves to her years earlier, came there, along with the Countess Wachtmeister, who had abandoned her wealth and high social status to fully commit to the cause she believed in and the friend she deeply and faithfully loved; George Mead, her secretary and dedicated follower, who was a strong thinker and character, an excellent scholar, and a tireless worker; Claude Wright, the most endearing of Irishmen, with sharp insight behind his cheerful demeanor, seemingly carefree; and Walter Old, dreamy and sensitive, a natural psychic who, like many in that realm, was easily influenced by those around him; Emily Kislingbury, a serious and earnest woman; Isabel Cooper Oakley, intuitive and studious, a rare mix and a devoted student of occult studies; and James Pryse, an American whose dedication was unmatched, bringing practical knowledge to support the work and enabling the significant growth of our printing department. Initially, these were the resident staff, along with Miss Cooper and Herbert Burrows, who were also involved in the work but couldn’t always live as part of the household due to other commitments.
The rules of the house were—and are—very simple, but H.P.B. insisted on great regularity of life; we breakfasted at 8 a.m., worked till lunch at 1, then again till dinner at 7. After dinner the outer work for the Society was put aside, and we gathered in H.P.B.'s room where we would sit talking over plans, receiving instructions, listening to her explanation of knotty points. By 12 midnight all the lights had to be extinguished. My public work took me away for many hours, unfortunately for myself, but such was the regular run of our busy lives. She herself wrote incessantly; always suffering, but of indomitable will, she drove her body through its tasks, merciless to its weaknesses and its pains. Her pupils she treated very variously, adapting herself with nicest accuracy to their differing natures; as a teacher she was marvellously patient, explaining a thing over and over again in different fashions, until sometimes after prolonged failure she would throw herself back in her chair: "My God!" (the easy "Mon Dieu" of the foreigner) "am I a fool that you can't understand? Here, So-and-so"—to some one on whose countenance a faint gleam of comprehension was discernible—"tell these flapdoodles of the ages what I mean." With vanity, conceit, pretence of knowledge, she was merciless, if the pupil were a promising one; keen shafts of irony would pierce the sham. With some she would get very angry, lashing them out of their lethargy with fiery scorn; and in truth she made herself a mere instrument for the training of her pupils, careless what they, or any one else thought of her, providing that the resulting benefit to them was secured. And we, who lived around her, who in closest intimacy watched her day after day, we bear witness to the unselfish beauty of her life, the nobility of her character, and we lay at her feet our most reverent gratitude for knowledge gained, lives purified, strength developed. O noble and heroic Soul, whom the outside purblind world misjudges, but whom your pupils partly saw, never through lives and deaths shall we repay the debt of gratitude we owe to you.
The house rules were—and still are—very straightforward, but H.P.B. insisted on maintaining a strict daily routine; we had breakfast at 8 a.m., worked until lunch at 1, then again until dinner at 7. After dinner, we set aside our outer work for the Society and gathered in H.P.B.'s room where we would sit discussing plans, receiving instructions, and listening to her explain complex issues. By midnight, all lights had to be turned off. My public work kept me away for many hours, unfortunately for me, but that was just the regular pace of our busy lives. She herself wrote tirelessly; always in pain but with an indomitable spirit, she pushed her body through its tasks, showing no mercy to its weaknesses or discomforts. She treated her students in a variety of ways, adjusting her approach precisely to their differing personalities; as a teacher, she was incredibly patient, explaining concepts over and over in different ways until, after repeated attempts, she would lean back in her chair and exclaim, "My God!" (the easy "Mon Dieu" of a foreigner) "Am I a fool that you can't understand? Here, So-and-so”—pointing to someone who seemed to have a hint of understanding—"explain to these clueless folks what I mean." She was unyielding toward vanity, arrogance, or pretense of knowledge if a student showed promise; sharp irony would pierce through the pretense. With some, she would become very angry, shaking them out of their lethargy with intense scorn; in truth, she made herself merely an instrument for training her students, indifferent to what they or anyone else thought of her, as long as it benefited them. And we, who lived with her, who observed her closely day after day, bear witness to the selfless beauty of her life, the nobility of her character, and we offer her our deepest gratitude for the knowledge gained, lives refined, and strength developed. O noble and heroic soul, misunderstood by the blind outside world, yet partly seen by your students; throughout our lives and beyond, we will never be able to repay the debt of gratitude we owe you.
And thus I came through storm to peace, not to the peace of an untroubled sea of outer life, which no strong soul can crave, but to an inner peace that outer troubles may not avail to ruffle—a peace which belongs to the eternal not to the transitory, to the depths not to the shallows of life. It carried me scatheless through the terrible spring of 1891, when death struck down Charles Bradlaugh in the plenitude of his usefulness, and unlocked the gateway into rest for H. P. Blavatsky. Through anxieties and responsibilities heavy and numerous it has borne me; every strain makes it stronger; every trial makes it serener; every assault leaves it more radiant. Quiet confidence has taken the place of doubt; a strong security the place of anxious dread. In life, through death, to life, I am but the servant of the great Brotherhood, and those on whose heads but for a moment the touch of the Master has rested in blessing can never again look upon the world save through eyes made luminous with the radiance of the Eternal Peace.
And so I made it through the storm to peace, not the peace of a smooth, uneventful outer life, which no strong person truly desires, but an inner peace that outer chaos can’t disturb—a peace that belongs to the eternal rather than the temporary, to the depths rather than the shallows of life. It carried me unscathed through the awful spring of 1891, when death took Charles Bradlaugh in the height of his impact and opened the door to rest for H. P. Blavatsky. Through heavy and numerous anxieties and responsibilities, it has supported me; every strain makes it stronger; every trial makes it calmer; every attack leaves it more radiant. Quiet confidence has replaced doubt; a strong sense of security has taken the place of anxious fear. In life, through death, to life, I am just a servant of the great Brotherhood, and those who have felt the Master’s blessing, even for a moment, can never again view the world except through eyes illuminated by the glow of Eternal Peace.
PEACE TO ALL BEINGS.
Peace to all beings.
FOOTNOTES
1 This odious law has now been altered, and a married woman is a person, not a chattel.
1 This terrible law has now been changed, and a married woman is considered a person, not property.
2 "The Disciples," p. 14.
"The Disciples," p. 14.
5 "The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
"The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
7 Ibid.
Ibid.
8 Ibid.
Ibid.
9 "Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
"Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
10 "Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
"Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
11 "Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
"Life, Death, and Immortality." 1886.
12 Ibid.
Ibid.
13 "The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
"The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
16 "Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
"Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
18 "A World without God." 1885.
"A World Without God." 1885.
19 "The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
"The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
20 "The Gospels of Christianity and Freethought." 1874.
20 "The Gospels of Christianity and Freethought." 1874.
21 "A World without God." 1885.
"A World without God." 1885.
22 "A World without God." 1885.
"A World without God." 1885.
23 "The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
"The Gospel of Atheism." 1876.
24 "A World without God." 1885.
"A World without God." 1885.
25 "A World without God." 1885.
"A World Without God." 1885.
26 "The Christian Creed." 1884.
"The Christian Creed." 1884.
27 National Reformer, June 18, 1882
National Reformer, June 18, 1882
28 Theosophist, June, 1882.
Theosophist, June 1882.
29 I leave these words as they were written in 1889. I resigned my office in the N.S.S. in 1890, feeling that the N.S.S. was so identified with Materialism that it had no longer place for me.
29 I leave these words as they were written in 1889. I stepped down from my position in the N.S.S. in 1890, feeling that the N.S.S. was so associated with Materialism that it no longer had a place for me.
LIST OF BOOKS QUOTED.
"Autobiography," J.S. Mill, 184
"Autobiography," J.S. Mill, 1840
"Christian Creed, The," 173
"Christian Creed," 173
"Freethinkers' Text-book," 144
"Freethinkers' Textbook," 144
"Gospel of Atheism, The," 145, 152, 158, 168
"Gospel of Atheism, The," 145, 152, 158, 168
"Gospels of Christianity and Freethought," 164
"Gospels of Christianity and Freethought," 164
"Life, Death, and Immortality," 147, 149, 150
"Life, Death, and Immortality," 147, 149, 150
Link, The, 333
Link, The, 333
National Reformer, The, 79, 80, 280, 346-50, 354
National Reformer, The, 79, 80, 280, 346-50, 354
Our Corner, 286, 329
Our Corner, 286, 329
Theosophist, The, 282, 288
Theosophist, The, 282, 288
"True Basis of Morality," 156
"True Basis of Morality," 156
"Why I do Not Believe in God," 146
"Why I Don't Believe in God," 146
"World without God," 165, 169, 172
"World without God," 165, 169, 172
INDEX.
- Affirmation Bill brought in, 287
- rejected, 299
- Atheist, position as an, 139
- Authorship, first attempts at, 84.
- Bennett, D.M., prosecution of, 232
- Blasphemy prosecution, 283, 287, 289
- Blavatsky, H.P., 189, 337
- meeting with, 341
- "Bloody Sunday," 324
- Bradlaugh, Charles, first meeting with, 135
- as friend, 137
- in the Clock Tower, 258
- and the scene in the House, 265
- v. Newdegate; result, 289
- prosecuted for blasphemy, 283, 289
- Confirmation, 51
- Daughter, application to remove, 213
- denied access to, 219
- Death of father, 21
- of mother, 126
- Doubt the first, 58
- "Elements of Social Science," 196
- Engagement, 69
- Essay, first Freethought, 113
- Fenians, the, 73
- Freethinker prosecution, 283, 287, 296
- Freethought Publishing Company, the, 285
- Harrow, life at, 30
- Hoskyns, Rev. E., libel action against, 359
- Knowlton pamphlet, the, 205
- prosecution, 208
- trial, 210
- "Law of Population, The," 212, 210
- "Law and Liberty League," the, 326
- Lecture, the first, 181
- Linnell, the Trafalgar Square victim, 316
- funeral of, 327
- Link, founding of the, 331
- Malthusian League formed, 229
- Malthusianism and Theosophy, 240
- Marriage, 70
- tie broken, no
- Match-girls' strike, 335
- Union, established, 336
- National Reformer, the, 134
- first contribution to, 180
- resignation of co-editorship, 320
- National Secular Society joined, 135
- elected vice-president of, 202
- resignation of, 357
- Northampton Election, 183
- struggle, 253, 344
- Oaths Bill, the, 314, 329
- Our Corner, 286, 314
- Political Opinions, 174
- Pusey, Dr., 109, 284
- Russian politics, 311
- Scientific work, 249
- School Board, election to, 338
- Scott, Thomas, 112, 127
- Socialism, 299
- debate on, between Messrs. Bradlaugh and Hyndman, 301
- Socialist debates, 318, 319
- Socialists and open-air speaking, 312
- Defence Association, 323
- Stanley, Dean, 23, 122
- Theosophical Society, the, 180
- joined, 344
- headquarters established, 361
- Theosophy and Charles Bradlaugh, 350
- the National Secular Society, 357
- Trafalgar Square, closing of, to the public, 323
- Truelove, Edward, trial of, 225
- Voysey, Rev. Charles, 106
- Working Women's Club, 337, 360
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!